ãصС˵ www.27txt.com ӭȥŶݵ㡣
վԴȫתԻ֧棬ȨУ

ut of nowhere, a few yards apart in the narrow, moonlit 
lane. For a second they stood quite still, wands directed at each other's chests; then, 
recognizing each other, they stowed their wands beneath their cloaks and started walking 
briskly in the same direction. 
"News?" asked the taller of the two. 
"The best," replied Severus Snape. 
The lane was bordered on the left by wild, low-growing brambles, on the right by a high, 
neatly manicured hedge. The men's long cloaks flapped around their ankles as they 
marched. 
"Thought I might be late," said Yaxley, his blunt features sliding in and out of sight as 
the branches of overhanging trees broke the moonlight. "It was a little trickier than I 
expected. But I hope he will be satisfied. You sound confident that your reception will be 
good?" 
Snape nodded, but did not elaborate. They turned right, into a wide driveway that led 
off the lane. The high hedge curved into them, running off into the distance beyond the 
pair of imposing wrought-iron gates barring the mens way. Neither of them broke step: 
In silence both raised their left arms in a kind of salute and passed straight through, as 
though the dark metal was smoke. 

 The yew hedges muffled the sound of the mens footsteps. There was a rustle 
somewhere to their right: Yaxley drew his wand again pointing it over his companions 
head, but the source of the noise proved to be nothing more than a pure-white peacock, 
strutting majestically along the top of the hedge. 

 He always did himself well, Lucius. Peacocks  Yaxley thrust his wand back 
under his cloak with a snort. 

 A handsome manor house grew out of the darkness at the end of the straight drive, 
lights glinting in the diamond paned downstairs windows. Somewhere in the dark garden 
beyond the hedge a fountain was playing. Gravel crackled beneath their feet as Snape and 
Yaxley sped toward the front door, which swung inward at their approach, though 
nobody had visibly opened it. 

 The hallway was large, dimly lit, and sumptuously decorated, with a magnificent 
carpet covering most of the stone floor. The eyes of the pale-faced portraits on the wall 
followed Snape and Yaxley as they strode past. The two men halted at a heavy wooden 
door leading into the next room, hesitated for the space of a heartbeat, then Snape turned 
the bronze handle. 

 The drawing room was full of silent people, sitting at a long and ornate table. The 
rooms usual furniture had been pushed carelessly up against the walls. Illumination 
came from a roaring fire beneath a handsome marble mantelpiece surmounted by a gilded 
mirror. Snape and Yaxley lingered for a moment on the threshold. As their eyes grew 
accustomed to the lack of light, they were drawn upward to the strangest feature of the 
scene: an apparently unconscious human figure hanging upside down over the table, 
revolving slowly as if suspended by an invisible rope, and reflected in the mirror and in 
the bare, polished surface of the table below. None of the people seated underneath this 


singular sight were looking at it except for a pale young man sitting almost directly below 
it. He seemed unable to prevent himself from glancing upward every minute or so. 

 Yaxley. Snape, said a high, clear voice from the head of the table. You are 
very nearly late. 

 The speaker was seated directly in front of the fireplace, so that it was difficult, at 
first, for the new arrivals to make out more than his silhouette. As they drew nearer, 
however, his face shone through the gloom, hairless, snakelike, with slits for nostrils and 
gleaming red eyes whose pupils were vertical. He was so pale that he seemed to emit a 
pearly glow. 

 Severus, here, said Voldemort, indicating the seat on his immediate right. 
Yaxley C beside Dolohov. 

 The two men took their allotted places. Most of the eyes around the table 
followed Snape, and it was to him that Voldemort spoke first. 

 So? 

 My Lord, the Order of the Phoenix intends to move Harry Potter from his current 
place of safety on Saturday next, at nightfall. 

 The interest around the table sharpened palpably: Some stiffened, others fidgeted, 
all gazing at Snape and Voldemort. 

 Saturday  at nightfall, repeated Voldemort. His red eyes fastened upon 
Snapes black ones with such intensity that some of the watchers looked away, apparently 
fearful that they themselves would be scorched by the ferocity of the gaze. Snape, 
however, looked calmly back into Voldemorts face and, after a moment or two, 
Voldemorts lipless mouth curved into something like a smile. 

 Good. Very good. And this information comes C 

  C from the source we discussed, said Snape. 

 My Lord. 

 Yaxley had leaned forward to look down the long table at Voldemort and Snape. 
All faces turned to him. 

 My Lord, I have heard differently. 

 Yaxley waited, but Voldemort did not speak, so he went on, Dawlish, the Auror, 
let slip that Potter will not be moved until the thirtieth, the night before the boy turns 
seventeen. 

 Snape was smiling. 

 My source told me that there are plans to lay a false trail; this must be it. No 
doubt a Confundus Charm has been placed upon Dawlish. It would not be the first time; 
he is known to be susceptible. 

 I assure you, my Lord, Dawlish seemed quite certain, said Yaxley. 

 If he has been Confunded, naturally he is certain, said Snape. I assure you, 
Yaxley, the Auror Office will play no further part in the protection of Harry Potter. The 
Order believes that we have infiltrated the Ministry. 

 The Orders got one thing right, then, eh? said a squat man sitting a short 
distance from Yaxley; he gave a wheezy giggle that was echoed here and there along the 
table. 

 Voldemort did not laugh. His gaze had wandered upward to the body revolving 
slowly overhead, and he seemed to be lost in thought. 


 My Lord, Yaxley went on, Dawlish believes an entire party of Aurors will be 
used to transfer the boy C 

 Voldemort held up a large white hand, and Yaxley subsided at once, watching 
resentfully as Voldemort turned back to Snape. 

 Where are they going to hide the boy next? 

 At the home of one of the Order, said Snape. The place, according to the 
source, has been given every protection that the Order and Ministry together could 
provide. I think that there is little chance of taking him once he is there, my Lord, unless, 
of course, the Ministry has fallen before next Saturday, which might give us the 
opportunity to discover and undo enough of the enchantments to break through the rest. 

 Well, Yaxley? Voldemort called down the table, the firelight glinting strangely 
in his red eyes. Will the Ministry have fallen by next Saturday? 

 Once again, all heads turned. Yaxley squared his shoulders. 

 My Lord, I have good news on that score. I have C with difficulty, and after great 
effort C succeeded in placing an Imperius Curse upon Pius Thicknesse. 

 Many of those sitting around Yaxley looked impressed; his neighbor, Dolohov, a 
man with a long, twisted face, clapped him on the back. 

 It is a start, said Voldemort. But Thicknesse is only one man. Scrimgeour must 
be surrounded by our people before I act. One failed attempt on the Ministers life will 
set me back a long way. 

 Yes C my Lord, that is true C but you know, as Head of the Department of 
Magical Law Enforcement, Thicknesse has regular contact not only with the Minister 
himself, but also with the Heads of all the other Ministry departments. It will, I think, be 
easy now that we have such a high-ranking official under our control, to subjugate the 
others, and then they can all work together to bring Scrimgeour down. 

 As long as our friend Thicknesse is not discovered before he has converted the 
rest, said Voldemort. At any rate, it remains unlikely that the Ministry will be mine 
before next Saturday. If we cannot touch the boy at his destination, then it must be done 
while he travels. 

 We are at an advantage there, my Lord, said Yaxley, who seemed determined to 
receive some portion of approval. We now have several people planted within the 
Department of Magical Transport. If Potter Apparates or uses the Floo Network, we shall 
know immediately. 

 He will not do either, said Snape. The Order is eschewing any form of 
transport that is controlled or regulated by the Ministry; they mistrust everything to do 
with the place. 

 All the better, said Voldemort. He will have to move in the open. Easier to 
take, by far. 

 Again, Voldemort looked up at the slowly revolving body as he went on, I shall 
attend to the boy in person. There have been too many mistakes where Harry Potter is 
concerned. Some of them have been my own. That Potter lives is due more to my errors 
than to his triumphs. 

 The company around the table watched Voldemort apprehensively, each of them, 
by his or her expression, afraid that they might be blamed for Harry Potters continued 
existence. Voldemort, however, seemed to be speaking more to himself than to any of 
them, still addressing the unconscious body above him. 


 I have been careless, and so have been thwarted by luck and chance, those 
wreckers of all but the best-laid plans. But I know better now. I understand those things 
that I did not understand before. I must be the one to kill Harry Potter, and I shall be. 

 At these words, seemingly in response to them, a sudden wail sounded, a terrible, 
drawn-out cry of misery and pain. Many of those at the table looked downward, startled, 
for the sound had seemed to issue from below their feet. 

 Wormtail, said Voldemort, with no change in his quiet, thoughtful tone, and 
without removing his eyes from the revolving body above, have I not spoken to you 
about keeping our prisoner quiet? 

 Yes, m-my Lord, gasped a small man halfway down the table, who had been 
sitting so low in his chair that it appeared, at first glance, to be unoccupied. Now he 
scrambled from his seat and scurried from the room, leaving nothing behind him but a 
curious gleam of silver. 

 As I was saying, continued Voldemort, looking again at the tense faces of his 
followers, I understand better now. I shall need, for instance, to borrow a wand from one 
of you before I go to kill Potter. 

 The faces around him displayed nothing but shock; he might have announced that 
he wanted to borrow one of their arms. 

 No volunteers? said Voldemort. Lets see  Lucius, I see no reason for you to 
have a wand anymore. 

 Lucius Malfoy looked up. His skin appeared yellowish and waxy in the firelight, 
and his eyes were sunken and shadowed. When he spoke, his voice was hoarse. 

 My Lord? 

 Your wand, Lucius. I require your wand. 

 I  

 Malfoy glanced sideways at his wife. She was staring straight ahead, quite as pale 
as he was, her long blonde hair hanging down her back, but beneath the table her slim 
fingers closed briefly on his wrist. At her touch, Malfoy put his hand into his robes, 
withdrew a wand, and passed it along to Voldemort, who held it up in front of his red 
eyes, examining it closely. 

 What is it? 

 Elm, my Lord, whispered Malfoy. 

 And the core? 

 Dragon C dragon heartstring. 

 Good, said Voldemort. He drew out his wand and compared the lengths. Lucius 
Malfoy made an involuntary movement; for a fraction of a second, it seemed he expected 
to receive Voldemorts wand in exchange for his own. The gesture was not missed by 
Voldemort, whose eyes widened maliciously. 

 Give you my wand, Lucius? My wand? 

 Some of the throng sniggered. 

 I have given you your liberty, Lucius, is that not enough for you? But I have 
noticed that you and your family seem less than happy of late  What is it about my 
presence in your home that displaces you, Lucius? 

 Nothing C nothing, my Lord! 

 Such lies Lucius   


 The soft voice seemed to hiss on even after the cruel mouth had stopped moving. 
One or two of the wizards barely repressed a shudder as the hissing grew louder; 
something heavy could be heard sliding across the floor beneath the table. 

 The huge snake emerged to climb slowly up Voldemorts chair. It rose, seemingly 
endlessly, and came to rest across Voldemorts shoulders: its neck the thickness of a 
mans thigh; its eyes, with their vertical slits for pupils, unblinking. Voldemort stroked 
the creature absently with long thin fingers, still looking at Lucius Malfoy. 

 Why do the Malfoys look so unhappy with their lot? Is my return, my rise to 
power, not the very thing they professed to desire for so many years? 

 Of course, my Lord, said Lucius Malfoy. His hand shook as he wiped sweat 
from his upper lip. We did desire it C we do. 

 To Malfoys left, his wife made an odd, stiff nod, her eyes averted from 
Voldemort and the snake. To his right, his son, Draco, who had been gazing up at the 
inert body overhead, glanced quickly at Voldemort and away again, terrified to make eye 
contact. 

 My Lord, said a dark woman halfway down the table, her voice constricted with 
emotion, it is an honor to have you here, in our familys house. There can be no higher 
pleasure. 

 She sat beside her sister, as unlike her in looks, with her dark hair and heavily 
lidded eyes, as she was in bearing and demeanor; where Narcissa sat rigid and impassive, 
Bellatrix leaned toward Voldemort, for mere words could not demonstrate her longing for 
closeness. 

 No higher pleasure, repeated Voldemort, his head tilted a little to one side as he 
considered Bellatrix. That means a great deal, Bellatrix, from you. 

 Her face flooded with color; her eyes welled with tears of delight. 

 My Lord knows I speak nothing but the truth! 

 No higher pleasure  even compared with the happy event that, I hear, has 
taken place in your family this week? 

 She stared at him, her lips parted, evidently confused. 

 I dont know what you mean, my Lord. 

 Im talking about your niece, Bellatrix. And yours, Lucius and Narcissa. She has 
just married the werewolf, Remus Lupin. You must be so proud. 

 There was an eruption of jeering laughter from around the table. Many leaned 
forward to exchange gleeful looks; a few thumped the table with their fists. The giant 
snake, disliking the disturbance, opened its mouth wide and hissed angrily, but the Death 
Eaters did not hear it, so jubilant were they at Bellatrix and the Malfoys humiliation. 
Bellatrixs face, so recently flushed wit happiness, had turned an ugly, blotchy red. 

 She is no niece of ours, my Lord, she cried over the outpouring of mirth. We C 
Narcissa and I C have never set eyes on our sister since she married the Mudblood. This 
brat has nothing to do with either of us, nor any beast she marries. 

 What say you, Draco? asked Voldemort, and though his voice was quiet, it 
carried clearly through the catcalls and jeers. Will you babysit the cubs? 

 The hilarity mounted; Draco Malfoy looked in terror at his father, who was 
staring down into his own lap, then caught his mothers eye. She shook her head almost 
imperceptibly, then resumed her own deadpan stare at the opposite wall. 

 Enough, said Voldemort, stroking the angry snake. Enough. 


 And the laughter died at once. 

 Many of our oldest family trees become a little diseased over time, he said as 
Bellatrix gazed at him, breathless and imploring, You must prune yours, must you not, 
to keep it healthy? Cut away those parts that threaten the health of the rest. 

 Yes, my Lord, whispered Bellatrix, and her eyes swam with tears of gratitude 
again. At the first chance! 

 You shall have it, said Voldemort. And in your family, so in the world  we 
shall cut away the canker that infects us until only those of the true blood remain  

 Voldemort raised Lucius Malfoys wand, pointed it directly at the slowly 
revolving figure suspended over the table, and gave it a tiny flick. The figure came to life 
with a groan and began to struggle against invisible bonds. 

 Do you recognize our guest, Severus? asked Voldemort. 

 Snape raised his eyes to the upside down face. All of the Death Eaters were 
looking up at the captive now, as though they had been given permission to show 
curiosity. As she revolved to face the firelight, the woman said in a cracked and terrified 
voice, Severus! Help me! 

 Ah, yes, said Snape as the prisoner turned slowly away again. 

 And you, Draco? asked Voldemort, stroking the snakes snout with his wand-
free hand. Draco shook his head jerkily. Now that the woman had woken, he seemed 
unable to look at her anymore. 

 But you would not have taken her classes, said Voldemort. For those of you 
who do not know, we are joined here tonight by Charity Burbage who, until recently, 
taught at Hogwarts School of Witchcraft and Wizardry. 

 There were small noises of comprehension around the table. A broad, hunched 
woman with pointed teeth cackled. 

 Yes  Professor Burbage taught the children of witches and wizards all about 
Muggles  how they are not so different from us   

 One of the Death Eaters spat on the floor. Charity Burbage revolved to face Snape 
again. 

 Severus  please  please   

 Silence, said Voldemort, with another twitch of Malfoys wand, and Charity fell 
silent as if gagged. Not content with corrupting and polluting the minds of Wizarding 
children, last week Professor Burbage wrote an impassioned defense of Mudbloods in the 
Daily Prophet. Wizards, she says, must accept these thieves of their knowledge and 
magic. The dwindling of the purebloods is, says Professor Burbage, a most desirable 
circumstance  She would have us all mate with Muggles  or, no doubt, werewolves 
  

 Nobody laughed this time. There was no mistaking the anger and contempt in 
Voldemorts voice. For the third time, Charity Burbage revolved to face Snape. Tears 
were pouring from her eyes into her hair. Snape looked back at her, quite impassive, as 
she turned slowly away from him again. 

 Avada Kedavra 

 The flash of green light illuminated every corner of the room. Charity fell, with a 
resounding crash, onto the table below, which trembled and creaked. Several of the Death 
Eaters leapt back in their chairs. Draco fell out of his onto the floor. 


 Dinner, Nagini, said Voldemort softly, and the great snake swayed and slithered 
from his shoulders onto the polished wood. 

 

Chapter Two 

In Memorandum 

 

Harry was bleeding. Clutching his right hand in his left and swearing under his 
breath, he shouldered open his bedroom door. There was a crunch of breaking china. He 
had trodden on a cup of cold tea that had been sitting on the floor outside his bedroom 
door. 

 "What the --?" 

 He looked around, the landing of number four, Privet Drive, was deserted. 
Possibly the cup of tea was Dudley's idea of a clever booby trap. Keeping his bleeding 
hand elevated, Harry scraped the fragments of cup together with the other hand and threw 
them into the already crammed bin just visible inside his bedroom door. Then he tramped 
across to the bathroom to run his finger under the tap. 

 It was stupid, pointless, irritating beyond belief that he still had four days left of 
being unable to perform magicbut he had to admit to himself that this jagged cut in his 
finger would have defeated him. He had never learned how to repair wounds, and now he 
came to think of it C particularly in light of his immediate plans C this seemed a serious 
flaw in his magical education. Making a mental note to ask Hermione how it was done, 
he used a large wad of toilet paper to mop up as much of the tea as he could before 
returning to his bedroom and slamming the door behind him. 

 Harry had spent the morning completely emptying his school trunk for the first 
time since he had packed it six years ago. At the start of the intervening school years, he 
had merely skimmed off the topmost three quarters of the contents and replaced or 
updated them, leaving a layer of general debris at the bottom C old quills, desiccated 
beetle eyes, single socks that no longer fit. Minutes previously, Harry had plunged his 
hand into this mulch, experienced a stabbing pain in the fourth finger of his right hand, 
and withdrawn it to see a lot of blood. 

 He now proceeded a little more cautiously. Kneeling down beside the trunk again, 
he groped around in the bottom and, after retrieving an old badge that flickered feebly 
between SUPPORT CEDRIC DIGGORY and POTTER STINKS, a cracked and worn-out 
Sneakoscope, and a gold locket inside which a note signed R.A.B. had been hidden, he 
finally discovered the sharp edge that had done the damage. He recognized it at once. It 
was a two-inch-long fragment of the enchanted mirror that his dead godfather, Sirius, had 
given him. Harry laid it aside and felt cautiously around the trunk for the rest, but nothing 


more remained of his godfather's last gift except powdered glass, which clung to the 
deepest layer of debris like glittering grit. 

 Harry sat up and examined the jagged piece on which he had cut himself, seeing 
nothing but his own bright green eye reflected back at him. Then he placed the fragment 
on top of that morning's Daily prophet, which lay unread on the bed, and attempted to 
stem the sudden upsurge of bitter memories, the stabs of regret and of longing the 
discovery of the broken mirror had occasioned, by attacking the rest of the rubbish in the 
trunk. 

 It took another hour to empty it completely, throw away the useless items, and 
sort the remainder in piles according to whether or not he would need them from now on. 
His school and Quidditch robes, cauldron, parchment, quills, and most of his textbooks 
were piled in a corner, to be left behind. He wondered what his aunt and uncle would do 
with them; burn them in the dead of night, probably, as if they were evidence of some 
dreadful crime. His Muggle clothing, Invisibility Cloak, potion-making kit, certain books, 
the photograph album Hagrid had once given him, a stack of letters, and his wand had 
been repacked into an old rucksack. In a front pocket were the Marauder's Map and the 
locket with the note signed R.A.B. inside it. The locket was accorded this place of honor 
not because it was valuable C in all usual senses it was worthless C but because of what it 
had cost to attain it. 

 This left a sizable stack of newspapers sitting on his desk beside his snowy owl, 
Hedwig: one for each of the days Harry had spent at Privet Drive this summer. 

 He got up off the floor, stretched, and moved across to his desk. Hedwig made no 
movement as he began to flick through newspapers, throwing them into the rubbish pile 
one by one. The owl was asleep or else faking; she was angry with Harry about the 
limited amount of time she was allowed out of her cage at the moment. 

 As he neared the bottom of the pile of newspapers, Harry slowed down, searching 
for one particular issue that he knew had arrived shortly after he had returned to Privet 
Drive for the summer; he remembered that there had been a small mention on the front 
about the resignation of Charity Burbage, the Muggle Studies teacher at Hogwarts. At 
last he found it. Turning to page ten, he sank into his desk chair and reread the article he 
had been looking for. 

 

 ALBUS DUMBLEDORE REMEMBERED 

 By Elphias Doge 

I met Albus Dumbledore at the age of eleven, on our first day at Hogwarts. Our 
mutual attraction was undoubtedly due to the fact that we both felt ourselves to be 
outsiders. I had contracted dragon pox shortly before arriving at school, and while 


I was no longer contagious, my pock-marked visage and greenish hue did not 
encourage many to approach me. For his part, Albus had arrived at Hogwarts 
under the burden of unwanted notoriety. Scarcely a year previously, his father, 
Percival, had been convicted of a savage and well-publicized attack upon three 
young Muggles. 

Albus never attempted to deny that his father (who was to die in Azkaban) had 
committed this crime; on the contrary, when I plucked up courage to ask him, he 
assured me that he knew his father to be guilty. Beyond that, Dumbledore refused 
to speak of the sad business, though many attempted to make him do so. Some, 
indeed, were disposed to praise his father's action and assumed that Albus too was 
a Muggle-hater. They could not have been more mistaken: As anybody who knew 
Albus would attest, he never revealed the remotest anti-Muggle tendency. Indeed, 
his determined support for Muggle rights gained him many enemies in subsequent 
years. 

In a matter of months, however, Albus's own fame had begun to eclipse that 
of his father. By the end of his first year he would never again be known as the 
son of a Muggle-hater, but as nothing more or less than the most brilliant student 
ever seen at the school. Those of us who were privileged to be his friends 
benefited from his example, not to mention his help and encouragement, with 
which he was always generous. He confessed to me later in life that he knew even 
then that his greatest pleasure lay in teaching. 

He not only won every prize of note that the school offered, he was soon in 
regular correspondence with the most notable magical names of the day, including 
Nicolas Flamel, the celebrated alchemist; Bathilda Bagshot, the noted historian; 
and Adalbert Waffling, the magical theoretician. Several of his papers found their 
way into learned publications such as Transfiguration Today, Challenges in 
Charming, and The Practical Potioneer. Dumbledore's future career seemed 
likely to be meteoric, and the only question that remained was when he would 
become Minister of Magic. Though it was often predicted in later years that he 
was on the point of taking the job, however, he never had Ministerial ambitions. 

Three years after we had started at Hogwarts, Albus's brother, Aberforth, 
arrived at school. They were not alike: Aberforth was never bookish and, unlike 
Albus, preferred to settle arguments by dueling rather than through reasoned 
discussion. However, it is quite wrong to suggest, as some have, that the brothers 
were not friends. They rubbed along as comfortably as two such different boys 
could do. In fairness to Aberforth, it must be admitted that living in Albus's 
shadow cannot have been an altogether comfortable experience. Being continually 
outshone was an occupational hazard of being his friend and cannot have been 
any more pleasurable as a brother. When Albus and I left Hogwarts we intended 
to take the then-traditional tour of the world together, visiting and observing 
foreign wizards, before pursuing our separate careers. However, tragedy 
intervened. On the very eve of our trip, Albus's mother, Kendra, died, leaving 


Albus the head, and sole breadwinner, of the family. I postponed my departure 
long enough to pay my respects at Kendra's funeral, then left for what was now to 
be a solitary journey. With a younger brother and sister to care for, and little gold 
left to them, there could no longer be any question of Albus accompanying me. 

That was the period of our lives when we had least contact. I wrote to Albus, 
describing, perhaps insensitively, the wonders of my journey, from narrow 
escapes from chimaeras in Greece to the experiments of the Egyptian alchemists. 
His letters told me little of his day-to-day life, which I guessed to be frustratingly 
dull for such a brilliant wizard. Immersed in my own experiences, it was with 
horror that I heard, toward the end of my year's travels, that another tragedy had 
struck the Dumbledores: the death of his sister, Ariana. 

Though Ariana had been in poor health for a long time, the blow, coming so 
soon after the loss of their mother, had a profound effect on both of her brothers. 
All those closest to Albus C and I count myself one of that lucky number C agree 
that Ariana's death, and Albus's feeling of personal responsibility for it (though, of 
course, he was guiltless), left their mark upon him forevermore. 

I returned home to find a young man who had experienced a much older 
person's suffering. Albus was more reserved than before, and much less light-
hearted. To add to his misery, the loss of Ariana had led, not to a renewed 
closeness between Albus and Aberforth, but to an estrangement. (In time this 
would lift C in later years they reestablished, if not a close relationship, then 
certainly a cordial one.) However, he rarely spoke of his parents or of Ariana from 
then on, and his friends learned not to mention them. 

Other quills will describe the triumphs of the following years. Dumbledore's 
innumerable contributions to the store of Wizarding knowledge, including his 
discovery of the twelve uses of dragon's blood, will benefit generations to come, 
as will the wisdom he displayed in the many judgments while Chief Warlock of 
the Wizengamot. They say, still, that no Wizarding duel ever matched that 
between Dumbledore and Grindelwald in 1945. Those who witnessed it have 
written of the terror and the awe they felt as they watched these two extraordinary 
wizards to battle. Dumbledore's triumph, and its consequences for the Wizarding 
world, are considered a turning point in magical history to match the introduction 
of the International Statute of Secrecy or the downfall of He-Who-Must-Not-Be-
Named. 

Albus Dumbledore was never proud or vain; he could find something to value 
in anyone, however apparently insignificant or wretched, and I believe that his 
early losses endowed him with great humanity and sympathy. I shall miss his 
friendship more than I can say, but my loss is nothing compared to the Wizarding 
world's. That he was the most inspiring and best loved of all Hogwarts 
headmasters cannot be in question. He died as he lived: working always for the 


greater good and, to his last hour, as willing to stretch out a hand to a small boy 
with dragon pox as he was on the day I met him. 

 

 Harry finished reading, but continued to gaze at the picture accompanying the 
obituary. Dumbledore was wearing his familiar, kindly smile, but as he peered over the 
top of his half-moon spectacles, he gave the impression, even in newsprint, of X-raying 
Harry, whose sadness mingled with a sense of humiliation. 

 He had thought he knew Dumbledore quite well, but ever since reading this 
obituary he had been forced to recognize that he had barely known him at all. Never once 
had he imagined Dumbledore's childhood or youth; it was as though he had sprung into 
being as Harry had known him, venerable and silver-haired and old. The idea of a 
teenage Dumbledore was simply odd, like trying to imagine a stupid Hermione or a 
friendly Blast-Ended Skrewt. 

 He had never thought to ask Dumbledore about his past. No doubt it would have 
felt strange, impertinent even, but after all it had been common knowledge that 
Dumbledore had taken part in that legendary duel with Grindelwald, and Harry had not 
thought to ask Dumbledore what that had been like, nor about any of his other famous 
achievements. No, they had always discussed Harry, Harry's past, Harry's future, Harry's 
plans and it seemed to Harry now, despite the fact that his future was so dangerous and 
so uncertain, that he had missed irreplaceable opportunities when he had failed to ask 
Dumbledore more about himself, even though the only personal question he had ever 
asked his headmaster was also the only one he suspected that Dumbledore had not 
answered honestly: 

 "What do you see when you look in the mirror?" 

 "I? I see myself holding a pair of thick, woolen socks." 

 After several minutes' thought, Harry tore the obituary out of the Prophet, folded 
it carefully, and tucked it inside the first volume of Practical Defensive Magic and its 
Use against the Dark Arts. Then he threw the rest of the newspaper onto the rubbish pile 
and turned to face the room. It was much tidier. The only things left out of place were 
today's Daily Prophet, still lying on the bed, and on top of it, the piece of broken mirror. 

 Harry moved across the room, slid the mirror fragment off today's Prophet, and 
unfolded the newspaper. He had merely glanced at the headline when he had taken the 
rolled-up paper from the delivery owl early that morning and thrown it aside, after noting 
that it said nothing about Voldemort. Harry was sure that the Ministry was leaning on the 
Prophet to suppress news about Voldemort. It was only now, therefore, that he saw what 
he had missed. 


 Across the bottom half of the front page a smaller headline was set over a picture 
of Dumbledore striding along, looking harried: 

 

 DUMBLEDORE C THE TRUTH AT LAST? 

Coming next week, the shocking story of the flawed genius considered by many 
to be the greatest wizard of his generation. Striping away the popular image of 
serene, silver-bearded wisdom, Rita Skeeter reveals the disturbed childhood, the 
lawless youth, the life-long feuds, and the guilty secrets that Dumbledore carried 
to his grave, WHY was the man tipped to be the Minister of Magic content to 
remain a mere headmaster? WHAT was the real purpose of the secret 
organization known as the Order of the Phoenix? HOW did Dumbledore really 
meet his end? 

 The answers to these and many more questions are explored in the 
explosive new biography, The Life and Lies of Albus Dumbledore, by Rita Skeeter, 
exclusively interviewed by Berry Braithwaite, page 13, inside. 

 

 Harry ripped open the paper and found page thirteen. The article was topped with 
a picture showing another familiar face: a woman wearing jeweled glasses with 
elaborately curled blonde hair, her teeth bared in what was clearly supposed to be a 
winning smile, wiggling her fingers up at him. Doing his best to ignore this nauseating 
image, Harry read on. 

 

In person, Rita Skeeter is much warmer and softer than her famously 
ferocious quill-portraits might suggest. Greeting me in the hallway of her cozy 
home, she leads me straight into the kitchen for a cup of tea, a slice of pound cake 
and, it goes without saying, a steaming vat of freshest gossip. 

"Well, of course, Dumbledore is a biographer's dream," says Skeeter. "Such a 
long, full life. I'm sure my book will be the first of very, very many." 

Skeeter was certainly quick off the mark. Her nine-hundred-page book was 
completed in a mere four weeks after Dumbledore's mysterious death in June. I 
ask her how she managed this superfast feat. 

"Oh, when you've been a journalist as long as I have, working to a deadline is 
second nature. I knew that the Wizarding world was clamoring for the full story 
and I wanted to be the first to meet that need." 


I mention the recent, widely publicized remarks of Elphias Doge, Special 
Advisor to the Wizengamot and longstanding friend of Albus Dumbledore's, that 
"Skeeter's book contains less fact than a Chocolate Frog card." 

Skeeter throws back her head and laughs. 

"Darling Dodgy! I remember interviewing him a few years back about 
merpeople rights, bless him. Completely gaga, seemed to think we were sitting at 
the bottom of Lake Windermere, kept telling me to watch out for trout." 

And yet Elphias Doge's accusations of inaccuracy have been echoed in many 
places. Does Skeeter really feel that four short weeks have been enough to gain a 
full picture of Dumbledore's long and extraordinary life? 

"Oh, my dear," beams Skeeter, rapping me affectionately across the knuckles, 
"you know as well as I do how much information can be generated by a fat bag of 
Galleons, a refusal to hear the word 'no,' and a nice sharp Quick-Quotes Quill! 
People were queuing to dish the dirt on Dumbledore anyway. Not everyone 
thought he was so wonderful, you know C he trod on an awful lot of important 
toes. But old Dodgy Doge can get off his high hippogriff, because I've had access 
to a source most journalists would swap their wands for, one who has never 
spoken in public before and who was close to Dumbledore during the most 
turbulent and disturbing phase of his youth." 

The advance publicity for Skeeter's biography has certainly suggested that 
there will be shocks in store for those who believe Dumbledore to have led a 
blameless life. What were the biggest surprises she uncovered, I ask? 

"Now, come off it. Betty, I'm not giving away all the highlights before 
anybody's bought the book!" laughs Skeeter. "But I can promise that anybody 
who still thinks Dumbledore was white as his beard is in for a rude awakening! 
Let's just say that nobody hearing him rage against You-Know-Who would have 
dreamed that he dabbled in the Dark Arts himself in his youth! And for a wizard 
who spent his later years pleading for tolerance, he wasn't exactly broad-minded 
when he was younger! Yes, Albus Dumbledore had an extremely murky past, not 
to mention that very fishy family, which he worked so hard to keep hushed up." 

I ask whether Skeeter is referring to Dumbledore's brother, Aberforth, whose 
conviction by the Wizengamot for misuse of magic caused a minor scandal fifteen 
years ago. 

"Oh, Aberforth is just the tip of the dung heap, laughs Skeeter. "No, no, I'm 
talking about much worse than a brother with a fondness for fiddling about with 
goats, worse even than the Muggle-maiming father C Dumbledore couldn't keep 
either of them quiet anyway, they were both charged by the Wizengamot. No, it's 
the mother and the sister that intrigued me, and a little digging uncovered a 


positive nest of nastiness C but, as I say, you'll have to wait for chapters nine to 
twelve for full details. All I can say now is, it's no wonder Dumbledore never 
talked about how his nose got broken." 

Family skeletons notwithstanding, does Skeeter deny the brilliance that led to 
Dumbledore's many magical discoveries? 

"He had brains," she concedes, "although many now question whether he 
could really take full credit for all of his supposed achievements. As I reveal in 
chapter sixteen, Ivor Dillonsby claims he had already discovered eight uses of 
dragon's blood when Dumbledore 'borrowed' his papers." 

But the importance of some of Dumbledore's achievements cannot, I venture, 
be denied. What of his famous defeat of Grindelwald? 

"Oh, now, I'm glad you mentioned Grindelwald," says Skeeter with such a 
tantalizing smile. "I'm afraid those who go dewy-eyed over Dumbledore's 
spectacular victory must brace themselves for a bombshell C or perhaps a 
Dungbomb. Very dirty business indeed. All I'll say is, don't be so sure that there 
really was a spectacular duel of legend. After they've read my book, people may 
be forced to conclude that Grindelwald simply conjured a white handkerchief 
from the end of his wand and came quietly!" 

Skeeter refuses to give any more away on this intriguing subject, so we turn 
instead to the relationship that will undoubtedly fascinate her readers more than 
any other. 

"Oh yes," says Skeeter, nodding briskly, "I devote an entire chapter to the 
whole Potter-Dumbledore relationship. It's been called unhealthy, even sinister. 
Again, your readers will have to buy my book for the whole story, but there is no 
question that Dumbledore took an unnatural interest in Potter from the word go. 
Whether that was really in the boy's best interests C well, we'll see. It's certainly 
an open secret that Potter has had a most troubled adolescence." 

I ask whether Skeeter is still in touch with Harry Potter, whom she so 
famously interviewed last year: a breakthrough piece in which Potter spoke 
exclusively of his conviction that You-Know-Who had returned. 

"Oh, yes, we've developed a closer bond," says Skeeter. "Poor Potter has few 
real friends, and we met at one of the most testing moments of his life C the 
Triwizard Tournament. I am probably one of the only people alive who can say 
that they know the real Harry Potter." 

Which leads us neatly to the many rumors still circulating about Dumbledore's 
final hours. Does Skeeter believe that Potter was there when Dumbledore died? 


"Well, I don't want to say too much C it's all in the book C but eyewitnesses 
inside Hogwarts castle saw Potter running away from the scene moments after 
Dumbledore fell, jumped, or was pushed. Potter later gave evidence against 
Severus Snape, a man against whom he has a notorious grudge. Is everything as it 
seems? That is for the Wizarding community to decide C once they've read my 
book." 

On that intriguing note, I take my leave. There can be no doubt that Skeeter 
has quilled an instant bestseller. Dumbledore's legion of admirers, meanwhile, 
may well be trembling at what is soon to emerge about their hero. 

 

 Harry reached the bottom of the article, but continued to stare blankly at the page. 
Revulsion and fury rose in him like vomit; he balled up the newspaper and threw it, with 
all his force, at the wall, where it joined the rest of the rubbish heaped around his 
overflowing bin. 

 He began to stride blindly around the room, opening empty drawers and picking 
up books only to replace them on the same piles, barely conscious of what he was doing, 
as random phrases from Rita's article echoed in his head: An entire chapter to the whole 
Potter-Dumbledore relationship ... It's been called unhealthy, even sinister ... He dabbled 
in the Dark Arts himself in his youth ... I've had access to a source most journalists would 
swap their wands for... 

 "Lies!" Harry bellowed, and through the window he saw the next-door neighbor, 
who had paused to restart his lawn mower, look up nervously. 

 Harry sat down hard on the bed. The broken bit of mirror danced away from him; 
he picked it up and turned it over in his fingers, thinking, thinking of Dumbledore and the 
lies with which Rita Skeeter was defaming him ... 

 A flash of brightest blue. Harry froze, his cut finger slipping on the jagged edge of 
the mirror again. He had imagined it, he must have done. He glanced over his shoulder, 
but the wall was a sickly peach color of Aunt Petunia's choosing: There was nothing blue 
there for the mirror to reflect. He peered into the mirror fragment again, and saw nothing 
but his own bright green eye looking back at him. 

 He had imagined it, there was no other explanation; imagined it, because he had 
been thinking of his dead headmaster. If anything was certain, it was that the bright blue 
eyes of Albus Dumbledore would never pierce him again. 


Chapter Three 

The Dursleys Departing 

The sound of the front door slamming echoed up the stairs and a voice roared, 
Oh! You! 

Sixteen years of being addressed thus left Harry in no doubt when his uncle was 
calling, nevertheless, he did not immediately respond. He was still at the narrow fragment 
in which, for a split second, he had thought he saw Dumbledores eye. It was not until his 
uncle bellowed, BOY! that Harry got slowly out of bed and headed for the bedroom 
door, pausing to add the piece of broken mirror to the rucksack filled with things he 
would be taking with him. 

You took you time! roared Vernon Dursley when Harry appeared at the top of 
the stairs, Get down here. I want a word! 

Harry strolled downstairs, his hands deep in his pants pockets. When he searched 
the living room he found all three Dursleys. They were dressed for packing; Uncle 
Vernon in an old ripped-up jacket and Dudley, Harrys, large, blond, muscular cousin, in 
his leather jacket. 

 Yes? asked Harry. 

 Sit down! said Uncle Vernon. Harry raised his eyebrows. Please! added 
Uncle Vernon, wincing slightly as though the word was sharp in his throat. 

Harry sat. He though he knew what was coming. His uncle began to pace up and down, 
Aunt Petunia and Dudley, following his movement with anxious expressions. Finally, his 
large purple face crumpled with concentration. Uncle Vernon stopped in front of Harry 
and spoke. 

 "I've changed my mind, he said. 

"What a surprise," said Harry. 

"Don't you take that tone" began Aunt Petunia in a shrill voice, but Vernon 
Dursley waved her down 

"It's all a lot of claptrap, said Uncle Vernon, glaring at Harry with piggy little 
eyes. "I've decided I don't believe a word of it. Were staying put, were not going 
anywhere. 

Harry looked up at his uncle and felt a mixture of exasperation and amusement. 
Vernon Dursley had been changing his mind every twenty four hours for the past four 
weeks, packing and unpacking and repacking the car with every change of heart. Harrys 
favorite moment had been the one when Uncle Vernon, unaware the Dudley had added 
his dumbbells to his case since the last time it been repacked, had attempted to hoist it 
back into the boot and collapsed with a yelp of pain and much swearing. 

According to you, Vernon Dursley said, now resuming his pacing up and down 
the living room, we C Petunia, Dudley, and I C are in danger. From C from C 

Some of my lot right? said Harry 

Well I dont believe it, repeated Uncle Vernon, coming to a halt in front of 
Harry again. "I was awake half the night thinking it all over, and I believe it's a plot to get 
the house." 

 "The house?" repeated Harry. "What house?" 

 "This house!" shrieked Uncle Vernon, the vein his forehead starting to pulse. 
"Our house! House prices are skyrocketing around here! You want us out of the way and 


then you're going to do a bit of hocus pocus and before we know it the deeds will be in 
your name and C" 

 Are you out of your mind?" demanded Harry. "A plot to get this house? Are you 
actually as stupid as you look?" 

 "Don't you dare --!" squealed Aunt Petunia, but again Vernon waved her 
down. Slights on his personal appearance were it seemed as nothing to the danger he had 
spotted. 

 "Just in case you've forgotten," said Harry, "I've already got a house my godfather 
left me one. So why would I want this one? All the happy memories?" 

 There was silence. Harry thought he had rather impressed his uncle with this 
argument. 

 "You claim," said Uncle Vernon, starting to pace yet again, "that this Lord Thing 
C" 

 "Voldemort," said Harry impatiently, "and we've been through this about a 
hundred times already. This isn't a claim, it's fact. Dumbledore told you last year, and 
Kingsley and Mr. Weasley C" 

Vernon Dursley hunched his shoulders angrily, and Harry guessed that his uncle 
was attempting to ward off recollections of the unannounced visit, a few days into Harry's 
summer holidays, of two fully grown wizards. The arrival on the doorstep of Kingsley 
Shacklebolt and Arthur Weasley had come as a most unpleasant shock to the Dursleys. 
Harry had to admit, however that as Mr. Weasley had once demolished half of the living 
room, his reappearance could not have been expected to delight Uncle Vernon. 

 "Kingsley and Mr. Weasley explained it all as well," Harry pressed on 
remorselessly, "Once I'm seventeen, the protective charm that keeps me safe will break, 
and that exposes you as well as me. The Order is sure Voldemort will target you, 
whether to torture you to try and find out where I am, or because he thinks by holding 
you hostage I'd come and try to rescue you." 

 Uncle Vernon's and Harry's eyes met. Harry was sure that in that instant they were 
both wondering the same thing. Then Uncle Vernon walked on and Harry resumed, 
"You've got to go into hiding and the Order wants to help. You're being offered serious 
protection, the best there is." 

 Uncle Vernon said nothing but continued to pace up and down. Outside the sun 
hung low over the privet hedges. The next door neighbor's lawn mower stalled again. 

 "I thought there was a Ministry of Magic?" asked Vernon Dursley abruptly. 

 "There is," said Harry, surprised. 

"Well, then, why can't they protect us? It seems to me that, as innocent victims, guilty of 
nothing more than harboring a marked man, we ought to qualify for government 
protection!" 

Harry laughed; he could not help himself. It was so very typical of his uncle to put 
his hopes in the establishment, even within this world that he despised and mistrusted. 

"You heard what Mr. Weasley and Kingsley said," Harry replied. 

"We think the Ministry has been infiltrated." 

 Uncle Vernon strode back to the fireplace and back breathing so strongly that his 
great black mustache rippled his face still purple with concentration. 


 "All right," he said. Stopping in front of Harry get again. "All right, let's say for 
the sake of argument we accept this protection. I still don't see why we can't have that 
Kingsley bloke." 

 Harry managed not to roll his eyes, but with difficulty. This question had also 
been addressed half a dozen times. 

 "As I've told you," he said through gritted teeth, "Kingsley is protecting the Mug 
C I mean, your Prime Minister." 

 "Exactly C he's the best!" said Uncle Vernon, pointing at the blank television 
screen. The Dursleys had spotted Kingsley on the news, walking along the Muggle Prime 
Minister as he visited a hospital. This, and the fact that Kingsley had mastered the knack 
of dressing like a Muggle, not to mention a certain reassuring something in his slow, deep 
voice, had caused the Dursleys to take to Kingsley in a way that they had certainly not 
done with any other wizard, although it was true that they had never seen him with 
earring in. 

 "Well, he's taken, said Harry. "But Hestia Jones and Dedalus Diggle are more 
than up to the job C" 

 "If we'd even seen CVs" began Uncle Vernon, but Harry lost patience. Getting 
to his feet, he advanced on his uncle, not pointing at the TV set himself. 

 "These accidents aren't accidents C the crashed and explosions and derailments 
and whatever else has happened since we last watched the news. People are disappearing 
and dying and he's behind it C Voldemort. I've told you this over and over again, he kills 
Muggles for fun. Even the fogs C they're caused by dementors, and if you can't remember 
what they are, ask your son!" 

 Dudley's hands jerked upward to tower his mouth. With his parents' and Harry's 
eyes upon him, he slowly lowered them again and asked, "There are more of them?" 

"More?" laughed Harry. "More than the two that attacked us, you mean? Of course there 
are hundreds, maybe thousands by this time, seeing as they feed off fear and despair" 

"All right, all right blustered," blustered Vernon Dursley. "You've made your 
point C" 

"I hope so," said Harry, "because once I'm seventeen, all of them C Death Eaters, 
elementors, maybe even Inferi C which means dead bodies enchanted by a Dark wizard C 
will be able to find you and will certainly attack you. And if you remember the last time 
you tried to outrun wizards, I think you'll agree you need help." 

There was a brief silence in which the distant echo of Hagrid smashing down a 
wooden front door seemed to reverberate through the intervening years. Aunt Petunia 
was looking at Uncle Vernon; Dudley was staring at Harry. Finally Uncle Vernon 
blurted out, "But what about my work? What about Dudley's school? I don't suppose 
those things matter to a bunch of layabout wizards C" 

"Don't you understand?" shouted Harry. "They will torture and kill you like they 
did my parents!" 

"Dad," said Dudley in a loud voice, "Dad C I'm going with these Order people." 

"Dudley," said Harry, "for the first time in your life, you're talking sense." 

He knew the battle was won. If Dudley was frightened enough to accept the Order's help, 
his parents would accompany him. There could be no question of being separated from 
their Duddykins. Harry glanced at the carriage clock on the mantelpiece. 


"They'll be here in about five minutes, he said, and when one of the Dursleys 
replied, he left the room. The prospect of partingprobably forever C from his aunt, 
uncle, and cousin was one that he was able to contemplate quite cheerfully but there was 
nevertheless a certain awkwardness in the air. What did you say to one another at the end 
of sixteen years' solid dislike? 

Back in his bedroom, Harry fiddled aimlessly with his rucksack then poked a 
couple of owl nuts through the bats of Hedwig's cage. They fell with dull thuds to the 
bottom where she ignored them. 

"We're leaving soon, really soon," Harry told her. "And then you'll be able to fly 
again." 

The doorbell rang. Harry hesitated, then headed back out of his room and 
downstairs. It was too much to expect Hestia and Dedalus to cope with the Dursleys on 
their own. 

"Harry Potter!" squeaked an excited voice, the moment Harry had opened the 
door; a small man in a mauve top hat that was sweeping him a deep bow. "An honor as 
ever!" 

"Thanks, Dedalus," said Harry, bestowing a small and embarrassed smile upon 
the dark haired Hestia. "It's really good of you to do this They're through here, my aunt 
and uncle and cousin" 

"Good day to you, Harry Potter's relatives!" said Dedalus happily striding into the 
living room. The Dursleys did not look at all happy to be addressed thus; Harry half 
expected another change of mind. Dudley shrank neared to his mother at the sight of the 
witch and wizard. 

"I see you are packed and ready. Excellent! The plan, as Harry has told you, is a 
simple one," said Dedalus, pulling an immense pocket watch out of his waistcoat and 
examining it. "We shall be leaving before Harry does. Due to the danger of using magic 
in your house CHarry being still underage it could provide the Ministry with an excuse to 
arrest him C we shall be driving, say, ten miles or so before Disapparating to the safe 
location we have picked out for you. You know how to drive, I take it?" He asked Uncle 
Vernon politely. 

"Know how to C? Of course I ruddy well know how to drive!" spluttered Uncle 
Vernon. 

"Very clever of you, sir, very clever. I personally would be utterly bamboozled by 
all those buttons and knobs," said Dedalus. He was clearly under the impression that he 
was flattering Vernon Dursley, who was visibly losing confidence in the plan with every 
word Dedalus spoke. 

"Can't even drive," he muttered under his breath, his mustache rippling 
indignantly, but fortunately neither Dedalus nor Hestia seemed to hear him. 

"You, Harry," Dedalus continued, "will wait here for your guard. There has been 
a little change in the arrangements C" 

What d'you mean?" said Harry at once. "I thought Mad-Eye was going to come 
and take me by Side Along-Apparition?" 

"Can't do it," said Hestia tersely, "Mad-Eye will explain." 

The Dursleys, who had listened to all of this with looks of utter incomprehension 
on their faces, jumped as a loud voice screeched, "Hurry up!" Harry looked all around the 
room before realizing the voice had issued from Dedalus's pocket watch. 


"Quite right, were operating to a very tight schedule," said Dedalus nodding at his 
watch and tucking it back into his waist coat. "We are attempting to time your departure 
from the house with your family's Disapparition, Harry thus the charm breaks the 
moment you all head for safety." He turned to the Dursleys, "Well, are we all packed and 
ready to go?" 

None of them answered him. Uncle Vernon was still staring appalled at the bulge 
in Dedalus's waistcoat pocket. 

"Perhaps we should wait outside in the hall, Dedalus," murmured Hestia. She 
clearly felt that it would be tactless for them to remain the room while Harry and the 
Dursleys exchanged loving, possibly tearful farewells. 

"There's no need," Harry muttered, but Uncle Vernon made any further 
explanation unnecessary by saying loudly, 

"Well, this is good-bye then boy." 

He swung his right arm upward to shake Harry's hand, but at the last moment 
seemed unable to face it, and merely closed his fist and began swinging it backward and 
forward like a metronome. 

 "Ready, Duddy?" asked Petunia, fussily checking the clasp of her handbag so as 
to avoid looking at Harry altogether. 

 Dudley did not answer but stood there with his mouth slightly ajar, reminding 
Harry a little of the giant, Grawp. 

 "Come along, then," said Uncle Vernon. 

He had already reached the living room door when Dudley mumbled, "I don't 
understand." 

"What don't you understand, popkin?" asked Petunia looking up at her son. 

Dudley raised a large, hamlike hand to point at Harry. 

"Why isn't he coming with us? 

Uncle Vernon and Aunt Petunia froze when they stood staring at Dudley as 
though he had just expressed a desire to become a ballerina. 

"What?" said Uncle Vernon loudly. 

"Why isn't he coming too?" asked Dudley. 

"Well, hedoesn't want to," said Uncle Vernon, turning to glare at Harry and 
adding, "You don't want to, do you?" 

"Not in the slightest," said Harry. 

"There you are," Uncle Vernon told Dudley. "Now come on we're off." 

He marched out of the room. They heard the front door open, but Dudley did not 
move and after a few faltering steps Aunt Petunia stopped too. 

"What now?" barked Uncle Vernon, reappearing in the doorway. 

It seemed that Dudley was struggling with concepts too difficult to put into words. 
After several moments of apparently painful internal struggle he said, "But where's he 
going to go?" 

Aunt Petunia and Uncle Vernon looked at each other. It was clear that Dudley 
was frightening them. Hestia Jones broke the silence. 

"But surely you know where your nephew is going?" she asked looking 
bewildered. 

"Certainly we know," said Vernon Dursley. "He's off with some of your lot, isn't 
he? Right, Dudley, let's get in the car, you heard the man, we're in a hurry. 


Again, Vernon Dursley marched as far as the front door, but Dudley did not 
follow. 

 "Off with some of our lot?" 

 Hestia looked outraged. Harry had met this attitude before Witches and wizards 
seemed stunned that his closed living relatives took so little interest in the famous Harry 
Potter. 

"It's fine," Harry assured her. "It doesn't matter, honestly." 

"Doesn't matter?" repeated Hestia, her voice rising considerably. 

"Don't these people realize what you've been through? What danger you are in? 
The unique position you hold in the hearts of the anti Voldemort movement?" 

 "Er Cno, they don't," said Harry. "They think I'm a waste of space, actually but I'm 
used to C" 

 "I don't think you're a waste of space" 

 If Harry had not seen Dudley's lips move, he might not have believed it. As it was, 
he stared at Dudley for several seconds before accepting that it must have been his cousin 
who had spoken; for one thing, Dudley had turned red. Harry was embarrassed and 
astonished himself. 

 "Well... er thanks, Dudley." 

 Again, Dudley appeared to grapple with thoughts too unwieldy for expression 
before mumbling, "You saved my life," 

 "Not really," said Harry. "It was your soul the dementor would have taken" 

 He looked curiously at his cousin. They had had virtually no contact during this 
summer or last, as Harry had come back to Privet Drive so briefly and kept to his room so 
much. It now dawned on Harry, however, that the cup of cold tea on which he had 
trodden that morning might not have been a booby trap at all. Although rather touched he 
was nevertheless quite relieved that Dudley appeared to have exhausted his ability to 
express his feelings. After opening his mouth once or twice more, Dudley subsided into 
scarlet-faced silence. 

Aunt Petunia burst into tears. Hestia Jones gave her an approving look that 
changed to outrage as Aunt Petunia ran forward and embraced Dudley rather than Harry. 

"S-so sweet, Dudders" she sobbed into his massive chest. "S-such a lovely b-boy s-
saying thank you" 

 "But he hasn't said thank you at all!" said Hestia indignantly. "He only said he 
didn't think Harry was a waste of space!" 

"Yea but coming from Dudley that's like 'I love you,'" said Harry, torn between 
annoyance and a desire to laugh as Aunt Petunia continued to clutch at Dudley as if he 
had just saved Harry from a burning building. 

"Are we going or not?" roared Uncle Vernon, reappearing yet again at the living 
room door. "I thought we were on a tight schedule!" 

"Yes Cyes, we are," said Dedalus Diggle, who had been watching these exchanged 
with an air of bemusement and now seemed to pull himself together. "We really must be 
off. Harry C" 

He tripped forward and wrung Harry's hand with both of his own. 

"good luck. I hope we meet again. The hopes of the Wizarding world rest upon 
your shoulders." 

"Oh," said Harry, "right. Thanks." 


"Farwell, Harry," said Hestia also clasping his hand. "Our thoughts go with you." 

"I hope everything's okay," said Harry with a glance toward Aunt Petunia and 
Dudley. 

"Oh I'm sure we shall end up the best of chums," said Diggle slightly, waving his 
hat as he left the room. Hestia followed him. 

Dudley gently released himself from his mother's clutches and walked toward 
Harry who had to repress an urge to threaten him with magic. Then Dudley held out his 
large, pink hand. 

"Blimey, Dudley," said Harry over Aunt Petunia's renewed sobs, "did the 
dementors blow a different personality into you?" 

"Dunno," muttered Dudley, "See you, Harry." 

"Yea " said Harry, raking Dudley's hand and shaking it. "Maybe. Take care, 
Big D." 

Dudley nearly smiled. They lumbered from the room. Harry heard his heavy 
footfalls on the graveled drive, and then a car door slammed. 

Aunt Petunia whose face had been buried in her handkerchief looked around at 
the sound. She did not seem to have expected to find herself alone with Harry. Hastily 
stowing her wet handkerchief into her pocket, she said, "Well C good-bye" and marched 
towards the door without looking at him. 

"Good-bye" said Harry. 

She stopped and looked back. For a moment Harry had the strangest feeling that 
she wanted to say something to him; She gave him an odd, tremulous look and seemed to 
teeter on the edge of speech, but then, with a little of her head, she hustled out of the 
room after he husband and son. 

 

Chapter Four 

The Seven Potters 

 

Harry ran back upstairs to his bedroom, arriving at the window just in time to see 
the Dursleys' car swinging out of the drive and off up the road. Dedaluss top hat was 
visible between Aunt Petunia and Dudley in the backseat. The car turned right at the end 
of Privet Drive, its windows burned scarlet for a moment in the now setting sun, and then 
it was gone. 

 Harry picked up Hedwigs cage, his Firebolt, and his rucksack, gave his 
unnaturally tidy bedroom one last sweeping look, and then made his ungainly way back 
downstairs to the hall, where he deposited cage, broomstick, and bag near the foot of the 
stairs. The light was fading rapidly, the hall full of shadows in the evening light. It felt 
most strange to stand here in the silence and know that he was about to leave the house 
for the last time. Long ago, when he had been left alone while the Dursleys went out to 
enjoy themselves, the hours of solitude had been a rare treat. Pausing only to sneak 
something tasty from the fridge, he had rushed upstairs to play on Dudleys computer, or 
put on the television and flicked through the channels to his hearts content. It gave him 
an odd, empty feeling remembering those times; it was like remembering a younger 
brother whom he had lost. 


 Dont you want to take a last look at the place? he asked Hedwig, who was still 
sulking with her head under her wing. Well never be here again. Dont you want to 
remember all the good times? I mean, look at this doormat. What memories  Dudley 
sobbed on it after I saved him from the dementors  Turns out he was grateful after all, 
can you believe it?  And last summer, Dumbledore walked through that front door   

 Harry lost the thread of his thoughts for a moment and Hedwig did nothing to 
help him retrieve it, but continued to sit with her head under her wing. Harry turned his 
back on the front door. 

 And under here, Hedwig C Harry pulled open a door under the stairs C is where 
I used to sleep! You never knew me then C Blimey, its small, Id forgotten   

 Harry looked around at the stacked shoes and umbrellas remembering how he 
used to wake every morning looking up at the underside of the staircase, which was more 
often than not adorned with a spider or two. Those had been the days before he had 
known anything about his true identity; before he had found out how his parents had died 
or why such strange things often happened around him. But Harry could still remember 
the dreams that had dogged him, even in those days: confused dreams involving flashes 
of green light and once C Uncle Vernon had nearly crashed the car when Harry had 
recounted it C a flying motorbike  

 There was a sudden, deafening roar from somewhere nearby. Harry straightened 
up with a jerk and smacked the top of his head on the low door frame. Pausing only to 
employ a few of Uncle Vernons choicest swear words, he staggered back into the 
kitchen, clutching his head and staring out of the window into the back garden. 

 The darkness seemed to be rippling, the air itself quivering. Then, one by one, 
figures began to pop into sight as their Disillusionment Charms lifted. Dominating the 
scene was Hagrid, wearing a helmet and goggles and sitting astride an enormous 
motorbike with a black sidecar attached. All around him other people were dismounting 
from brooms and, in two cases, skeletal, black winged horses. 

 Wrenching open the back door, Harry hurtled into their midst. There was a 
general cry of greeting as Hermione flung her arms around him, Ron clapped him on the 
back, and Hagrid said, All righ, Harry? Ready fer the off? 

 Definitely, said Harry, beaming around at them all. But I wasnt expecting this 
many of you! 

 Change of plan, growled Mad-Eye, who was holding two enormous bulging 
sacks, and whose magical eye was spinning from darkening sky to house to garden with 
dizzying rapidity. Lets get undercover before we talk you through it. 

 Harry led them all back into the kitchen where, laughing and chattering, they 
settled on chairs, sat themselves upon Aunt Petunias gleaming work surfaces, or leaned 
up against her spotless appliances; Ron, long and lanky; Hermione, her bushy hair tied 
back in a long plait; Fred and George, grinning identically; Bill, badly scarred and long-
haired; Mr. Weasley, kind-faced, balding, his spectacles a little awry; Mad-Eye, battle-
worn, one-legged, his bright blue magical eye whizzing in its socket; Tonks, whose short 
hair was her favorite shade of bright pink; Lupin, grayer, more lined; Fleur, slender and 
beautiful, with her long silvery blonde hair; Kingsley, bald and broad-shouldered; Hagrid, 
with his wild hair and beard, standing hunchbacked to avoid hitting his head on the 
ceiling; and Mundungus Fletcher, small, dirty, and hangdog, with his droopy beady 
hounds eyes and matted hair. Harrys heart seemed to expand and glow at the sight: He 


felt incredibly fond of all of them, even Mundungus, whom he had tried to strangle the 
last time they had met. 

 Kingsley, I thought you were looking after the Muggle Prime Minister? he 
called across the room. 

 He can get along without me for one night, said Kingsley, Youre more 
important. 

 Harry, guess what? said Tonks from her perch on top of the washing machine, 
and she wiggled her left hand at him; a ring glistened there. 

 You got married? Harry yelped, looking from her to Lupin. 

 Im sorry you couldnt be there, Harry, it was very quiet. 

 Thats brilliant, congrat C 

 All right, all right, well have time for a cozy catch-up later, roared Moody over 
the hubbub, and silence fell in the kitchen. Moody dropped his sacks at his feet and 
turned to Harry. As Dedalus probably told you, we had to abandon Plan A. Pius 
Thicknesse has gone over, which gives us a big problem. Hes made it an imprisonable 
offense to connect this house to the Floo Network, place a Portkey here, or Apparate in or 
out. All done in the name of your protection, to prevent You-Know-Who getting in at you. 
Absolutely pointless, seeing as your mothers charm does that already. What hes really 
done is to stop you getting out of here safely. 

 Second problem: Youre underage, which means youve still got the Trace on 
you. 

 I dont C 

 The Trace, the Trace! said Mad-Eye impatiently. The charm that detects 
magical activity around under-seventeens, the way the Ministry finds out about underage 
magic! If you, or anyone around you, casts a spell to get you out of here, Thicknesse is 
going to know about it, and so will the Death Eaters. 

 We cant wait for the Trace to break, because the moment you turn seventeen 
youll lose all the protection your mother gave you. In short, Pius Thicknesse thinks hes 
got you cornered good and proper. 

 Harry could not help but agree with the unknown Thicknesse. 

 So what are we going to do? 

 Were going to use the only means of transport left to us, the only ones the Trace 
cant detect, because we dont need to cast spells to use them: brooms, thestrals, and 
Hagrids motorbike. 

 Harry could see flaws in this plan; however, he held his tongue to give Mad-Eye 
the chance to address them. 

 Now, your mothers charm will only break under two conditions: when you 
come of age, or C Moody gestured around the pristine kitchen C you no longer call this 
place home. You and your aunt and uncle are going your separate ways tonight, in the 
full understanding that youre never going to live together again, correct? 

 Harry nodded. 

 So this time, when you leave, therell be no going back, and the charm will break 
the moment you get outside its range. Were choosing to break it early, because the 
alternative is waiting for You-Know-Who to come and seize you the moment you turn 
seventeen. 


 The one thing weve got on our side is that You-Know-Who doesnt know were 
moving you tonight. Weve leaked a fake trail to the Ministry: They think youre not 
leaving until the thirtieth. However, this is You-Know-Who were dealing with, so we 
cant rely on him getting the date wrong; hes bound to have a couple of Death Eaters 
patrolling the skies in this general area, just in case. So, weve given a dozen different 
houses every protection we can throw at them. They all look like they could be the place 
were going to hide you, theyve all got some connection with the Order: my house, 
Kingsleys place, Mollys Auntie Muriels C you get the idea. 

 Yeah, said Harry, not entirely truthfully, because he could still spot a gaping 
hole in the plan. 

 Youll be going to Tonkss parents. Once youre within the boundaries of the 
protective enchantments weve put on their house youll be able to use a Portkey to the 
Burrow. Any questions? 

 Er C yes, said Harry. Maybe they wont know which of the twelve secure 
houses Im heading for at first, but wont it be sort of obvious once C he performed a 
quick headcount C fourteen of us fly off toward Tonkss parents? 

 Ah, said Moody, I forgot to mention the key point. Fourteen of us wont be 
flying to Tonkss parents. There will be seven Harry Potters moving through the skies 
tonight, each of them with a companion, each pair heading for a different safe house. 

 From inside his cloak Moody now withdrew a flask of what looked like mud. 
There was no need for him to say another word; Harry understood the rest of the plan 
immediately. 

 No! he said loudly, his voice ringing through the kitchen. No way! 

 I told them youd take it like this, said Hermione with a hint of complacency. 

 If you think Im going to let six people risk their lives -- ! 

 because its the first time for all of us, said Ron. 

 This is different, pretending to be me C 

 Well, none of us really fancy it, Harry, said Fred earnestly. Imagine if 
something went wrong and we were stuck as specky, scrawny gits forever. 

 Harry did not smile. 

 You cant do it if I dont cooperate, you need me to give you some hair. 

 Well, thats the plan scuppered, said George. Obviously theres no chance at 
all of us getting a bit of your hair unless you cooperate. 

 Yeah, thirteen of us against one bloke whos not allowed to use magic; weve 
got no chance, said Fred. 

 Funny, said Harry, really amusing. 

 If it has to come to force, then it will, growled Moody, his magical eye now 
quivering a little in its socket as he glared at Harry. Everyone heres overage, Potter, and 
theyre all prepared to take the risk. 

 Mundungus shrugged and grimaced; the magical eye swerved sideways to glance 
at him out of the side of Moodys head. 

 Lets have no more arguments. Times wearing on. I want a few of your hairs, 
boy, now. 

 But this is mad, theres no need C 

 No need! snarled Moody. With You-Know-Who out there and half the 
Ministry on his side? Potter, if were lucky hell have swallowed the fake bait and hell 


be planning to ambush you on the thirtieth, but hed be mad not to have a Death Eater or 
two keeping an eye out, its what Id do. They might not be able to get at you or this 
house while your mothers charm holds, but its about to break and they know the rough 
position of the place. Our only chance is to use decoys. Even You-Know-Who cant split 
himself into seven. 

 Harry caught Hermiones eye and looked away at once. 

 So, Potter C some of your hair, if you please. 

 Harry glanced at Ron, who grimaced at him in a just-do-it sort of way. 

 Now! barked Moody. 

 With all of their eyes upon him, Harry reached up to the top of his head, grabbed 
a hank of hair, and pulled. 

 Good, said Moody, limping forward as he pulled the stopper out of the flask of 
potion. Straight in here, if you please. 

 Harry dropped the hair into the mudlike liquid. The moment it made contact with 
its surface, the potion began to froth and smoke, then, all at once, it turned a clear, bright 
gold. 

 Ooh, you look much tastier than Crabbe and Goyle, Harry, said Hermione, 
before catching sight of Rons raised eyebrows, blushing slightly, and saying, Oh, you 
know what I mean C Goyles potion tasted like bogies. 

 Right then, fake Potters line up over here, please, said Moody. 

 Ron, Hermione, Fred, George, and Fleur lined up in front of Aunt Petunias 
gleaming sink. 

 Were one short, said Lupin. 

 Here, said Hagrid gruffly, and he lifted Mundungus by the scruff of the neck 
and dropped him down beside Fleur, who wrinkled her nose pointedly and moved along 
to stand between Fred and George instead. 

 Im a soldier, Id sooner be a protector, said Mundungus. 

 Shut it, growled Moody. As Ive already told you, you spineless worm, any 
Death Eaters we run into will be aiming to capture Potter, not kill him. Dumbledore 
always said You-Know-Who would want to finish Potter in person. Itll be the protectors 
who have got the most to worry about, the Death Eatersll want to kill them. 

 Mundungus did not look particularly reassured, but Moody was already pulling 
half a dozen eggcup-sized glasses from inside his cloak, which he handed out, before 
pouring a little Polyjuice Potion into each one. 

 Altogether, then   

 Ron, Hermione, Fred, George, Fleur, and Mundungus drank. All of them gasped 
and grimaced as the potion hit their throats; At once, their features began to bubble and 
distort like hot wax. Hermione and Mundungus were shooting upward; Ron, Fred, and 
George were shrinking; their hair was darkening, Hermiones and Fleurs appearing to 
shoot backward into their skulls. 

 Moody, quite unconcerned, was now loosening the ties of the large sacks he had 
brought with him. When he straightened up again, there were six Harry Potters gasping 
and panting in front of him. 

 Fred and George turned to each other and said together, Wow C were identical! 

 I dunno, though, I think Im still better-looking, said Fred, examining his 
reflection in the kettle. 


 Bah, said Fleur, checking herself in the microwave door, Bill, dont look at me 
C Im ideous. 

 Those whose clothes are a bit roomy, Ive got smaller here, said Moody, 
indicating the first sack, and vice versa. Dont forget the glasses, theres six pairs in the 
side pocket. And when youre dressed, theres luggage in the other sack. 

 The real Harry thought that this might just be the most bizarre thing he had ever 
seen, and he had seen some extremely odd things. He watched as his six doppelgangers 
rummaged in the sacks, pulling out sets of clothes, putting on glasses, stuffing their own 
things away. He felt like asking them to show a little more respect for privacy as they all 
began stripping off with impunity, clearly more at ease with displaying his body than 
they would have been with their own. 

 I knew Ginny was lying about that tattoo, said Ron, looking down at his bare 
chest. 

 Harry, your eyesight really is awful, said Hermione, as she put on glasses. 

 Once dressed, the fake Harrys took rucksacks and owl cages, each containing a 
stuffed snowy owl, from the second sack. 

 Good, said Moody, as at last seven dressed, bespectacled, and luggage-laden 
Harrys faced him. The pairs will be as follows: Mundungus will be traveling with me, 
by broom C 

 Whym I with you? grunted the Harry nearest the back door. 

 Because youre the one that needs watching, growled Moody, and sure enough, 
his magical eye did not waver from Mundungus as he continued, Arthur and Fred C 

 Im George, said the twin at whom Moody was pointing. Cant you even tell 
us apart when were Harry? 

 Sorry, George C 

 Im only yanking your wand, Im Fred really C 

 Enough messing around! snarled Moody. The other one C George or Fred or 
whoever you are C youre with Remus. Miss Delacour C 

 Im taking Fleur on a thestral, said Bill. Shes not that fond of brooms. 

 Fleur walked over to stand beside him, giving him a soppy, slavish look that 
Harry hoped with all his heart would never appear on his face again. 

 Miss Granger with Kingsley, again by thestral C 

 Hermione looked reassured as she answered Kingsleys smile; Harry knew that 
Hermione too lacked confidence on a broomstick. 

 Which leaves you and me, Ron! said Tonks brightly, knocking over a mug tree 
as she waved at him. 

 Ron did not look quite as pleased as Hermione. 

 An youre with me, Harry. That all righ? said Hagrid, looking a little anxious. 
Well be on the bike, brooms an thestrals cant take me weight, see. Not a lot o room 
on the seat with me on it, though, so youll be in the sidecar. 

 Thats great, said Harry, not altogether truthfully. 

 We think the Death Eaters will expect you to be on a broom, said Moody, who 
seemed to guess how Harry was feeling. Snapes had plenty of time to tell them 
everything about you hes never mentioned before, so if we do run into any Death Eaters, 
were betting theyll choose one of the Potters who looks at home on a broomstick. All 
right then, he went on, tying up the sack with the fake Potters clothes in it and leading 


the way back to the door, I make it three minutes until were supposed to leave. No 
point locking the back door, it wont keep the Death Eaters out when they come looking. 
Come on  

 Harry hurried to gather his rucksack, Firebolt, and Hedwigs cage and followed 
the group to the dark back garden. 

 On every side broomsticks were leaping into hands; Hermione had already been 
helped up onto a great black thestral by Kingsley, Fleur onto the other by Bill. Hagrid 
was standing ready beside the motorbike, goggles on. 

 Is this it? Is this Siriuss bike? 

 The very same, said Hagrid, beaming down at Harry. An the last time yeh 
was on it, Harry, I could fit yeh in one hand! 

 Harry could not help but feel a little humiliated as he got into the sidecar. It 
placed him several feet below everybody else: Ron smirked at the sight of him sitting 
there like a child in a bumper car. Harry stuffed his rucksack and broomstick down by his 
feet and rammed Hedwigs cage between his knees. He was extremely uncomfortable. 

 Arthurs done a bit o tinkerin, said Hagrid, quite oblivious to Harrys 
discomfort. He settled himself astride the motorcycle, which creaked slightly and sank 
inches into the ground. Its got a few tricks up its sleeves now. Tha one was my idea. 
He pointed a thick finger at a purple button near the speedometer. 

"Please be careful, Hagrid." said Mr. Weasley, who was standing beside them, 
holding his broomstick. "I'm still not sure that was advisable and it's certainly only to be 
used in emergencies." 

"All right, then." said Moody. "Everyone ready, please. I want us all to leave at 
exactly the same time or the whole point of the diversion's lost." 

Everybody motioned their heads. 

"Hold tight now, Ron," said Tonks, and Harry saw Ron throw a forcing, guilty look at 
Lupin before placing his hands on each side of her waist. Hagrid kicked the motorbike 
into life: It roared like a dragon, and the sidecar began to vibrate. 

 Good luck, everyone, shouted Moody. See you all in about an hour at the 
Burrow. On the count of three. One  two .. THREE. 

 There was a great roar from the motorbike, and Harry felt the sidecar give a nasty 
lurch. He was rising through the air fast, his eyes watering slightly, hair whipped back off 
his face. Around him brooms were soaring upward too; the long black tail of a thestral 
flicked past. His legs, jammed into the sidecar by Hedwigs cage and his rucksack, were 
already sore and starting to go numb. So great was his discomfort that he almost forgot to 
take a last glimpse of number four Privet Drive. By the time he looked over the edge of 
the sidecar he could no longer tell which one it was. 

And then, out of nowhere, out of nothing, they were surrounded. At least thirty 
hooded figures, suspended in midair, formed a vast circle in the middle of which the 
Order members had risen, oblivious C 

Screams, a blaze of green light on every side: Hagrid gave a yell and the 
motorbike rolled over. Harry lost any sense of where they were. Streetlights above him, 
yells around him, he was clinging to the sidecar for dear life. Hedwig's cage, the Firebolt, 
and his rucksack slipped from beneath his knees C 

"No C HELP!" 


The broomstick spun too, but he just managed to seize the strap of his rucksack 
and the top of the cage as the motorbike swung the right way up again. A second's relief, 
and then another burst of green light. The owl screeched and fell to the floor of the cage. 

"No C NO!" 

The motorbike zoomed forward; Harry glimpsed hooded Death Eaters scattering 
as Hagrid blasted through their circle. 

"Hedwig C Hedwig C" 

But the owl lay motionless and pathetic as a toy on the floor of her cage. He could 
not take it in, and his terror for the others was paramount. He glanced over his shoulder 
and saw a mass of people moving, flares of green light, two pairs of people on brooms 
soaring off into the distance, but he could not tell who they were C 

"Hagrid, we've got to go back, we've got to go back!" he yelled over the 
thunderous roar of the engine, pulling out his wand, ramming Hedwig's cage into the 
floor, refusing to believe that she was dead. "Hagrid, TURN AROUND!" 

"My job's ter get you there safe, Harry!" bellow Hagrid, and he opened the throttle. 

"Stop C STOP!" Harry shouted, but as he looked back again two jets of green light flew 
past his left ear: Four Death Eaters had broken away from the circle and were pursuing 
them, aiming for Hagrid's broad back. Hagrid swerved, but the Death Eaters were 
keeping up with the bike; more curses shot after them, and Harry had to sink low into the 
sidecar to avoid them. Wriggling around he cried, "Stupefy!" and a red bolt of light shot 
from his own wand, cleaving a gap between the four pursuing Death Eaters as they 
scattered to avoid it. 

"Hold on, Harry, this'll do for 'em!" roared Hagrid, and Harry looked up just in 
time to see Hagrid slamming a thick finger into a green button near the fuel gauge. 

A wall, a solid black wall, erupted out of the exhaust pipe. Craning his neck, Harry saw it 
expand into being in midair. Three of the Death Eaters swerved and avoided it, but the 
fourth was not so lucky; He vanished from view and then dropped like a boulder from 
behind it, his broomstick broken into pieces. One of his fellows slowed up to save him, 
but they and the airborne wall were swallowed by darkness as Hagrid leaned low over the 
handlebars and sped up. 

More Killing Curses flew past Harry's head from the two remaining Death Eaters' 
wands; they were aiming for Hagrid. Harry responded with further Stunning Spells: Red 
and green collided in midair in a shower of multicolored sparks, and Harry thought 
wildly of fireworks, and the Muggles below who would have no idea what was 
happening C 

"Here we go again, Harry, hold on!" yelled Hagrid, and he jabbed at a second 
button. This time a great net burst from the bike's exhaust, but the Death Eaters were 
ready for it. Not only did they swerve to avoid it, but the companion who had slowed to 
save their unconscious friend had caught up. He bloomed suddenly out of the darkness 
and now three of them were pursuing the motorbike, all shooting curses after it. 

"This'll do it, Harry, hold on tight!" yelled Hagrid, and Harry saw him slam his 
whole hand onto the purple button beside the speedometer. 

With an unmistakable bellowing roar, dragon fire burst from the exhaust, white-
hot and blue, and the motorbike shot forward like a bullet with a sound of wrenching 
metal. Harry saw the Death Eaters swerve out of sight to avoid the deadly trail of flame, 


and at the same time felt the sidecar sway ominously: Its metal connections to the bike 
had splintered with the force of acceleration. 

"It's all righ', Harry!" bellowed Hagrid, now thrown flat onto the back by the 
surge of speed; nobody was steering now, and the sidecar was starting to twist violently 
in the bike's slipstream. 

"I'm on it, Harry, don' worry!" Hagrid yelled, and from inside his jacket pocket he 
pulled his flowery pink umbrella. 

"Hagrid! No! Let me!" 

"REPARO!" 

There was a deafening bang and the sidecar broke away from the bike completely. 
Harry sped forward, propelled by the impetus of the bike's flight, then the sidecar began 
to lose height C 

In desperation Harry pointed his wand at the sidecar and shouted, "Wingardium 
Leviosa!" 

The sidecar rose like a cork, unsteerable but at least still airborne. He had but a 
split second's relief, however, as more curses streaked past him: The three Death Eaters 
were closing in. 

"I'm comin', Harry!" Hagrid yelled from out of the darkness, but Harry could feel 
the sidecar beginning to sink again: Crouching as low as he could, he pointed at the 
middle of the oncoming figures and yelled, "Impedimenta!" 

The jinx hit the middle Death Eater in the chest; For a moment the man was 
absurdly spread-eagled in midair as though he had hit an invisible barrier: One of his 
fellows almost collided with him C 

Then the sidecar began to fall in earnest, and the remaining Death Eater shot a 
curse so close to Harry that he had to duck below the rim of the car, knocking out a tooth 
on the edge of his seat C 

"I'm comin', Harry, I'm comin'!" 

A huge hand seized the back of Harry's robes and hoisted him out of the 
plummeting sidecar; Harry pulled his rucksack with him as he dragged himself onto the 
motorbike's seat and found himself back-to-back with Hagrid. As they soared upward, 
away from the two remaining Death Eaters, Harry spat blood out of his mouth, pointed 
his wand at the falling sidecar, and yelled, "Confringo!" 

He knew a dreadful, gut-wrenching pang for Hedwig as it exploded; the Death 
Eater nearest it was blasted off his broom and fell from sight; his companion fell back 
and vanished. 

"Harry, I'm sorry, I'm sorry," moaned Hagrid, "I shouldn'ta tried ter repair it 
meself C yeh've got no room C" 

"It's not a problem, just keep flying!" Harry shouted back, as two more Death 
Eaters emerged out of the darkness, drawing closer. 

As the curses came shooting across the intervening space again, Hagrid swerved 
and zigzagged: Harry knew that Hagrid did not dare use the dragon-fire button again, 
with Harry seated so insecurely. Harry sent Stunning Spell after Stunning Spell back at 
their pursuers, barely holding them off. He shot another blocking jinx at them: The 
closest Death Eater swerved to avoid it and his hood slipped, and by the red light of his 
next Stunning Spell, Harry saw the strangely blank face of Stanley Shunpike C Stan C 

"Expelliarmus!" Harry yelled. 


"That's him, it's him, it's the real one!" 

The hooded Death Eater's shout reached Harry even above the thunder of the 
motorbike's engine: Next moment, both pursuers had fallen back and disappeared from 
view. 

"Harry, what's happened?" bellowed Hagrid. "Where've they gone?" 

"I don't know!" 

But Harry was afraid: The hooded Death Eater had shouted, "It's the real one!"; 
how had he known? He gazed around at the apparently empty darkness and felt its 
menace. Where were they? 

He clambered around on the seat to face forward and seized hold of the back of 
Hagrid's jacket. 

"Hagrid, do the dragon-fire thing again, let's get out of here!" 

"Hold on tight, then, Harry!" 

There was a deafening, screeching roar again and the white-blue fire shot from the 
exhaust: Harry felt himself slipping backwards off what little of the seat he had. Hagrid 
flung backward upon him, barely maintaining his grip on the handlebars C 

"I think we've lost 'em Harry, I think we've done it!" yelled Hagrid. 

But Harry was not convinced; Fear lapped at him as he looked left and right for 
pursuers he was sure would come. . . . Why had they fallen back? One of them had still 
had a wand. . . . It's him. . . it's the real one. . . . They had said it right after he had tried to 
Disarm Stan. . . . 

"We're nearly there, Harry, we've nearly made it!" shouted Hagrid. 

Harry felt the bike drop a little, though the lights down on the ground still seemed 
remote as stars. 

Then the scar on his forehead burned like fire: as a Death Eater appeared on either 
side of the bike, two Killing Curses missed Harry by millimeters, cast from behind C 

And then Harry saw him. Voldemort was flying like smoke on the wind, without 
broomstick or thestral to hold him, his snake-like face gleaming out of the blackness, his 
white fingers raising his wand again C 

Hagrid let out a bellow of fear and steered the motorbike into a vertical dive. 
Clinging on for dear life, Harry sent Stunning Spells flying at random into the whirling 
night. He saw a body fly past him and knew he had hit one of them, but then he heard a 
bang and saw sparks from the engine; the motorbike spiraled through the air, completely 
out of control C 

Green jets of light shot past them again. Harry had no idea which way was up, 
which down: His scar was still burning; he expected to die at any second. A hooded 
figure on a broomstick was feet from him, he saw it raise its arm C 

"NO!" 

With a shout of fury Hagrid launched himself off the bike at the Death Eater; to 
his horror, Harry saw both Hagrid and the Death Eater, falling out of sight, their 
combined weight too much for the broomstick C 

Barely gripping the plummeting bike with his knees, Harry heard Voldemort 
scream, "Mine!" 

It was over: He could not see or hear where Voldemort was; he glimpsed another 
Death Eater swooping out of the way and heard, "Avada C" 


As the pain from Harry's scar forced his eyes shut, his wand acted of its own 
accord. He felt it drag his hand around like some great magnet, saw a spurt of golden fire 
through his half-closed eyelids, heard a crack and a scream of fury. The remaining Death 
Eater yelled; Voldemort screamed, "NO!" Somehow, Harry found his nose an inch from 
the dragon-fire button. He punched it with his wand-free hand and the bike shot more 
flames into the air, hurtling straight toward the ground. 

"Hagrid!" Harry called, holding on to the bike for dear life. "Hagrid C Accio 
Hagrid!" 

The motorbike sped up, sucked towards the earth. Face level with the handlebars, 
Harry could see nothing but distant lights growing nearer and nearer: He was going to 
crash and there was nothing he could do about it. Behind him came another scream, 
"Your wand, Selwyn, give me your wand!" 

He felt Voldemort before he saw him. Looking sideways, he stared into the red 
eyes and was sure they would be the last thing he ever saw: Voldemort preparing to curse 
him once more C 

And then Voldemort vanished. Harry looked down and saw Hagrid spread-eagled 
on the ground below him. He pulled hard at the handlebars to avoid hitting him, groped 
for the brake, but with an earsplitting, ground trembling crash, he smashed into a muddy 
pond. 

 

Chapter Five 

Fallen Warrior 

 

"Hagrid?" 

 Harry struggled to raise himself out of the debris of metal and leather that 
surrounded him; his hands sank into inches of muddy water as he tried to stand. He could 
not understand where Voldemort had gone and expected him to swoop out of the 
darkness at any moment. Something hot and wet was trickling down his chin and from 
his forehead. He crawled out of the pond and stumbled toward the great dark mass on the 
ground that was Hagrid. 

 "Hagrid? Hagrid, talk to me C" 

 But the dark mass did not stir. 

 "Who's there? Is it Potter? Are you Harry Potter?" 

 Harry did not recognize the man's voice. Then a woman shouted. "They've 
crashed. Ted! Crashed in the garden!" 

 Harry's head was swimming. 

 "Hagrid," he repeated stupidly, and his knees buckled. 

 The next thing he knew, he was lying on his back on what felt like cushions, with 
a burning sensation in his ribs and right arm. His missing tooth had been regrown. The 
scar on his forehead was still throbbing. 

 "Hagrid?" 

 He opened his eyes and saw that he was lying on a sofa in an unfamiliar, lamplit 
sitting room. His rucksack lay on the floor a short distance away, wet and muddy. A fair-
haired, big-bellied man was watching Harry anxiously. 


 "Hagrid's fine, son," said the man, "the wife's seeing to him now. How are you 
feeling? Anything else broken? I've fixed your ribs, your tooth, and your arm. I'm Ted, by 
the way, Ted Tonks C Dora's father." 

 Harry sat up too quickly. Lights popped in front of his eyes and he felt sick and 
giddy. 

 "Voldemort C" 

 "Easy, now," said Ted Tonks, placing a hand on Harry's shoulder and pushing him 
back against the cushions. "That was a nasty crash you just had. What happened, 
anyway? Something go wrong with the bike? Arthur Weasley overstretch himself again, 
him and his Muggle contraptions?" 

 "No," said Harry, as his scar pulsed like an open wound. "Death Eaters, loads of 
them C we were chased C" 

 "Death Eaters?" said Ted sharply. "What d'you mean, Death Eaters? I thought 
they didn't know you were being moved tonight, I thought C" 

 "They knew," said Harry. 

 Ted Tonks looked up at the ceiling as though he could see through it to the sky 
above. 

 "Well, we know our protective charms hold, then, don't we? They shouldn't be 
able to get within a hundred yards of the place in any direction." 

 Now Harry understood why Voldemort had vanished; it had been at the point 
when the motorbike crossed the barrier of the Order's charms. He only hoped they would 
continue to work: He imagined Voldemort, a hundred yards above them as they spoke, 
looking for a way to penetrate what Harry visualized as a great transparent bubble. 

 He swung his legs off the sofa; he needed to see Hagrid with his own eyes before 
he would believe that he was alive. He had barely stood up, however, when a door 
opened and Hagrid squeezed through it, his face covered in mud and blood, limping a 
little but miraculously alive. 

 "Harry!" 

 Knocking over two delicate tables and an aspidistra, he covered the floor between 
them in two strides and pulled Harry into a hug that nearly cracked his newly repaired 
ribs. "Blimey, Harry, how did yeh get out o' that? I thought we were both goners." 

 "Yeah, me too. I can't believe C" 

 Harry broke off. He had just noticed the woman who had entered the room behind 
Hagrid. 

 "You!" he shouted, and he thrust his hand into his pocket, but it was empty. 

 "Your wand's here, son," said Ted, tapping it on Harry's arm. "It fell right beside 
you, I picked it upAnd that's my wife you're shouting at." 

 "Oh, I'm C I'm sorry." 

 As she moved forward into the room, Mrs. Tonks's resemblance to her sister 
Bellatrix became much less pronounced: Her hair was a lights oft brown and her eyes 
were wider and kinder. Nevertheless, she looked a little haughty after Harry's 
exclamation. 

 "What happened to our daughter?" she asked. "Hagrid said you were ambushed; 
where is Nymphadora?" 

 "I don't know," said Harry. "We don't know what happened to anyone else." 


 She and Ted exchanged looks. A mixture of fear and guilt gripped Harry at the 
sight of their expressions, if any of the others had died, it was his fault, all his fault. He 
had consented to the plan, given them his hair . . . 

 "The Portkey," he said, remembering all of a sudden. "We've got to get back to 
the Burrow and find out C then we'll be able to send you word, or C or Tonks will, once 
she's C" 

 "Dora'll be ok, 'Dromeda," said Ted. "She knows her stuff, she's been in plenty of 
tight spots with the Aurors. The Portkey's through here," he added to Harry. "It's 
supposed to leave in three minutes, if you want to take it." 

 "Yeah, we do," said Harry. He seized his rucksack, swung it onto his shoulders. "I 
C" 

 He looked at Mrs. Tonks, wanting to apologize for the state of fear in which he 
left her and for which he felt so terribly responsible, but no words occurred to him that he 
did not seem hollow and insincere. 

 "I'll tell Tonks C Dora C to send word, when she . . . Thanks for patching us up, 
thanks for everything, I C" 

 He was glad to leave the room and follow Ted Tonks along a short hallway and 
into a bedroom. Hagrid came after them, bending low to avoid hitting his head on the 
door lintel. 

 "There you go, son. That's the Portkey." 

 Mr. Tonks was pointing to a small, silver-backed hairbrush lying on the dressing 
table. 

 "Thanks," said Harry, reaching out to place a finger on it, ready to leave. 

 "Wait a moment," said Hagrid, looking around. "Harry, where's Hedwig?" 

 "She . . . she got hit," said Harry. 

 The realization crashed over him: He felt ashamed of himself as the tears stung 
his eyes. The owl had been his companion, his one great link with the magical world 
whenever he had been forced to return to the Dursleys. 

 Hagrid reached out a great hand and patted him painfully on the shoulder. 

 "Never mind," he said gruffly, "Never mind. She had a great old life C" 

 "Hagrid!" said Ted Tonks warningly, as the hairbrush glowed bright blue, and 
Hagrid only just got his forefinger to it in time. 

 With a jerk behind the navel as though an invisible hook and line had dragged 
him forward, Harry was pulled into nothingness, spinning uncontrollably, his finger glued 
to the Portkey as he and Hagrid hurtled away from Mr. Tonks. Second later, Harry's feet 
slammed onto hard ground and he fell onto his hands and knees in the yard of the Burrow. 
He heard screams. Throwing aside the no longer glowing hairbrush, Harry stood up, 
swaying slightly, and saw Mrs. Weasley and Ginny running down the steps by the back 
door as Hagrid, who had also collapsed on landing, clambered laboriously to his feet. 

 "Harry? You are the real Harry? What happened? Where are the others?" cried 
Mrs. Weasley. 

 "What d'you mean? Isn't anyone else back?" Harry panted. 

 The answer was clearly etched in Mrs. Weasley's pale face. 

 "The Death Eaters were waiting for us," Harry told her, "We were surrounded the 
moment we took off C they knew it was tonight C I don't know what happened to anyone 


else, four of them chased us, it was all we could do to get away, and then Voldemort 
caught up with us C" 

 He could hear the self-justifying note in his voice, the plea for her to understand 
why he did not know what had happened to her sons, but C 

 "Thank goodness you're all right," she said, pulling him into a hug he did not feel 
he deserved. 

 "Haven't go' any brandy, have yeh, Molly?" asked Hagrid a little shakily, "Fer 
medicinal purposes?" 

 She could have summoned it by magic, but as she hurried back toward the 
crooked house, Harry knew that she wanted to hide her face. He turned to Ginny and she 
answered his unspoken plea for information at once. 

 "Ron and Tonks should have been back first, but they missed their Portkey, it 
came back without them," she said, pointing at a rusty oil can lying on the ground nearby. 
"And that one," she pointed at an ancient sneaker, "should have been Dad and Fred's, 
they were supposed to be second. You and Hagrid were third and," she checked her 
watch, "if they made it, George and Lupin aught to be back in about a minute." 

 Mrs. Weasley reappeared carrying a bottle of brandy, which she handed to Hagrid. 
He uncorked it and drank it straight down in one. 

 "Mum!" shouted Ginny pointing to a spot several feet away. 

 A blue light had appeared in the darkness: It grew larger and brighter, and Lupin 
and George appeared, spinning and then falling. Harry knew immediately that there was 
something wrong: Lupin was supporting George, who was unconscious and whose face 
was covered in blood. 

 Harry ran forward and seized George's legs. Together, he and Lupin carried 
George into the house and through the kitchen to the living room, where they laid him on 
the sofa. As the lamplight fell across George's head, Ginny gasped and Harry's stomach 
lurched: One of George's ears was missing. The side of his head and neck were drenched 
in wet, shockingly scarlet blood. 

 No sooner had Mrs. Weasley bent over her son that Lupin grabbed Harry by the 
upper arm and dragged him, none too gently, back into the kitchen, where Hagrid was 
still attempting to ease his bulk through the back door. 

 "Oi!" said Hagrid indignantly, "Le' go of him! Le' go of Harry!" 

 Lupin ignored him. 

 "What creature sat in the corner the first time that Harry Potter visited my office 
at Hogwarts?" he said, giving Harry a small shake. "Answer me!" 

 "A C a grindylow in a tank, wasn't it?" 

 Lupin released Harry and fell back against a kitchen cupboard. 

 "Wha' was tha' about?" roared Hagrid. 

 "I'm sorry, Harry, but I had to check," said Lupin tersely. "We've been betrayed. 
Voldemort knew that you were being moved tonight and the only people who could have 
told him were directly involved in the plan. You might have been an impostor." 

 "So why aren' you checkin' me?" panted Hagrid, still struggling with the door. 

 "You're half-giant," said Lupin, looking up at Hagrid. "The Polyjuice Potion is 
designed for human use only." 

 "None of the Order would have told Voldemort we were moving tonight," said 
Harry. The idea was dreadful to him, he could not believe it of any of them. "Voldemort 


only caught up with me toward the end, he didn't know which one I was in the beginning. 
If he'd been in on the plan he'd have known from the start I was the one with Hagrid." 

 "Voldemort caught up with you?" said Lupin sharply. "What happened? How did 
you escape?" 

 Harry explained how the Death Eaters pursuing them had seemed to recognize 
him as the true Harry, how they had abandoned the chase, how they must have 
summoned Voldemort, who had appeared just before he and Hagrid had reached the 
sanctuary of Tonks's parents. 

 "They recognized you? But how? What had you done?" 

 "I . . ." Harry tried to remember; the whole journey seemed like a blur of panic 
and confusion. "I saw Stan Shunpike . . . . You know, the bloke who was the conductor 
on the Knight Bus? And I tried to Disarm him instead of C well, he doesn't know what 
he's doing, does he? He must be Imperiused!" 

 Lupin looked aghast. 

 "Harry, the time for Disarming is past! These people are trying to capture and kill 
you! At least Stun if you aren't prepared to kill!" 

 "We were hundreds of feet up! Stan's not himself, and if I Stunned him and he'd 
fallen, he'd have died the same as if I'd used Avada Kedavra! Expelliarmus saved me 
from Voldemort two years ago," Harry added defiantly. Lupin was reminding him of the 
sneering Hufflepuff Zacharias Smith, who had jeered at Harry for wanting to teach 
Dumbledore's Army how to Disarm. 

 "Yes, Harry," said Lupin with painful restraint, "and a great number of Death 
Eaters witnessed that happening! Forgive me, but it was a very unusual move then, under 
the imminent threat of death. Repeating it tonight in front of Death Eaters who either 
witnessed or heard about the first occasion was close to suicidal!" 

 "So you think I should have killed Stan Shunpike?" said Harry angrily. 

 "Of course not," said Lupin, "but the Death Eaters C frankly, most people! C 
would have expected you to attack back! Expelliarmus is a useful spell, Harry, but the 
Death Eaters seem to think it is your signature move, and I urge you not to let it become 
so!" 

 Lupin was making Harry feel idiotic, and yet there was still a grain of defiance 
inside him. 

 "I won't blast people out of my way just because they're there," said Harry, "That's 
Voldemort's job." 

 Lupin's retort was lost: Finally succeeding in squeezing through the door, Hagrid 
staggered to a chair and sat down; it collapsed beneath him. Ignoring his mingled oaths 
and apologies, Harry addressed Lupin again. 

 "Will George be okay?" 

 All Lupin's frustration with Harry seemed to drain away at the question. 

 "I think so, although there's no chance of replacing his ear, not when it's been 
cursed off C" 

 There was a scuffling from outside. Lupin dived for the back door; Harry leapt 
over Hagrid's legs and sprinted into the yard. 

 Two figures had appeared in the yard, and as Harry ran toward them he realized 
they were Hermione, now returning to her normal appearance, and Kingsley, both 
clutching a bent coat hanger, Hermione flung herself into Harry's arms, but Kingsley 


showed no pleasure at the sight of any of them. Over Hermione's shoulder Harry saw him 
raise his wand and point it at Lupin's chest. 

 "The last words Albus Dumbledore spoke to the pair of us!" 

 "'Harry is the best hope we have. Trust him,'" said Lupin calmly. 

 Kingsley turned his wand on Harry, but Lupin said, "It's him, I've checked!" 

 "All right, all right!" said Kingsley, stowing his wand back beneath his cloak, 
"But somebody betrayed us! They knew, they knew it was tonight!" 

 "So it seems," replied Lupin, "but apparently they did not realize that there would 
be seven Harrys." 

 "Small comfort!" snarled Kingsley. "Who else is back?" 

 "Only Harry, Hagrid, George, and me." 

 Hermione stifled a little moan behind her hand. 

 "What happened to you?" Lupin asked Kingsley. 

 "Followed by five, injured two, might've killed one," Kingsley reeled off, "and we 
saw You-Know-Who as well, he joined the chase halfway through but vanished pretty 
quickly. Remus, he can C" 

 "Fly," supplied Harry. "I saw him too, he came after Hagrid and me." 

 "So that's why he left, to follow you!" said Kingsley, "I couldn't understand why 
he'd vanished. But what made him change targets?" 

 "Harry behaved a little too kindly to Stan Shunpike," said Lupin. 

 "Stan?" repeated Hermione. "But I thought he was in Azkaban?" 

 Kingsley let out a mirthless laugh. 

 "Hermione, there's obviously been a mass breakout which the Ministry has 
hushed up. Travers's hood fell off when I cursed him, he's supposed to be inside too. But 
what happened to you, Remus? Where's George?" 

 "He lost an ear," said Lupin. 

 "lost an -- ?" repeated Hermione in a high voice. 

 "Snape's work," said Lupin. 

 "Snape?" shouted Harry. "You didn't say C" 

 "He lost his hood during the chase. Sectumsempra was always a specialty of 
Snape's. I wish I could say I'd paid him back in kind, but it was all I could do to keep 
George on the broom after he was injured, he was losing so much blood." 

 Silence fell between the four of them as they looked up at the sky. There was no 
sign of movement; the stars stared back, unblinking, indifferent, unobscured by flying 
friends. Where was Ron? Where were Fred and Mr. Weasley? Where were Bill, Fleur, 
Tonks, Mad-Eye, and Mundungus? 

 "Harry, give us a hand!" called Hagrid hoarsely from the door, in which he was 
stuck again. Glad of something to do, Harry pulled him free, the headed through the 
empty kitchen and back into the sitting room, where Mrs. Weasley and Ginny were still 
tending to George. Mrs. Weasley had staunched his bleeding now, and by the lamplight 
Harry saw a clean gaping hole where George's ear had been. 

 "How is he?" 

 Mrs. Weasley looked around and said, "I can't make it grow back, not when it's 
been removed by Dark Magic. But it could've been so much worse . . . . He's alive." 

 "Yeah," said Harry. "Thank God." 

 "Did I hear someone else in the yard?" Ginny asked. 


 "Hermione and Kingsley," said Harry. 

 "Thank goodness," Ginny whispered. They looked at each other; Harry wanted to 
hug her, hold on to her; he did not even care much that Mrs. Weasley was there, but 
before he could act on the impulse, there was a great crash from the kitchen. 

 "I'll prove who I am, Kingsley, after I've seen my son, now back off if you know 
what's good for you!" 

 Harry had never heard Mr. Weasley shout like that before. He burst into the living 
room, his bald patch gleaming with sweat, his spectacles askew, Fred right behind him, 
both pale but uninjured. 

 "Arthur!" sobbed Mrs. Weasley. "Oh thank goodness!" 

 "How is he?" 

 Mr. Weasley dropped to his knees beside George. For the first time since Harry 
had known him, Fred seemed to be lost for words. He gaped over the back of the sofa at 
his twin's wound as if he could not believe what he was seeing. 

 Perhaps roused by the sound of Fred and their father's arrival, George stirred. 

 "How do you feel, Georgie?" whispered Mrs. Weasley. 

 George's fingers groped for the side of his head. 

 "Saintlike," he murmured. 

 "What's wrong with him?" croaked Fred, looking terrified. "Is his mind affected?" 

 "Saintlike," repeated George, opening his eyes and looking up at his brother. 
"You see. . . I'm holy. Holey, Fred, geddit?" 

 Mrs. Weasley sobbed harder than ever. Color flooded Fred's pale face. 

 "Pathetic," he told George. "Pathetic! With the whole wide world of ear-related 
humor before you, you go for holey?" 

 "Ah well," said George, grinning at his tear-soaked mother. "You'll be able to tell 
us apart now, anyway, Mum." 

 He looked around. 

 "Hi, Harry C you are Harry, right?" 

 "Yeah, I am," said Harry, moving closer to the sofa. 

 "Well, at least we got you back okay," said George. "Why aren't Ron and Bill 
huddled round my sickbed?" 

 "They're not back yet, George," said Mrs. Weasley. George's grin faded. Harry 
glanced at Ginny and motioned to her to accompany him back outside. As they walked 
through the kitchen she said in a low voice. 

 "Ron and Tonks should be back by now. They didn't have a long journey; Auntie 
Muriel's not that far from here." 

 Harry said nothing. He had been trying to keep fear at bay ever since reaching the 
Burrow, but now it enveloped him, seeming to crawl over his skin, throbbing in his chest, 
clogging his throat. As they walked down the back steps into the dark yard, Ginny took 
his hand. 

 Kingsley was striding backward and forward, glancing up at the sky every time he 
turned. Harry was reminded of Uncle Vernon pacing the living room a million years ago. 
Hagrid, Hermione, and Lupin stood shoulder to shoulder, gazing upward in silence. None 
of them looked around when Harry and Ginny joined their silent vigil. 


 The minutes stretched into what might as well have been years. The slightest 
breath of wind made them all jump and turn toward the whispering bush or tree in the 
hope that one of the missing Order members might leap unscathed from its leaves C 

 And then a broom materialized directly above them and streaked toward the 
ground C 

 "It's them!" screamed Hermione. 

 Tonks landed in a long skid that sent earth and pebbles everywhere. 

 "Remus!" Tonks cried as she staggered off the broom into Lupin's arms. His face 
was set and white: He seemed unable to speak, Ron tripped dazedly toward Harry and 
Hermione. 

 "You're okay," he mumbled, before Hermione flew at him and hugged him tightly. 

 "I thought C I thought C" 

 "'M all right," said Ron, patting her on the back. "'M fine." 

 "Ron was great," said Tonks warmly, relinquishing her hold on Lupin. 
"Wonderful. Stunned one of the Death Eaters, straight to the head, and when you're 
aiming at a moving target from a flying broom C" 

 "You did?" said Hermione, gazing up at Ron with her arms still around his neck. 

 "Always the tone of surprise," he said a little grumpily, breaking free. "Are we the 
last back?" 

 "No," said Ginny, "we're still waiting for Bill and Fleur and Mad-Eye and 
Mundungus. I'm going to tell Mum and Dad you're okay, Ron C" 

 She ran back inside. 

 "So what kept you? What happened?" Lupin sounded almost angry at Tonks. 

 "Bellatrix," said Tonks. "She wants me quite as much as she wants Harry, Remus, 
She tried very hard to kill me. I just wish I'd got her, I owe Bellatrix. But we definitely 
injured Rodolphus . . . . Then we got to Ron's Auntie Muriel's and we missed our Portkey 
and she was fussing over us C" 

 A muscle was jumping in Lupin's jaw. He nodded, but seemed unable to say 
anything else. 

 "So what happened to you lot?" Tonks asked, turning to Harry, Hermione, and 
Kingsley. 

 They recounted the stories of their own journeys, but all the time the continued 
absence of Bill, Fleur, Mad-Eye, and Mundungus seemed to lie upon them like a frost, its 
icy bite harder and harder to ignore. 

 "I'm going to have to get back to Downing Street, I should have been there an 
hour ago," said Kingsley finally, after a last sweeping gaze at the sky. "Let me know 
when they're back,." 

 Lupin nodded. With a wave to the others, Kingsley walked away into the darkness 
toward the gate. Harry thought he heard the faintest pop as Kingsley Disapparated just 
beyond the Burrow's boundaries. 

 Mr. And Mrs. Weasley came racing down the back steps, Ginny behind them. 
Both parents hugged Ron before turning to Lupin and Tonks. 

 "Thank you," said Mrs. Weasley, "for our sons." 

 "Don't be silly, Molly," said Tonks at once. 

 "How's George?" asked Lupin. 

 "What's wrong with him?" piped up Ron. 


 "He's lost C" 

 But the end of Mrs. Weasley's sentence was drowned in a general outcry. A 
thestral had just soared into sight and landed a few feet from them. Bill and Fleur slid 
from its back, windswept but unhurt. 

 "Bill! Thank God, thank God C" 

 Mrs. Weasley ran forward, but the hug Bill bestowed upon her was perfunctory. 
Looking directly at his father, he said, "Mad-Eye's dead." 

 Nobody spoke, nobody moved. Harry felt as though something inside him was 
falling, falling through the earth, leaving him forever. 

 "We saw it," said Bill; Fleur nodded, tear tracks glittering on her cheeks in the 
light from the kitchen window. "It happened just after we broke out of the circle: Mad-
Eye and Dung were close by us, they were heading north too. Voldemort C he can fly C 
went straight for them. Dung panicked, I heard him cry out, Mad-Eye tried to stop him, 
but he Disapparated. Voldemort's curse hit Mad-Eye full in the face, he fell backward off 
his broom and C there was nothing we could do, nothing, we had half a dozen of them on 
our own tail C" 

 Bill's voice broke. 

 "Of course you couldn't have done anything," said Lupin. 

 They all stood looking at each other. Harry could not quite comprehend it. Mad-
Eye dead; it could not be . . . . Mad-Eye, so tough, so brave, the consummate survivor . . . 

 At last it seemed to dawn on everyone, though nobody said it, that there was no 
point of waiting in the yard anymore, and in silence they followed Mr. And Mrs. Weasley 
back into the Burrow, and into the living room, where Fred and George were laughing 
together. 

 "What's wrong?" said Fred, scanning their faces as they entered, "What's 
happened? Who's --?" 

 "Mad-Eye," said Mr. Weasley, "Dead." 

 The twins' grins turned to grimaces of shock. Nobody seemed to know what to do. 
Tonks was crying silently into a handkerchief: She had been close to Mad-Eye, Harry 
knew, his favorite and his protge at the Ministry of Magic. Hagrid, who had sat down 
on the floor in the corner where he had most space, was dabbing at his eyes with his 
tablecloth-sized handkerchief. 

 Bill walked over to the sideboard and pulled out a bottle of fire-whisky and some 
glasses. 

 "Here," he said, and with a wave of his wand, eh sent twelve full glasses soaring 
through the room to each of them, holding the thirteenth aloft. "Mad-Eye." 

 "Mad-Eye," they all said, and drank. 

 "Mad-Eye," echoed Hagrid, a little late, with a hiccup. The firewhisky seared 
Harry's throat. It seemed to burn feeling back into him, dispelling the numbness and 
sense of unreality firing him with something that was like courage. 

 "So Mundungus disappeared?" said Lupin, who had drained his own glass in one. 

 The atmosphere changed at once. Everybody looked tense, watching Lupin, both 
wanting him to go on, it seemed to Harry, and slightly afraid of what they might hear. 

 "I know what you're thinking," said Bill, "and I wondered that too, on the way 
back here, because they seemed to be expecting us, didn't they? But Mundungus can't 
have betrayed us. They didn't know there would be seven Harrys, that confused them the 


moment we appeared, and in case you've forgotten, it was Mundungus who suggested 
that little bit of skullduggery. Why wouldn't he have told them the essential point? I think 
Dung panicked, it's as simple as that. He didn't want to come in the first place, but Mad-
Eye made him, and You-Know-Who went straight for them. It was enough to make 
anyone panic." 

 "You-Know-Who acted exactly as Mad-Eye expected him to," sniffed Tonks. 
"Mad-Eye said he'd expect the real Harry to be with the toughest, most skilled Aurors. He 
chased Mad-Eye first, and when Mundungus gave them away he switched to 
Kingsley. . . . " 

 "Yes, and zat eez all very good," snapped Fleur, "but still eet does not explain 'ow 
zey know we were moving 'Arry tonight, does eet? Somebody must 'ave been careless. 
Somebody let slip ze date to an outsider. It is ze only explanation for zem knowing ze 
date but not ze 'ole plan." 

 She glared around at them all, tear tracks still etched on her beautiful face, silently 
daring any of them to contradict her. Nobody did. The only sound to break the silence 
was that of Hagrid hiccupping from behind his handkerchief. Harry glanced at Hagrid, 
who had just risked his own life to save Harry's C Hagrid, whom he loved, whom he 
trusted, who had once been tricked into giving Voldemort crucial information in 
exchange for a dragon's egg. . . . 

 "No," Harry said aloud, and they all looked at him, surprised: The firewhisky 
seemed to have amplified his voice. "I mean . . . if somebody made a mistake," Harry 
went on, "and let something slip, I know they didn't mean to do it. It's not their fault," he 
repeated, again a little louder than he would usually have spoken. "We've got to trust each 
other. I trust all of you, I don't think anyone in this room would ever sell me to 
Voldemort." 

 More silence followed his words. They were all looking at him; Harry felt a little 
hot again, and drank some more firewhisky for something to do. As he drank, he thought 
of Mad-Eye. Mad-Eye had always been scathing about Dumbledore's willingness to trust 
people. 

 "Well said, Harry," said Fred unexpectedly. 

 "Year, 'ear, 'ear," said George, with half a glance at Fred, the corner of whose 
mouth twitched. 

 Lupin was wearing an odd expression as he looked at Harry. It was close to 
pitying. 

 "You think I'm a fool?" demanded Harry. 

 "No, I think you're like James," said Lupin, "who would have regarded it as the 
height of dishonor to mistrust his friends." 

 Harry knew what Lupin was getting at: that his father had been betrayed by his 
friend Peter Pettigrew. He felt irrationally angry. He wanted to argue, but Lupin had 
turned away from him, set down his glass upon a side table, and addressed Bill, "There's 
work to do. I can ask Kingsley whether C" 

 "No," said Bill at once, "I'll do it, I'll come." 

 "Where are you going?" said Tonks and Fleur together. 

 "Mad-Eye's body," said Lupin. "We need to recover it." 

 "Can't it -- ?" began Mrs. Weasley with an appealing look at Bill. 

 "Wait?" said Bill, "Not unless you'd rather the Death Eaters took it?" 


 Nobody spoke. Lupin and Bill said good bye and left. 

 The rest of them now dropped into chairs, all except for Harry, who remained 
standing. The suddenness and completeness of death was with them like a presence. 

 "I've got to go too," said Harry. 

 Ten pairs of startled eyes looked at him. 

 "Don't be silly, Harry," said Mrs. Weasley, "What are you talking about?" 

 "I can't stay here." 

 He rubbed his forehead; it was prickling again, he had not hurt like this for more 
than a year. 

 "You're all in danger while I'm here. I don't want C" 

 "But don't be so silly!" said Mrs. Weasley. "The whole point of tonight was to get 
you here safely, and thank goodness it worked. And Fleur's agreed to get married here 
rather than in France, we've arranged everything so that we can all stay together and look 
after you C" 

 She did not understand; she was making him feel worse, not better. 

 "If Voldemort finds out I'm here C" 

 "But why should he?" asked Mrs. Weasley. 

 "There are a dozen places you might be now, Harry," said Mr. Weasley. "He's got 
no way of knowing which safe house you're in." 

 "It's not me I'm worried for!" said Harry. 

 "We know that," said Mr. Weasley quietly, but it would make our efforts tonight 
seem rather pointless if you left." 

 "Yer not goin' anywhere," growled Hagrid. "Blimey, Harry, after all we wen' 
through ter get you here?" 

 "Yeah, what about my bleeding ear?" said George, hoisting himself up on his 
cushions. 

 "I know that C" 

 "Mad-Eye wouldn't want C" 

 "I KNOW!" Harry bellowed. 

 He felt beleaguered and blackmailed: Did they think he did not know what they 
had done for him, didn't they understand that it was for precisely that reason that he 
wanted to go now, before they had to suffer any more on his behalf? There was a long 
and awkward silence in which his scar continued to prickle and throb, and which was 
broken at last by Mrs. Weasley. 

 "Where's Hedwig, Harry?" she said coaxingly. "We can put her up with 
Pidwidgeon and give her something to eat." 

 His insides clenched like a fist. He could not tell her the truth. He drank the last of 
his firewhisky to avoid answering. 

 "Wait till it gets out yeh did it again, Harry," said Hagrid. "Escaped him, fought 
him off when he was right on top of yeh!" 

 "It wasn't me," said Harry flatly. "It was my wand. My wand acted of its own 
accord." 

 After a few moments, Hermione said gently, "But that's impossible, Harry. You 
mean that you did magic without meaning to; you reacted instinctively." 


 "No," said Harry. "The bike was falling, I couldn't have told you where 
Voldemort was, but my wand spun in my hand and found him and shot a spell at him, and 
it wasn't even a spell I recognized. I've never made gold flames appear before." 

 "Often," said Mr. Weasley, "when you're in a pressured situation you can produce 
magic you never dreamed of. Small children often find, before they're trained C" 

 "It wasn't like that," said Harry through gritted teeth. His scar was burning. He felt 
angry and frustrated; he hated the idea that they were all imagining him to have power to 
match Voldemort's. 

 No one said anything. He knew that they did not believe him. Now that he came 
to think of it, he had never heard of a wand performing magic on its own before. 

 His scar seared with pain, it was all he could do not to moan aloud. Muttering 
about fresh air, he set down his glass and left the room. 

 As he crossed the yard, the great skeletal thestral looked up C rustled its enormous 
batlike wings, then resumed its grazing. Harry stopped at the gate into the garden, staring 
out at its overgrown plants, rubbing his pounding forehead and thinking of Dumbledore. 

 Dumbledore would have believed him, he knew it. Dumbledore would have 
known how and why Harry's wand had acted independently, because Dumbledore always 
had the answers; he had known about wands, had explained to Harry the strange 
connection that existed between his wand and Voldemort's . . . . But Dumbledore, like 
Mad-Eye, like Sirius, like his parents, like his poor owl, all were gone where Harry could 
never talk to them again. He felt a burning in his throat that had nothing to do with 
firewhisky. . . . 

 And then, out of nowhere, the pain in his scar peaked. As he clutched his forehead 
and closed his eyes, a voice screamed inside his head. 

 "You told me the problem would be solved by using another's wand!" 

 And into his mind burst the vision of an emaciated old man lying in rags upon a 
stone floor, screaming, a horrible drawn-out scream, a scream of unendurable agony. . . . 

 "No! No! I beg you, I beg you. . . ." 

 "You lied to Lord Voldemort, Ollivander!" 

 "I did not. . . . I swear I did not. . . ." 

 "You sought to help Potter, to help him escape me!" 

 "I swear I did not. . . . I believed a different wand would work. . . ." 

 "Explain, then, what happened. Lucius's wand is destroyed!" 

 "I cannot understand. . . . The connection . . . exists only . . between your two 
wands. . . ." 

 "Lies!" 

 "Please . . . I beg you. . . ." 

 And Harry saw the white hand raise its wand and felt Voldemort's surge of 
vicious anger, saw the frail old main on the floor writhe in agony C 

 "Harry?" 

 It was over as quickly as it had come: Harry stood shaking in the darkness, 
clutching the gate into the garden, his heart racing, his scar still tingling. It was several 
moments before he realized that Ron and Hermione were at his side. 

 "Harry, come back in the house," Hermione whispered, "You aren't still thinking 
of leaving?" 

 "Yeah, you've got to stay, mate," said Ron, thumping Harry on the back. 


 "Are you all right?" Hermione asked, close enough now to look into Harry's face. 
"You look awful!" 

 "Well," said Harry shakily, "I probably look better than Ollivander. . . ." 

 When he had finished telling them what he had seen, Ron looked appalled, but 
Hermione downright terrified. 

 "But it was supposed to have stopped! Your scar C it wasn't supposed to do this 
anymore! You mustn't let that connection open up again C Dumbledore wanted you to 
close your mind!" 

 When he did not reply, she gripped his arm. 

 "Harry, he's taking over the Ministry and the newspapers and half the Wizarding 
world! Don't let him inside your head too!" 

 

Chapter Six 

The Ghoul in Pajamas 

 

The shock of losing Mad-Eye hung over the house in the days that followed; 
Harry kept expecting to see him stumping in through the back door like the other Order 
members, who passed in and out to relay news. Harry felt that nothing but action would 
assuage his feelings of guilt and grief and that he ought to set out on his mission to find 
and destroy Horcruxes as soon as possible. 

Well, you cant do anything about the C Ron mouthed the word Horcruxes C 
till youre seventeen. Youve still got the Trace on you. And we can plan here as well as 
anywhere, cant we? Or, he dropped his voice to a whisper, dyou reckon you already 
know where the You-Know-Whats are? 

No, Harry admitted. 

I think Hermiones been doing a bit of research, said Ron. She said she was 
saving it for when you got here. 

They were sitting at the breakfast table; Mr. Weasley and Bill had just left for 
work. Mrs. Weasley had gone upstairs to wake Hermione and Ginny, while Fleur had 
drifted off to take a bath. 

The Tracell break on the thirty-first, said Harry. That means I only need to 
stay here four days. Then I can C 

Five days, Ron corrected him firmly. Weve got to stay for the wedding. 
Theyll kill us if we miss it. 

Harry understood they to mean Fleur and Mrs. Weasley. 

Its one extra day, said Ron, when Harry looked mutinous. 

Dont they realize how important C? 

Course they dont, said Ron. They havent got a clue. And now you mention 
it, I wanted to talk to you about that. 

Ron glanced toward the door into the hall to check that Mrs. Weasley was not 
returning yet, then leaned in closer to Harry. 

Mums been trying to get it out of Hermione and me. What were off to do. 
Shell try you next, so brace yourself. Dad and Lupinve both asked as well, but when we 


said Dumbledore told you not to tell anyone except us, they dropped it. Not Mum, though. 
Shes determined. 

Rons prediction came true within hours. Shortly before lunch, Mrs. Weasley 
detached Harry from the others by asking him to help identify a lone mans sock that she 
thought might have come out of his rucksack. Once she had him cornered in the tiny 
scullery off the kitchen, she started. 

Ron and Hermione seem to think that the three of you are dropping out of 
Hogwarts, she began in a light, casual tone. 

Oh, said Harry. Well, yeah. We are. 

The mangle turned of its own accord in a corner, wringing out what looked like 
one of Mr. Weasleys vests. 

May I ask why you are abandoning your education? said Mrs. Weasley. 

Well, Dumbledore left me . . . stuff to do, mumbled Harry. Ron and Hermione 
know about it, and they want to come too. 

What sort of stuff? 

Im sorry, I cant C 

Well, frankly, I think Arthur and I have a right to know, and Im sure Mr. And 
Mrs. Granger would agree! said Mrs. Weasley. Harry had been afraid of the concerned 
parent attack. He forced himself to look directly into her eyes, noticing as he did so that 
they were precisely the same shade of brown as Ginnys. This did not help. 

Dumbledore didnt want anyone else to know, Mrs. Weasley. Im sorry. Ron and 
Hermione dont have to come, its their choice C 

I dont see that you have to go either! she snapped, dropping all pretense now. 
Youre barely of age, any of you! Its utter nonsense, if Dumbledore needed work doing, 
he had the whole Order at his command! Harry, you must have misunderstood him. 
Probably he was telling you something he wanted done, and you took it to mean that he 
wanted youC 

I didnt misunderstand, said Harry flatly. Its got to be me. 

He handed her back the single sock he was supposed to be identifying, which was 
patterned with golden bulrushes. 

And thats not mine. I dont support Puddlemere United. 

Oh, of course not, said Mrs. Weasley with a sudden and rather unnerving return 
to her casual tone. I should have realized. Well, Harry, while weve still got you here, 
you wont mind helping with the preparations for Bill and Fleurs wedding, will you? 
Theres still so much to do. 

No C I C of course not, said Harry, disconcerted by this sudden change of 
subject. 

Sweet of you, she replied, and she smiled as she left the scullery. 

From that moment on, Mrs. Weasley kept Harry, Ron and Hermione so busy with 
preparations for the wedding that they hardly had any time to think. The kindest 
explanation of this behavior would have been that Mrs. Weasley wanted to distract them 
all from thoughts of Mad-Eye and the terrors of their recent journey. After two days of 
nonstop cutlery cleaning, of color-matching favors, ribbons, and flowers, of de-gnoming 
the garden and helping Mrs. Weasley cook vast batches of canaps, however, Harry 
started to suspect her of a different motive. All the jobs she handed out seemed to keep 
him, Ron, and Hermione away from one another; he had not had a chance to speak to the 


two of them alone since the first night, when he had told them about Voldemort torturing 
Ollivander. 

I think Mum thinks that if she can stop the three of you getting together and 
planning, shell be able to delay you leaving, Ginny told Harry in an undertone, as they 
laid the table for dinner on the third night of his stay. 

And then what does she thinks going to happen? Harry muttered. Someone 
else might kill off Voldemort while shes holding us here making vol-au-vents? 

He had spoken without thinking, and saw Ginnys face whiten. 

So its true? she said. Thats what youre trying to do? 

I C not C I was joking, said Harry evasively. 

They stared at each other, and there was something more than shock in Ginnys 
expression. Suddenly Harry became aware that this was the first time that he had been 
alone with her since those stolen hours in secluded corners of the Hogwarts grounds. He 
was sure she was remembering them too. Both of them jumped as the door opened, and 
Mr. Weasley, Kingsley, and Bill walked in. 

They were often joined by other Order members for dinner now, because the 
Burrow had replaced number twelve, Grimmauld Place as the headquarters. Mr. Weasley 
had explained that after the death of Dumbledore, their Secret-Keeper, each of the people 
to whom Dumbledore had confided Grimmauld Places location had become a Secret-
Keeper in turn. 

And as there are around twenty of us, that greatly dilutes the power of the 
Fidelius Charm. Twenty times as many opportunities for the Death Eaters to get the 
secret out of somebody. We cant expect it to hold much longer. 

But surely Snape will have told the Death Eaters the address by now? asked 
Harry. 

Well, Mad-Eye set up a couple of curses against Snape in case he turns up there 
again. We hope theyll be strong enough both to keep him out and to bind his tongue if he 
tries to talk about the place, but we cant be sure. It would have been insane to keep using 
the place as headquarters now that its protection has become so shaky. 

The kitchen was so crowded that evening it was difficult to maneuver knives and 
forks. Harry found himself crammed beside Ginny; the unsaid things that had just passed 
between them made him wish they had been separated by a few more people. He was 
trying so hard to avoid brushing her arm he could barely cut his chicken. 

No news about Mad-Eye? Harry asked Bill. 

Nothing, replied Bill. 

They had not been able to hold a funeral for Moody, because Bill and Lupin had 
failed to recover his body. It had been difficult to know where he might have fallen, given 
the darkness and the confusion of the battle. 

The Daily Prophet hasnt said a word about him dying or about finding the 
body, Bill went on. But that doesnt mean much. Its keeping a lot quiet these days. 

And they still havent called a hearing about all the underage magic I used 
escaping the Death Eaters? Harry called across the table to Mr. Weasley, who shook his 
head. 

Because they know I had no choice or because they dont want me to tell the 
world Voldemort attacked me? 


The latter, I think. Scrimgeour doesnt want to admit that You-Know-Who is as 
powerful as he is, nor that Azkabans seen a mass breakout. 

Yeah, why tell the public the truth? said Harry, clenching his knife so tightly 
that the faint scars on the back of his right hand stood out, white against his skin: I must 
not tell lies. 

Isnt anyone at the Ministry prepared to stand up to him? asked Ron angrily. 

Of course, Ron, but people are terrified, Mr. Weasley replied, terrified that 
they will be next to disappear, their children the next to be attacked! There are nasty 
rumors going around; I for one dont believe the Muggle Studies professor at Hogwarts 
resigned. She hasnt been seen for weeks now. Meanwhile Scrimgeour remains shut up in 
his office all day; I just hope hes working on a plan. 

There was a pause in which Mrs. Weasley magicked the empty plates onto the 
work surface and served apple tart. 

We must decide ow you will be disguised, Arry, said Fleur, once everyone 
had pudding. For ze wedding, she added, when he looked confused. Of course, none 
of our guests are Death Eaters, but we cannot guarantee zat zey will not let something 
slip after zey ave ad champagne. 

From this, Harry gathered that she still suspected Hagrid. 

Yes, good point, said Mrs. Weasley from the top of the table where she sat, 
spectacles perched on the end of her nose, scanning an immense list of jobs that she had 
scribbled on a very long piece of parchment. Now, Ron, have you cleaned out your 
room yet? 

Why? exclaimed Ron, slamming his spoon down and glaring at his mother. 
Why does my room have to be cleaned out? Harry and I are fine with it the way it is! 

We are holding your brothers wedding here in a few days time, young man C 

And are they getting married in my bedroom? asked Ron furiously. No! So 
why in the name of Merlins saggy left C 

Dont talk to your mother like that, said Mr. Weasley firmly. And do as youre 
told. 

Ron scowled at both his parents, then picked up his spoon and attacked the last 
few mouthfuls of his apple tart. 

I can help, some of its my mess. Harry told Ron, but Mrs. Weasley cut across 
him. 

No, Harry, dear, Id much rather you helped Arthur much out the chickens, and 
Hermione, Id be ever so grateful if youd change the sheets for Monsieur and Madame 
Delacour; you know theyre arriving at eleven tomorrow morning. 

But as it turned out, there was very little to do for the chickens. Theres no need 
to, er, mention it to Molly, Mr. Weasley told Harry, blocking his access to the coop, but, 
er, Ted Tonks sent me most of what was left of Siriuss bike and, er, Im hiding C thats 
to say, keeping C it in here. Fantastic stuff: Theres an exhaust gaskin, as I believe its 
called, the most magnificent battery, and itll be a great opportunity to find out how 
brakes work. Im going to try and put it all back together again when Mollys not C I 
mean, when Ive got time. 

When they returned to the house, Mrs. Weasley was nowhere to be seen, so Harry 
slipped upstairs to Rons attic bedroom. 


Im doing it, Im doing C ! Oh, its you, said Ron in relief, as Harry entered the 
room. Ron lay back down on the bed, which he had evidently just vacated. The room was 
just as messy as it had been all week; the only chance was that Hermione was now sitting 
in the far corner, her fluffy ginger cat, Crookshanks, at her feet, sorting books, some of 
which Harry recognized as his own, into two enormous piles. 

Hi, Harry, she said, as he sat down on his camp bed. 

And how did you manage to get away? 

Oh, Rons mum forgot that she asked Ginny and me to change the sheets 
yesterday, said Hermione. She threw Numerology and Grammatica onto one pile and 
The Rise and Fall of the Dark Arts onto the other. 

We were just talking about Mad-Eye, Ron told Harry. I reckon he might have 
survived. 

But Bill saw him hit by the Killing Curse, said Harry. 

Yeah, but Bill was under attack too, said Ron. How can he be sure what he 
saw? 

Even if the Killing Curse missed, Mad-Eye still fell about a thousand feet, said 
Hermione, now weight Quidditch Teams of Britain and Ireland in her hand. 

He could have used a Shield Charm C 

Fleur said his wand was blasted out of his hand, said Harry. 

Well, all right, if you want him to be dead, said Ron grumpily, punching his 
pillow into a more comfortable shape. 

Of course we dont want him to be dead! said Hermione, looking shocked. Its 
dreadful that hes dead! But were being realistic! 

For the first time, Harry imagined Mad-Eyes body, broken as Dumbledores had 
been, yet with that one eye still whizzing in its socket. He felt a stab of revulsion mixed 
with a bizarre desire to laugh. 

The Death Eaters probably tidied up after themselves, thats why no ones found 
him, said Ron wisely. 

Yeah, said Harry. Like Barty Crouch, turned into a bone and buried in 
Hagrids front garden. They probably transfigured Moody and stuffed him C 

Dont! squealed Hermione. Startled, Harry looked over just in time to see her 
burst into tears over her copy of Spellmans Syllabary. 

Oh no, said Harry, struggling to get up from the old camp bed. Hermione, I 
wasnt trying to upset C 

But with a great creaking of rusty bedsprings, Ron bounded off the bed and got 
there first. One arm around Hermione, he fished in his jeans pocket and withdrew a 
revolting-looking handkerchief that he had used to clean out the oven earlier. Hastily 
pulling out his wand, he pointed it at the rag and said, Tergeo. 

The wand siphoned off most of the grease. Looking rather pleased with himself, 
Ron handed the slightly smoking handkerchief to Hermione. 

Oh . . . thanks, Ron. . . . Im sorry. . . . She blew her nose and hiccupped. Its 
just so awf-ful, isnt it? R-right after Dumbledore . . . I j-just n-never imagined Mad-Eye 
dying, somehow, he seemed so tough! 

Yeah, I know, said Ron, giving her a squeeze. But you know what hed say to 
us if he was here? 

C-constant vigilance, said Hermione, mopping her eyes. 


Thats right, said Ron, nodding. Hed tell us to learn from what happened to 
him. And what Ive learned is not to trust that cowardly little squit, Mundungus. 

Hermione gave a shaky laugh and leaned forward to pick up two more books. A 
second later, Ron had snatched his arm back from around her shoulders; she had dropped 
The Monster of Monsters on his foot. The book had broken free from its restraining belt 
and snapped viciously at Rons ankle. 

Im sorry, Im sorry! Hermione cried as Harry wrenched the book from Rons 
leg and retied it shit. 

What are you doing with all those books anyway? Ron asked, limping back to 
his bed. 

Just trying to decide which ones to take with us, said Hermione, When were 
looking for the Horcruxes. 

Oh, of course, said Ron, clapping a hand to his forehead. I forgot well be 
hunting down Voldemort in a mobile library. 

Ha ha, said Hermione, looking down at Spellmans Syllabary. I wonder . . . 
will we need to translate runes? Its possible. . . . I think wed better take it, to be safe. 

She dropped the syllabary onto the larger of the two piles and picked up Hogwarts, 
A History. 

Listen, said Harry. 

He had sat up straight. Ron and Hermione looked at him with similar mixtures of 
resignation and defiance. 

I know you said after Dumbledores funeral that you wanted to come with me, 
Harry began. 

Here he goes, Ron said to Hermione, rolling his eyes. 

As we knew he would, he sighed, turning back to the books. You know, I 
think I will take Hogwarts, A History. Even if were not going back there, I dont think 
Id feel right if I didnt have it with C 

Listen! said Harry again. 

No, Harry, you listen, said Hermione. Were coming with you. That was 
decided months ago C years, really. 

But C 

Shut up, Ron advised him. 

C are you sure youve thought this through? Harry persisted. 

Lets see, said Hermione, slamming Travels with Trolls onto the discarded pile 
with a rather fierce look. Ive been packing for days, so were ready to leave at a 
moments notice, which for your information has included doing some pretty difficult 
magic, not to mention smuggling Mad-Eyes whole stock of Polyjuice Potion right under 
Rons mums nose. 

Ive also modified my parents memories so that theyre convinced theyre really 
called Wendell and Monica Wilkins, and that their lifes ambition is to move to Australia, 
which they have now done. Thats to make it more difficult for Voldemort to track them 
down and interrogate them about me C or you, because unfortunately, Ive told them quite 
a bit about you. 

Assuming I survive our hunt for the Horcruxes, Ill find Mum and Dad and lift 
the enchantment. If I dont C well, I think Ive cast a good enough charm to keep them 


safe and happy. Wendell and Monica Wilkins dont know that theyve got a daughter, 
you see. 

Hermiones eyes were swimming with tears again. Ron got back off the bed, put 
his arm around her once more, and frowned at Harry as though reproaching him for lack 
of tact. Harry could not think of anything to say, not least because it was highly unusual 
for Ron to be teaching anyone else tact. 

I C Hermione, Im sorry C I didnt C 

Didnt realize that Ron and I know perfectly well what might happen if we come 
with you? Well, we do. Ron, show Harry what youve done. 

Nah, hes just eaten, said Ron. 

Go on, he needs to know! 

Oh, all right. Harry, come here. 

For the second time Ron withdrew his arm from around Hermione and stumped 
over to the door. 

Cmon. 

Why? Harry asked, following Ron out of the room onto the tiny landing. 

Descendo, muttered Ron, pointing his wand at the low ceiling. A hatch opened 
right over their heads and a ladder slid down to their feet. A horrible, half-sucking, half-
moaning sound came out of the square hole, along with an unpleasant smell like open 
drains. 

Thats your ghoul, isnt it? asked Harry, who had never actually met the 
creature that sometimes disrupted the nightly silence. 

Yeah, it is, said Ron, climbing the ladder. Come and have a look at him. 

Harry followed Ron up the few short steps into the tiny attic space. His head and 
shoulders were in the room before he caught sight of the creature curled up a few feet 
from him, fast asleep in the gloom with its large mouth wide open. 

But it . . . it looks . . . do ghouls normally wear pajamas? 

No, said Ron. Nor have they usually got red hair or that number of pustules. 

Harry contemplated the thing, slightly revolted. It was human in shape and size, 
and was wearing what, now that Harrys eyes became used to the darkness, was clearly 
an old pair of Rons pajamas. He was also sure that ghouls were generally rather slimy 
and bald, rather than distinctly hairy and covered in angry purple blisters. 

Hes me, see? said Ron. 

No, said Harry. I dont. 

Ill explain it back in my room, the smells getting to me, said Ron. They 
climbed back down the ladder, which Ron returned to the ceiling, and rejoined Hermione, 
who was still sorting books. 

Once weve left, the ghouls going to come and live down here in my room, 
said Ron. I think hes really looking forward to it C well, its hard to tell, because all he 
can do is moan and drool C but he nods a lot when you mention it. Anyway, hes going to 
be me with spattergroit. Good, eh? 

Harry merely looked his confusion. 

It is! said Ron, clearly frustrated that Harry had not grasped the brilliance of the 
plan. Look, when we three dont turn up at Hogwarts again, everyones going to think 
Hermione and I must be with you, right? Which means the Death Eaters will go straight 
for our families to see if theyve got information on where you are. 


But hopefully itll look like Ive gone away with Mum and Dad; a lot of Muggle-
borns are talking about going into hiding at the moment, said Hermione. 

We cant hide my whole family, itll look too fishy and they cant all leave their 
jobs, said Ron. So were going to put out the story that Im seriously ill with 
spattergroit, which is why I cant go back to school. If anyone comes calling to 
investigate, Mum or Dad can show them the ghoul in my bed, covered in pustules. 
Spattergroits really contagious, so theyre not going to want to go near him. It wont 
matter that he cant say anything, either, because apparently you cant once the fungus 
has spread to your uvula. 

And your mum and dad are in on this plan? asked Harry. 

Dad is. He helped Fred and George transform the ghoul. Mum . . . well, youve 
seen what shes like. She wont accept were going till were gone. 

There was silence in the room, broken only by gentle thuds as Hermione 
continued to throw books onto one pile or the other. Ron sat watching her, and Harry 
looked from one to the other, unable to say anything. The measure they had taken to 
protect their families made him realize, more than anything else could have done, that 
they really were going to come with him and that they knew exactly how dangerous that 
would be. He wanted to tell them what that meant to him, but he simply could not find 
words important enough. 

Through the silence came the muffled sounds of Mrs. Weasley shouting from four 
floors below. 

Ginnys probably left a speck of dust on a poxy napkin ring, said Ron. I dunno 
why the Delacours have got to come two days before the wedding. 

Fleurs sisters a bridesmaid, she needs to be here for the rehearsal, and shes too 
young to come on her own, said Hermione, as she pored indecisively over Break with a 
Banshee. 

Well, guests arent going to help Mums stress levels, said Ron. 

What we really need to decide, said Hermione, tossing Defensive Magical 
Theory into the bin without a second glance and picking up An Appraisal of Magical 
Education in Europe, is where were going after we leave here. I know you said you 
wanted to go to Godrics Hollow first, Harry, and I understand why, but . . . well . . . 
shouldnt we make the Horcruxes our priority? 

If we knew where any of the Horcruxes were, Id agree with you, said Harry, 
who did not believe that Hermione really understood his desire to return to Godrics 
Hollow. His parents graves were only part of the attraction: He had a strong, though 
inexplicable, feeling that the place held answers for him. Perhaps it was simply because it 
was there that he had survived Voldemorts Killing Curse; now that he was facing the 
challenge of repeating the feat, Harry was drawn to the place where it had happened, 
wanting to understand. 

Dont you think theres a possibility that Voldemorts keeping a watch on 
Godrics Hollow? Hermione asked. He might expect you to go back and visit your 
parents graves once youre free to go wherever you like? 

This had not occurred to Harry. While he struggled to find a counterargument, 
Ron spoke up, evidently following his own train of thought. 

This R.A.B. person, he said. You know, the one who stole the real locket? 

Hermione nodded. 


He said in his note he was going to destroy it, didnt he? 

Harry dragged his rucksack toward him and pulled out the fake Horcrux in which 
R.A.B.s note was still folded. 

I have stolen the real Horcrux and intend to destroy it as soon as I can. Harry 
read out. 

Well, what if he did finish it off? said Ron. 

Or she. Interposed Hermione. 

Whichever, said Ron. itd be one less for us to do! 

Yes, but were still going to have to try and trace the real locket, arent we? said 
Hermione, to find out whether or not its destroyed. 

And once we get hold of it, how do you destroy a Horcrux? asked Ron. 

Well, said Hermione, Ive been researching that. 

How? asked Harry. I didnt think there were any books on Horcruxes in the 
library? 

There werent, said Hermione, who had turned pink. Dumbledore removed 
them all, but he C he didnt destroy them. 
Ron sat up straight, wide-eyed. 

How in the name of Merlins pants have you managed to get your hands on those 
Horcrux books? 

It C it wasnt stealing! said Hermione, looking from Harry to Ron with a kind of 
desperation. They were still library books, even if Dumbledore had taken them off the 
shelves. Anyway, if he really didnt want anyone to get at them, Im sure he would have 
made it much harder to C 

Get to the point! said Ron. 

Well . . . it was easy, said Hermione in a small voice. I just did a Summoning 
Charm. You know C Accio. And C they zoomed out of Dumbledores study window right 
into the girls dormitory. 

But when did you do this? Harry asked, regarding Hermione with a mixture of 
admiration and incredulity. 

Just after his C Dumbledores C funeral, said Hermione in an even smaller voice. 
Right after we agreed wed leave school and go and look for the Horcruxes. When I 
went back upstairs to get my things it C it just occurred to me that the more we knew 
about them, the better it would be . . . and I was alone in there . . . so I tried . . . and it 
worked. They flew straight in through the open window and I C I packed them. 

She swallowed and then said imploringly, I cant believe Dumbledore would 
have been angry, its not as though were going to use the information to make a Horcrux, 
is it? 

Can you hear us complaining? said Ron. Where are these books anyway? 

Hermione rummaged for a moment and then extracted from the pile a large 
volume, bound in faded black leather. She looked a little nauseated and held it as gingerly 
as if it were something recently dead. 

This is the one that gives explicit instructions on how to make a Horcrux. Secrets 
of the Darkest Art C its a horrible book, really awful, full of evil magic. I wonder when 
Dumbledore removed it from the library. . . . if he didnt do it until he was headmaster, I 
bet Voldemort got all the instruction he needed from here. 


Why did he have to ask Slughorn how to make a Horcrux, then, if hed already 
read that? asked Ron. 

He only approached Slughorn to find out what would happen if you split your 
soul into seven, said Harry. Dumbledore was sure Riddle already knew how to make a 
Horcrux by the time he asked Slughorn about them. I think youre right, Hermione, that 
could easily have been where he got the information. 

And the more Ive read about them, said Hermione, the more horrible they 
seem, and the less I can believe that he actually made six. It warns in this book how 
unstable you make the rest of your soul by ripping it, and thats just by making one 
Horcrux! 

Harry remembered what Dumbledore had said about Voldemort moving beyond 
usual evil. 

Isnt there any way of putting yourself back together? Ron asked. 

Yes, said Hermione with a hollow smile, but it would be excruciatingly 
painful. 

Why? How do you do it? asked Harry. 

Remorse, said Hermione. Youve got to really feel what youve done. Theres 
a footnote. Apparently the pain of it can destroy you. I cant see Voldemort attempting it 
somehow, can you? 

No, said Ron, before Harry could answer. So does it say how to destroy 
Horcruxes in that book? 

Yes, said Hermione, now turning the fragile pages as if examining rotting 
entrails, because it warns Dark wizards how strong they have to make the enchantments 
on them. From all that Ive read, what Harry did to Riddles diary was one of the few 
really foolproof ways of destroying a Horcrux. 

What, stabbing it with a basilisk fang? asked Harry. 

Oh well, lucky weve got such a large supply of basilisk fangs, then, said Ron. 
I was wondering what we were going to do with them. 

It doesnt have to be a basilisk fang, said Hermione patiently. It has to be 
something so destructive that the Horcrux cant repair itself. Basilisk venom only has one 
antidote, and its incredibly rare C 

C phoenix tears, said Harry, nodding. 

Exactly, said Hermione. Our problem is that there are very few substances as 
destructive as basilisk venom, and theyre all dangerous to carry around with you. Thats 
a problem were going to have to solve, though, because ripping, smashing, or crushing a 
Horcrux wont do the trick. Youve got to put it beyond magical repair. 

But even if we wreck the thing it lives in, said Ron, why cant the bit of soul in 
it just go and live in something else? 

Because a Horcrux is the complete opposite of a human being. 

Seeing that Harry and Ron looked thoroughly confused, Hermione hurried on. 
Look, if I picked up a sword right now, Ron, and ran you through with it, I wouldnt 
damage your soul at all. 

Which would be a real comfort to me, Im sure, said Ron. Harry laughed. 

It should be, actually! But my point is that whatever happens to your body, your 
soul will survive, untouched, said Hermione. But its the other way round with a 


Horcrux. The fragment of soul inside it depends on its container, its enchanted body, for 
survival. It cant exist without it. 

That diary sort of died when I stabbed it, said Harry, remembering ink pouring 
like blood from the punctured pages, and the screams of the piece of Voldemorts soul as 
it vanished. 

And once the diary was properly destroyed, the bit of soul trapped in it could no 
longer exist. Ginny tried to get rid of the diary before you did, flushing it away, but 
obviously it came back good as new. 

Hang on, said Ron, frowning. The bit of soul in that diary was possessing 
Ginny, wasnt it? How does that work, then? 

While the magical container is still intact, the bit of soul inside it can flit in and 
out of someone if they get too close to the object. I dont mean holding it for too long, its 
nothing to do with touching it, she added before Ron could speak. I mean close 
emotionally. Ginny poured her heart out into that diary, she made herself incredibly 
vulnerable. Youre in trouble if you get too fond of or dependent on the Horcrux. 

I wonder how Dumbledore destroyed the ring? said Harry. Why didnt I ask 
him? I never really . . . 

His voice trailed away: He was thinking of all the things he should have asked 
Dumbledore, and of how, since the headmaster had died, it seemed to Harry that he had 
wasted so many opportunities when Dumbledore had been alive, to find out more . . . to 
find out everything. . . . 

The silence was shattered as the bedroom door flew open with a wall-shaking 
crash. Hermione shrieked and dropped Secrets of the Darkest Art; Crookshanks streaked 
under the bed, hissing indignantly; Ron jumped off the bed, skidded on a discarded 
Chocolate Frog wrapper, and smacked his head on the opposite wall; and Harry 
instinctively dived for his wand before realizing that he was looking up at Mrs. Weasley, 
whose hair was disheveled and whose face was contorted with rage. 

Im so sorry to break up this cozy little gathering, she said, her voice trembling. 
Im sure you all need your rest . . . but there are wedding presents stacked in my room 
that need sorting out and I was under the impression that you had agreed to help. 

Oh yes, said Hermione, looking terrified as she leapt to her feet, sending books 
flying in every direction. we will . . . were sorry . . . 

With an anguished look at Harry and Ron, Hermione hurried out of the room after 
Mrs. Weasley. 

its like being a house-elf, complained Ron in an undertone, still massaging his 
head as he and Harry followed. Except without the job satisfaction. The sooner this 
weddings over, the happier, Ill be. 

Yeah, said Harry, then well have nothing to do except find Horcruxes. . . . 
Itll be like a holiday, wont it? 

Ron started to laugh, but at the sight of the enormous pile of wedding presents 
waiting for them in Mrs. Weasleys room, stopped quite abruptly. 

The Delacours arrived the following morning at eleven o clock. Harry, Ron, 
Hermione and Ginny were feeling quite resentful toward Fleurs family by this time; and 
it was with ill grace that Ron stumped back upstairs to put on matching socks, and Harry 
attempted to flatten his hair. Once they had all been deemed smart enough, they trooped 
out into the sunny backyard to await the visitors. 


Harry had never seen the place looking so tidy. The rusty cauldrons and old 
Wellington boots that usually littered the steps by the back door were gone, replaced by 
two new Flutterby bushes standing either side of the door in large pots; though there was 
no breeze, the leaves waved lazily, giving an attractive rippling effect. The chickens had 
been shut away, the yard had been swept, and the nearby garden had been pruned, 
plucked, and generally spruced up, although Harry, who liked it in its overgrown state, 
thought that it looked rather forlorn without its usual contingent of capering gnomes. 

He had lost track of how many security enchantments had been placed upon the 
Burrow by both the Order and the Ministry; all he knew was that it was no longer 
possible for anybody to travel by magic directly into the place. Mr. Weasley had 
therefore gone to meet the Delacours on top of a nearby hill, where they were to arrive by 
Portkey. The first sound of their approach was an unusually high-pitched laugh, which 
turned out to be coming from Mr. Weasley, who appeared at the gate moments later, 
laden with luggage and leading a beautiful blonde woman in long, leaf green robes, who 
could be Fleurs mother. 

Maman! cried Fleur, rushing forward to embrace her. Papa! 

Monsieur Delacour was nowhere near as attractive as his wife; he was a head 
shorter and extremely plumb, with a little, pointed black beard. However, he looked 
good-natured. Bouncing towards Mrs. Weasley on high-heeled boots, he kissed her twice 
on each cheek, leaving her flustered. 

You ave been so much trouble, he said in a deep voice. Fleur tells us you ave 
been working very ard. 

Oh, its been nothing, nothing! trilled Mrs. Weasley. No trouble at all! 

Ron relieved his feelings by aiming a kick at a gnome who was peering out from 
behind one of the new Flutterby bushes. 

Dear lady! said Monsieur Delacour, still holding Mrs. Weasleys hand between 
his own two plump ones and beaming. We are most honored at the approaching union of 
our two families! Let me present my wife, Apolline. 

Madame Delacour glided forward and stooped to kiss Mrs. Weasley too. 

Enchante, she said. Your usband as been telling us such amusing stories! 

Mr. Weasley gave a maniacal laugh; Mrs. Weasley threw him a look, upon which 
he became immediately silent and assumed an expression appropriate to the sickbed of a 
close friend. 

And, of course, you ave met my leetle daughter, Gabrielle! said Monsieur 
Delacour. Gabrielle was Fleur in miniature; eleven years old, with waist-length hair of 
pure, silvery blonde, she gave Mrs. Weasley a dazzling smile and hugged her, then threw 
Harry a glowing look, batting her eyelashes. Ginny cleared her throat loudly. 

Well, come in, do! said Mrs. Weasley brightly, and she ushered the Delacours 
into the house, with many No, please!s and After you!s and Not at all!s. 

The Delacours, it soon transpired, were helpful, pleasant guests. They were 
pleased with everything and keen to assist with the preparations for the wedding. 
Monsieur Delacour pronounced everything from the seating plan to the bridesmaids 
shoes Charmant! Madame Delacour was most accomplished at household spells and 
had the oven properly cleaned in a trice; Gabrielle followed her elder sister around, trying 
to assist in any way she could and jabbering away in rapid French. 


On the downside, the Burrow was not built to accommodate so many people. Mr. 
and Mrs. Weasley were now sleeping in the sitting room, having shouted down Monsieur 
and Madame Delacours protests and insisted they take their bedroom. Gabrielle was 
sleeping with Fleur in Percys old room, and Bill would be sharing with Charlie, his best 
man, once Charlie arrived from Romania. Opportunities to make plans together became 
virtually nonexistent, and it was in desperation that Harry, Ron and Hermione took to 
volunteering to feed the chickens just to escape the overcrowded house. 

But she still wont leave us alone! snarled Ron, and their second attempt at a 
meeting in the yard was foiled by the appearance of Mrs. Weasley carrying a large basket 
of laundry in her arms. 

Oh, good, youve fed the chickens, she called as she approached them. Wed 
better shut them away again before the men arrive tomorrow . . . to put up the tent for the 
wedding, she explained, pausing to lean against the henhouse. She looked exhausted. 
Millamants Magic Marquees . . . theyre very good. Bills escorting them. . . . Youd 
better stay inside while theyre here, Harry. I must say it does complicate organizing a 
wedding, having all these security spells around the place. 

Im sorry, said Harry humbly. 

Oh, dont be silly, dear! said Mrs. Weasley at once. I didnt mean C well, your 
safetys much more important! Actually, Ive been wanting to ask you how you want to 
celebrate your birthday, Harry. Seventeen, after all, its an important day. . . . 

I dont want a fuss, said Harry quickly, envisaging the additional strain this 
would put on them all. Really, Mrs. Weasley, just a normal dinner would be fine. . . . Its 
the day before the wedding. . . . 

Oh, well, if youre sure, dear. Ill invite Remus and Tonks, shall I? And how 
about Hagrid? 

Thatd be great, said Harry. But please, dont go to loads of trouble. 

Not at all, not at all . . . Its no trouble. . . . 

She looked at him, a long, searching look, then smiled a little sadly, straightened 
up, and walked away. Harry watched as she waved her wand near the washing line, and 
the damp clothes rose into the air to hang themselves up, and suddenly he felt a great 
wave of remorse for the inconvenience and the pain he was giving her. 

 

 

Chapter Seven 

 The Will of Albus Dumbledore 

 

He was walking along a mountain road in the cool blue light of dawn. Far below, 
swathed in mist, was the shadow of a small town. Was the man he sought down there, the 
man he needed so badly he could think of little else, the man who held the answer, the 
answer to his problem...? 

"Oi, wake up." 

Harry opened his eyes. He was lying again on the camp bed in Ron's dingy attic 
room. The sun had not yet risen and the room was still shadowy. Pigwidgeon was asleep 
with his head under his tiny wing. The scar on Harry's forehead was prickling. 


"You were muttering in your sleep." 

"Was I?" 

"Yeah. 'Gregorovitch.' You kept saying 'Gregorovitch.'" 

Harry was not wearing his glasses; Ron's face appeared slightly blurred. 

"Who's Gregorovitch?" 

 

"I dunno, do I?" You were the one saying it." 

Harry rubbed his forehead, thinking. He had a vague idea he had heard the name 
before, but he could not think where. 

"I think Voldemort's looking for him." 

"Poor bloke," said Ron fervently. 

Harry sat up, still rubbing his scar, now wide awake. He tried to remember 
exactly what he had seen in the dream, but all that came back was a mountainous horizon 
and the outline of the little village cradled in a deep valley. 

"I think he's abroad." 

"Who, Gregorovitch?" 

"Voldemort. I think he's somewhere abroad, looking for Gregorovitch. It didn't 
look like anywhere in Britain." 

"You reckon you were seeing into his mind again?" 

Ron sounded worried. 

"Do me a favor and don't tell Hermione," said Harry. "Although how she expects 
me to stop seeing stuff in my sleep..." 

He gazed up at little Pigwidgeon's cage, thinking...Why was the name 
"Gregorovitch" familiar? 

"I think," he said slowly, "he's got something to do with Quidditch. There's some 
connection, but I can't--I can't think what it is." 

"Quidditch?" said Ron. "Sure you're not thinking of Gorgovitch?" 

"Who?" 

"Dragomir Gorgovitch, Chaser, transferred to the Chudley Cannons for a record 
fee two years ago. Record holder for most Quaffle drops in a season." 

"No," said Harry. "I'm definitely not thinking of Gorgovitch." 

 

"I try not to either," said Ron. "Well, happy birthday anyway." 

"Wow -- that's right, I forgot! I'm seventeen!" 

Harry seized the wand lying beside his camp bed, pointed it at the cluttered desk 
where he had left his glasses, and said, "Accio Glasses!" Although they were only around 
a foot away, there was something immensely satisfying about seeing them zoom toward 
him, at least until they poked him in the eye. 

"Slick," snorted Ron. 

Reveling in the removal of his Trace, Harry sent Ron's possessions flying around 
the room, causing Pigwidgeon to wake up and flutter excitedly around his cage. Harry 
also tried tying the laces of his trainers by magic (the resultant knot took several minutes 
to untie by hand) and, purely for the pleasure of it, turned the orange robes on Ron's 
Chudley Cannons posters bright blue. 


"I'd do your fly by hand, though," Ron advised Harry, sniggering when Harry 
immediately checked it. "Here's your present. Unwrap it up here, it's not for my mother's 
eyes." 

"A book?" said Harry as he took the rectangular parcel. "Bit of a departure from 
tradition, isn't it?" 

"This isn't your average book," said Ron. "It'd pure gold: Twelve Fail-Safe Ways 
to Charm Witches. Explains everything you need to know about girls. If only I'd had this 
last year I'd have known exactly how to get rid of Lavender and I would've known how to 
get going with... Well, Fred and George gave me a copy, and I've learned a lot. You'd be 
surprised, it's not all about wandwork, either." 

When they arrived in the kitchen they found a pile of presents waiting on the table. 
Bill and Monsieur Delacour were finishing their breakfasts, while Mrs. Weasley stood 
chatting to them over the frying pan. 

 

"Arthur told me to wish you a happy seventeenth, Harry," said Mrs. Weasley, 
beaming at him. "He had to leave early for work, but he'll be back for dinner. That's our 
present on top." 

Harry sat down, took the square parcel she had indicated, and unwrapped it. 
Inside was a watch very like the one Mr. and Mrs. Weasley had given Ron for his 
seventeenth; it was gold, with stars circling around the race instead of hands. 

"It's traditional to give a wizard a watch when he comes of age," said Mrs. 
Weasley, watching him anxiously from beside the cooker. "I'm afraid that one isn't new 
like Ron's, it was actually my brother Fabian's and he wasn't terribly careful with his 
possessions, it's a bit dented on the back, but--" 

The rest of her speech was lost; Harry had got up and hugged her. He tried to put 
a lot of unsaid things into the hug and perhaps she understood them, because she patted 
his cheek clumsily when he released her, then waved her wand in a slightly random way, 
causing half a pack of bacon to flop out of the frying pan onto the floor. 

"Happy birthday, Harry!" said Hermione, hurrying into the kitchen and adding her 
own present to the top of the pile. "It's not much, but I hope you like it. What did you get 
him?" she added to Ron, who seemed not to hear her. 

"Come on, then, open Hermione's!" said Ron. 

She had bought him a new Sneakoscope. The other packages contained an 
enchanted razor from Bill and Fleur ("Ah yes, zis will give you ze smoothest shave you 
will ever 'ave," Monsieur Delacour assured him, "but you must tell it clearly what you 
want...ozzerwise you might find you 'ave a leetle less hair zan you would like..."), 
chocolates from the Delacours, and an enormous box of the latest Weasleys' Wizard 
Wheezes merchandise from Fred and George. 

 

Harry, Ron, and Hermione did not linger at the table, as the arrival of Madame 
Delacour, Fleur, and Gabrielle made the kitchen uncomfortably crowded. 

"I'll pack these for you," Hermione said brightly, taking Harry's presents out of his 
arms as the three of them headed back upstairs. "I'm nearly done, I'm just waiting for the 
rest of your underpants to come out of the wash, Ron--" 

Ron's splutter was interrupted by the opening of a door on the first-floor landing. 

"Harry, will you come in here a moment?" 


It was Ginny. Ron came to an abrupt halt, but Hermione took him by the elbow 
and tugged him on up the stairs. Feeling nervous, Harry followed Ginny into her room. 

He had never been inside it before. It was small, but bright. There was a large 
poster of the Wizarding band the Weird Sisters on one wall, and a picture of Gwenog 
Jones, Captain of the all-witch Quidditch team the Holyhead Harpies, on the other. A 
desk stood facing the open window, which looked out over the orchard where he and 
Ginny had once played a two-a-side Quidditch with Ron and Hermione, and which now 
housed a large, pearly white marquee. The golden flag on top was level with Ginny's 
window. 

Ginny looked up into Harry's face, took a deep breath, and said, "Happy 
seventeenth." 

"Yeah...thanks." 

She was looking at him steadily; he however, found it difficult to look back at her; 
it was like gazing into a brilliant light. 

"Nice view," he said feebly, pointing toward with window. 

She ignored this. He could not blame her. 

"I couldn't think what to get you," she said. 

 

"You didn't have to get me anything." 

She disregarded this too. 

"I didn't know what would be useful. Nothing too big, because you wouldn't be 
able to take it with you." 

He chanced a glance at her. She was not tearful; that was one of the many 
wonderful things about Ginny, she was rarely weepy. He had sometimes thought that 
having six brothers must have toughened her up. 

She took a step closer to him. 

"So then I thought, I'd like you to have something to remember me by, you know, 
if you meet some veela when you're off doing whatever you're doing." 

"I think dating opportunities are going to be pretty thin on the ground, to be 
honest." 

"There's the silver lining I've been looking for," she whispered, and then she was 
kissing him as she had never kissed him before, and Harry was kissing her back, and it 
was blissful oblivion better than firewhisky; she was the only real thing in the world, 
Ginny, the feel of her, one hand at her back and one in her long, sweet-smelling hair-- 

The door banged open behind them and they jumped apart. 

"Oh," said Ron pointedly. "Sorry." 

"Ron!" Hermione was just behind him, slight out of breath. There was a strained 
silence, then Ginny had said in a flat little voice, 

"Well, happy birthday anyway, Harry." 

Ron's ears were scarlet; Hermione looked nervous. Harry wanted to slam the door 
in their faces, but it felt as though a cold draft had entered the room when the door 
opened, and his shining moment had popped like a soap bubble. All the reasons for 
ending his relationship with Ginny, for staying well away from her, seemed to have slunk 
inside the room with Ron, and all happy forgetfulness was gone. 


He looked at Ginny, wanting to say something, though he hardly knew what, but 
she had turned her back on him. He thought that she might have succumbed, for once, to 
tears. He could not do anything to comfort her in front of Ron. 

"I'll see you later," he said, and followed the other two out of the bedroom. 

Ron marched downstairs, though the still-crowded kitchen and into the yard, and 
Harry kept pace with him all the way, Hermione trotting along behind them looking 
scared. 

Once he reached the seclusion of the freshly mown lawn, Ron rounded on Harry. 

"You ditched her. What are you doing now, messing her around?" 

"I'm not messing her around," said Harry, as Hermione caught up with them. 

"Ron--" 

But Ron held up a hand to silence her. 

"She was really cut up when you ended it--" 

"So was I. You know why I stopped it, and it wasn't because I wanted to." 

"Yeah, but you go snogging her now and she's just going to get her hopes up 
again--" 

"She's not an idiot, she knows it can't happen, she's not expecting us to--to end up 
married, or--" 

As he said it, a vivid picture formed in Harry's mind of Ginny in a white dress, 
marrying a tall, faceless, and unpleasant stranger. 

 

In one spiraling moment it seemed to hit him: Her future was free and 
unencumbered, whereas his...he could see nothing but Voldemort ahead. 

"If you keep groping her every chance you get--" 

"It won't happen again," said Harry harshly. The day was cloudless, but he felt as 
though the sun had gone in. "Okay?" 

Ron looked half resentful, half sheepish; he rocked backward and forward on his 
feet for a moment, then said, "Right then, well, that's...yeah." 

Ginny did not seek another one-to-one meeting with Harry for the rest of the day, 
nor by any look or gesture did she show that they had shared more than polite 
conversation in her room. Nevertheless, Charlie's arrival came as a relief to Harry. It 
provided a distraction, watching Mrs. Weasley force Charlie into a chair, raise her wand 
threateningly, and announce that he was about to get a proper haircut. 

As Harry's birthday dinner would have stretched the Burrow's kitchen to breaking 
point even before the arrival of Charlie, Lupin, Tonks, and Hagrid, several tables were 
placed end to end in the garden. Fred and George bewitched a number of purple lanterns 
all emblazoned with a large number 17, to hang in midair over the guests. Thanks to Mrs. 
Weasley's ministrations, George's wound was neat and clean, but Harry was not yet used 
to the dark hole in the side of his head, despite the twins' many jokes about it. 

Hermione made purple and gold streamers erupt from the end of her wand and 
drape themselves artistically over the trees and bushes. 

"Nice," said Ron, as with one final flourish of her wand, Hermione 

 

turned the leaves on the crabapple tree to gold. "You've really got an eye for that sort of 
thing." 


"Thank you, Ron!" said Hermione, looking both pleased and a little confused. 
Harry turned away, smiling to himself. He had a funny notion that he would find a 
chapter on compliments when he found time to peruse his copy of Twelve Fail-Safe 
Ways to Charm Witches; he caught Ginny's eye and grinned at her before remembering 
his promise to Ron and hurriedly striking up a conversation with Monsieur Delacour. 

"Out of the way, out of the way!" sang Mrs. Weasley, coming through the gate 
with what appeared to be a giant, beach-ball-sized Snitch floating in front of her. Seconds 
later Harry realized that it was his birthday cake, which Mrs. Weasley was suspending 
with her wand, rather than risk carrying it over the uneven ground. When the cake had 
finally landed in the middle of the table, Harry said, 

"That looks amazing, Mrs. Weasley." 

"Oh, it's nothing, dear," she said fondly. Over her shoulder, Ron gave Harry the 
thumbs-up and mouthed, Good one. 

By seven o'clock all the guests had arrived, led into the house by Fred and George, 
who had waited for them at the end of the lane. Hagrid had honored the occasion by 
wearing his best, and horrible, hairy brown suit. Although Lupin smiled as he shook 
Harry's hand, Harry thought he looked rather unhappy. It was all very odd; Tonks, beside 
him, looked simply radiant. 

"Happy birthday, Harry," she said, hugging him tightly. 

"Seventeen, eh!" said Hagrid as he accepted a bucket-sized glass of wine from 
Fred. "Six years ter the day since we met, Harry, d'yeh remember it?" 

 

"Vaguely," said Harry, grinning up at him. "Didn't you smash down the front door, 
give Dudley a pig's tail, and tell me I was a wizard?" 

"I forge' the details," Hagrid chortled. "All righ', Ron, Hermione?" 

"We're fine," said Hermione. "How are you?" 

"Ar, not bad. Bin busy, we got some newborn unicorns. I'll show yeh when yeh 
get back--" Harry avoided Ron's and Hermione's gazes as Hagrid rummaged in his pocket. 
"Here. Harry -- couldn't think what ter get teh, but then I remembered this." He pulled out 
a small, slightly furry drawstring pouch with a long string, evidently intended to be worn 
around the neck. "Mokeskin. Hide anythin' in there an' no one but the owner can get it out. 
They're rare, them." 

"Hagrid, thanks!" 

"'S'nothin'," said Hagrid with a wave of a dustbin-lid-sized hand. "An' there's 
Charlie! Always liked him -- hey! Charlie!" 

Charlie approached, running his hand slightly ruefully over his new, brutally short 
haircut. He was shorter than Ron, thickset, with a number of burns and scratches up his 
muscley arms. 

"Hi, Hagrid, how's it going?" 

"Bin meanin' ter write fer ages. How's Norbert doin'?" 

"Norbert?" Charlie laughed. "The Norwegian Ridgeback? We call her Norberta 
now." 

"Wha -- Norbert's a girl?" 

"Oh yeah," said Charlie. 

"How can you tell?" asked Hermione. 


"They're a lot more vicious," said Charlie. He looked over his shoulder and 
dropped his voice. "Wish Dad would hurry up and get here. Mum's getting edgy." 

 

They all looked over at Mrs. Weasley. She was trying to talk to Madame Delacour 
while glancing repeatedly at the gate. 

"I think we'd better start without Arthur," she called to the garden at large after a 
moment or two. "He must have been held up at -- oh!" 

They all saw it at the same time: a streak of light that came flying across the yard 
and onto the table, where it resolved itself into a bright silver weasel, which stood on its 
hind legs and spoke with Mr. Weasley's voice. 

"Minister of Magic coming with me." 

The Patronus dissolved into thin air, leaving Fleur's family peering in 
astonishment at the place where it had vanished. 

"We shouldn't be here," said Lupin at once. "Harry -- I'm sorry -- I'll explain some 
other time--" 

He seized Tonkss wrist and pulled her away; they reached the fence, climbed 
over it, and vanished from sight. Mrs. Weasley looked bewildered. 

"The Minister -- but why--? I don't understand--" 

But there was no time to discuss the matter; a second later, Mr. Weasley had 
appeared out of thin air at the gate, accompanied by Rufus Scrimgeour, instantly 
recognizable by his mane of grizzled hair. 

The two newcomers marched across the yard toward the garden and the lantern-lit 
table, where everybody sat in silence, watching them draw closer. As Scrimgeour came 
within range of the lantern light. Harry saw that he looked much older than the last time 
that had met, scraggy and grim. 

"Sorry to intrude," said Scrimgeour, as he limped to a halt before the table. 
"Especially as I can see that I am gate-crashing a party." 

 

His eyes lingered for a moment on the giant Snitch cake. 

"Many happy returns." 

"Thanks," said Harry. 

"I require a private word with you," Scrimgeour went on. "Also with Mr. Ronald 
Weasley and Miss Hermione Granger." 

"Us?" said Ron, sounding surprised. "Why us?" 

"I shall tell you that when we are somewhere more private," said Scrimgeour. "Is 
there such a place?' he demanded of Mr. Weasley. 

"Yes, of course," said Mr. Weasley, who looked nervous. "The, er, sitting room, 
why don't you use that?" 

"You can lead the way," Scrimgeour said to Ron. "There will be no need for you 
to accompany us, Arthur." 

Harry saw Mr. Weasley exchange a worried look with Mrs. Weasley as he, Ron, 
and Hermione stood up. As they led the way back to the house in silence, Harry knew 
that the other two were thinking the same as he was; Scrimgeour must, somehow, had 
learned that the three of them were planning to drop out of Hogwarts. 

Scrimgeour did not speak as they all passed through the messed kitchen and into 
the Burrow's sitting room. Although the garden had been full of soft golden evening light, 


it was already dark in here; Harry flicked his wand at the oil lamps as he entered and they 
illuminated the shabby but cozy room. Scrimgeour sat himself in the sagging armchair 
that Mr. Weasley normally occupied, leaving Harry, Ron, and Hermione to squeeze side 
by side onto the sofa. Once they had done so, Scrimgeour spoke. 

"I have some questions for the three of you, and I think it will be best if we do it 
individually. If you two" -- he pointed at Harry and Hermione -- "can wait upstairs, I will 
start with Ronald." 

 

"We're not going anywhere," said Harry, while Hermione nodded vigorously. 
"You can speak to us together, or not at all." 

Scrimgeour gave Harry a cold, appraising look. Harry had the impression that the 
Minister was wondering whether it was worthwhile opening hostilities this early. 

"Very well then, together," he said, shrugging. He cleared his throat. "I am here, 
as I'm sure you know, because of Albus Dumbledore's will." 

Harry, Ron, and Hermione looked at one another. 

"A surprise, apparently! You were not aware then that Dumbledore had left you 
anything?" 

"A-all of us?" said Ron, "Me and Hermione too?" 

"Yes, all of --" 

But Harry interrupted. 

"Dumbledore died over a month ago. Why has it taken this long to give us what 
he left us?" 

"Isn't it obvious?" said Hermione, before Scrimgeour could answer. "They wanted 
to examine whatever he's left us. You had no right to do that!" she said, and her voice 
trembled slightly. 

"I had every right," said Scrimgeour dismissively. "The Decree for Justifiable 
Confiscation gives the Ministry the power the confiscate the contents of a will--" 

"That law was created to stop wizards passing on Dark artifacts," said Hermione, 
"and the Ministry is supposed to have powerful evidence that the deceased's possessions 
are illegal before seizing them! Are you telling me that you thought Dumbledore was 
trying to pass us something cursed?" 

"Are you planning to follow a career in Magical Law, Miss Granger?" asked 
Scrimgeour. 

"No, I'm not," retorted Hermione. "I'm hoping to do some good in the world!" 

Ron laughed. Scrimgeour's eyes flickered toward him and away again as Harry 
spoke. 

"So why have you decided to let us have our things now? Can't think of a pretext 
to keep them?" 

"No, it'll be because thirty-one days are up," said Hermione at once. "They can't 
keep the objects longer than that unless they can prove they're dangerous. Right?" 

"Would you say you were close to Dumbledore, Ronald?" asked Scrimgeour, 
ignoring Hermione. Ron looked startled. 

"Me? Not -- not really... It was always Harry who..." 

Ron looked around at Harry and Hermione, to see Hermione giving him a stop-
talking-now! sort of look, but the damage was done; Scrimgeour looked as though he had 


heard exactly what he had expected, and wanted, to hear. He swooped like a bird of prey 
upon Ron's answer. 

"If you were not very close to Dumbledore, how do you account for the fact that 
he remembered you in his will? He made exceptionally few personal bequests. The vast 
majority of his possessions -- his private library, his magical instruments, and other 
personal effects -- were left to Hogwarts. Why do you think you were singled out?" 

"I...dunno," said Ron. "I...when I say we weren't close...I mean, I think he liked 
me..." 

"You're being modest, Ron," said Hermione. "Dumbledore was very fond of you." 

This was stretching the truth to breaking point; as far as Harry knew, Ron and 
Dumbledore had never been alone together, and direct contact between them had been 
negligible. However, Scrimgeour did not seem to be listening. He put his hand inside his 
cloak and drew out a drawstring pouch much larger than the one Hagrid had given Harry. 
From it, he removed a scroll of parchment which he unrolled and read aloud. 

"'The Last Will and Testament of Albus Percival Wulfric Brian Dumbledore'... 
Yes, here we are... 'To Ronald Bilius Weasley, I leave my Deluminator, in the hope that 
he will remember me when he uses it.'" 

Scrimgeour took from the bag an object that Harry had seen before: It looked 
something like a silver cigarette lighter, but it had, he knew, the power to suck all light 
from a place, and restore it, with a simple click. Scrimgeour leaned forward and passed 
the Deluminator to Ron, who took it and turned it over in the fingers looking stunned. 

"That is a valuable object," said Scrimgeour, watching Ron. "It may even be 
unique. Certainly it is of Dumbledore's own design. Why would he have left you and item 
so rare?" 

Ron shook his head, looking bewildered. 

"Dumbledore must have taught thousands of students," Scrimgeour persevered. 
"Yet the only ones he remembered in his will are you three. Why is that? To what use did 
he think you would put to the Deluminator, Mr. Weasley?" 

"Put out lights, I s'pose," mumbled Ron. "What else could I do with it?" 

Evidently Scrimgeour had no suggestions. After squinting at Ron for a moment or 
tow, he turned back to Dumbledore's will. 

"'To Miss Hermione Jean Granger, I leave my copy of The Tales of Beedle the 
Bard, in the hope that she will find it entertaining and instructive.'" 

Scrimgeour now pulled out of the bag a small book that looked as ancient as the 
copy of Secrets of the Darkest Art upstairs. Its binding was stained and peeling in places. 
Hermione took it from Scrimgeour without a word. She held the book in her lap and 
gazed at it. Harry saw that the title was in runes; he had never learned to read them. As he 
looked, a tear splashed onto the embossed symbols. 

"Why do you think Dumbledore left you that book, Miss Granger?" asked 
Scrimgeour. 

"He... he knew I liked books," said Hermione in a thick voice, mopping her eyes 
with her sleeve. 

"But why that particular book?" 

"I don't know. He must have thought I'd enjoy it." 

"Did you ever discuss codes, or any means of passing secret messages, with 
Dumbledore?" 


"No, I didn't," said Hermione, still wiping her eyes on her sleeve. "And if the 
Ministry hasn't found any hidden codes in this book in thirty-one days, I doubt that I 
will." 

She suppressed a sob. They were wedged together so tightly that Ron had 
difficulty extracting his arm to put it around Hermione's shoulders. Scrimgeour turned 
back to the will. 

"'To Harry James Potter,'" he read, and Harry's insides contracted with a sudden 
excitement, "'I leave the Snitch he caught in his first Quidditch match at Hogwarts, as a 
reminder of the rewards of perseverance and skill.'" 

As Scrimgeour pulled out the tiny, walnut-sized golden ball, its silver wings 
fluttered rather feebly, and Harry could not help feeling a definite sense of anticlimax. 

"Why did Dumbledore leave you this Snitch?" asked Scrimgeour. 

"No idea," said Harry. "For the reasons you just read out, I suppose... to remind 
me what you can get if you... persevere and whatever it was." 

"You think this a mere symbolic keepsake, then?" 

"I suppose so," said Harry. "What else could it be?" 

"I'm asking the questions," said Scrimgeour, shifting his chair a little closer to the 
sofa. Dusk was really falling outside now; the marquee beyond the windows towered 
ghostly white over the hedge. 

"I notice that your birthday cake is in the shape of a Snitch," Scrimgeour said to 
Harry. "Why is that?" 

Hermione laughed derisively. 

"Oh, it can't be a reference to the fact Harry's a great Seeker, that's way too 
obvious," she said. "There must be a secret message from Dumbledore hidden in the 
icing!" 

"I don't think there's anything hidden in the icing," said Scrimgeour, "but a Snitch 
would be a very good hiding place for a small object. You know why, I'm sure?" 

Harry shrugged, Hermione, however, answered: Harry thought that answering 
questions correctly was such a deeply ingrained habit she could not suppress the urge. 

"Because Snitches have flesh memories," she said. 

"What?" said Harry and Ron together; both considered Hermione's Quidditch 
knowledge negligible. 

"Correct," said Scrimgeour. "A Snitch is not touched by bare skin before it is 
released, not even by the maker, who wears gloves. It carries an enchantment by which it 
can identify the first human to lay hands upon it, in case of a disputed capture. This 
Snitch" -- he held up the tiny golden ball -- "will remember your touch, Potter. 

It occurs to me that Dumbledore, who had prodigious magical skill, whatever his 
other faults, might have enchanted this Snitch so that it will open only for you." 

Harry's heart was beating rather fast. He was sure that Scrimgeour was right. How 
could he avoid taking the Snitch with his bare hand in front of the Minister? 

"You don't say anything," said Scrimgeour. "Perhaps you already know what the 
Snitch contains?" 

"No," said Harry, still wondering how he could appear to touch the Snitch without 
really doing so. If only he knew Legilimency, really knew it, and could read Hermione's 
mind; he could practically hear her brain whizzing beside him. 

"Take it," said Scrimgeour quietly. 


Harry met the Minister's yellow eyes and knew he had no option but to obey. He 
held out his hand, and Scrimgeour leaned forward again and place the Snitch, slowly and 
deliberately, into Harry's palm. 

Nothing happened. As Harry's fingers closed around the Snitch, its tired wings 
fluttered and were still. Scrimgeour, Ron, and Hermione continued to gaze avidly at the 
now partially concealed ball, as if still hoping it might transform in some way. 

"That was dramatic," said Harry coolly. Both Ron and Hermione laughed. 

"That's all, then, is it?" asked Hermione, making to raise herself off the sofa. 

"Not quite," said Scrimgeour, who looked bad tempered now. "Dumbledore left 
you a second bequest, Potter." 

"What is it?" asked Harry, excitement rekindling. 

Scrimgeour did not bother to read from the will this time. 

"The sword of Godric Gryffindor," he said. Hermione and Ron both stiffened. 
Harry looked around for a sign of the ruby-encrusted hilt, but Scrimgeour did not pull the 
sword from the leather pouch, which in any case looked much too small to contain it. 

"So where is it?" Harry asked suspiciously. 

"Unfortunately," said Scrimgeour, "that sword was not Dumbledore's to give 
away. The sword of Godric Gryffindor is an important historical artifact, and as such, 
belongs--" 

"It belongs to Harry!" said Hermione hotly. "It chose him, he was the one who 
found it, it came to him out of the Sorting Hat--" 

"According to reliable historical sources, the sword may present itself to any 
worthy Gryffindor," said Scrimgeour. "That does not make it the exclusive property of 
Mr. Potter, whatever Dumbledore may have decided." Scrimgeour scratched his badly 
shaven cheek, scrutinizing Harry. "Why do you think--?" 

"--Dumbledore wanted to give me the sword?" said Harry, struggling to keep his 
temper. "Maybe he thought it would look nice on my wall." 

"This is not a joke, Potter!" growled Scrimgeour. "Was it because Dumbledore 
believed that only the sword of Godric Gryffindor could defeat the Heir of Slytherin? Did 
he wish to give you that sword, Potter, because he believed, as do many, that you are the 
one destined to destroy He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named?" 

"Interesting theory," said Harry. "Has anyone ever tried sticking a sword in 
Voldemort? Maybe the Ministry should put some people onto that, instead of wasting 
their time stripping down Deluminators or covering up breakouts from Azkaban. So this 
is what you've been doing, Minister, shut up in your office, trying to break open a Snitch? 
People are dying C I was nearly one of them C Voldemort chased me across three 
countries, he killed Mad-Eye Moody, but there's no word about any of that from the 
Ministry, has there? And you still expect us to cooperate with you!" 

"You go too far!" shouted Scrimgeour, standing up: Harry jumped to his feet too. 
Scrimgeour limped toward Harry and jabbed him hard in the chest with the point of his 
wand; It singed a hole in Harry's T-shirt like a lit cigarette. 

"Oi!" said Ron, jumping up and raising his own wand, but Harry said, 

"No! D'you want to give him an excuse to arrest us?" 

"Remembered you're not at school, have you?" said Scrimgeour breathing hard 
into Harry's face. "Remembered that I am not Dumbledore, who forgave your insolence 


and insubordination? You may wear that scar like a crown, Potter, but it is not up to a 
seventeen-year-old boy to tell me how to do my job! It's time you learned some respect!" 

"It's time you earned it." said Harry. 

The floor trembled; there was a sound of running footsteps, then the door to the 
sitting room burst open and Mr. and Mrs. Weasley ran in. 

"We --- we thought we heard --" began Mr. Weasley, looking thoroughly alarmed 
at the sight of Harry and the Minister virtually nose to nose. 

"raised voices," panted Mrs. Weasley. 

Scrimgeour took a couple of steps back from Harry, glancing at the hole he had 
made in Harry's T-shirt. He seemed to regret his loss of temper. 

"It C it was nothing," he growled. "I  regret your attitude," he said, looking 
Harry full in the face once more. "You seem to think that the Ministry does not desire 
what you C what Dumbledore C desired. We ought to work together." 

"I don't like your methods, Minister," said Harry. "Remember?" 

For the second time, he raised his right fist and displayed to Scrimgeour the scar 
that still showed white on the back of it, spelling I must not tell lies . Scrimgeour's 
expression hardened. He turned away without another word and limped from the room. 
Mrs. Weasley hurried after him; Harry heard her stop at the back door. After a minute or 
so she called, "He's gone!" 

What did he want?" Mr. Weasley asked, looking around at Harry, Ron, and 
Hermione as Mrs. Weasley came hurrying back to them. 

"To give us what Dumbledore left us," said Harry. "They've only just released the 
content of his will." 

Outside in the garden, over the dinner tables, the three objects Scrimgeour had 
given them were passed from hand to hand. Everyone exclaimed over the Deluminator 
and The Tales of Beedle the Bard and lamented the fact that Scrimgeour had refused to 
pass on the sword, but none of them could offer any suggestion as to why Dumbledore 
would have left Harry an old Snitch. As Mr. Weasley examined the Deluminator for the 
third of fourth time, Mrs. Weasley said tentatively, "Harry, dear, everyone's awfully 
hungry we didn't like to start without you Shall I serve dinner now?" 

They all ate rather hurriedly and then after a hasty chorus of "Happy Birthday" 
and much gulping of cake, the party broke up. Hagrid, who was invited to the wedding 
the following day, but was far too bulky to sleep in the overstretched Burrow, left to set 
up a tent for himself in a neighboring field. 

"Meet us upstairs," Harry whispered to Hermione, while they helped Mrs. 
Weasley restore the garden to its normal state. "After everyone's gone to bed." 

Up in the attic room, Ron examined his Deluminator, and Harry filled Hagrid's 
mokeskin purse, not with gold, but with those items he most prized, apparently worthless 
though some of them were the Marauder's Map, the shard of Sirius's enchanted mirror, 
and R.A.B.'s locket. He pulled the string tight and slipped the purse around his neck, then 
sat holding the old Snitch and watching its wings flutter feebly. At last, Hermione tapped 
on the door and tiptoed inside. 

"Muffiato," she whispered, waving her wand in the direction of the stairs. 

"Thought you didn't approve of that spell?" said Ron. 

"Times change," said Hermione. "Now, show us that Deluminator." 


Ron obliged at once. Holding I up in front of him, he clicked it. The solitary lamp 
they had lit went out at once. 

"The thing is," whispered Hermione through the dark, "we could have achieved 
that with Peruvian Instant Darkness Powder." 

There was a small click, and the ball of light from the lamp flew back to the 
ceiling and illuminated them all once more. 

"Still, it's cool," said Ron, a little defensively. "And from what they said, 
Dumbledore invented it himself!" 

"I know but, surely he wouldn't have singled you out in his will just to help us 
turn out the lights!" 

"D'you think he knew the Ministry would confiscate his will and examine 
everything he'd left us?" asked Harry. 

"Definitely," said Hermione. "He couldn't tell us in the will why he was leaving 
us these things, but that will doesn't explain" 

" why he couldn't have given us a hint when he was alive?" asked Ron. 

"Well, exactly," said Hermione, now flicking through The Tales of Beedle the 
Bard. "If these things are important enough to pass on right under the nose of the 
Ministry, you'd think he'd have left us know why unless he thought it was obvious?" 

"Thought wrong, then, didn't he?" said Ron. "I always said he was mental. 
Brilliant and everything, but cracked. Leaving Harry an old Snitch C what the hell was 
that about?" 

"I've no idea," said Hermione. "When Scrimgeour made you take it, Harry, I was 
so sure that something was going to happen!" 

"Yeah, well," said Harry, his pulse quickened as he raised the Snitch in his fingers. 
"I wasn't going to try too hard in front of Scrimgeour was I?" 

"What do you mean?" asked Hermione. 

"The Snitch I caught in my first ever Quidditch match?" said Harry. "Don't you 
remember?" 

Hermione looked simply bemused. Ron, however, gasped, pointing frantically 
from Harry to the Snitch and back again until he found his voice. 

"That was the one you nearly swallowed!" 

"Exactly," said Harry, and with his heart beating fast, he pressed his mouth to the 
Snitch. 

It did not open. Frustration and bitter disappointment welled up inside him: He 
lowered the golden sphere, but then Hermione cried out. 

"Writing! There's writing on it, quick, look!" 
He nearly dropped the Snitch in surprise and excitement. Hermione was quite right. 
Engraved upon the smooth golden surface, where seconds before there had been nothing, 
were five words written in the thin, slanted handwriting that Harry recognized as 
Dumbledore's 

I open at the close. 

He had barely read them when the words vanished again. 

"I open at the close." What's that supposed to mean?" 

Hermione and Ron shook their heads, looking blank. 

"I open at the close at the close I open at the close" 


But no matter how often they repeated the words, with many different inflections, 
they were unable to wring any more meaning from them. 

"And the sword," said Ron finally, when they had at last abandoned their attempts 
to divine meaning in the Snitch's inscription. 

"Why did he want Harry to have the sword?" 

"And why couldn't he just have told me?" Harry said quietly. "I was there, it was 
right there on the wall of his office during all our talks last year! If he wanted me to have 
it, why didn't he just give it to me then?" 

He felt as thought he were sitting in an examination with a question he ought to 
have been able to answer in front of him, his brain slow and unresponsive. Was there 
something he had missed in the long talks with Dumbledore last year? Ought he to know 
what it all meant? Had Dumbledore expected him to understand? 

"And as for this book." Said Hermione, "The Tales of Beedle the Bard  I've 
never even heard of them!" 

"You've never heard of The Tales of Beedle the Bard?" said Ron incredulously. 
"You're kidding, right?" 

"No, I'm not," said Hermione in surprise. "Do you know them then?" 

"Well, of course I do!" 

Harry looked up, diverted. The circumstance of Ron having read a book that 
Hermione had not was unprecedented. Ron, however, looked bemused by their surprise. 

"Oh come on! All the old kids' stories are supposed to be Beedle's aren't they? 
'The Fountain of Fair Fortune'  'The Wizard and the Hopping Pot' 'Babbitty Rabbitty 
and her Cackling Stump'" 

"Excuse me?" said Hermione giggling. "What was the last one?" 

"Come off it!" said Ron, looking in disbelief from Harry to Hermione. "You 
must've heard of Babbitty Rabbitty C" 

"Ron, you know full well Harry and I were brought up by Muggles!" said 
Hermione. "We didn't hear stories like that when we were little, we heard 'Snow White 
and the Seven Dwarves' and 'Cinderella' C" 

"What's that, an illness?" asked Ron. 

"So these are children's stories?" asked Hermione, bending against over the runes. 

"Yeah." Said Ron uncertainly. "I mean, just what you hear, you know, that all 
these old stories came from Beedle. I dunno what they're like in the original versions." 

"But I wonder why Dumbledore thought I should read them?" 

Something cracked downstairs. 

"Probably just Charlie, now Mum's asleep, sneaking off to regrow his hair," said 
Ron nervously. 

"All the same, we should get to bed," whispered Hermione. "It wouldn't do to 
oversleep tomorrow." 

"No," agreed Ron. "A brutal triple murder by the bridegroom's mother might put a 
bit of damper on the wedding. I'll get the light." 

And he clicked the Deluminator once more as Hermione left the room. 


Chapter Eight 

The Wedding 

Three oclock on the following afternoon found Harry, Ron, Fred and George 
standing outside the great white marquee in the orchard, awaiting the arrival of the 
wedding guests. Harry had taken a large dose of Polyjuice Potion and was now the 
double of a redheaded Muggle boy from the local village, Ottery St. Catchpole, from 
whom Fred had stolen hairs using a Summoning Charm. The plan was to introduce 
Harry as Cousin Barny and trust to the great number of Weasley relatives to 
camouflage him. 

 All four of them were clutching seating plans, so that they could help show people 
to the right seats. A host of white-robed waiters had arrived an hour earlier, along with a 
golden jacketed band, and all of these wizards were currently sitting a short distance 
away under a tree. Harry could see a blue haze of pipe smoke issuing from the spot. 
Behind Harry, the entrance to the marquee revealed rows and rows of fragile golden 
chairs set on either side of a long purple carpet. The supporting poles were entwined with 
white and gold flowers. Fred and George had fastened an enormous bunch of golden 
balloons over the exact point where Bill and Fleur would shortly become husband and 
wife. Outside, butterflies and bees were hovering lazily over the grass and hedgerow. 
Harry was rather uncomfortable. The Muggle boy whose appearance he was affecting 
was slightly fatter than him and his dress robes felt hot and tight in the full glare of a 
summers day. 

When I get married, said Fred, tugging at the collar of his own robes, I wont 
be bothering with any of this nonsense. You can all wear what you like, and Ill put a full 
Body Bird Curse on Mum until its all over. 

 She wasnt too bad this morning, considering, said George. Cried a bit about 
Percy not being here, but who wants him. Oh blimey, brace yourselves, here they come, 
look. 

 Brightly colored figures were appearing, one by one out of nowhere at the distant 
boundary of the yard. Within minutes a procession had formed, which began to snake its 
way up through the garden toward the marquee. Exotic flowers and bewitched birds 
fluttered on the witches hats, while precious gems glittered from many of the wizards 
cravats; a hum of excited chatter grew louder and louder, drowning the sound of the bees 
as the crowd approached the tent. 

 Excellent, I think I see a few veela cousins, said George, craning his neck for a 
better look. Theyll need help understanding our English customs, Ill look after 
them. 

 Not so fast, Your Holeyness, said Fred, and darting past the gaggle of middle-
aged witches heading for the procession, he said, Here C permetiez moi to assister 
vous, to a pair of pretty French girls, who giggled and allowed him to escort them inside. 
George was left to deal with the middle-aged witches and Ron took charge of Mr. 
Weasleys old Ministry-colleague Perkins, while a rather deaf old couple fell to Harrys 
lot. 

 Wotcher, said a familiar voice as he came out of the marquee again and found 
Tonks and Lupin at the front of the queue. She had turned blonde for the occasion. 
Arthur told us you were the one with the curly hair. Sorry about last night, she added 


in a whisper as Harry led them up the aisle. The Ministrys being very anti-werewolf at 
the museum and we thought our presence might not do you any favors. 

 Its fine, I understand, said Harry, speaking more to Lupin than Tonks. Lupin 
gave him a swift smile, but as they turned away Harry saw Lupins face fall again into 
lines of misery. He did not understand it, but there was no time to dwell on the matter. 
Hagrid was causing a certain amount of disruption. Having misunderstood Freds 
directions as he had sat himself, not upon the magically enlarged and reinforced seat set 
aside for him in the back row, but on five sets that now resembled a large pile of golden 
matchsticks. 

 While Mr. Weasley repaired the damage and Hagrid shouted apologies to 
anybody who would listen, Harry hurried back to the entrance to find Ron face-to-face 
with a most eccentric-looking wizard. Slightly cross-eyed, with shoulder-length white 
hair the texture of candyfloss, he wore a cap whose tassel dangled in front of his nose and 
robes of an eye-watering shade of egg-yolk yellow. An odd symbol, rather like a 
triangular eye, glistened from a golden chain around his neck. 

 Xenophilius Lovegood, he said, extending a hand to Harry, my daughter and I 
live just over the hill, so kind of the good Weasleys to invite us. But I think you know 
my Luna? he added to Ron. 

 Yes, said Ron. Isnt she with you? 

 She lingered in that charming little garden to say hello to the gnomes, such a 
glorious infestation! How few wizards realize just how much we can learn from the wise 
little gnomes C or, to give them their correct name, the Gernumbli gardensi. 

 Ours do know a lot of excellent swear words, said Ron, but I think Fred and 
George taught them those. 

 He led a party of warlocks into the marquee as Luna rushed up. 

 Hello, Harry! she said. 

 Er C my names Barry, said Harry, flummoxed. 

 Oh, have you changed that too? she asked brightly. 

 How did you know -? 

 Oh, just your expression, she said. 

 Like her father, Luna was wearing bright yellow robes, which she had 
accessorized with a large sunflower in her hair. Once you get over the brightness of it all, 
the general effect was quite pleasant. At least there were no radishes dangling from her 
ears. 

 Xenophilius, who was deep in conversation with an acquaintance, had missed the 
exchange between Luna and Harry. Biding the wizard farewell, he turned to his daughter, 
who held up her finger and said, Daddy, look C one of the gnomes actually bit me. 

 How wonderful! Gnome saliva is enormously beneficial. Said Mr. Lovegood, 
seizing Lunas outstretched fingers and examining the bleeding puncture marks. Luna, 
my love, if you should feel any burgeoning talent today C perhaps an unexpected urge to 
sing opera or to declaims in Mermish C do not repress it! You may have been gifted by 
the Gernumblies! 

 Ron, passing them in the opposite direction let out a loud snort. 

 Ron can laugh, said Luna serenely as Harry led her and Xenophilius toward 
their seats, but my father has done a lot of research on Gernumbli magic. 


 Really? said Harry, who had long since decided not to challenge Luna or her 
fathers peculiar views. Are you sure you dont want to put anything on that bite, 
though? 

 Oh, its fine, said Luna, sucking her finger in a dreamy fashion and looking 
Harry up and down. You look smart. I told Daddy most people would probably wear 
dress robes, but he believes you ought to wear sun colors to a wedding, for luck, you 
know. 

 As she drifted off after her father, Ron reappeared with an elderly witch clutching 
his arm. Her beaky nose, red-rimmed eyes, and leathery pink hat gave her the look of a 
bad-tempered flamingo. 

 and your hairs much too long, Ronald, for a moment I thought you were 
Ginevra. Merlins beard, what is Xenophilius Lovegood wearing? He looks like an 
omelet. And who are you? she barked at Harry. 

 Oh yeah, Auntie Muriel, this is our cousin Barny. 

 Another Weasley? You breed like gnomes. Isnt Harry Potter here? I was 
hoping to meet him. I thought he was a friend of yours, Ronald, or have you merely been 
boasting? 

 No C he couldnt come C 

 Hmm. Made an excuse, did he? Not as gormless as he looks in press 
photographs, then. Ive just been instructing the bride on how best to wear my tiara, she 
shouted at Harry. Goblin-made, you know, and been in my family for centuries. Shes a 
good-looking girl, but still C French. Well, well, find me a good seat, Ronald, I am a 
hundred and seven and I ought not to be on my feet too long. 

 Ron gave Harry a meaningful look as he passed and did not reappear for some 
time. When next they met at the entrance, Harry had shown a dozen more people to their 
places. The Marquee was nearly full now and for the first time there was no queue 
outside. 

 Nightmare, Muriel is, said Ron, mopping his forehead on his sleeve. She used 
to come for Christmas every year, then, thank God, she took offense because Fred and 
George set off a Dungbomb under her chair at diner. Dad always says shell have written 
them out of her will C like they care, theyre going to end up richer than anyone in the 
family, rate theyre going Wow, he added, blinking rather rapidly as Hermione came 
hurrying toward them. You look great! 

 Always the tone of surprise, said Hermione, though she smiled. She was 
wearing a floaty, lilac-colored dress with matching high heels; her hair was sleek and 
shiny. Your Great-Aunt Muriel doesnt agree, I just met her upstairs while she was 
giving Fleur the tiara. She said, Oh dear, is this the Muggle-born? and then, Bad 
posture and skinny ankles. 

 Dont take it personally, shes rude to everyone, said Ron. 

 Talking about Muriel? inquired George, reemerging from the marquee with 
Fred. Yeah, shes just told me my ears are lopsided. Old bat. I wish old Uncle Bilius 
was still with us, though; he was a right laugh at weddings. 

 Wasnt he the one who saw a Grim and died twenty-four hours later? asked 
Hermione. 

 Well, yeah, he went a bit odd toward the end, conceded George. 


 But before he went loopy he was the life and soul of the party, said Fred. He 
used to down an entire bottle of firewhisky, then run onto the dance floor, hoist up his 
robes, and start pulling bunches of flowers out of his C 

 Yes, he sounds a real charmer, said Hermione, while Harry roared with laughter. 

 Never married, for some reason, said Ron. 

 You amaze me, said Hermione. 

 They were all laughing so much that none of them noticed the latecomer, a dark-
haired young man with a large, curved nose and thick black eyebrows, until he held out 
his invitation to Ron and said, with his eyes on Hermione, You look vunderful. 

 Viktor! she shrieked, and dropped her small beaded bag, which made a loud 
thump quite disproportionate to its size. As she scrambled, blushing, to pick it up, she 
said I didnt know you were C goodness C its lovely to see C how are you? 

 Rons ears had turned bright red again. After glancing at Krums invitation as if 
he did not believe a word of it, he said, much too loudly, how come youre here? 

 Fleur invited me, said Krum, eyebrows raised. 

 Harry, who had no grudge against Krum, shook hands; then feeling that it would 
be prudent to remove Krum from Rons vicinity, offered to show him his seat. 

 Your friend is not pleased to see me, said Krum, as they entered the now 
packed marquee. Or is he a relative? he added with a glance at Harrys red curly hair. 

 Cousin. Harry muttered, but Krum was not really listening. His appearance was 
causing a stir, particularly amongst the veela cousins: He was, after all, a famous 
Quidditch player. While people were still craning their necks to get a good look at him, 
Ron, Hermione, Fred, and George came hurrying down the aisle. 

 Time to sit down, Fred told Harry, or were going to get run over by the 
bride. 

 Harry, Ron and Hermione took their seats in the second row behind Fred and 
George. Hermione looked rather pink and Rons ears were still scarlet. After a few 
moments he muttered to Harry, Did you see hes grown a stupid little beard? 

 Harry gave a noncommittal grunt. 

 A sense of jittery anticipation had filled the warm tent, the general murmuring 
broken by occasional spurts of excited laughter. Mr. and Mrs. Weasley strolled up the 
aisle, smiling and waving at relatives; Mrs. Weasley was wearing a brand-new set of 
amethyst colored robes with a matching hat. 

 A moment later Bill and Charlie stood up at the front of the marquee, both 
wearing dress robes, with larger white roses in their buttonholes; Fred wolf-whistled and 
there was an outbreak of giggling from the veela cousins. Then the crowd fell silent as 
music swelled from what seemed to be the golden balloons. 

 Ooooh! said Hermione, swiveling around in her seat to look at the entrance. 

 A great collective sigh issued from the assembled witches and wizards as 
Monsieur Delacour and Fleur came walking up the aisle, Fleur gliding, Monsieur 
Delacour bouncing and beaming. Fleur was wearing a very simple white dress and 
seemed to be emitting a strong, silvery glow. While her radiance usually dimmed 
everyone else by comparison, today it beautified everybody it fell upon. Ginny and 
Gabrielle, both wearing golden dresses, looked even prettier than usual and once Fleur 
had reached for him, Bill did not look as though he had ever met Fenrit Greyback. 


 Ladies and gentlemen, said a slightly singsong voice, and with a slight shock, 
Harry saw the same small, tufty-hired wizard who had presided at Dumbledores funeral, 
now standing in front of Bill and Fleur. We are gathered here today to celebrate the 
union of two faithful souls 

 Yes, my tiara set off the whole thing nicely, said Auntie Muriel in a rather 
carrying whisper. But I must say, Ginevras dress is far too low cut. 

 Ginny glanced around, grinning, winked at Harry, then quickly faced the front 
again. Harrys mind wandered a long way from the marquee, back to the afternoons 
spent alone with Ginny in lonely parts of the school grounds. They seemed so long ago; 
they had always seemed too good to be true, as though he had been stealing shining hours 
from a normal persons life, a person without a lightning-shaped scar on his forehead. 

 Do you, William Arthur, take Fleur Isabelle? 

 In the front row, Mrs. Weasley and Madame Delacour were both sobbing quietly 
into scraps of lace. Trumpetlike sounds from the back of the marquee told everyone that 
Hagrid had taken out one of his own tablecloth-sized handkerchiefs. Hermione turned 
around and beamed at Harry; her eyes too were full of tears. 

 then I declare you bonded for life. 

 The tufty-haired wizard waved his hand high over the heads of Bill and Fleur and 
a shower of silver stars fell upon them, spiraling around their now entwined figures. As 
Fred and George led a round of applause, the golden balloons overhead burst. Birds of 
paradise and tiny golden bells flew and floated out of them, adding their songs and 
chimes to the din. 

 Ladies and gentlemen! called the tufty-haired wizard. If you would please 
stand up! 

 They all did so, Auntie Muriel grumbling audibly; he waved his wand again. The 
scars on which they had been sitting rose gracefully into the air as the canvas walls of the 
marquee vanished, so that they stood beneath a canopy supported by golden poles, with a 
glorious view of the sunlit orchard and surrounding countryside. Next, a pool of molten 
gold spread from the center of the tent to form a gleaming dance floor; the hovering 
chairs grouped themselves around small, white-clothed tables, which all floated 
gracefully back to earth round it, and the golden-jacketed hand trooped toward a podium. 

 Smooth, said Ron approvingly as the waiters popped up on all sides, some 
hearing silver trays of pumpkin juice, butterbeer, and firewhisky, others tottering piles of 
tarts and sandwiches. 

 We should go and congratulate them! said Hermione, standing on tiptoe to see 
the place where Bill and Fleur had vanished amid a crowd of well-wishers. 

 Well have time later, shrugged Ron, snatching three butterbeers from a passing 
tray and handing one to Harry. Hermione, cop hold, lets grab a table. Not there! 
Nowhere near Muriel C 

 Ron led the way across the empty dance floor, glancing left and right as he went; 
Harry felt sure that he was keeping an eye out for Krum. By the time they had reached 
the other side of the marquee, most of the tables were occupied: The emptiest was the one 
where Luna sat alone. 

 All right if we join you? asked Ron. 

 Oh yes, she said happily. Daddys just gone to give Bill and Fleur our 
present. 


 What is it, a lifetimes supply of Gurdyroots? asked Ron. 

 Hermione aimed a kick at him under the table, but caught Harry instead. Eyes 
watering in pain, Harry lost track of the conversation for a few moments. 

 The band had begun to play, Bill and Fleur took to the dance floor first, to great 
applause; after a while, Mr. Weasley led Madame Delacour onto the floor, followed by 
Mr. Weasley and Fleurs father. 

 I like this song, said Luna, swaying in time to the waltzlike tune, and a few 
seconds later she stood up and glided onto the dance floor, where she revolved on the 
spot, quite alone, eyes closed and waving her arms. 

 Shes great isnt she? said Ron admiringly. Always good value. 

 But the smile vanished from his face at once: Viktor Krum had dropped into 
Lunas vacant seat. Hermione looked pleasurably flustered but this time Krum had not 
come to compliment her. With a scowl on his face he said, Who is that man in the 
yellow? 

 Thats Xenophilius Lovegood, hes the father of a friend of ours, said Ron. His 
pugnacious tone indicated that they were not about to laugh at Xenophilius, despite the 
clear provocation. Come and dance, he added abruptly to Hermione. 

 She looked taken aback, but pleased too, and got up. They vanished together into 
the growing throng on the dance floor. 

 Ah, they are together now? asked Krum, momentarily distracted. 

 Er C sort of, said Harry. 

 Who are you? Krum asked. 

 Barny Weasley. 

 They shook hands. 

 You, Barny C you know this man Lovegood well? 

 No, I only met him today. Why? 

 Krum glowered over the top of his drink, watching Xenophilius, who was chatting 
to several warlocks on the other side of the dance floor. 

 Because, said Krum, If he vus not a guest of Fleurs I vould dud him, here and 
now, for veering that filthy sign upon his chest. 

 Sign? said Harry, looking over at Xenophilius too. The strange triangular eye 
was gleaming on his chest. Why? Whats wrong with it? 

 Grindelvald. That is Grindelvalds sign. 

 Grindelwald the Dark wizard Dumbledore defeated? 

 Exactly. 

 Krums jaw muscles worked as if he were chewing, then he said, Grindelvald 
killed many people, my grandfather, for instance. Of course, he vos never powerful in 
this country, they said he feared Dumbledore C and rightly, seeing how he vos finished. 
But this C he pointed a finger at Xenophilius C this is his symbol, I recognized it at 
vunce: Grindelvald carved it into a vall at Durmstrang ver he vos a pupil there. Some 
idiots copied it onto their books and clothes thinking to shock, make themselves 
impressive C until those of us who had lost family members to Grindelvald taught them 
better. 

 Krum cracked his knuckles menacingly and glowered at Xenophilius. Harry felt 
perplexed. It seemed incredibly unlikely that Lunas father was a supporter of the Dark 
Arts, and nobody else in the tent seemed to have recognized the triangular, finlike shape. 


 Are you C er C quite sure its Grindelwalds -? 

 I am not mistaken, said Krum coldly. I walked past that sign for several years, 
I know it vell. 

 Well, theres a chance, said Harry, that Xenophilius doesnt actually know 
what the symbol means, the Lovegoods are quite unusual. He could have easily picked 
it up somewhere and think its a cross section of the head of a Crumple-Horned Snorkack 
or something. 

 The cross section of a vot? 

 Well, I dont know what they are, but apparently he and his daughter go on 
holiday looking for them. 

 Harry felt he was doing a bad job explaining Luna and her father. 

 Thats her, he said, pointing at Luna, who was still dancing alone, waving her 
arms around her head like someone attempting to beat off midges. 

 Vy is she doing that? asked Krum. 

 Probably trying to get rid of a Wrackspurt, said Harry, who recognized the 
symptoms. 

 Krum did not seem to know whether or not Harry was making fun of him. He 
drew his hand from inside his robe and tapped it menacingly on his thighs; sparks flew 
out of the end. 

 Gregorovitch! said Harry loudly, and Krum started, but Harry was too excited 
to care; the memory had come back to him at the sight of Krums wand: Ollivander 
taking it and examining it carefully before the Triwizard Tournament. 

 Vot about him? asked Krum suspiciously. 

 Hes a wandmaker! 

 I know that, said Krum. 

 He made your wand! Thats why I thought C Quidditch C 

 Krum was looking more and more suspicious. 

 How do you know Gregorovitch made my wand? 

 II read it somewhere, I think, said Harry. In a C a fan magazine, he 
improvised wildly and Krum looked mollified. 

 I had not realized I ever discussed my vand with fans, he said. 

 So er where is Gregorowitch these days? 

 Krum looked puzzled. 

 He retired several years ago. I was one of the last to purchase a Gregorovitch 
vand. They are the best Calthough I know, of course, that your Britons set much store by 
Ollivander. 

 Harry did not answer. He pretended to watch the dancers, like Krum, but he was 
thinking hard. So Voldemort was looking for a celebrated wandmaker and Harry did not 
have to search far for a reason. It was surely because of what Harry wand had done on 
the night that Voldemort pursued him across the skies. The holly and phoenix feather 
wand had conquered the borrowed wand, some thing that Ollivander had not anticipated 
or understood. Would Gregorowitch know better? Was he truly more skilled than 
Ollivander, did he know secrets of wands that Ollivander did not? 

 This girl is very nice-looking, Krum said, recalling Harry to his surroundings. 
Krum was pointing at Ginny, who had just joined Luna. She is also a relative of yours? 


 Yeah, said Harry, suddenly irritated, and shes seeing someone. Jealous type. 
Big bloke. You wouldnt want to cross him. 

 Krum grunted. 

 Vot, he said, draining his goblet and getting to his feet again, is the point of 
being an international Quidditch player if all the good-looking girls are taken? 

 And he strode off leaving Harry to take a sandwich from a passing waiter and 
make his way around the edge of the crowded dance floor. He wanted to find Ron, to tell 
him about Gregorovitch, but he was dancing with Hermione out in the middle of the floor. 
Harry leaned up against one of the golden pillars and watched Ginny, who was now 
dancing with Fred and Georges friend Lee Jordan, trying not to feel resentful about the 
promise he had given Ron. 

 He had never been to a wedding before, so he could not judge how Wizarding 
celebrations differed from Muggle ones, though he was pretty sure that the latter would 
not involve a wedding cake topped with two model phoenixes that took flight when the 
cake was cut, or bottles of champagne that floated unsupported through the crowd. As 
the evening drew in, and moths began to swoop under the canopy, now lit with floating 
golden lanterns, the revelry became more and more uncontained. Fred and George had 
long since disappeared into the darkness with a pair of Fleurs cousins; Charlie, Hagrid, 
and a squat wizard in a purple porkpie hat were singing Odo the Hero in the corner. 

 Wandering through the crowd so as to escape a drunken uncle of Rons who 
seemed unsure whether or not Harry was his son, Harry spotted an old wizard sitting 
alone at a table. His cloud of white hair made him look rather like an aged dandelion 
clock and was topped by a moth-eaten fez. He was vaguely familiar: Racking his brains, 
Harry suddenly realized that this was Elphias Doge, member of the Order of the Phoenix 
and the writer of Dumbledores obituary. 

 Harry approached him. 

 May I sit down? 

 Of course, of course, said Doge; he had a rather high-pitched, wheezy voice. 

 Harry leaned in. 

 Mr. Doge, Im Harry Potter. 

 Doge gasped. 

 My dear boy! Arthur told me you were here, disguised. I am so glad, so 
honored! 

 In a flutter of nervous pleasure Doge poured Harry a goblet of champagne. 

 I thought of writing to you, he whispered, after Dumbledore the shock 
and for you, I am sure 

 Doges tiny eyes filled with sudden tears. 

 I saw the obituary you wrote for the Daily Prophet, said Harry. I didnt realize 
you knew Professor Dumbledore so well. 

 As well as anyone, said Doge, dabbing his eyes with a napkin. Certainly I 
knew him longest, if you dont count Aberforth C and somehow, people never do seem to 
count Aberforth. 

 Speaking of the Daily Prophet I dont know whether you saw, Mr. Doge -? 

 Oh, please call me Elphias, dear boy. 

 Elphias, I dont know whether you saw the interview Rita Skeeter gave about 
Dumbledore? 


 Doges face flooded with angry color. 

 Oh yes, Harry, I saw it. That woman, or vulture might be a more accurate term, 
positively pestered me to talk to her, I am ashamed to say that I became rather rude, 
called her an interfering trout, which resulted, as you my have seen, in aspersions cast 
upon my sanity. 

 Well, in that interview, Harry went on, Rita Skeeter hinted that Professor 
Dumbledore was involved in the Dark Arts when he was young. 

 Dont believe a word of it! said Doge at once. Not a word, Harry! Let nothing 
tarnish your memories of Albus Dumbledore! 

 Harry looked into Doges earnest, pained face, and felt, not reassured, but 
frustrated. Did Doge really think it was that easy, that Harry could simply choose not to 
believe? Didnt Doge understand Harrys need to be sure, to know everything? 

 Perhaps Doge suspected Harrys feelings, for he looked concerned and hurried on, 
Harry, Rita Skeeter is a dreadful C 

 But he was interrupted by a shrill cackle. 

 Rita Skeeter? Oh, I love her, always read her! 

 Harry and Doge looked up to see Auntie Muriel standing there, the plumes 
dancing on her hair, a goblet of champagne in her hand. Shes written a book about 
Dumbledore, you know! 

Hello, Muriel, said Doge, Yes, we were just discussing C 

 You there! Give me your chair, Im a hundred and seven! 

 Another redheaded Weasley cousin jumped off his seat, looking alarmed, and 
Auntie Muriel swung it around with surprising strength and plopped herself down upon it 
between Doge and Harry. 

 Hello again, Barry or whatever your name is, she said to Harry, Now what 
were you saying about Rita Skeeter, Elphias? You know, shes written a biography of 
Dumbledore? I cant wait to read it. I must remember to place an order at Flourish and 
Blotts! 

 Doge looked stiff and solemn at this but Auntie Muriel drained her goblet and 
clicked her bony fingers at a passing waiter for a replacement. She took another large 
gulp of champagne, belched and then said, Theres no need to look like a pair of stuffed 
frogs! Before he became so respected and respectable and all that tosh, there were some 
mighty funny rumors about Albus! 

 Ill-informed sniping, said Doge, turning radish-colored again. 

 You would say that, Elphias, cackled Auntie Muriel. I noticed how you skated 
over the sticky patches in that obituary of yours! 

 Im sorry you think so, said Doge, more coldly still. I assure you I was writing 
from the heart. 

 Oh, we all know you worshipped Dumbledore; I daresay youll still think he was 
a saint even if it does turn out that he did away with his Squib sister! 

 Muriel! exclaimed Doge. 

 A chill that had nothing to do with the iced champagne was stealing through 
Harrys chest. 

 What do you mean? he asked Muriel. Who said his sister was a Squib? I 
thought she was ill? 


 Thought wrong, then, didnt you, Barry! said Auntie Muriel, looking delighted 
at the effect she had produced. Anyway, how could you expect to know anything about 
it! IT all happened years and years before you were even thought of, my dear, and the 
truth is that those of us who were alive then never knew what really happened. Thats 
why I cant wait to find out what Skeeters unearthed! Dumbledore kept that sister of his 
quiet for a long time! 

 Untrue! wheezed Doge, Absolutely untrue! 

 He never told me his sister as a Squib, said Harry, without thinking, still cold 
inside. 

 And why on earth would he tell you? screeched Muriel, swaying a little in her 
seat as she attempted to focus upon Harry. 

 The reason Albus never spoke about Ariana, began Elphias in a voice stiff with 
emotion, is, I should have thought, quite clear. He was so devastated by her death C 

 Why did nobody ever see her, Elphias? squawked Muriel, Why did half of us 
never even know she existed, until they carried the coffin out of the house and held a 
funeral for her? Where was saintly Albus while Ariana was locked in the cellar? Off 
being brilliant at Hogwarts, and never mind what was going on in his own house! 

 What dyou mean, locked in the cellar? asked Harry. What is this? 

 Doge looked wretched. Auntie Muriel cackled again and answered Harry. 

 Dumbledores mother was a terrifying woman, simply terrifying. Muggle-born, 
though I heard she pretended otherwise- 

 She never pretended anything of the sort! Kendra was a fine woman, whispered 
Doge miserably, but Auntie Muriel ignored him. 

 - proud and very domineering, the sort of witch who would have been mortified 
to produce a Squib- 

 Ariana was not a Squib! wheezed Doge. 

 So you say, Elphias, but explain, then, why she never attended Hogwarts! said 
Auntie Muriel. She turned back to Harry. In our day, Squibs were often hushed up, 
thought to take it to the extreme of actually imprisoning a little girl in the house and 
pretending she didnt exist C 

 I tell you, thats not what happened! said Doge, but Auntie Muriel 
steamrollered on, still addressing Harry. 

 Squibs were usually shipped off to Muggle schools and encouraged to integrate 
into the Muggle community much kinder than trying to find them a place in the 
Wizarding world, where they must always be second class, but naturally Kendra 
Dumbledore wouldnt have dreamed of letting her daughter go to a Muggle school C 

 Ariana was delicate! said Doge desperately. Her health was always too poor to 
permit her C 

 - to permit her to leave the house? cackled Muriel. And yet she was never 
taken to St. Mungos and no Healer was ever summoned to see her! 

 Really, Muriel, how can you possibly know whether C 

 For your information, Elphias, my cousin Lancelot was a Healer at St. Mungos 
at the time, and he told my family in strictest confidence that Ariana had never been seen 
there. All most suspicious, Lancelot thought! 

 Doge looked to be on the verge of tears. Auntie Muriel, who seemed to be 
enjoying herself hugely, snapped her fingers for more champagne. Numbly Harry 


thought of how the Dursleys had once shut him up, locked him away, kept him out of 
sight, all for the crime of being a wizard. Had Dumbledores sister suffered the same fate 
in reverse: imprisoned for her lack of magic? And had Dumbledore truly left her to her 
fate while he went off to Hogwarts to prove himself brilliant and talented? 

 Now, if Kendra hadnt died first, Muriel resumed, Id have said that it was she 
who finished off Ariana C 

 How can you, Muriel! groaned Doge. A mother kill her own daughter? Think 
what youre saying! 

 If the mother in question was capable of imprisoning her daughter for years on 
end, why not? shrugged Auntie Muriel. But as I say, it doesnt fit, because Kendra died 
before Ariana C of what, nobody ever seemed sure- 

 Yes, Ariana might have made a desperate bid for freedom and killed Kendra in 
the struggle, said Auntie Muriel thoughtfully. Shake your head all you like, Elphias. 
You were at Arianas funeral, were you not? 

 Yes I was, said Doge, through trembling lips, and a more desperately sad 
occasion I cannot remember. Albus was heartbroken- 

 His heart wasnt the only thing. Didnt Aberforth break Albus nose halfway 
through the service? 

 If Doge had looked horrified before this, it was nothing to how he looked now. 
Muriel might have stabbed him. She cackled loudly and took another swig of champagne, 
which dribbled down her chin. 

 How do you -? croaked Doge. 

 My mother was friendly with old Bathilda Bagshot, said Auntie Muriel happily. 
Bathilda described the whole thing to mother while I was listening at the door. A 
coffin-side brawl. The way Bathilda told it, Aberforth shouted that it was all Albus fault 
that Ariana was dead and then punched him in the face. According to Bathilda, Albus did 
not even defend himself, and thats odd enough in itself. Albus could have destroyed 
Aberforth in a duel with both hands tied behind his back. 

 Muriel swigged yet more champagne. The recitation of those old scandals 
seemed to elate her as much as they horrified Doge. Harry did not know what to think, 
what to believe. He wanted the truth and yet all Doge did was sit there and bleat feebly 
that Ariana had been ill. Harry could hardly believe that Dumbledore would not have 
intervened if such cruelty was happening inside his own house, and yet there was 
undoubtedly something odd about the story. 

 And Ill tell you something else, Muriel said, hiccupping slightly as she lowered 
her goblet. I think Bathilda has spilled the beans to Rita Skeeter. All those hints in 
Skeeters interview about an important source close to the Dumbledores C goodness 
knows she was there all through the Ariana business, and it would fit! 

 Bathilda, would never talk to Rita Skeeter! whispered Doge. 

 Bathilda Bagshot? Harry said. The author of A History of Magic? 

 The name was printed on the front of one of Harrys textbooks, though admittedly 
not one of the ones he had read more attentively. 

 Yes, said Doge, clutching at Harrys question like a drowning man at a life heir. 
A most gifted magical historian and an old friend of Albuss. 

 Quite gaga these days, Ive heard, said Auntie Muriel cheerfully. 


 If that is so, it is even more dishonorable for Skeeter to have taken advantage of 
her, said Doge, and no reliance can be placed on anything Bathilda may have said! 

 Oh, there are ways of bringing back memories, and Im sure Rita Skeeter knows 
them all, said Auntie Muriel But even if Bathildas completely cuckoo, Im sure shed 
still have old photographs, maybe even letters. She knew the Dumbledores for years. 
Well worth a trip to Godrics Hollow, Id have thought. 

 Harry, who had been taking a sip of butterbeer, choked. Doge banged him on the 
back as Harry coughed, looking at Auntie Muriel through streaming eyes. Once he had 
control of his voice again, he asked, Bathilda Bagshot lives in Godrics Hollow? 

 Oh yes, shes been there forever! The Dumbledores moved there after Percival 
was imprisoned, and she was their neighbor. 

 The Dumbledores lived in Godrics Hollows? 

 Yes, Barry, thats what I just said, said Auntie Muriel testily. 

 Harry felt drained, empty. Never once, in six years, had Dumbledore told Harry 
that they had both lived and lost loved ones in Godrics Hollow. Why? Were Lily and 
James buried close to Dumbledores mother and sister? Had Dumbledore visited their 
graves, perhaps walked past Lilys and Jamess to do so? And he had never once told 
Harry  never bothered to say 

 And why it was so important, Harry could not explain even to himself, yet he felt 
it had been tantamount to a lie not to tell him that they had this place and these 
experiences in common. He stared ahead of him, barely noticing what was going on 
around him, and did not realize that Hermione had appeared out of the crowd until she 
drew up a chair beside him. 

 I simply cant dance anymore, she panted, slipping of one of her shoes and 
rubbing the sole of her foot. Rons gone looking to find more butterbeers. Its a bit odd. 
Ive just seen Viktor storming away from Lunas father, it looked like theyd been 
arguing C She dropped her voice, staring at him. Harry, are you okay? 

 Harry did not know where to begin, but it did not matter, at that moment, 
something large and silver came falling through the canopy over the dance floor. 
Graceful and gleaming, the lynx landed lightly in the middle of the astonished dancers. 
Heads turned, as those nearest it froze absurdly in mid-dance. Then the Patronuss mouth 
opened wide and it spoke in the loud, deep, slow voice of Kingsley Shacklebolt. 

 The Ministry has fallen. Scrimgeour is dead. They are coming. 

Chapter Nine 

A Place to Hide 

 

Everything seemed fuzzy, slow. Harry and Hermione jumped to their feet and 
drew their wands. Many people were only just realizing that something strange had 
happened; heads were still turning toward the silver cat as it vanished. Silence spread 
outward in cold ripples from the place where the Patronus had landed. Then somebody 
screamed. 

 Harry and Hermione threw themselves into the panicking crowd. Guests were 
sprinting in all directions; many were Disapparating; the protective enchantments around 
the Burrow had broken. 


 Ron! Hermione cried. Ron, where are you? 

 As they pushed their way across the dance floor, Harry saw cloaked and masked 
figures appearing in the crowd; then he saw Lupin and Tonks, their wands raised, and 
heard both of them shout, Protego!, a cry that was echoed on all sides C 

 Ron! Ron! Hermione called, half sobbing as she and Harry were buffered by 
terrified guests: Harry seized her hand to make sure they werent separated as a streak of 
light whizzed over their heads, whether a protective charm or something more sinister he 
did not know C 

 And then Ron was there. He caught hold of Hermiones free arm, and Harry felt 
her turn on the spot; sight and sound were extinguished as darkness pressed in upon him; 
all he could feel was Hermiones hand as he was squeezed through space and time, away 
from the Burrow, away from the descending Death Eaters, away, perhaps, from 
Voldemort himself. . . . 

 Where are we? said Rons voice. 

 Harry opened his eyes. For a moment he thought they had not left the wedding 
after all; They still seemed to be surrounded by people. 

 Tottenham Court Road, panted Hermione. Walk, just walk, we need to find 
somewhere for you to change. 

 Harry did as she asked. They half walked, half ran up the wide dark street 
thronged with late-night revelers and lined with closed shops, stars twinkling above them. 
A double-decker bus rumbled by and a group of merry pub-goers ogled them as they 
passed; Harry and Ron were still wearing dress robes. 

 Hermione, we havent got anything to change into, Ron told her, as a young 
woman burst into raucous giggles at the sight of him. 

 Why didnt I make sure I had the Invisibility Cloak with me? said Harry, 
inwardly cursing his own stupidity. All last year I kept it on me and C 

 Its okay, Ive got the Cloak, Ive got clothes for both of you, said Hermione, 
Just try and act naturally until C this will do. 

 She led them down a side street, then into the shelter of a shadowy alleyway. 

 When you say youve got the Cloak, and clothes . . . said Harry, frowning at 
Hermione, who was carrying nothing except her small beaded handbag, in which she was 
now rummaging. 

 Yes, theyre here, said Hermione, and to Harry and Rons utter astonishment, 
she pulled out a pair of jeans, a sweatshirt, some maroon socks, and finally the silvery 
Invisibility Cloak. 

 How the ruddy hell C ? 

 Undetectable Extension Charm, said Hermione. Tricky, but I think Ive done it 
okay; anyway, I managed to fit everything we need in here. She gave the fragile-looking 
bag a little shake and it echoed like a cargo hold as a number of heavy objects rolled 
around inside it. Oh, damn, thatll be the books, she said, peering into it, and I had 
them all stacked by subject. . . . Oh well. . . . Harry, youd better take the Invisibility 
Cloak. Ron, hurry up and change. . . . 

 When did you do all this? Harry asked as Ron stripped off his robes. 

 I told you at the Burrow, Ive had the essentials packed for days, you know, in 
case we needed to make a quick getaway. I packed your rucksack this morning, Harry, 
after you changed, and put it in here. . . . I just had a feeling. . . . 


 Youre amazing, you are, said Ron, handing her his bundled-up robes. 

 Thank you, said Hermione, managing a small smile as she pushed the robes into 
the bag. Please, Harry, get that Cloak on! 

 Harry threw his Invisibility Cloak around his shoulders and pulled it up over his 
head, vanishing from sight. He was only just beginning to appreciate what had happened. 

 The others C everybody at the wedding C 

 We cant worry about that now, whispered Hermione. Its you theyre after, 
Harry, and well just put everyone in even more danger by going back. 

 Shes right, said Ron, who seemed to know that Harry was about to argue, even 
if he could not see his face. Most of the Order was there, theyll look after everyone. 

 Harry nodded, then remembered that they could not see him, and said, Yeah. 
But he thought of Ginny, and fear bubbled like acid in his stomach. 

 Come on, I think we ought to keep moving, said Hermione. 

 They moved back up the side street and onto the main road again, where a group 
of men on the opposite side was singing and weaving across the pavement. 

 Just as a matter of interest, why Tottenham Court Road? Ron asked Hermione. 

 Ive no idea, it just popped into my head, but Im sure were safer out in the 
Muggle world, its not where theyll expect us to be. 

 True, said Ron, looking around, but dont you feel a bit C exposed? 

 Where else is there? asked Hermione, cringing as the men on the other side of 
the road started wolf-whistling at her. We can hardly book rooms at the Leaky Cauldron, 
can we? And Grimmauld Place is out if Snape can get in there. . . . I suppose we could try 
my parents home, though I think theres a chance they might check there. . . . Oh, I wish 
theyd shut up! 

 All right, darling? the drunkest of the men on the other pavement was yelling. 
Fancy a drink? Ditch ginger and come and have a pint! 

 Lets sit down somewhere, Hermione said hastily as Ron opened his mouth to 
shout back across the road. Look, this will do, in here! 

 It was a small and shabby all-night caf. A light layer of grease lay on all the 
Formica-topped tables, but it was at least empty. Harry slipped into a booth first and Ron 
sat next to him opposite Hermione, who had her back to the entrance and did not like it: 
She glanced over her shoulder so frequently she appeared to have a twitch. Harry did not 
like being stationary; walking had given the illusion that they had a goal. Beneath the 
Cloak he could feel the last vestiges of Polyjuice leaving him, his hands returning to their 
usual length and shape. He pulled his glasses out of his pocket and put them on again. 

 After a minute or two, Ron said, You know, were not far from the Leaky 
Cauldron here, its only in Charing Cross C 

 Ron, we cant! said Hermione at once. 

 Not to stay there, but to find out whats going on! 

 We know whats going on! Voldemorts taken over the Ministry, what else do 
we need to know? 

 Okay, okay, it was just an idea! 
They relapsed into a prickly silence. The gum-chewing waitress shuffled over and 
Hermione ordered two cappuccinos: As Harry was invisible, it would have looked odd to 
order him one. A pair of burly workmen entered the caf and squeezed into the next 
booth. Hermione dropped her voice to a whisper. 


 I say we find a quiet place to Disapparate and head for the countryside. Once 
were there, we could send a message to the Order. 

 Can you do that talking Patronus thing, then? asked Ron. 

 Ive been practicing and I think so, said Hermione. 

 Well, as long as it doesnt get them into trouble, though they mightve been 
arrested already. God, thats revolting, Ron added after one sip of the foamy, grayish 
coffee. The waitress had heard; she shot Ron a nasty look as she shuffled off to take the 
new customers orders. The larger of the two workmen, who was blond and quite huge, 
now that Harry came to look at him, waved her away. She stared, affronted. 

 Lets get going, then, I dont want to drink this muck, said Ron. Hermione, 
have you got Muggle money to pay for this? 

 Yes, I took out all my Building Society savings before I came to the Burrow. Ill 
bet all the change is at the bottom, sighed Hermione, reaching for her beaded bag. 

 The two workmen made identical movements, and Harry mirrored them without 
conscious thought: All three of them drew their wands. Ron, a few seconds late in 
realizing what was going on, lunged across the table, pushing Hermione sideways onto 
her bench. The force of the Death Eaters spells shattered the tiled wall where Rons head 
had just been, as Harry, still invisible, yelled, Stupefy! 

 The great blond Death Eater was hit in the face by a jet of red light: He slumped 
sideways, unconscious. His companion, unable to see who had cast the spell, fired 
another at Ron: Shining black ropes flew from his wand-tip and bound Ron head to foot C 
the waitress screamed and ran for the door C Harry sent another Stunning Spell at the 
Death Eater with the twisted face who had tied up Ron, but the spell missed, rebounded 
on the window, and hit the waitress, who collapsed in front of the door. 

 Expulso! bellowed the Death Eater, and the table behind which Harry was 
standing blew up: The force of the explosion slammed him into the wall and he felt his 
wand leave his hand as the Cloak slipped off him. 

 Petrificus Totalus! screamed Hermione from out of sight, and the Death Eater 
fell forward like a statue to land with a crunching thud on the mess of broken china, table, 
and coffee. Hermione crawled out from underneath the bench, shaking bits of glass 
ashtray out of her hair and trembling all over. 

 D-diffindo, she said, pointing her wand at Ron, who roared in pain as she 
slashed open the knee of his jeans, leaving a deep cut. Oh, Im so sorry, Ron, my hands 
shaking! Diffindo! 

 The severed ropes fell away. Ron got to his feet, shaking his arms to regain 
feeling in them. Harry picked up his wand and climbed over all the debris to where the 
large blond Death Eater was sprawled across the bench. 

 I shouldve recognized him, he was there the night Dumbledore died, he said. 
He turned over the darker Death Eater with his foot; the mans eyes moved rapidly 
between Harry, Ron and Hermione. 

 Thats Dolohov, said Ron. I recognize him from the old wanted posters. I think 
the big ones Thorfinn Rowle. 

 Never mind what theyre called! said Hermione a little hysterically. How did 
they find us? What are we going to do? 

 Somehow her panic seemed to clear Harrys head. 

 Lock the door, he told her, and Ron, turn out the lights. 


 He looked down at the paralyzed Dolohov, thinking fast as the lock clicked and 
Ron used the Deluminator to plunge the caf into darkness. Harry could hear the men 
who had jeered at Hermione earlier, yelling at another girl in the distance. 

 What are we going to do with them? Ron whispered to Harry through the dark; 
then, even more quietly, Kill them? Theyd kill us. They had a good go just now. 

 Hermione shuddered and took a step backward. Harry shook his head. 

 We just need to wipe their memories, said Harry. Its better like that, itll 
throw them off the scent. If we killed them itd be obvious we were here. 

 Youre the boss, said Ron, sounding profoundly relieved. But Ive never down 
a Memory Charm. 

 Nor have I, said Hermione, but I know the theory. 

 She took a deep, calming breath, then pointed her wand at Dolohovs forehead 
and said, Obliviate. 

 At once, Dolohovs eyes became unfocused and dreamy. 

 Brilliant! said Harry, clapping her on the back. Take care of the other one and 
the waitress while Ron and I clear up. 
Clear up? said Ron, looking around at the partly destroyed caf. Why? 

 Dont you think they might wonder whats happened if they wake up and find 
themselves in a place that looks like its just been bombed? 

 Oh right, yeah . . . 

 Ron struggled for a moment before managing to extract his wand from his pocket. 

 Its no wonder I cant get it out, Hermione, you packed my old jeans, theyre 
tight. 

 Oh, Im so sorry, hissed Hermione, and as she dragged the waitress out of sight 
of the windows, Harry heard her mutter a suggestion as to where Ron could stick his 
wand instead. 

 Once the caf was restored to its previous condition, they heaved the Death Eaters 
back into their booth and propped them up facing each other. But how did they find us? 
Hermione asked, looking from one inert man to the other. How did they know where we 
were? 

 She turned to Harry. 

 You C you dont think youve still got your Trace on you, do you, Harry? 

 He cant have, said Ron. The Trace breaks at seventeen, thats Wizarding law, 
you cant put it on an adult. 

 As far as you know, said Hermione. What if the Death Eaters have found a 
way to put it on a seventeen-year-old? 

 But Harry hasnt been near a Death Eater in the last twenty-four hours. Whos 
supposed to have put a Trace back on him? 

 Hermione did not reply. Harry felt contaminated, tainted: Was that really how the 
Death Eaters had found them? 

 If I cant use magic, and you cant use magic near me, without us giving away 
our position C  he began. 

 Were not splitting up! said Hermione firmly. 

 We need a safe place to hide, said Ron. Give us time to think things through. 

 Grimmauld Place, said Harry. 

 The other two gaped. 


 Dont be silly, Harry, Snape can get in there! 

 Rons dad said theyve put up jinxes against him C and even if they havent 
worked, he pressed on as Hermione began to argue so what? I swear, Id like nothing 
better than to meet Snape! 

 But C 

 Hermione, where else is there? Its the best chance weve got. Snapes only one 
Death Eater. If Ive still got the Trace on me, well have whole crowds of them on us 
wherever else we go. 

 She could not argue, though she looked as if she would have liked to. While she 
unlocked the caf door, Ron clicked the Deluminator to release the cafs light. Then, on 
Harrys count of three, they reversed the spells upon their three victims, and before the 
waitress or either of the Death Eaters could do more than stir sleepily, Harry, Ron and 
Hermione had turned on the spot and vanished into the compressing darkness once more. 

 Seconds later Harrys lungs expanded gratefully and he opened his eyes: They 
were now standing in the middle of a familiar small and shabby square. Tall, dilapidated 
houses looked down on them from every side. Number twelve was visible to them, for 
they had been told of its existence by Dumbledore, its Secret-Keeper, and they rushed 
toward it, checking every few yards that they were not being followed or observed. They 
raced up the stone steps, and Harry tapped the front door once with his wand. They heard 
a series of metallic clicks and the clatter of a chain, then the door swung open with a 
creak and they hurried over the threshold. 

 As Harry closed the door behind them, the old-fashioned gas lamps sprang into 
life, casting flickering light along the length of the hallway. It looked just as Harry 
remembered it: eerie, cobwebbed, the outlines of the house-elf heads on the wall 
throwing odd shadows up the staircase. Long dark curtains concealed the portrait of 
Siriuss mother. The only thing that was out of place was the trolls leg umbrella stand, 
which was lying on its side as if Tonks had just knocked it over again. 

 I think somebodys been in here, Hermione whispered, pointing toward it. 

 That couldve happened as the Order left, Ron murmured back. 

 So where are these jinxes they put up against Snape? Harry asked. 

 Maybe theyre only activated if he shows up? suggested Ron. 

 Yet they remained close together on the doormat, backs against the door, scared 
to move farther into the house. 

 Well, we cant stay here forever, said Harry, and he took a step forward. 

 Severus Snape? 

 Mad-Eye Moodys voice whispered out of the darkness, making all three of them 
jump back in fright. Were not Snape! croaked Harry, before something whooshed over 
him like cold air and his tongue curled backward on itself, making it impossible to speak. 
Before he had time to feel inside his mouth, however, his tongue had unraveled again. 

 The other two seemed to have experienced the same unpleasant sensation. Ron 
was making retching noises; Hermione stammered, That m-must have b-been the T-
Tongue-Tying Curse Mad-Eye set up for Snape! 

 Gingerly Harry took another step forward. Something shifted in the shadows at 
the end of the hall, and before any of them could say another word, a figure had risen up 
out of the carpet, tall, dust-colored, and terrible; Hermione screamed and so did Mrs. 
Black, her curtains flying open; the gray figure was gliding toward them, faster and faster, 


its waist-length hair and beard streaming behind it, its face sunken, fleshless, with empty 
eye sockets: Horribly familiar, dreadfully altered, it raised a wasted arm, pointing at 
Harry. 

 No! Harry shouted, and though he had raised his wand no spell occurred to him. 
No! It wasnt us! We didnt kill you C 

 On the word kill, the figure exploded in a great cloud of dust: Coughing, his eyes 
watering, Harry looked around to see Hermione crouched on the floor by the door with 
her arms over her head, and Ron, who was shaking from head to foot, patting her 
clumsily on the shoulder and saying, Its all r-right. . . . Its g-gone. . . . 

 Dust swirled around Harry like mist, catching the blue gaslight, as Mrs. Black 
continued to scream. 

 Mudbloods, filth, stains of dishonor, taint of shame on the house of my fathers C 

 SHUT UP! Harry bellowed, directing his wand at her, and with a bang and a 
burst of red sparks, the curtains swung shut again, silencing her. 

 That . . . that was . . .  Hermione whimpered, as Ron helped her to her feet. 

 Yeah, said Harry, but it wasnt really him, was it? Just something to scare 
Snape. 
Had it worked, Harry wondered, or had Snape already blasted the horror-figure 
aside as casually as he had killed the real Dumbledore? Nerves still tingling, he led the 
other two up the hall, half-expecting some new terror to reveal itself, but nothing moved 
except for a mouse skittering along the skirting board. 

 Before we go any farther, I think wed better check, whispered Hermione, and 
she raised her wand and said, Homenum revelio. 

 Nothing happened. 

 Well, youve just had a big shock, said Ron kindly. What was that supposed to 
do? 

 It did what I meant it to do! said Hermione rather crossly. That was a spell to 
reveal human presence, and theres nobody here except us! 
And old Dusty, said Ron, glancing at the patch of carpet from which the corpse-
figure had risen. 

 Lets go up, said Hermione with a frightened look at the same spot, and she led 
the way up the creaking stairs to the drawing room on the first floor. 

 Hermione waved her wand to ignite the old gas lamps, then, shivering slightly in 
the drafty room, she perched on the sofa, her arms wrapped tightly around her. Ron 
crossed to the window and moved the heavy velvet curtains aside an inch. 

 Cant see anyone out there, he reported. And youd think, if Harry still had a 
Trace on him, theyd have followed us here. I know they cant get in the house, but C 
whats up, Harry? 

 Harry had given a cry of pain: His scar had burned against as something flashed 
across his mind like a bright light on water. He saw a large shadow and felt a fury that 
was not his own pound through his body, violent and brief as an electric shock. 

 What did you see? Ron asked, advancing on Harry. Did you see him at my 
place? 

 No, I just felt anger C hes really angry C 

 But that could be at the Burrow, said Ron loudly. What else? Didnt you see 
anything? Was he cursing someone? 


 No, I just felt anger C I couldnt tell C 

 Harry felt badgered, confused, and Hermione did not help as she said in a 
frightened voice, Your scar, again? But whats going on? I thought that connection had 
closed! 

 It did, for a while, muttered Harry; his scar was still painful, which made it hard 
to concentrate. I C I think its started opening again whenever he loses control, thats 
how it used to C 

 But then youve got to close your mind! said Hermione shrilly. Harry, 
Dumbledore didnt want you to use that connection, he wanted you to shut it down, thats 
why you were supposed to use Occlumency! Otherwise Voldemort can plant false images 
in your mind, remember C 

 Yeah, I do remember, thanks, said Harry through gritted teeth; he did not need 
Hermione to tell him that Voldemort had once used this selfsame connection between 
them to lead him into a trap, nor that it had resulted in Siriuss death. He wished that he 
had not told them what he had seen and felt; it made Voldemort more threatening, as 
though he were pressing against the window of the room, and still the pain in his scar was 
building and he fought it: It was like resisting the urge to be sick. 

 He turned his back on Ron and Hermione, pretending to examine the old tapestry 
of the Black family tree on the wall. Then Hermione shrieked: Harry drew his wand again 
and spun around to see a silver Patronus soar through the drawing room window and land 
upon the floor in front of them, where it solidified into the weasel that spoke with the 
voice of Rons father. 

 Family safe, do not reply, we are being watched. 

 The Patronus dissolved into nothingness. Ron let out a noise between a whimper 
and a groan and dropped onto the sofa: Hermione joined him, gripping his arm. 

 Theyre all right, theyre all right! she whispered, and Ron half laughed and 
hugged her. 

 Harry, he said over Hermiones shoulder, I C 

 Its not a problem, said Harry, sickened by the pain in his head. Its your 
family, course you were worried. Id feel the same way. He thought of Ginny. I do feel 
the same way. 

 The pain in his scar was reaching a peak, burning as it had back in the garden of 
the Burrow. Faintly he heard Hermione say I dont want to be on my own. Could we use 
the sleeping bags Ive brought and camp in here tonight? 

 He heard Ron agree. He could not fight the pain much longer. He had to succumb. 

 Bathroom, he muttered, and he left the room as fast as he could without running. 

 He barely made it: Bolting the door behind him with trembling hands, he grasped 
his pounding head and fell to the floor, then in an explosion of agony, he felt the rage that 
did not belong to him possess his soul, saw a long room lit only by firelight, and the giant 
blond Death Eater on the floor, screaming and writhing, and a slighter figure standing 
over him, wand outstretched, while Harry spoke in a high, cold, merciless voice. 

 More, Rowle, or shall we end it and feed you to Nagini? Lord Voldemort is not 
sure that he will forgive this time. . . . You called me back for this, to tell me that Harry 
Potter has escaped again? Draco, give Rowle another taste of our displeasure. . . . Do it, 
or feel my wrath yourself! 


 A log fell in the fire: Flames reared, their light darting across a terrified, pointed 
white face C with a sense of emerging from deep water, Harry drew heaving breaths and 
opened his eyes. 

 He was spread-eagled on the cold black marble floor, his nose inches from one of 
the silver serpent tails that supported the large bathtub. He sat up. Malfoys gaunt, 
petrified face seemed burned on the inside of his eyes. Harry felt sickened by what he had 
seen, by the use to which Draco was now being put by Voldemort. 

 There was a sharp rap on the door, and Harry jumped as Hermiones voice rang 
out. 

 Harry, do you want your toothbrush? Ive got it here. 

 Yeah, great, thanks, he said, fighting to keep his voice casual as he stood up to 
let her in. 

 

Chapter Ten 

Kreachers Tale 

Harry woke early next morning, wrapped in a sleeping bag on the drawing room 
floor. A chink of sky was visible between the heavy curtains. It was the cool, clear blue 
of watered ink, somewhere between night and dawn, and everything was quiet except for 
Ron and Hermiones slow, deep breathing. Harry glanced over at the dark shapes they 
made on the floor beside him. Ron had had a fit of gallantry and insisted that Hermione 
sleep on the cushions from the sofa, so that her silhouette was raised above his. Her arm 
curved to the floor, her fingers inches from Rons. Harry wondered whether they had 
fallen asleep holding hands. The idea made him feel strangely lonely. 

 He looked up at the shadowy ceiling, the cobwebbed chandelier. Less than 
twenty-four house ago, he had been standing in the sunlight at the entrance to the 
marquee, waiting to show in wedding guests. It seemed a lifetime away. What was going 
to happen now? He lay on the floor and he thought of the Horcruxes, of the daunting 
complex mission Dumbledore had left him Dumbledore 

 The grief that had possessed him since Dumbledores death felt different now. 
The accusations he had heard from Muriel at the wedding seemed to have nested in his 
brain like diseased things, infecting his memories of the wizard he had idolized. Could 
Dumbledore have let such things happen? Had he been like Dudley, content to watch 
neglect and abuse as long as it did not affect him? Could he have turned his back on a 
sister who was being imprisoned and hidden? 

 Harry thought of Godrics Hollow, of graves Dumbledore had never mentioned 
there; he thought of mysterious objects left without explanation in Dumbledores will, 
and resentment swelled in the darkness. Why hadnt Dumbledore told him? Why hadnt 
he explained? Had Dumbledore actually cared about Harry at all? Or had Harry been 
nothing more than a tool to be polished and honed, but not trusted, never confided in? 

 Harry could not stand lying there with nothing but bitter thoughts for company. 
Desperate for something to do, for distraction, he slipped out of his sleeping bad, picked 
up his wand, and crept out of the room. On the landing he whispered, Lumos, and 
started to climb the stairs by wandlight. 


 On the second landing was the bedroom in which he and Ron had slept last time 
they had been here; he glanced into it. The wardrobe doors stood open and the bedclothes 
had been ripped back. Harry remembered the overturned troll leg downstairs. Somebody 
had searched the house since the Order had left. Snape? Or perhaps Mundungus, who had 
pilfered plenty from this house both before and after Sirius died? Harrys gaze wandered 
to the portrait that sometimes contained Phineas Nigellus Black, Siriuss great-great 
grandfather, but it was empty, showing nothing but a stretch of muddy backdrop. Phineas 
Nigellus was evidently spending the night in the headmasters study at Hogwarts. 

 Harry continued up the stairs until he reached the topmost landing where there 
were only two doors. The one facing him bore a nameplate reading Sirius. Harry had 
never entered his godfathers bedroom before. He pushed open the door, holding his 
wand high to cast light as widely as possible. The room was spacious and must once have 
been handsome. There was a large bed with a carved wooden headboard, a tall window 
obscured by long velvet curtains and a chandelier thickly coated in dust with candle 
scrubs still resting in its sockets, solid wax banging in frostlike drips. A fine film of dust 
covered the pictures on the walls and the beds headboard; a spiders web stretched 
between the chandelier and the top of the large wooden wardrobe, and as Harry moved 
deeper into the room, he head a scurrying of disturbed mice. 

 The teenage Sirius had plastered the walls with so many posters and pictures that 
little of the walls silvery-gray silk was visible. Harry could only assume that Siriuss 
parents had been unable to remove the Permanent Sticking Charm that kept them on the 
wall because he was sure they would not have appreciated their eldest sons taste in 
decoration. Sirius seemed to have long gone out of his way to annoy his parents. There 
were several large Gryffindor banners, faded scarlet and gold just to underline his 
difference from all the rest of the Slytherin family. There were many pictures of Muggle 
motorcycles, and also (Harry had to admire Siriuss nerve) several posters of bikini-clad 
Muggle girls. Harry could tell that they were Muggles because they remained quite 
stationary within their pictures, faded smiles and glazed eyes frozen on the paper. This 
was in contrast the only Wizarding photograph on the walls which was a picture of four 
Hogwarts students standing arm in arm, laughing at the camera. 

 With a leap of pleasure, Harry recognized his father, his untidy black hair stuck 
up at the back like Harrys, and he too wore glasses. Beside him was Sirius, carelessly 
handsome, his slightly arrogant face so much younger and happier than Harry had ever 
seen it alive. To Siriuss right stood Pettigrew, more than a head shorter, plump and 
watery-eyed, flushed with pleasure at his inclusion in this coolest of gangs, with the 
much-admired rebels that James and Sirius had been. On Jamess left was Lupin, even 
then a little shabby-looking, but he had the same air of delighted surprise at finding 
himself liked and included or was it simply because Harry knew how it had been, that he 
saw these things in the picture? He tried to take it from the wall; it was his now, after all, 
Sirius had left him everything, but it would not budge. Sirius had taken no chances in 
preventing his parents from redecorating his room. 

 Harry looked around at the floor. The sky outside was growing brightest. A shaft 
of light revealed bits of paper, books, and small objects scattered over the carpet. 
Evidently Siriuss bedroom had been reached too, although its contents seemed to have 
been judged mostly, if not entirely, worthless. A few of the books had been shaken 
roughly enough to part company with the covers and sundry pages littered the floor. 


 Harry bent down, picked up a few of the pieces of paper, and examined them. He 
recognized one as a part of an old edition of A History of Magic, by Bathilda Bagshot, 
and another as belonging to a motorcycle maintenance manual. The third was 
handwritten and crumpled. He smoothed it out. 

 

 Dear Padfoot, 

 Thank you, thank you, for Harrys birthday present! It was his favorite by 
far. One year old and already zooming along on a toy broomstick, he looked so pleased 
with himself. Im enclosing a picture so you can see. You know it only rises about two feet 
off the ground but he nearly killed the cat and he smashed a horrible vase Petunia sent 
me for Christmas (no complaints there). Of course James thought it was so funny, says 
hes going to be a great Quidditch player but weve had to pack away all the ornaments 
and make sure we dont take our eyes off him when he gets going. 

 We had a very quiet birthday tea, just us and old Bathilda who has always been 
sweet to us and who dotes on Garry. We were so sorry you couldnt come, but the 
Orders got to come first, and Harrys not old enough to know its his birthday anyway! 
James is getting a bit frustrated shut up here, he tries not to show it but I can tell C also 
Dumbledores still got his Invisibility Cloak, so no chance of little excursions. If you 
could visit, it would cheer him up so much. Wormy was here last weekend. I thought he 
seemed down, but that was probably the next about the McKinnons; I cried all evening 
when I heard. 

 Bathilda drops in most days, shes a fascinating old thing with the most amazing 
stories about Dumbledore. Im not sure hed be pleased if he knew! I dont know how 
much to believe, actually because it seems incredible that Dumbledore 

 

 Harrys extremities seemed to have gone numb. He stood quite still, holding the 
miraculous paper in his nerveless fingers while inside him a kind of quiet eruptions sent 
joy and grief thundering its equal measure through his veins. Lurching to the bed, he sat 
down. 

 He read the letter again, but could not take in any more meaning than he had done 
the first time, and was reduced to staring at the handwriting itself. She had made her gs 
the same way he did. He searched through the letter for every one of them, and each felt 
like a friendly little wave glimpsed from behind a veil. The letter was an incredible 
treasure, proof that Lily Potter had lived, really lived, that her warm hand had once 
moved across this parchment, tracing ink into these letters, these words, words about him, 
Harry, her son. 

 Impatiently brushing away the wetness in his eyes, he reread the letter, this time 
concentrating on the meaning. It was like listening to a half-remembered voice. 

 They had a cat perhaps it had perished, like his parents at Godrics Hollow or 
else fled when there was nobody left to feed it Sirius had bought him his first 
broomstick His parents had known Bathilda Bagshot; had Dumbledore introduced 
them? Dumbledores still got his Invisibility Cloak there was something funny there 

 Harry paused, pondering his mothers words. Why had Dumbledore taken 
Jamess Invisibility Cloak? Harry distinctly remembered his headmaster telling him years 
before, I dont need a cloak to become invisible Perhaps some less gifted Order 


member had needed its assistance, and Dumbledore had acted as a carrier? Harry passed 
on 

 Wormy was here Pettigrew, the traitor, had seemed down had he? Was he 
aware that he was seeing James and Lily alive for the last time? 

 And finally Bathilda again, who told incredible stories about Dumbledore. It 
seems incredible that Dumbledore --- 

 That Dumbledore what? But there were any number of things that would seem 
incredible about Dumbledore; that he had once received bottom marks in a 
Transfiguration test, for instance or had taken up goat charming like Aberforth 

 Harry got to his feet and scanned the floor: Perhaps the rest of the letter was here 
somewhere. He seized papers, treating them in his eagerness, with as little consideration 
as the original searcher, he pulled open drawers, shook out books, stood on a chair to run 
his hand over the top of the wardrobe, and crawled under the bed and armchair. 

 At last, lying facedown on the floor, he spotted what looked like a torn piece of 
paper under the chest of drawers. When he pulled it out, it proved to be most of the 
photograph that Lily had described in her letter. A black-haired baby was zooming in and 
out of the picture on a tiny broom, roaring with laughter, and a pair of legs that must have 
belonged to James was chasing after him. Harry tucked the photograph into his pocket 
with Lilys letter and continued to look for the second sheet. 

 After another quarter of an hour, however he was forced to conclude that the rest 
of his mothers letter was gone. Had it simply been lost in the sixteen years that had 
elapsed since it had been written, or had it been taken by whoever had searched the 
room? Harry read the first sheet again, this time looking for clues as to what might have 
made the second sheet valuable. His toy broomstick could hardly be considered 
interesting to the Death Eaters The only potentially useful thing he could see her was 
possible information on Dumbledore. It seems incredible that Dumbledore C what? 

 Harry? Harry? Harry! 

Im here! he called, Whats happened? 

There was a clatter of footsteps outside the door, and Hermione burst inside. 

We woke up and didnt know where you were! she said breathlessly. She turned 
and shouted over her shoulder, Ron! Ive found him 

Rons annoyed voice echoed distantly from several floors below. 

Good! Tell him from me hes a git! 

Harry dont just disappear, please, we were terrified! Why did you come up here 
anyway? She gazed around the ransacked room. What have you been doing? 

Look what Ive just found 

He held out his mothers letter. Hermione took it out and read it while Harry 
watched her. When she reached the end of the page she looked up at him. 

Oh Harry 
And theres this too 

He handed her the torn photograph, and Hermione smiled at the baby zooming in 
and out of sight on the toy broom. 

Ive been looking for the rest of the letter, Harry said, but its not here. 

Hermione glanced around. 

Did you make all this mess, or was some of it done when you got here? 

Someone had searched before me, said Harry. 


I thought so. Every room I looked into on the way up had been disturbed. What 
were they after, do you think? 

Information on the Order, if it was Snape. 

But youd think hed already have all he needed. I mean was in the Order, wasnt 
he? 

Well then, said Harry, keen to discuss his theory, what about information on 
Dumbledore? The second page of the letter, for instance. You know this Bathilda my 
mum mentions, you know who she is? 

Who? 

Bathilda Bagshot, the author of C 

A History of Magic, said Hermione, looking interested. So your parents knew 
her? She was an incredible magic historian. 

And shes still alive, said Harry, and she lives in Godrics Hollow. Rons 
Auntie Muriel was talking about her at the wedding. She knew Dumbledores family too. 
Be pretty interesting to talk to, wouldnt she? There was a little too much understanding 
in the smile Hermione gave him for Harrys liking. He took back the letter and the 
photograph and tucked them inside the pouch around his neck, so as not to have to look at 
her and give himself away. I understand why youd love to talk to her about your mum 
and dad, and Dumbledore too, said Hermione. But that wouldnt really help us in our 
search for the Horcruxes, would it? Harry did not answer, and she rushed on, Harry, I 
know you really want to go to Godrics Hollow, but Im scared. Im scared at how easily 
those Death Eaters found us yesterday. It just makes me feel more than ever that we 
ought to avoid the place where your parents are buried, Im sure theyd be expecting you 
to visit it. 

Its not just that, Harry said, still avoiding looking at her, Muriel said stuff 
about Dumbledore at the wedding. I want to know the truth 

 He told Hermione everything that Muriel had told him. When he had finished, 
Hermione said, Of course, I can see why thats upset you, Harry C 

 Im not upset, he lied, Id just like to know whether or not its true or C 

 Harry do you really think youll get the truth from a malicious old woman like 
Muriel, or from Rita Skeeter? How can you believe them? You knew Dumbledore! 

 I thought I did, he muttered. 

 But you know how much truth there was in everything Rita wrote about you! 
Doge is right, how can you let these people tarnish your memories of Dumbledore? 

 He looked away, trying not to betray the resentment he felt. There it was again: 
Choose what to believe. He wanted the truth. Why was everybody so determined that he 
should not get it? 

 Shall we go down to the kitchen? Hermione suggested after a little pause. Find 
something for breakfast? 

 He agreed, but grudgingly, and followed her out onto the landing and past the 
second door that led off it. There were deep scratch marks in the paintwork below a small 
sign that he had not noticed in the dark. He passed at the top of the stairs to read it. It was 
a pompous little sign, neatly lettered by hand the sort of thing that Percy Weasley might 
have stuck on his bedroom door. 

 

Do Not Enter 


Without the Express Permission of 

Regulus Arcturus Black 

 

Excitement trickled through Harry, but he was not immediately sure why. He read the 
sign again. Hermione was already a flight of stairs below him. 

 Hermione, he said, and he was surprised that his voice was so calm. Come 
back up here. 

 Whats the matter? 

 R.A.B. I think Ive found him. 

 There was a gasp, and then Hermione ran back up the stairs. 

 In your mums letter? But I didnt see C 

 Harry shook his head, pointing at Reguluss sign. She read it, then clutched 
Harrys arm so tightly that he winced. 

 Siriuss brother? she whispered. 

 He was a Death Eater, said Harry. Sirius told me about him, he joined up when 
he was really young and then got cold feet and tried to leave C so they killed him. 

 That fits! gasped Hermione. If he was a Death Eater he had access to 
Voldemort, and if he became disenchanted, then he would have wanted to bring 
Voldemort down! 

 She released Harry, leaned over the banister, and screamed, Ron! RON! Get up 
here, quick! 

 Ron appeared, panting, a minute later, his wand ready in his hand. 

 Whats up? If its massive spiders again I want breakfast before I C 

 He frowned at the sign on Reguluss door, in which Hermione was silently 
pointing. 

 What? That was Siriuss brother, wasnt it? Regulus Arcturus  Regulus  
R.A.B.! The locket C you dont reckon -- ? 

 Lets find out, said Harry. He pushed the door: It was locked. Hermione pointed 
her wand at the handle and said, Alohamora. There was a click, and the door swung 
open. 

 They moved over the threshold together, gazing around. Reguluss bedroom was 
slightly smaller than Siriuss, though it had the same sense of former grandeur. Whereas 
Sirius had sought to advertise his diffidence from the rest of the family, Regulus had 
striven to emphasize the opposite. The Slytherin colors of emerald and silver were 
everywhere, draping the bed, the walls, and the windows. The Black family crest was 
painstakingly painted over the bed, along with its motto, TOUJOURS PUR. Beneath this 
was a collection of yellow newspaper cuttings, all stuck together to make a ragged 
collage. Hermione crossed the room to examine them. 

 Theyre all about Voldemort, she said. Regulus seems to have been a fan for a 
few years before he joined the Death Eaters  

 A little puff of dust rose from the bedcovers as she sat down to read the clippings. 
Harry, meanwhile, had noticed another photograph: a Hogwarts Quidditch team was 
smiling and waving out of the frame. He moved closer and saw the snakes emblazoned 
on their chests: Slytherins. Regulus was instantly recognizable as the boy sitting in the 
middle of the front row: He had the same dark hair and slightly haughty look of his 
brother, though he was smaller, slighter, and rather less handsome than Sirius had been. 


 He played Seeker, said Harry. 

What? said Hermione vaguely; she was still immersed in Voldemorts press 
clippings. 

 Hes sitting in the middle of the front row, thats where the Seeker  Never 
mind, said Harry, realizing that nobody was listening. Ron was on his hands and knees, 
searching under the wardrobe. Harry looked around the room for likely hiding places and 
approached the desk. Yet again, somebody had searched before them. The drawers 
contents had been turned over recently, the dust disturbed, but there was nothing of value 
there: old quills, out-of-date textbooks that bore evidence of being roughly handled, a 
recently smashed ink bottle, its sticky residue covering the contents of the drawer. 

 Theres an easier way, said Hermione, as Harry wiped his inky fingers on his 
jeans. She raised her wand and said, Accio Locket! 

 Nothing happened. Ron, who had been searching the folds of the faded curtains, 
looked disappointed. 

 Is that it, then? Its not here? 

 Oh, it could still be here, but under counter-enchantments, said Hermione. 
Charms to prevent it from being summoned magically, you know. 

 Like Voldemort put on the stone basin in the cave, said Harry, remembering 
how he had been unable to Summon the fake locket. 

 How are we supposed to find it then? asked Ron. 

 We search manually, said Hermione. 

 Thats a good idea, said Ron, rolling his eyes, and he resumed his examination 
of the curtains. 

 They combed every inch of the room for more than an hour, but were forced, 
finally, to conclude that the locket was not there. 

 The sun had risen now; its light dazzled them even through the grimy landing 
windows. 

 It could be somewhere else in the house, though, said Hermione in a rallying 
tone as they walked back downstairs. As Harry and Ron had become more discouraged, 
she seemed to have become more determined. Whether hed manage to destroy it or not, 
hed want to keep it hidden from Voldemort, wouldnt he? Remember all those awful 
things we had to get rid of when we were here last time? That clock that shot bolts at 
everyone and those old robes that tried to strangle Ron; Regulus might have put them 
there to protect the lockets hiding place, even though we didnt realize it at  at   

 Harry and Ron looked at her. She was standing with one foot in midair, with the 
dumbstruck look of one who had just been Obliviated: her eyes had even drifted out of 
focus. 

  at the time, she finished in a whisper. 

 Something wrong? asked Ron. 

 There was a locket. 

 What? said Harry and Ron together. 

 In the cabinet in the drawing room. Nobody could open it. And we  we   

 Harry felt as though a brick had slid down through his chest into his stomach. He 
remembered. He had even handled the thing as they passed it around, each trying in turn 
to pry it open. It had been tossed into a sack of rubbish, along with the snuffbox of 
Wartcap powder and the music box that had made everyone sleepy  


 Kreacher nicked loads of things back from us, said Harry. It was the only 
chance, the only slender hope left to them, and he was going to cling to it until forced to 
let go. He had a whole stash of stuff in his cupboard in the kitchen. Cmon. 

 He ran down the stairs taking two steps at a time, the other two thundering along 
in his wake. They made so much noise that they woke the portrait of Siriuss mother as 
they passed through the hall. 

 Filth! Mudbloods! Scum! she screamed after them as they dashed down into the 
basement kitchen and slammed the door behind them. Harry ran the length of the room, 
skidded to a halt at the door of Kreachers cupboard, and wrenched it open. There was the 
nest of dirty old blankets in which the house-elf had once slept, but they were not longer 
glittering with the trinkets Kreacher had salvaged. The only thing there was an old copy 
of Natures Nobility: A Wizarding Genealogy. Refusing to believe his eyes, Harry 
snatched up the blankets and shook them. A dead mouse fell out and rolled dismally 
across the floor. Ron groaned as he threw himself into a kitchen chair; Hermione closed 
her eyes. 

 Its not over yet, said Harry, and he raised his voice and called, Kreacher! 

 There was a loud crack and the house elf that Harry had so reluctantly inherited 
from Sirius appeared out of nowhere in front of the cold and empty fireplace: tiny, half 
human-sized, his pale skin hanging off him in folds, white hair sprouting copiously from 
his batlike ears. He was still wearing the filthy rag in which they had first met him, and 
the contemptuous look he bent upon Harry showed that his attitude to his change of 
ownership had altered no more than his outfit. 

 Master, croaked Kreacher in his bullfrogs voice, and he bowed low; muttering 
to his knees, back in my Mistresss old house with the blood-traitor Weasley and the 
Mudblood C 

 I forbid you to call anyone blood traitor or Mudblood, growled Harry. He 
would have found Kreacher, with his snoutlike nose and bloodshot eyes, a distinctively 
unlovable object even if the elf had not betrayed Sirius to Voldemort. 

 Ive got a question for you, said Harry, his heart beating rather fast as he looked 
down at the elf, and I order you to answer it truthfully. Understand? 

 Yes, Master, said Kreacher, bowing low again. Harry saw his lips moving 
soundlessly, undoubtedly framing the insults he was now forbidden to utter. 

 Two years ago, said Harry, his heart now hammering against his ribs, there 
was a big gold locket in the drawing room upstairs. We threw it out. Did you steal it 
back? 

 There was a moments silence, during which Kreacher straightened up to look 
Harry full in the face. Then he said, Yes. 

 Where is it now? asked Harry jubilantly as Ron and Hermione looked gleeful. 

 Kreacher closed his eyes as though he could not bear to see their reactions to his 
next word. 

 Gone. 

 Gone? echoed Harry, elation floating out of him, What do you mean, its 
gone? 

 The elf shivered. He swayed. 

 Kreacher, said Harry fiercely, I order you C 


 Mundungus Fletcher, croaked the elf, his eyes still tight shut. Mundungus 
Fletcher stole it all; Miss Bellas and Miss Cissys pictures, my Mistresss gloves, the 
Order of Merlin, First Class, the goblets with the family crest, and C and C  

 Kreacher was gulping for air: His hollow chest was rising and falling rapidly, then 
his eyes flew open and he uttered a bloodcurdling scream. 

 and the locket, Master Reguluss locket. Kreacher did wrong, Kreacher failed 
in his orders! 

 Harry reacted instinctively: As Kreacher lunged for the poker standing in the grate, 
he launched himself upon the elf, flattening him. Hermiones scream mingled with 
Kreachers but Harry bellowed louder than both of them: Kreacher, I order you to stay 
still! 

 He felt the elf freeze and released him. Kreacher lay flat on the cold stone floor, 
tears gushing from his sagging eyes. 

 Harry, let him up! Hermione whispered. 

 So he can beat himself up with the poker? snorted Harry, kneeling beside the elf. 
I dont think so. Right. Kreacher, I want the truth: How do you know Mundungus 
Fletcher stole the locket? 

 Kreacher saw him! gasped the elf as tears poured over his snout and into his 
mouth full of graying teeth. Kreacher saw him coming out of Kreachers cupboard with 
his hands full of Kreachers treasures. Kreacher told the sneak thief to stop, but 
Mundungus Fletcher laughed and r-ran   

 You called the locket Master Reguluss, said Harry. Why? Where did it 
come from? What did Regulus have to do with it? Kreacher, sit up and tell me everything 
you know about that locket, and everything Regulus had to do with it! 

 The elf sat up, curled into a ball, placed his wet face between his knees, and began 
to rock backward and forward. When he spoke, his voice was muffled but quite distinct 
in the silent, echoing kitchen. 

 Master Sirius ran away, good riddance, for he was a bad boy and broke my 
Mistresss heart with his lawless ways. But Master Regulus had proper order; he knew 
what was due to the name of Black and the dignity of his pure blood. For years he talked 
of the Dark Lord, who was going to bring the wizards out of hiding to rule the Muggles 
and the Muggle-borns  and when he was sixteen years old, Master Regulus joined the 
Dark Lord. So proud, so proud, so happy to serve  

 And one day, a year after he joined, Master Regulus came down to the kitchen to 
see Kreacher. Master Regulus always liked Kreacher. And Master Regulus said  he 
said  

 The old elf rocked faster than ever. 

  he said that the Dark Lord required an elf. 

 Voldemort needed an elf? Harry repeated, looking around at Ron and Hermione, 
who looked just as puzzled as he did. 

 Oh yes, moaned Kreacher. And Master Regulus had volunteered Kreacher. It 
was an honor, said Master Regulus, an honor for him and for Kreacher, who must be sure 
to do whatever the Dark Lord ordered him to do  and then to c-come home. 

 Kreacher rocked still faster, his breath coming in sobs. 


 So Kreacher went to the Dark Lord. The Dark Lord did not tell Kreacher what 
they were to do, but took Kreacher with him to a cave beside the sea. And beyond the 
cave was a cavern, and in the cavern was a great black lake   

 The hairs on the back of Harrys neck stood up. Kreachers croaking voice 
seemed to come to him from across the dark water. He saw what had happened as clearly 
as though he had been present. 

  There was a boat  

 Of course there had been a boat; Harry knew the boat, ghostly green and tiny, 
bewitched so as to carry one wizard and one victim toward the island in the center. This, 
then, was how Voldemort had tested the defenses surrounding the Horcrux, by borrowing 
a disposable creature, a house-elf 

 There was a b-basin full of potion on the island. The D-Dark Lord made 
Kreacher drink it  

 The elf quaked from head to foot. 

 Kreacher drank, and as he drank he saw terrible thing  Kreachers insides 
burned  Kreacher cried for Master Regulus to save him, he cried for his Mistress Black, 
but the Dark Lord only laughed  He made Kreacher drink all the potion  He dropped 
a locket into the empty basin  He filled it with more potion. 

 And then the Dark Lord sailed away, leaving Kreacher on the island   

 Harry could see it happening. He watched Voldemorts white, snakelike face 
vanishing into darkness, those red eyes fixed pitilessly on the thrashing elf whose death 
would occur within minutes, whenever he succumbed to the desperate thirst that the 
burning poison caused its victim  But here, Harrys imagination could go no further, 
for he could not see how Kreacher had escaped. 

 Kreacher needed water, he crawled to the islands edge and he drank from the 
black lake  and hands, dead hands, came out of the water and dragged Kreacher under 
the surface   

 How did you get away? Harry asked, and he was not surprised to hear himself 
whispering. 

 Kreacher raised his ugly head and looked Harry with his great, bloodshot eyes. 

 Master Regulus told Kreacher to come back, he said. 

 I know C but how did you escape the Inferi? 

 Kreacher did not seem to understand. 

 Master Regulus told Kreacher to come back, he repeated. 

 I know, but C  

 Well, its obvious, isnt it, Harry? said Ron. He Disapparated! 

 But  you couldnt Apparate in and out of that cave, said Harry, otherwise 
Dumbledore C  

 Elf magic isnt like wizards magic, is it? said Ron, I mean, they can Apparate 
and Disapparate in and out of Hogwarts when we cant. 

 There was a silence as Harry digested this. How could Voldemort have made such 
a mistake? But even as he thought this, Hermione spoke, and her voice was icy. 

 Of course, Voldemort would have considered the ways of house-elves far 
beneath his notice  It would never have occurred to him that they might have magic 
that he didnt. 


 The house-elfs highest law is his Masters bidding, intoned Kreacher. 
Kreacher was told to come home, so Kreacher came home   

 Well, then, you did what you were told, didnt you? said Hermione kindly. 
You didnt disobey orders at all! 

 Kreacher shook his head, rocking as fast as ever. 

 So what happened when you got back? Harry asked. What did Regulus say 
when you told him what happened? 

 Master Regulus was very worried, very worried, croaked Kreacher. Master 
Regulus told Kreacher to stay hidden and not to leave the house. And then  it was a 
little while later  Master Regulus came to find Kreacher in his cupboard one night, and 
Master Regulus was strange, not as he usually was, disturbed in his mind, Kreacher could 
tell  and he asked Kreacher to take him to the cave, the cave where Kreacher had gone 
with the Dark Lord   

 And so they had set off. Harry could visualize them quite clearly, the frightened 
old elf and the thin, dark Seeker who had so resembled Sirius  Kreacher knew how to 
open the concealed entrance to the underground cavern, knew how to raise the tiny boat: 
this time it was his beloved Regulus who sailed with him to the island with its basin of 
poison  

 And he made you drink the poison? said Harry, disgusted. 

 But Kreacher shook his head and wept. Hermiones hands leapt to her mouth: She 
seemed to have understood something. 

 M-Master Regulus took from his pocket a locket like the one the Dark Lord 
had, said Kreacher, tears pouring down either side of his snoutlike nose. And he told 
Kreacher to take it and, when the basin was empty, to switch the lockets  

 Kreachers sobs came in great rasps now; Harry had to concentrate hard to 
understand him. 

 And he order C Kreacher to leave C without him. And he told Kreacher C to go 
home C and never to tell my Mistress C what he had done C but to destroy C the first 
locket. And he drank C all the potion C and Kreacher swapped the lockets C and watched 
 as Master Regulus  was dragged beneath the water  and   

 Oh, Kreacher! wailed Hermione, who was crying. She dropped to her knees 
beside the elf and tried to hug him. At once he was on his feet, cringing away from her, 
quite obviously repulsed. 

 The Mudblood touched Kreacher, he will not allow it, what would his Mistress 
say? 

 I told you not to call her Mudblood! snarled Harry, but the elf was already 
punishing himself. He fell to the ground and banged his forehead on the floor. 

 Stop him C stop him! Hermione cried. Oh, dont you see now how sick it is, 
the way theyve got to obey? 

 Kreacher C stop, stop! shouted Harry. 

 The elf lay on the floor, panting and shivering, green mucus glistening around his 
snot, a bruise already blooming on his pallid forehead where he had struck himself, his 
eyes swollen and bloodshot and swimming in tears. Harry had never seen anything so 
pitiful. 

 So you brought the locket home, he said relentlessly, for he was determined to 
know the full story. And you tried to destroy it? 


 Nothing Kreacher did made any mark upon it, moaned the elf. Kreacher tried 
everything, everything he knew, but nothing, nothing would work  So many powerful 
spells upon the casing, Kreacher was sure the way to destroy it was to get inside it, but it 
would not open  Kreacher punished himself, he tried again, he punished himself, he 
tried again. Kreacher failed to obey orders, Kreacher could not destroy the locket! And 
his mistress was mad with grief, because Master Regulus had disappeared and Kreacher 
could not tell her what had happened, no, because Master Regulus had f-f-forbidden him 
to tell any of the f-f-family what happened in the c-cave  

 Kreacher began to sob so hard that there were no more coherent words. Tears 
flowed down Hermiones cheeks as she watched Kreacher, but she did not dare touch 
him again. Even Ron, who was no fan of Kreachers, looked troubled. Harry sat back on 
his heels and shook his head, trying to clear it. 

 I dont understand you, Kreacher, he said finally. Voldemort tried to kill you, 
Regulus died to bring Voldemort down, but you were still happy to betray Sirius to 
Voldemort? You were happy to go to Narcissa and Bellatrix, and pass information to 
Voldemort through them   

 Harry, Kreacher doesnt think like that, said Hermione, wiping her eyes on the 
back of her hand. Hes a slave; house-elves are used to bad, even brutal treatment; what 
Voldemort did to Kreacher wasnt that far out of the common way. What do wizard wars 
mean to an elf like Kreacher? Hes loyal to people who are kind to him, and Mrs. Black 
must have been, and Regulus certainly was, so he served them willingly and parroted 
their beliefs. I know what youre going to say, she went on as Harry began to protest, 
that Regulus changed his mind  but he doesnt seem to have explained that to 
Kreacher, does he? And I think I know why. Kreacher and Reguluss family were all 
safest if they kept to the old pure-blood line. Regulus was trying to protect them all. 

 Sirius C  

 Sirius was horrible to Kreacher, Harry, and its no good looking like that, you 
know its true. Kreacher had been alone for such a long time when Sirius came to live 
here, and he was probably starving for a bit of affection. Im sure Miss Cissy and Miss 
Bella were perfectly lovely to Kreacher when he turned up, so he did them a favor and 
told them everything they wanted to know. Ive said all along that wizards would pay for 
how they treat house-elves. Well, Voldemort did  and so did Sirius. 

 Harry had no retort. As he watched Kreacher sobbing on the floor, he 
remembered what Dumbledore had said to him, mere hours after Siriuss death: I do not 
think Sirius ever saw Kreacher as a being with feelings as acute as a humans  

 Kreacher, said Harry after a while, when you feel up to it, er  please sit up. 

 It was several minutes before Kreacher hiccupped himself into silence. Then he 
pushed himself into a sitting position again, rubbing his knuckles into his eyes like a 
small child. 

 Kreacher, I am going to ask you to do something, said Harry. He glanced at 
Hermione for assistance. He wanted to give the order kindly, but at the same time, he 
could not pretend that it was not an order. However, the change in his tone seemed to 
have gained her approval: She smiled encouragingly. 

 Kreacher, I want you, please, to go and find Mundungus Fletcher. We need to 
find out where the locket C where Master Reguluss locket it. Its really important. We 


want to finish the work Master Regulus started, we want to C er C ensure that he didnt 
die in vain. 

 Kreacher dropped his fists and looked up at Harry. 

 Find Mundungus Fletcher? he croaked. 

 And bring him here, to Grimmauld Place, said Harry. Do you think you could 
do that for us? 

 As Kreacher nodded and got to his feet, Harry had a sudden inspiration. He pulled 
out Hagrids purse and took out the fake Horcrux, the substitute locket in which Regulus 
had placed the note to Voldemort. 

 Kreacher, Id, er, like you to have this, he said, pressing the locket into the elfs 
hand. This belonged to Regulus and Im sure hed want you to have it as a token of 
gratitude for what you 

 Overkill, mate, said Ron as the elf took one look at the locket, let out a howl of 
shock and misery, and threw himself back onto the ground. 

 It took them nearly half an hour to calm down Kreacher, who was so overcome to 
be presented with a Black family heirloom for his very own that he was too weak at the 
knees to stand properly. When finally he was able to totter a few steps they all 
accompanied him to his cupboard, watched him tuck up the locket safely in his dirty 
blankets, and assured him that they would make its protection their first priority while he 
was away. He then made two low bows to Harry and Ron, and even gave a funny little 
spasm in Hermiones direction that might have been an attempt at a respectful salute, 
before Disapparating with the usual loud crack. 

 

Chapter Eleven 

The Bribe 

 

If Kreacher could escape a lake full of Inferi, Harry was confident that the capture 
of Mundungus would take a few hours at most, and he prowled the house all morning in a 
state of high anticipation. However, Kreacher did not return that morning or even that 
afternoon. By nightfall, Harry felt discouraged and anxious, and a supper composed 
largely of moldy bread, upon which Hermione had tried a variety of unsuccessful 
Transfigurations, did nothing to help. 

Kreacher did not return the following day, nor the day after that. However, two 
cloaked men had appeared in the square outside number twelve, and they remained there 
into the night, gazing in the direction of the house that they could not see. 

Death Eaters, for sure, said Ron, as he, Harry, and Hermione watched from the 
drawing room windows. Reckon they know were in here? 

I dont think so, said Hermione, though she looked frightened, or theyd have 
sent Snape in after us, wouldnt they? 

Dyou reckon hes been in here and has his tongue tied by Moodys curse? 
asked Ron. 

Yes, said Hermione, otherwise hed have been able to tell that lot how to get in, 
wouldnt he? But theyre probably watching to see whether we turn up. They know that 
Harry owns the house, after all. 


How do they --? began Harry. 

Wizarding wills are examined by the Ministry, remember? Theyll know Sirius 
left you the place. 

The presence of the Death Eaters outside increased the ominous mood inside 
number twelve. They had not heard a word form anyone beyond Grimmauld Place since 
Mr. Weasleys Patronus, and the strain was starting to tell. Restless and irritable, Ron had 
developed an annoying habit of playing with the Deluminator in his pocket; This 
particularly infuriated Hermione, who was whiling away the wait for Kreacher by 
studying The Tales of Beedle the Bard and did not appreciate the way the lights kept 
flashing on and off. 

Will you stop it! she cried on the third evening of Kreachers absence, as all the 
light was sucked from the drawing room yet again. 

Sorry, sorry! said Ron, clicking the Deluminator and restoring the lights. I 
dont know Im doing it! 

Well, cant you find something useful to occupy yourself? 

What, like reading kids stories? 

Dumbledore left me this book, Ron C 

and he left me the Deluminator, maybe Im supposed to use it! 

Unable to stand the bickering, Harry slipped out of the room unnoticed by either 
of them. He headed downstairs toward the kitchen, which he kept visiting because he was 
sure that was where Kreacher was most likely to reappear. Halfway down the flight of 
stairs into the hall, however, he heard a tap on the front door, then metallic clicks and the 
grinding of the chain. 

Every nerve in his body seemed to tauten: He pulled out his wand, moved into the 
shadows beside the decapitated elf heads, and waited. The door opened: He saw a 
glimpse of the lamplit square outside, and a cloaked figure edged into the hall and closed 
the door behind it. The intruder took a step forward, and Moodys voice asked, Severus 
Snape? Then the dust figure rose from the end of the hall and rushed him, raising its 
dead hand. 

It was not I who killed you, Albus, said a quiet voice. 

The jinx broke: The dust-figure exploded again, and it was impossible to make 
out the newcomer through the dense gray cloud it left behind. 

Harry pointed the wand into the middle of it. 

Dont move! 

He had forgotten the portrait of Mrs. Black: At the sound of his yell, the curtains 
hiding her flew open and she began to scream, Mudbloods and filth dishonoring my 
house C 

Ron and Hermione came crashing down the stairs behind Harry, wands pointing, 
like his, at the unknown man now standing with his arms raised in the hall below. 

Hold your fire, its me, Remus! 

Oh, thank goodness, said Hermione weakly, pointing her wand at Mrs. Black 
instead; with a bang, the curtains swished shut again and silence fell. Ron too lowered his 
wand, but Harry did not. 

Show yourself! he called back. 

Lupin moved forward into the lamplight, hands still held high in a gesture of 
surrender. 


I am Remus John Lupin, werewolf, sometimes known as Moony, one of the four 
creators of the Marauders Map, married to Nymphadora, usually known as Tonks, and I 
taught you how to produce a Patronus, Harry, which takes the form of a stag. 

Oh, all right, said Harry, lowering his wand, but I had to check, didnt I? 

Speaking as your ex-Defense Against the Dark Arts teacher, I quite agree that 
you had to check. Ron, Hermione, you shouldnt be so quick to lower your defenses. 

They ran down the stairs towards him. Wrapped in a thick black traveling cloak, 
he looked exhausted, but pleased to see them. 

No sign of Severus, then? he asked. 

No, said Harry. Whats going on? Is everyone okay? 

Yes, said Lupin, but were all being watched. There are a couple of Death 
Eaters in the square outside C 

We know C 

I had to Apparate very precisely onto the top step outside the front door to be 
sure that they would not see me. They cant know youre in here or Im sure theyd have 
more people out there; theyre staking out everywhere thats got any connection with you, 
Harry. Lets go downstairs, theres a lot to tell you, and I want to know what happened 
after you left the Burrow. 

They descended into the kitchen, where Hermione pointed her wand at the grate. 
A fire sprang up instantly: It gave the illusion of coziness to the stark stone walls and 
glistened off the long wooden table. Lupin pulled a few butterbeers from beneath his 
traveling cloak and they sat down. 

Id have been here three days ago but I needed to shake off the Death Eater 
tailing me, said Lupin. So, you came straight here after the wedding? 

No, said Harry, only after we ran into a couple of Death Eaters in a caf on 
Tottenham Court Road. 

Lupin slopped most of his butterbeer down his front. 

What? 

They explained what had happened; when they had finished, Lupin looked aghast. 

But how did they find you so quickly? Its impossible to track anyone who 
Apparates, unless you grab hold of them as they disappear. 

And it doesnt seem likely they were just strolling down Tottenham Court Road 
at the time, does it? said Harry. 

We wondered, said Hermione tentatively, whether Harry could still have the 
Trace on him? 

Impossible, said Lupin. Ron looked smug, and Harry felt hugely relieved. 
Apart from anything else, theyd know for sure Harry was here if he still had the Trace 
on him, wouldnt they? But I cant see how they could have tracked you to Tottenham 
Court Road, thats worrying, really worrying. 

He looked disturbed, but as far as Harry was concerned, that question could wait. 

Tell us what happened after we left, we havent heard a thing since Rons dad 
told us the family was safe. 

Well, Kingsley saved us, said Lupin. Thanks to his warning most of the 
wedding guests were able to Disapparate before they arrived. 

Were they Death Eaters or Ministry people? interjected Hermione. 


A mixture; but to all intents and purposes theyre the same thing now, said 
Lupin. There were about a dozen of them, but they didnt know you were there, Harry. 
Arthur heard a rumor that they tried to torture your whereabouts out of Scrimgeour before 
they killed him; if its true, he didnt give you away. 

Harry looked at Ron and Hermione; their expressions reflected the mingled shock 
and gratitude he felt. He had never liked Scrimgeour much, but if what Lupin said was 
true, the mans final act had been to try to protect Harry. 

The Death Eaters searched the Burrow from top to bottom, Lupin went on. 
They found the ghoul, but didnt want to get too close C and then they interrogated those 
of us who remained for hours. They were trying to get information on you, Harry, but of 
course nobody apart from the Order knew that you had been there. 

At the same time that they were smashing up the wedding, more Death Eaters 
were forcing their way into every Order-connected house in the country. No deaths, he 
added quickly, forestalling the question, but they were rough. They burned down 
Dedalus Diggles house, but as you know he wasnt there, and they used the Cruciarus 
Curse on Tonkss family. Again, trying to find out where you went after you visited them. 
Theyre all right C shaken, obviously, but otherwise okay. 

The Death Eaters got through all those protective charms? 

Harry asked, remembering how effective these had been on the night he had 
crashed in Tonkss parents garden. 

What youve got to realize, Harry, is that the Death Eaters have got the full 
might of the Ministry on their side now, said Lupin. Theyve got the power to perform 
brutal spells without fear of identification or arrest. They managed to penetrate every 
defensive spell wed cast against them, and once inside, they were completely open about 
why theyd come. 

And are they bothering to give an excuse for torturing Harrys whereabouts out 
of people? asked Hermione, an edge to her voice. 

Well, Lupin said. He hesitated, then pulled out a folded copy of the Daily 
Prophet. 

Here, he said, pushing it across the table to Harry, youll know sooner or later 
anyway. Thats their pretext for going after you. 

Harry smoothed out the paper. A huge photograph of his own face filled the front 
page. He read the headline over it: 

 

 WANTED FOR QUESTIONING ABOUT 

 THE DEATH OF ALBUS DUMBLEDORE 

 

Ron and Hermione gave roars of outrage, but Harry said nothing. He pushed the 
newspaper away; he did not want to read anymore: He knew what it would say. Nobody 
but those who had been on top of the tower when Dumbledore died knew who had really 
killed him and, as Rita Skeeter had already told the Wizarding world, Harry had been 
seen running from the place moments after Dumbledore had fallen. 

Im sorry, Harry, Lupin said. 

So Death Eaters have taken over the Daily Prophet too? asked Hermione 
furiously. 

Lupin nodded. 


But surely people realize whats going on? 

The coup has been smooth and virtually silent, said Lupin. 

The official version of Scrimgeours murder is that he resigned; he has been 
replaced by Pius Thicknesse, who is under the Imperius Curse. 

Why didnt Voldemort declare himself Minister of Magic? asked Ron. 

Lupin laughed. 

He doesnt need to, Ron. Effectively, he is the Minister, but why should he sit 
behind a desk at the Ministry? His puppet, Thicknesse, is taking care of everyday 
business, leaving Voldemort free to extend his power beyond the Ministry. 

Naturally many people have deduced what has happened: There has been such a 
dramatic change in Ministry policy in the last few days, and many are whispering that 
Voldemort must be behind it. However, that is the point: They whisper. They darent 
confide in each other, not knowing whom to trust; they are scared to speak out, in case 
their suspicions are true and their families are targeted. Yes, Voldemort is playing a very 
clever game. Declaring himself might have provoked open rebellion: Remaining masked 
has created confusion, uncertainty, and fear. 

And this dramatic change in Ministry policy, said Harry, involves warning the 
Wizarding world against me instead of Voldemort? 

Thats certainly a part of it, said Lupin, and it is a masterstroke. Now that 
Dumbledore is dead, you C the Boy Who Lived C were sure to be the symbol and rallying 
point for any resistance to Voldemort. But by suggesting that you had a hand in the old 
hats death, Voldemort has not only set a price upon your head, but sown doubt and fear 
amongst many who would have defended you. 

Meanwhile, the Ministry has started moving against Muggle-borns. 

Lupin pointed at the Daily Prophet. 

Look at page two. 

Hermione turned the pages with much the same expression of distaste she had 
when handling Secrets of the Darkest Art. 

Muggle-born Register! she read aloud. The Ministry of Magic is undertaking 
a survey of so-called Muggle-borns the better to understand how they came to possess 
magical secrets. 

Recent research undertaken by the Department of Mysteries reveals that magic 
can only be passed from person to person when Wizards reproduce. Where no proven 
Wizarding ancestry exists, therefore, the so-called Muggle-born is likely to have obtained 
magical power by theft or force. 

The Ministry is determined to root out such usurpers of magical power, and to 
this end has issued an invitation to every so-called Muggle-born to present themselves for 
interview by the newly appointed Muggle-born Registration Commission. 

People wont let this happen, said Ron. 

It is happening, Ron, said Lupin. Muggle-borns are being rounded up as we 
speak. 

But how are they supposed to have stolen magic? said Ron. Its mental, if 
you could steal magic there wouldnt be any Squibs, would there? 

I know, said Lupin. Nevertheless, unless you can prove that you have at least 
one close Wizarding relative, you are now deemed to have obtained your magical power 
illegally and must suffer the punishment. 


Ron glanced at Hermione, then said, What if purebloods and halfbloods swear a 
Muggle-borns part of their family? Ill tell everyone Hermiones my cousin C 

Hermione covered Rons hand with hers and squeezed it. 

Thank you, Ron, but I couldnt let you C 

You wont have a choice, said Ron fiercely, gripping her hand back. Ill teach 
you my family tree so you can answer questions on it. 

Hermione gave a shaky laugh. 

Ron, as were on the run with Harry Potter, the most wanted person in the 
country, I dont think it matters. If I was going back to school it would be different. 
Whats Voldemort planning for Hogwarts? she asked Lupin. 

Attendance is now compulsory for every young witch and wizard, he replied. 
That was announced yesterday. Its a change, because it was never obligatory before. Of 
course, nearly every witch and wizard in Britain has been educated at Hogwarts, but their 
parents had the right to teach them at home or send them abroad if they preferred. This 
way, Voldemort will have the whole Wizarding population under his eye from a young 
age. And its also another way of weeding out Muggle-borns, because students must be 
given Blood Status C meaning that they have proven to the Ministry that they are of 
Wizard descent C before they are allowed to attend. 

Harry felt sickened and angry: At this moment, excited eleven-year-olds would be 
poring over stacks of newly purchased spell-books, unaware that they would never see 
Hogwarts, perhaps never see their families again either. 

Its . . . its . . . he muttered, struggling to find words that did justice to the 
horror of his thoughts, but Lupin said quietly, 

I know. 

Lupin hesitated. 

Ill understand if you cant confirm this, Harry, but the Order is under the 
impression that Dumbledore left you a mission. 

He did, Harry replied, and Ron and Hermione are in on it and theyre coming 
with me. 

Can you confide in me what the mission is? 

Harry looked into the prematurely lined face, framed in thick but graying hair, 
and wished that he could return a different answer. 

I cant, Remus, Im sorry. If Dumbledore didnt tell you I dont think I can. 

I thought youd say that, said Lupin, looking disappointed. But I might still be 
of some use to you. You know what I am and what I can do. I could come with you to 
provide protection. There would be no need to tell me exactly what you were up to. 

Harry hesitated. It was a very tempting offer, though how they would be able to 
keep their mission secret from Lupin if he were with them all the time he could not 
imagine. 

Hermione, however, looked puzzled. 

But what about Tonks? she asked. 

What about her? said Lupin. 

Well, said Hermione, frowning, youre married! How does she feel about you 
going away with us? 

Tonks will be perfectly safe, said Lupin, Shell be at her parents house. 


There was something strange in Lupins tone, it was almost cold. There was also 
something odd in the idea of Tonks remaining hidden at her parents house; she was, after 
all, a member of the Order and, as far as Harry knew, was likely to want to be in the thick 
of the action. 

Remus, said Hermione tentatively, is everything all right . . . you know . . . 
between you and C  

Everything is fine, thank you, said Lupin pointedly. 

Hermione turned pink. There was another pause, an awkward and embarrassed 
one, and then Lupin said, with an air of forcing himself to admit something unpleasant, 
Tonks is going to have a baby. 

Oh, how wonderful! squealed Hermione. 

Excellent! said Ron enthusiastically. 

Congratulations, said Harry. 

Lupin gave an artificial smile that was more like a grimace, then said, So . . . do 
you accept my offer? Will three become four? I cannot believe that Dumbledore would 
have disapproved, he appointed me your Defense Against the Dark Arts teacher, after all. 
And I must tell you that I believe we are facing magic many of us have never 
encountered or imagined. 

Ron and Hermione both looked at Harry. 

Just C just to be clear, he said. You want to leave Tonks at her parents house 
and come away with us? 

Shell be perfectly safe there, theyll look after her, said Lupin. He spoke with a 
finality bordering on indifference: Harry, Im sure James would have wanted me to stick 
with you. 

Well, said Harry slowly, Im not. Im pretty sure my father would have wanted 
to know why you arent sticking with your own kid, actually. 

Lupins face drained of color. The temperature in the kitchen might have dropped 
ten degrees. Ron stared around the room as though he had been bidden to memorize it, 
while Hermiones eyes swiveled backward and forward from Harry to Lupin. 

You dont understand, said Lupin at last. 

Explain, then, said Harry. 

Lupin swallowed. 

I C I made a grave mistake in marrying Tonks. I did it against my better 
judgment and have regretted it very much every since. 

I see, said Harry, so youre just going to dump her and the kid and run off with 
us? 

Lupin sprang to his feet: His chair toppled over backward, and he glared at them 
so fiercely that Harry saw, for the first time ever, she shadow of the wolf upon his human 
face. 

Dont you understand what Ive done to my wife and my unborn child? I should 
never have married her, Ive made her an outcast! 

Lupin kicked aside the chair he had overturned. 

You have only ever seen me amongst the Order, or under Dumbledores 
protection at Hogwarts! You dont know how most of the Wizarding world sees creatures 
like me! When they know of my affliction, they can barely talk to me! Dont you see 
what Ive done? 


Even her own family is disgusted by our marriage, what parents want their only 
daughter to marry a werewolf? And the child C the child C  

Lupin actually seized handfuls of his own hair; he looked quite deranged. 

My kind dont usually breed! It will be like me, I am convinced of it C how can I 
forgive myself, when I knowingly risked passing on my own condition to an innocent 
child? And if, by some miracle, it is not like me, then it will be better off, a hundred times 
so, without a father of whom it must always be ashamed! 

Remus! whispered Hermione, tears in her eyes. Dont say that C how could 
any child be ashamed of you? 

Oh, I dont know, Hermione, said Harry. Id be pretty ashamed of him. 

Harry did not know where his rage was coming from, but it had propelled him to 
his feet too. Lupin looked as though Harry had hit him. 

If the new regime thinks Muggle-borns are bad, Harry said, what will they do 
to a half-werewolf whose fathers in the Order? My father died trying to protect my 
mother and me, and you reckon hed tell you to abandon your kid to go on an adventure 
with us? 

How C how dare you? said Lupin. This is not about a desire for C for danger or 
personal glory C how dare you suggest such a C  

I think youre feeling a bit of a daredevil, Harry said, You fancy stepping into 
Siriuss shoes C 

Harry, no! Hermione begged him, but he continued to glare into Lupins livid 
face. 

Id never have believed this, Harry said. The man who taught me to fight 
dementors C a coward. 

Lupin drew his wand so fast that Harry had barely reached for his own; there was 
a loud bang and he felt himself flying backward as if punched; as he slammed into the 
kitchen wall and slid to the floor, he glimpsed the tail of Lupins cloak disappearing 
around the door. 

Remus, Remus, come back! Hermione cried, but Lupin did not respond. A 
moment later they heard the front door slam. 

Harry! wailed Hermione. How could you? 

It was easy, said Harry. He stood up, he could feel a lump swelling where his 
head had hit the wall. He was still so full of anger he was shaking. 

Dont look at me like that! he snapped at Hermione. 

Dont you start on her! snarled Ron. 

No C no C we mustnt fight! said Hermione, launching herself between them. 

You shouldnt have said that stuff to Lupin, Ron told Harry. 

He had it coming to him, said Harry. Broken images were racing each other 
through his mind: Sirius falling through the veil; Dumbledore suspended, broken, in 
midair; a flash of green light and his mothers voice, begging for mercy . . . 

Parents, said Harry, shouldnt leave their kids unless C unless theyve got to. 

Harry C said Hermione, stretching out a consoling hand, but he shrugged it off 
and walked away, his eyes on the fire Hermione had conjured. He had once spoken to 
Lupin out of that fireplace, seeking reassurance about James, and Lupin had consoled 
him. Now Lupins tortured white face seemed to swim in the air before him. He felt a 


sickening surge of remorse. Neither Ron nor Hermione spoke, but Harry felt sure that 
they were looking at each other behind his back, communicating silently. 

He turned around and caught them turning hurriedly away form each other. 

I know I shouldnt have called him a coward. 

No, you shouldnt, said Ron at once. 

But hes acting like one. 

All the same . . . said Hermione. 

I know, said Harry. But if it makes him go back to Tonks, itll be worth it, 
wont it? 

He could not keep the plea out of his voice. Hermione looked sympathetic, Ron 
uncertain. Harry looked down at his feet, thinking of his father. Would James have 
backed Harry in what he had said to Lupin, or would he have been angry at how his son 
had treated his old friend? 

The silent kitchen seemed to hum with the shock of the recent scene and with Ron 
and Hermiones unspoken reproaches. The Daily Prophet Lupin had brought was still 
lying on the table, Harrys own face staring up at the ceiling from the front page. He 
walked over to it and sat down, opened the paper at random, and pretended to read. He 
could not take in the words; his mind was still too full of the encounter with Lupin. He 
was sure that Ron and Hermione had resumed their silent communications on the other 
side of the Prophet. He turned a page loudly, and Dumbledores name leapt out at him. It 
was a moment or two before he took in the meaning of the photograph, which showed a 
family group. Beneath the photograph were the words: The Dumbledore family, left to 
right: Albus; Percival, holding newborn Ariana; Kendra, and Aberforth. 

His attention caught, Harry examined the picture more carefully. Dumbledores 
father, Percival, was a good-looking man with eyes that seemed to twinkle even in this 
faded old photograph. The baby, Ariana, was a little longer than a loaf of bread and no 
more distinctive-looking. The mother, Kendra, had jet black hair pulled into a high bun. 
Her face had a carved quality about it. Harry thought of photos of Native Americans hed 
seen as he studied her dark eyes, high cheekbones, and straight nose, formally composed 
above a high-necked silk gown. Albus and Aberforth wore matching lacy collared jackets 
and had identical, shoulder-length hairstyles. Albus looked several years older, but 
otherwise the two boys looked very alike, for this was before Albuss nose had been 
broken and before he started wearing glasses. 

The family looked quite happy and normal, smiling serenely up out of the 
newspaper. Baby Arianas arm waved vaguely out of her shawl. Harry looked above the 
picture and saw the headline: 

 

 EXCLUSIVE EXTRACT FROM UPCOMING 

 BIOGRAPHY OF ALBUS DUMBLEDORE 

 by Rita Skeeter 

 

Thinking it could hardly make him feel any worse than he already did, Harry 
began to read: 

 


Proud and haughty, Kendra Dumbledore could not bear to remain in Mould-on-the-
Wold after her husband Percivals well-publicized arrest and imprisonment in 
Azkaban. She therefore decided to uproot the family and relocate to Godrics Hollow, 
the village that was later to gain fame as the scene of Harry Potters strange escape 
from You-Know-Who. 

 Like Mould-on-the-Wold, Godrics Hollow was home to a number of Wizarding 
families, but as Kendra knew none of them, she would be spared the curiosity about 
her husbands crime she had faced in her former village. By repeatedly rebuffing the 
friendly advances of her new Wizarding neighbors, she soon ensured that her family 
was left well alone. 

 Slammed the door in my face when I went around to welcome her with a batch 
of homemade Cauldron Cakes, says Bathilda Bagshot. The first year they were 
there I only ever saw the two boys. Wouldnt have known there was a daughter if I 
hadnt been picking Plangentines by moonlight the winter after they moved in, and 
saw Kendra leading Ariana out into the back garden. Walked her round the lawn once, 
keeping a firm grip on her, then took her back inside. Didnt know what to make of 
it. 

 It seems that Kendra thought the move to Godrics Hollow was the perfect 
opportunity to hide Ariana once and for all, something she had probably been 
planning for years. The timing was significant. Ariana was barely seven years old 
when she vanished from sight, and seven is the age by which most experts agree that 
magic will have revealed itself, if present. Nobody now alive remembers Ariana ever 
demonstrating even the slightest sign of magical ability. It seems clear, therefore, that 
Kendra made a decision to hide her daughters existence rather than suffer the shame 
of admitting that she had produced a Squib. Moving away from the friends and 
neighbors who knew Ariana would, of course, make imprisoning her all the easier. 
The tiny number of people who henceforth knew of Arianas existence could be 
counted upon to keep the secret, including her two brothers, who had deflected 
awkward questions with the answer their mother had taught them. My sister is too 
frail for school. 

 Next week: Albus Dumbledore at Hogwarts C the Prizes and the Pretense. 

 

 Harry had been wrong: What he had read had indeed made him feel worse. He 
looked back at the photograph of the apparently happy family. Was it true? How could he 
find out? He wanted to go to Godrics Hollow, even if Bathilda was in no fit state to talk 
to him: he wanted to visit the place where he and Dumbledore had both lost loved ones. 
He was in the process of lowering the newspaper, to ask Rons and Hermiones opinions, 
when a deafening crack echoed around the kitchen. 

 For the first time in three days Harry had forgotten all about Kreacher. His 
immediate thought was that Lupin had burst back into the room, and for a split second, he 
did not take in the mass of struggling limbs that had appeared out of thin air right beside 
his chair. He hurried to his feet as Kreacher disentangled himself and, bowing low to 
Harry, croaked, Kreacher has returned with the thief Mundungus Fletcher, Master. 

 Mundungus scrambled up and pulled out his wand; Hermione, however, was too 
quick for him. 

 Expelliarmus! 


 Mundunguss wand soared into the air, and Hermione caught it. Wild-eyed, 
Mundungus dived for the stairs. Ron rugby-tackled him and Mundungus hit the stone 
floor with a muffled crunch. 

 What? he bellowed, writhing in his attempts to free himself from Rons grip. 
Whave I done? Setting a bleedin house-elf on me, what are you playing at, whave I 
done, lemme go, lemme go, of C  

 Youre not in much of a position to make threats, said Harry. He threw aside 
the newspaper, crossed the kitchen in a few strides, and dropped to his knees beside 
Mundungus, who stopped struggling and looked terrified. Ron got up, panting, and 
watched as Harry pointed his wand deliberately at Mundunguss nose. Mundungus stank 
of stale sweat and tobacco smoke. His hair was matted and his robes stained. 

 Kreacher apologizes for the delay in bringing the thief, Master, croaked the elf. 
Fletcher knows how to avoid capture, has many hidey-holes and accomplices. 
Nevertheless, Kreacher cornered the thief in the end. 

 Youve done really well, Kreacher, said Harry, and the elf bowed low. 

 Right, weve got a few questions for you, Harry told Mundungus, who shouted 
at once. 

 I panicked, okay? I never wanted to come along, no offense, mate, but I never 
volunteered to die for you, an that was bleedin You-Know-Who come flying at me, 
anyone woulda got outta there. I said all along I didnt wanna do it C 

 For your information, none of the rest of us Disapparated, said Hermione. 

 Well, youre a bunch of bleedin eroes then, arent you, but I never pretended I 
was up for killing meself C 

 Were not interested in why you ran out on Mad-Eye, said Harry, moving his 
wand a little closer to Mundunguss baggy, bloodshot eyes. We already knew you were 
an unreliable bit of scum. 

 Well then, why the ell am I being unted down by ouse-elves? Or is this about 
them goblets again? I aint got none of em left, or you could ave em C 

 Its not about the goblets either, although youre getting warmer, said Harry. 
Shut up and listen. 

 It felt wonderful to have something to do, someone of whom he could demand 
some small portion of truth. Harrys wand was now so close to the bridge of 
Mundunguss nose that Mundungus had gone cross-eyed trying to keep it in view. 

 When you cleaned out this house of anything valuable, Harry began, but 
Mundungus interrupted him again. 

 Sirius never cared about any of the junk C 

 There was the sound of pattering fee, a blaze of shining copper, an echoing clang, 
and a shriek of agony; Kreacher had taken a run at Mundungus and hit him over the head 
with a saucepan. 

 Call im off, call im off, e should be locked up! screamed Mundungus, 
cowering as Kreacher raised the heavy-bottomed pan again. 

 Kreacher, no! shouted Harry. 

 Kreachers thin arms trembled with the weight of the pan, still held aloft. 

 Perhaps just one more, Master Harry, for luck? 

 Ron laughed. 


 We need him conscious, Kreacher, but if he needs persuading, you can do the 
honors, said Harry. 

 Thank you very much, Master, said Kreacher with a bow, and he retreated a 
short distance, his great pale eyes still fixed upon Mundungus with loathing. 

 When you stripped this house of all the valuables you could find, Harry began 
again, you took a bunch of stuff from the kitchen cupboard. There was a locket there. 
Harrys mouth was suddenly dry: He could sense Ron and Hermiones tension and 
excitement too. What did you do with it? 

 Why? asked Mundungus. Is it valuable? 

 Youve still got it! cried Hermione. 

 No, he hasnt, said Ron shrewdly. Hes wondering whether he should have 
asked more money for it. 

 More? said Mundungus. That wouldnt have been effing difficult . . .bleedin 
gave it away, din I? No choice. 

 What do you mean? 

 I was selling in Diagon Alley and she come up to me and asks if Ive got a 
license for trading in magical artifacts. Bleedin snoop. She was gonna fine me, but she 
took a fancy to the locket an told me shed take it and let me off that time, and to fink 
meself lucky. 

 Who was this woman? asked Harry. 

 I dunno, some Ministry hag. 

 Mundungus considered for a moment, brow wrinkled. 

 Little woman. Bow on top of er head. 

 He frowned and then added, Looked like a toad. 

 Harry dropped his wand: It hit Mundungus on the nose and shot red sparks into 
his eyebrows, which ignited. 

 Aquamenti! screamed Hermione, and a jet of water streamed from her wand, 
engulfing a spluttering and choking Mundungus. 

 Harry looked up and saw his own shock reflected in Rons and Hermiones faces. 
The scars on the back of his right hand seemed to be tingling again. 

 

Chapter Twelve 

Magic is Might 

 

 As August wore on, the square of unkempt grass in the middle of Grimmauld 
Place shriveled in the sun until it was brittle and brown. The inhabitants of number 
twelve were never seen by anyone in the surrounding houses, and nor was number twelve 
itself. The muggles who lived in Grimmauld Place had long since accepted the amusing 
mistake in the numbering that had caused number eleven to sit beside number thirteen. 

 And yet the square was now attracting a trickle of visitors who seemed to find the 
anomaly most intriguing. Barely a day passed without one or two people arriving in 
Grimmauld Place with no other purpose, or so it seemed, than to lean against the railings 
facing numbers eleven and thirteen, watching the join between the two houses. The 
lurkers were never the same two days running, although they all seemed to share a dislike 


for normal clothing. Most of the Londoners who passed them were used to eccentric 
dressers and took little notice, though occasionally one of them might glance back, 
wondering why anyone would wear cloaks in this heat. 

 The watchers seemed to be gleaning little satisfaction from their vigil. 
Occasionally one of them started forward excitedly, as if they had seen something 
interesting at last, only to fall back looking disappointed. 

 On the first day of September there were more people lurking in the square than 
ever before. Half a dozen men in long cloaks stood silent and watchful, gazing as ever at 
houses eleven and thirteen, but the thing for which they were waiting still appeared 
elusive. As evening drew in, bringing with it an unexpected gust of chilly rain for the first 
time in weeks, there occurred one of those inexplicable moments when they appeared to 
have seen something interesting. The man with the twisted face pointed and his closest 
companion, a podgy, pallid man, started forward, but a moment later they had relaxed 
into their previous state of inactivity, looking frustrated and disappointed. 

 Meanwhile, inside number twelve, Harry had just entered the hall. He had nearly 
lost his balance as he Apparated onto the top step just outside the front door, and thought 
that the Death Eaters might have caught a glimpse of his momentarily exposed elbow. 
Shutting the front door carefully behind him, he pulled off the Invisibility Cloak, draped 
it over his arm, and hurried along the gloomy hallway toward the door that led to the 
basement, a stolen copy of the Daily Prophet clutched in his hand. 

 The usual low whisper of Severus Snape greeted him, the chill wind swept him, 
and his tongue rolled up for a moment. 

 I didnt kill you, he said, once it had unrolled, then held his breath as the dusty 
jinx-figure exploded. He waited until he was halfway down the stairs to the kitchen, out 
of earshot of Mrs. Black and clear of the dust cloud, before calling, Ive got news, and 
you wont like it. 

 The kitchen was almost unrecognizable. Every surface now shone; Copper pots 
and pans had been burnished to a rosy glow; the wooden tabletop gleamed; the goblets 
and plates already laid for dinner glinted in the light from a merrily blazing fire, on which 
a cauldron was simmering. Nothing in the room, however, was more dramatically 
different than the house-elf who now came hurrying toward Harry, dressed in a snowy-
white towel, his ear hair as clean and fluffy as cotton wool, Reguluss locket bouncing on 
his thin chest. 

 Shoes off, if you please, Master Harry, and hands washed before dinner, 
croaked Kreacher, seizing the Invisibility Cloak and slouching off to hang it on a hook on 
the wall, beside a number of old-fashioned robes that had been freshly laundered. 

 Whats happened? Ron asked apprehensively. He are Hermione had been 
pouring over a sheaf of scribbled notes and hand drawn maps that littered the end of the 
long kitchen table, but now they watched Harry as he strode toward them and threw down 
the newspaper on top of their scattered parchment. 

 A large picture of a familiar, hook-nosed, black-haired man stared up at them all, 
beneath a headline that read: 

 

 SEVERUS SNAPE CONFIRMED AS HOGWARTS HEADMASTER 

 

 No! said Ron and Hermione loudly. 


 Hermione was quickest; she snatched up the newspaper and began to read the 
accompanying story out loud. 

 Severus Snape, long-standing Potions master at Hogwarts School of Witchcraft 
and wizardry, was today appointed headmaster in the most important of several staffing 
changes at the ancient school. Following the resignation of the previous Muggle Studies 
teacher, Alecto Carrow will take over the post while her brother, Amycus, fills the 
position of Defense Against the Dark Arts professor. 

  I welcome the opportunity to uphold our finest Wizarding traditions and values 
C Like committing murder and cutting off peoples ears, I suppose! Snape, headmaster! 
Snape in Dumbledores study C Merlins pants! she shrieked, making both Harry and 
Ron jump. She leapt up from the table and hurtled from the room, shouting as she went, 
Ill be back in a minute! 

 Merlins pants? repeated Ron, looking amused. She must be upset. He 
pulled the newspaper toward him and perused the article about Snape. 

 The other teachers wont stand for this, McGonagall and Flitwick and Sprout all 
know the truth, they know how Dumbledore died. They wont accept Snape as 
headmaster. And who are these Carrows? 

 Death Eaters, said Harry. There are pictures of them inside. They were at the 
top of the tower when Snape killed Dumbledore, so its all friends together. And, Harry 
went on bitterly, drawing up a chair, I cant see that the other teachers have got any 
choice but to stay. If the Ministry and Voldemort are behind Snape itll be a choice 
between staying and teaching, or a nice few years in Azkaban C and thats if theyre 
lucky. I reckon theyll stay to try and protect the students. 

 Kreacher came bustling to the table with a large curcen in his hands, and ladled 
out soup into pristine bowls, whistling between his teeth as he did so. 

 Thanks, Kreacher, said Harry, flipping over the Prophet so as not to have to 
look at Snapes face. Well, at least we know exactly where Snape is now. 

 He began to spoon soup into his mouth. The quality of Kreachers cooking had 
improved dramatically ever since he had been given Reguluss locket: Todays French 
onion was as good as Harry had ever tasted. 

 There are still a load of Death Eaters watching this house, he told Ron as he ate, 
more than usual. Its like theyre hoping well march out carrying our school trunks and 
head off for the Hogwarts Express. 

 Ron glanced at his watch. 

 Ive been thinking about that all day. It left nearly six hours ago. Weird, not 
being on it, isnt it? 

 In his minds eye Harry seemed to see the scarlet steam engine as he and Ron had 
once followed it by air, shimmering between fields and hills, a rippling scarlet caterpillar. 
He was sure Ginny, Neville, and Luna were sitting together at this moment, perhaps 
wondering where he, Ron, and Hermione were, or debating how best to undermine 
Snapes new regime. 

 They nearly saw me coming back in just now, Harry said, I landed badly on 
the top step, and the Cloak slipped. 

 I do that every time. Oh, here she is, Ron added, craning around in his seat to 
watch Hermione reentering the kitchen. And what in the name of Merlins most baggy 
Y Fronts was that about? 


 I remembered this, Hermione panted. 

 She was carrying a large, framed picture, which she now lowered to the floor 
before seizing her small, beaded bag from the kitchen sideboard. Opening it, she 
proceeded to force the painting inside and despite the fact that it was patently too large to 
fit inside the tiny bag, within a few seconds it had vanished, like so much ease, into the 
bags capacious depths. 

 Phineas Nigellus, Hermione explained as she threw the bag onto the kitchen 
table with the usual sonorous, clanking crash. 

 Sorry? said Ron, but Harry understood. The painted image of Phineas Nigellus 
Black was able to travel between his portrait in Grimmauld Place and the one that hung in 
the headmasters office at Hogwarts: the circular cower-top room where Snape was no 
doubt sitting right now, in triumphant possession of Dumbledores collection of delicate, 
silver magical instruments, the stone Pensieve, the Sorting Hat and, unless it ad been 
moved elsewhere, the sword of Gryffindor. 

 Snape could send Phineas Nigellus to look inside this house for him, Hermione 
explained to Ron as she resumed her seat. But let him try it now, all Phineas Nigellus 
will be able to see is the inside of my handbag. 

 Good thinking! said Ron, looking impressed. 

 Thank you, smiled Hermione, pulling her soup toward her. So, Harry, what 
else happened today? 

 Nothing, said Harry. Watched the Ministry entrance for seven hours. No sign 
of her. Saw your dad though, Ron. He looks fine. 

 Ron nodded his appreciation of this news. The had agreed that it was far too 
dangerous to try and communicate with Mr. Weasley while he walked in and out of the 
Ministry, because he was always surrounded by other Ministry workers. It was, however, 
reassuring to catch these glimpses of him, even if he did look very strained and anxious. 

 Dad always told us most Ministry people use the Floo Network to get to work, 
Ron said. Thats why we havent seen Umbridge, shed never walk, shed think shes 
too important. 

 And what about that funny old witch and that little wizard in the navy robes? 
Hermione asked. 

 Oh yeah, the bloke from Magical Maintenance, said Ron. 

 How do you know he works for Magical Maintenance? Hermione asked, her 
soupspoon suspended in midair. 

 Dad said everyone from Magical Maintenance wears navy blue robes. 

 But you never told us that! 

 Hermione dropped her spoon and pulled toward her the sheaf of notes and maps 
that she and Ron had been examining when Harry had entered the kitchen. 

 Theres nothing in here about navy blue robes, nothing! she said, flipping 
feverishly through the pages. 

 Well, dies it really matter? 

 Ron, it all matters! If were going to get into the Ministry and not give ourselves 
away when theyre bound to be on the lookout for intruders, every little detail matters! 
Weve been over and over this, I mean, whats the point of all these reconnaissance trips 
if you arent even bothering to tell us C 

 Blimey, Hermione, I forget one little thing C  


 You do realize, dont you, that theres probably no more dangerous place in the 
whole world for us to be right now than the Ministry of C 

 I think we should do it tomorrow, said Harry. 

 Hermione stopped dead, her jaw hanging; Ron choked a little over his soup. 

 Tomorrow? repeated Hermione. You arent serious, Harry? 

 I am, said Harry. I dont think were going to be much better prepared than we 
are now even if we skulk around the Ministry entrance for another month. The longer we 
put it off, the farther away that locket could be. Theres already a good chance Umbridge 
has chucked it away; the thing doesnt open. 

 Unless, said Ron, shes found a way of opening it and shes now possessed. 

 Wouldnt make any difference to her, she was so evil in the first place, Harry 
shrugged. 

 Hermione was biting her lip, deep in thought. 

 We know everything important, Harry went on, addressing Hermione. We 
know theyve stopped Apparition in and out of the Ministry; We know only the most 
senior Ministry members are allowed to connect their homes to the Floo Network now, 
because Ron heard those two Unspeakables complaining about it. And we know roughly 
where Umbridges office is, because of what you heard the bearded bloke saying to his 
mate C 

 Ill be up on level one, Dolores wants to see me, Hermione recited 
immediately. 

 Exactly, said Harry. And we know you get in using those funny coins, or 
tokens, or whatever they are, because I saw that witch borrowing one from her friend C  

 But we havent got any! 

 If the plan works, we will have, Harry continued calmly. 

 I dont know, Harry, I dont know  There are an awful lot of things that could 
go wrong, so much relies on chance   

 Thatll be true even if we spend another three months preparing, said Harry. Its 
time to act. 

 He could tell from Rons and Hermiones faces that they were scared; he was not 
particularly confident himself, and yet he was sure the time had come to put their plan 
into operation. 

 They had spent the previous four weeks taking it in turns to don the Invisibility 
Cloak and spy on the official entrance to the Ministry, which Ron, thanks to Mr. Weasley, 
had known since childhood. They had tailed Ministry workers on their way in, 
eavesdropped on their conversations, and learned by careful observation which of them 
could be relied upon to appear, alone, at the same time every day. Occasionally there had 
been a chance to sneak a Daily Prophet out of somebodys briefcase. Slowly they had 
built up the sketchy maps and notes now stacked in front of Hermione. 

 All right, said Ron slowly, lets say we go for it tomorrow  I think it should 
just be me and Harry. 

 Oh, dont start that again! sighed Hermione. I thought wed settled this. 

 Its one thing hanging around the entrances under the Cloak, but this is different. 
Hermione, Ron jabbed a finger at a copy of the Daily Prophet dated ten days previously. 
Youre on the list of Muggle-borns who didnt present themselves for interrogation! 


 And youre supposed to be dying of spattergroit at the Burrow! If anyone 
shouldnt go, its Harry, hes got a ten-thousand-Galleon price on his head C  

 Fine, Ill stay here, said Harry. Let me know if you ever defeat Voldemort, 
wont you? 

 As Ron and Hermione laughed, pain shot through the scar on Harrys forehead. 
His hand jumped to it. He saw Hermiones eyes narrow, and he tried to pass off the 
movement by brushing his hair out of his eyes. 

 Well, if all three of us go well have to Disapparate separately, Ron was saying. 
We cant all fit under the Cloak anymore. 

 Harrys scar was becoming more and more painful. He stood up. At once, 
Kreacher hurried forward. 

 Master has not finished his soup, would master prefer the savory stew, or else the 
treacle tart to which Master is so partial? 

 Thanks, Kreacher, but Ill be back in a minute C er C bathroom. 

 Aware that Hermione was watching him suspiciously, Harry hurried up the stairs 
to the hall and then to the first landing, where he dashed into the bathroom and bolted the 
door again. Grunting with pain, he slumped over the black basin with its taps in the form 
of open-mouthed serpents and closed his eyes . 

 He was gliding along a twilit street. The buildings on either side of him had high, 
timbered gables; they looked like gingerbread houses. He approached one of them, then 
saw the whiteness of his own long-fingered hand against the door. He knocked. He felt a 
mounting excitement  

 The door opened: A laughing woman stood there. Her face fell as she looked into 
Harrys face: humor gone, terror replacing it . 

 Gregorovitch? said a high, cold voice. 

 She shook her head: She was trying to close the door. A white hand held it steady, 
prevented her shutting him out  

 I want Gregorovitch. 

 Er wohnt hier nicht mehr! she cried, shaking her head. He no live here! He no 
live here! I know him not! 

 Abandoning the attempt to close the door, she began to back away down the dark 
hall, and Harry followed, gliding toward her, and his long-fingered hand had drawn his 
wand. 

 where is he? 

 Das weiff ich nicht! He move! I know not, I know not! 

 He raised his hand. She screamed. Two young children came running into the hall. 
She tried to shield them with her arms. There was a flash of green light C 

 Harry! HARRY! 

 He opened his eyes; he had sunk to the floor. Hermione was pounding on the door 
again. 

 Harry, open up! 

 He had shouted out, he knew it. He got up and unbolted the door; Hermione 
toppled inside at once, regained her balance, and looked around suspiciously. Ron was 
right behind her, looking unnerved as he pointed his wand into the corners of the chilly 
bathroom. 

 What were you doing? asked Hermione sternly. 


 What dyou think I was doing? asked Harry with feeble bravado. 

 You were yelling your head off! said Ron. 

 Oh yeah  I mustve dozed off or C  

 Harry, please dont insult our intelligence, said Hermione, taking deep breaths. 
We know your scar hurt downstairs, and youre white as a sheet. 

 Harry sat down on the edge of the bath. 

 Fine. Ive just seen Voldemort murdering a woman. By now hes probably killed 
her whole family. And he didnt need to. It was Cedric all over again, they were just there 
  

 Harry, you arent supposed to let this happen anymore! Hermione cried, her 
voice echoing through the bathroom. Dumbledore wanted you to use Occlumency! HE 
thought the connection was dangerous C Voldemort can use it, Harry! What good is it to 
watch him kill and torture, how can it help? 

 Because it means I know what hes doing, said Harry. 

 So youre not even going to try to shut him out? 

 Hermione, I cant. You know Im lousy at Occlumency. I never got the hang of 
it. 

 You never really tried! she said hotly. I dont get it, Harry C do you like having 
this special connection or relationship or what C whatever C  

 She faltered under the look he gave her as he stood up. 

 Like it? he said quietly. Would you like it? 

 I C no C Im sorry, Harry. I just didnt mean C  

 I hate it, I hate the fact that he can get inside me, that I have to watch him when 
hes most dangerous. But Im going to use it. 

 Dumbledore C 

 Forget Dumbledore. This is my choice, nobody elses. I want to know why hes 
after Gregorovitch. 

 Who? 

 Hes a foreign wandmaker, said Harry. He made Krums wand and Krum 
reckons hes brilliant. 

 But according to you, said Ron, Voldemorts got Ollivander locked up 
somewhere. If hes already got a wandmaker, what does he need another one for? 

 Maybe he agrees with Krum, maybe he thinks Gregorovitch is better  or else 
he thinks Gregorovitch will be able to explain what my wand did when he was chasing 
me, because Ollivander didnt know. 

 Harry glanced into the cracked, dusty mirror and saw Ron and Hermione 
exchanging skeptical looks behind his back. 

 Harry, you keep talking about what your wand did, said Hermione, but you 
made it happen! Why are you so determined not to take responsibility for your own 
power? 

 Because I know it wasnt me! And so does Voldemort, Hermione! We both 
know what really happened! 

 They glared at each other; Harry knew that he had not convinced Hermione and 
that she was marshaling counterarguments, against both his theory on his wand and the 
fact that he was permitting himself to see into Voldemorts mind. To his relief, Ron 
intervened. 


 Drop it, he advised her. Its up to him. And if were going to the Ministry 
tomorrow, dont you reckon we should go over the plan? 

 Reluctantly, as the other two could tell, Hermione let the matter rest, though 
Harry was quite sure she would attack again at the first opportunity. In the meantime, 
they returned to the basement kitchen, where Kreacher served them all stew and treacle 
tart. 

 They did not get to bed until late that night, after spending hours going over and 
over their plan until they could recite it, word perfect, to each other. Harry, who was now 
sleeping in Siriuss room, lay in bed with his wandlight trained on the old photograph of 
his father, Sirius, Lupin, and Pettigrew, and muttered the plan to himself for another ten 
minutes. As he extinguished his wand, however, he was thinking not of Polyjuice Potion, 
Puking Pastilles, or the navy blue robes of Magical Maintenance; he though of 
Gregorovitch the wandmaker, and how long he could hope to remain hidden while 
Voldemort sought him so determinedly. 

 Dawn seemed to follow midnight with indecent haste. 

 You look terrible, was Rons greeting as he entered the room to wake Harry. 

 Not for long, said Harry, yawning. 

 They found Hermione downstairs in the kitchen. She was being served coffee and 
hot rolls by Kreacher and wearing the slightly manic expression that Harry associated 
with exam review. 

 Robes, she said under her breath, acknowledging their presence with a nervous 
nod and continuing to poke around in her beaded bag, Polyjuice Potion  Invisibiliity 
Cloak  Decoy Detonators  You should each take a couple just in case  Puking 
Pastilles, Nosebleed Norgat, Extendable Ears  

 They gulped down their breakfast, then set off upstairs, Kreacher bowing them 
out and promising to have a steak-and-kidney pie ready for them when they returned. 

 Bless him, said Ron fondly, and when you think I used to fantasize about 
cutting off his head and sticking it on the wall. 

 They made their way onto the front step with immense caution. They could see a 
couple of puffy-eyed Death Eaters watching the house from across the misty square. 

 Hermione Disapparated with Ron first, then came back for Harry. 

 After the usual brief spell of darkness and near suffocation, Harry found himself 
in the tiny alleyway where the first phase of their plan was scheduled to take place. It was 
as yet deserted, except for a couple of large bins; the first Ministry workers did not 
usually appear here until at least eight oclock. 

 Right then, said Hermione, checking her watch. she ought to be here in about 
five minutes. When Ive Stunned her C 

 Hermione, we know, said Ron sternly. And I thought we were supposed to 
open the door before she got here? 

 Hermione squealed. 

 I nearly forgot! Stand back C 

 She pointed her wand at the padlocked and heavily graffitied fire door beside 
them, which burst open with a crash. The dark corridor behind it led, as they knew from 
their careful scouting trips, into an empty theater. Hermione pulled the door back toward 
her, to make it look as thought it was still closed. 


 And now, she said, turning, back to face the other two in the alleyway, we put 
on the Cloak again C 

 and we wait, Ron finished, throwing it over Hermiones head like a blanket 
over a birdcage and rolling his eyes at Harry. 

 Little more than a minute later, there was a tiny pop and a little Ministry witch 
with flyaway gray hair Apparated feet from them, blinking a little in the sudden 
brightness: the sun had just come out from behind a cloud. She barely had time to enjoy 
the unexpected warmth, however, before Hermiones silent Stunning Spell hit her in the 
chest and she toppled over. 

 Nicely done, Hermione, said Ron, emerging behind a bin beside the theater 
door as Harry took off the Invisibility Cloak. Together they carried the little witch into 
the dark passageway that led backstage. Hermione plucked a few hairs from the witchs 
head and added them to a flask of muddy Polyjuice Potion she had taken from the beaded 
bag. Ron was rummaging through the little witchs handbag. 

 Shes Mafalda Hopkirk, he said, reading a small card that identified their victim 
as an assistant in the Improper Use of Magic Office. Youd better take this, Hermione, 
and here are the tokens. 

 He passed her several small golden coins, all embossed with the letters M.O.M., 
which he had taken from the witchs purse. 

 Hermione drank the Polyjuice Potion, which was now a pleasant heliotrope color, 
and within seconds stood before them, the double of Mafalda Hopkirk. As she removed 
Mafaldas spectacles and put them on, Harry checked his watch. 

 Were running late, Mr. Magical Maintenance will be here any second. 

 They hurried to close the door on the real Mafalda; Harry and Ron threw the 
Invisibility Cloak over themselves but Hermione remained in view, waiting. Seconds 
later there was another pop, and a small, ferrety looking wizard appeared before them. 

 Oh, hello, Mafalda. 

 Hello! said Hermione in a quavery voice, How are you today? 

 Not so good, actually, replied the little wizard, who looked thoroughly 
downcast. 

 As Hermione and the wizard headed for the main road, Harry and Ron crept along 
behind them. 

 Im sorry to hear youre under the weather, said Hermione, talking firmly over 
the little wizard and he tried to expound upon his problems; it was essential to stop him 
from reaching the street. Here, have a sweet. 

 Eh? Oh, no thanks C 

 I insist! said Hermione aggressively, shaking the bag of pastilles in his face. 
Looking rather alarmed, the little wizard took one. 

 The effect was instantaneous. The moment the pastille touched his tongue, the 
little wizard started vomiting so hard that he did not even notice as Hermione yanked a 
handful of hairs from the top of his head. 

 Oh dear! she said, as he splattered the alley with sick. Perhaps youd better 
take the day off! 

 No C no! He choked and retched, trying to continue on his way despite being 
unable to walk straight. I must C today C must go C  


 But thats just silly! said Hermione, alarmed. You cant go to work in this state 
C I think you ought to go to St. Mungos and get them to sort you out. 

 The wizard had collapsed, heaving, onto all fours, still trying to crawl toward the 
main street. 

 You simply cant go to work like this! cried Hermione. 

 At last he seemed to accept the truth of her words. Using a reposed Hermione to 
claw his way back into a standing position, he turned on the spot and vanished, leaving 
nothing behind but the bag Ron had snatched from his hand as he went and some flying 
chunks of vomit. 

 Urgh, said Hermione, holding up the skirt of her robe to avoid the puddles of 
sick. It would have made much less mess to Stun him too. 

 Yeah, said Ron, emerging from under the cloak holding the wizards bag, but I 
still think a whole pile of unconscious bodies would have drawn more attention. Keen on 
his job, though, isnt he? Chuck us the hair and the potion, then. 

 Within two minutes, Ron stood before them, as small and ferrety as the sick 
wizard, and wearing the navy blue robes that had been folded in his bag. 

 Weird he wasnt wearing them today, wasnt it, seeing how much he wanted to 
go? Anyway, Im Reg Cattermole, according to the label in the back. 

 Now wait here, Hermione told Harry, who was still under the Invisibility Cloak, 
and well be back with some hairs for you. 

 He had to wait ten minutes, but it seemed much longer to Harry, skulking alone in 
the sick-splattered alleyway beside the door concealing the Stunned Mafalda. Finally Ron 
and Hermione reappeared. 

 We dont know who he is, Hermione said, passing Harry several curly black 
hairs, but hes gone home with a dreadful nosebleed! Here, hes pretty tall, youll need 
bigger robes  

 She pulled out a set of the old robes Kreacher had laundered for them, and Harry 
retired to take the potion and change. 

 Once the painful transformation was complete he was more than six feet tall and, 
from what he could tell from his well-muscled arms, powerfully built. He also had a 
beard. Stowing the Invisibility Cloak and his glasses inside his new robes, he rejoined the 
other two. 

 Blimey, thats scary, said Ron, looking up at Harry, who now towered over him. 

 Take one of Mafaldas tokens, Hermione told Harry, and lets go, its nearly 
nine. 

 They stepped out of the alleyway together. Fifty yards along the crowded 
pavement there were spiked black railings flanking two flights of stairs, one labeled 
GENTLEMEN, the other LADIES. 

 See you in a moment, then, said Hermione nervously, and she tottered off down 
the steps to LADIES. Harry and Ron joined a number of oddly dressed men descending 
into what appeared to be an ordinary underground public toilet, tiled in grimy black and 
white. 

 Morning, Reg! called another wizard in navy blue robes as he let himself into a 
cubicle by inserting his golden token into a slot in the door. Blooming pain in the bum, 
this, eh? Forcing us all to get to work this way! Who are they expecting to turn up, Harry 
Potter? 


 The wizard roared with laughter at his own wit. Ron gave a forced chuckle. 

 Yeah, he said, stupid, isnt it? 

 And he and Harry let themselves into adjoining cubicles. 

 To Harrys left and right came the sound of flushing. He crouched down and 
peered through the gap at the bottom of the cubicle, just in time to see a pair of booted 
feet climbing into the toilet next door. He looked left and saw Ron blinking at him. 

 We have to flush ourselves in? he whispered. 

 Looks like it, Harry whispered back; his voice came out deep and gravelly. 

 They both stood up. Feeling exceptionally foolish, Harry clambered into the toilet. 

 He knew at once that he had done the right thing; thought he appeared to be 
standing in water, his shoes, feet, and robes remained quite dry. He reached up, pulled the 
chain, and next moment had zoomed down a short chute, emerging out of a fireplace into 
the Ministry of Magic. 

 He got up clumsily; there was a lot more of his body than he was accustomed to. 
The great Atrium seemed darker than Harry remembered it. Previously a golden fountain 
had filled the center of the hall, casting shimmering spots of light over the polished 
wooden floor and walls. Now a gigantic statue of black stone dominated the scene. It was 
rather frightening, this vast sculpture of a witch and a wizard sitting on ornately carved 
thrones, looking down at the Ministry workers toppling out of fireplaces below them. 
Engraved in foot-high letters at the base of the statue were the words MAGIC IS MIGHT. 

 Harry received a heavy blow on the back of the legs. Another wizard had just 
flown out of the fireplace behind him. 

 Out of the way, cant y C oh, sorry, Runcorn. 

 Clearly frightened, the balding wizard hurried away. Apparently the man who 
Harry was impersonating, Runcorn, was intimidating. 

 Psst! said a voice, and he looked around to see a whispy little witch and the 
ferrety wizard from Magical Maintenance gesturing to him from over beside the statue. 
Harry hastened to join them. 

 You got in all right, then? Hermione whispered to Harry. 

 No, hes still stuck in the hog, said Ron. 

 Oh, very funny  Its horrible, isnt it? she said to Harry, who was staring up 
at the statue. Have you seen what theyre sitting on? 

 Harry looked more closely and realized that what he had thought were 
decoratively carved thrones were actually mounds of carved humans: hundreds and 
hundreds of naked bodies, men, women, and children, all with rather stupid, ugly faces, 
twisted and pressed together to support the weight of the handsomely robed wizards. 

 Muggles, whispered Hermione, In their rightful place. Come on, lets get 
going. 

 They joined the stream of witches and wizards moving toward the golden gates at 
the end of the hall, looking around as surreptitiously as possible, but there was no sign of 
the distinctive figure of Dolores Umbridge. They passed through the gates and into a 
smaller hall, where queues were forming in front of twenty golden grilles housing as 
many lifts. They had barely joined the nearest one when a voice said, Cattermole! 

 They looked around: Harrys stomach turned over. One of the Death Eaters who 
had witnessed Dumbledores death was striding toward them. The Ministry workers 
beside them fell silent, their eyes downcast; Harry could feel fear rippling through them. 


The mans scowling, slightly brutish face was somehow at odds with his magnificent, 
sweeping robes, which were embroidered with much gold thread. Someone in the crowd 
around the lifts called sycophantically, Morning, Yaxley! Yaxley ignored them. 

 I requested somebody from Magical Maintenance to sort out my office, 
Cattermole. Its still raining in there. 

 Ron looked around as though hoping somebody else would intervene, but nobody 
spoke. 

 Raining  in your office? Thats C thats not good, is it? 

 Ron gave a nervous laugh. Yaxleys eyes widened. 

 You think its funny, Cattermole, do you? 

 A pair of witches broke away from the queue for the lift and bustled off. 

 No, said Ron, no, of course C 

 You realize that I am on my way downstairs to interrogate your wife, 
Cattermole? In fact, Im quite surprised youre not down there holding her hand while 
she waits. Already given her up as a bad job, have you? Probably wise. Be sure and 
marry a pureblood next time. 

 Hermione had let out a little squeak of horror. Yaxley looked at her. She cough 
feebly and turned away. 

 I C I C stammered Ron. 

 But if my wife were accused of being a Mudblood, said Yaxley, not that any 
woman I married would ever be mistaken for such filth C and the Head of Department of 
Magical Law Enforcement needed a job doing, I would make it my priority to do this job, 
Cattermole. Do you understand me? 

 Yes, whispered Ron. 

 Then attend to it, Cattermole, and if my office is not completely dry within an 
hour, your wifes Blood Status will be in even greater doubt than it is now. 

 The golden grille before them clattered open. With a nod and unpleasant smile to 
Harry, who was evidently expected to appreciate this treatment of Cattermole, Yaxley 
swept away toward another lift. Harry, Ron, and Hermione entered theirs, but nobody 
followed them: It was as if they were infectious. The grilles shut with a clang and the lift 
began to move upward. 

 What am I going to do? Ron asked the other two at once; he looked stricken. If 
I dont turn up, my wife  I mean, Cattermoles wife C  

 Well come with you, we should stick together C began Harry, but Ron shook 
his head feverishly. 

 Thats mental, we havent got much time. You two find Umbridge, Ill go and 
sort out Yaxleys office C but how do I stop a raining? 

 Try Finite Incantatem, said Hermione at once, that should stop the rain if its a 
hex or curse; if it doesnt somethings gone wrong with an Atmospheric Charm, which 
will be more difficult to fix, so as an interim measure try Impervius to protect his 
belongings C  

 Say it again, slowly C  said Ron, searching his pockets desperately for a quill, 
but at that moment the lift juddered to a halt. A disembodied female voice said, Level 
four, Department for the Regulation and Control of Magical Creatures, incorporating 
Beast, Being, and Spirit Divisions, Goblin Liaison Office, and Pest Advisory Bureau, 


and the grilles slid open again, admitting a couple of wizards and several pale violet 
paper airplanes that fluttered around the lamp in the ceiling of the lift. 

 Morning, Albert, said a bushily whiskered man, smiling at Harry. He glanced 
over at Ron and Hermione as the lift creaked upward once more; Hermione was now 
whispering frantic instructions to Ron. The wizard leaned toward Harry, leering, and 
muttering Dirk Cresswell, eh? From Goblin Liaison? Nice one, Albert. Im pretty 
confident Ill get his job now! 

 He winked. Harry smiled back, hoping that this would suffice. The lift stopped; 
the grilles opened once more. 

 Level two, Department of Magical Law Enforcement, including the Improper 
Use of Magic Office, Auror Headquarters, and Wizengamot Administration Services, 
said the disembodied witchs voice. 

 Harry saw Hermione give Ron a little push and he hurried out of the lift, followed 
by the other wizards, leaving Harry and Hermione alone. The moment the golden door 
had closed Hermione said, very fast, Actually, Harry, I think Id better go after him, I 
dont think he knows what hes doing and if he gets caught the whole thing C  

 Level one, Minister of Magic and Support Staff. 

 The golden grilles slid apart again and Hermione gasped. Four people stood 
before them, two of them deep in conversation: a long-haired wizard wearing magnificent 
robes of black and gold, and a squat, toadlike witch wearing a velvet bow in her short 
hair and clutching a clipboard to her chest. 

 

Chapter Thirteen 

The Muggle-Born Registration Commission 

 

 Ah, Mafalda! said Umbridge, looking at Hermione. Travers sent you, did he? 

 Y-yes, squeaked Hermione. 

 God, youll do perfectly well. Umbridge spoke to the wizard in black and gold. 
Thats that problem solved. Minister, if Mafalda can be spared for record-keeping we 
shall be able to start straightaway. She consulted her clipboard. Ten people today and 
one of them the wife of a Ministry employee! Tut, tut even here, in the heart of the 
Ministry! She stepped into the lift besides Hermione, as did the two wizards who had 
been listening to Umbridges conversation with the Minister. Well go straight down, 
Mafalda, youll find everything you need in the courtroom. Good morning, Albert, arent 
you getting out? 

 Yes, of course, said Harry in Runcorns deep voice. 

 Harry stepped out of the life. The golden grilles clanged shut behind him. 
Glancing over his shoulder, Harry saw Hermiones anxious face sinking back out of sight, 
a tall wizard on either side of her, Umbridges velvet hair-bow level with her shoulder. 

 What brings you here, Runcorn? asked the new Minister of Magic. His long 
black hair and beard were streaked with silver and a great overhanging forehead 
shadowed his glinting eyes, putting Harry in the mind of a crab looking out from beneath 
a rock. 


 Needed a quick word with, Harry hesitated for a fraction of a second, Arthur 
Weasley. Someone said he was up on level one. 

 Ah, said Plum Thicknesse. Has he been caught having contact with an 
Undesirable? 

 No, said Harry, his throat dry. No, nothing like that. 

 Ah, well. Its only a matter of time, said Thicknesse. If you ask me, the blood 
traitors are as bad as the Mudbloods. Good day, Runcorn. 

 Good day, Minister. 

 Harry watched Thicknesse march away along the thickly carpeted corridor. The 
moment the Minister had passed out of sight, Harry tugged the Invisibility Cloak out 
from under his heavy black cloak, threw it over himself, and set off along the corridor in 
the opposite direction. Runcorn was so tall that Harry was forced to stoop to make sure 
his big feet were hidden. 

 Panic pulsed in the pit of his stomach. As he passed gleaming wooden door after 
gleaming wooden door, each bearing a small plaque with the owners name and 
occupation upon it, the might of the Ministry, its complexity, its impenetrability, seemed 
to force itself upon him so that the plan he had been carefully concocting with Ron and 
Hermione over the past four weeks seemed laughably childish. They had concentrated all 
their efforts on getting inside without being detected: They had not given a moments 
thought to what they would do if they were forced to separate. Now Hermione was stuck 
in court proceedings, which would undoubtedly last hours; Ron was struggling to do 
magic that Harry was sure was beyond him, a womans liberty possibly depending on the 
outcome, and he, Harry, was wandering around on the top floor when he knew perfectly 
well that his quarry had just gone down in the lift. 

 He stopped walking, leaned against a wall, and tried to decide what to do. The 
silence pressed upon him: There was no bustling or talk or swift footsteps here the 
purple-carpeted corridors were as hushed as though the Muffliato charm had been cast 
over the place. 

 Her office must be up here, Harry thought. 

 It seemed most unlikely that Umbridge would keep her jewelry in her office, but 
on the other hand it seemed foolish not to search it to make sure. He therefore set off 
along the corridor again, passing nobody but a frowning wizard who was murmuring 
instructions to a quill that floated in front of him, scribbling on a trail of parchment. 

 Now paying attention to the names on the doors, Harry turned a corner. Halfway 
along the next corridor he emerged into a wide, open space where a dozen witches and 
wizards sat in rows at small desks not unlike school desks, though much more highly 
polished and free from graffiti. Harry paused to watch them, for the effect was quite 
mesmerizing. They were all waving and twiddling their wands in unison, and squares of 
colored paper were flying in every direction like little pink kites. After a few seconds, 
Harry realized that there was a rhythm to the proceedings, that the papers all formed the 
same pattern and after a few more seconds he realized what he was watching was the 
creation of pamphlets C that the paper squares were pages, which, when assembled, 
folded and magicked into place, fell into neat stacks beside each witch or wizard. 

 Harry crept closer, although the workers were so intent on what they were doing 
that he doubted they would notice a carpet-muffled footstep, and he slid a completed 


pamphlet from the pile beside a young witch. He examined it beneath the Invisibility 
Cloak. Its pink cover was emblazoned with a golden title: 

 

Mudbloods 

and the Dangers They Pose to 

a Peaceful Pure-Blood Society 

 

 Beneath the title was a picture of a red rose with a simpering face in the middle of 
its petals, being strangled by a green weed with fangs and a scowl. There was no authors 
name upon the pamphlet, but again, the scars on the back of his right hand seemed to 
tingle as he examined it. Then the young witch beside him confirmed his suspicion as she 
said, still waving and twirling her wand, Will the old hag be interrogating Mudbloods all 
day, does anyone know? 

 Careful, said the wizard beside her, glancing around nervously; one of his pages 
slipped and fell to the floor. 

 What, has she got magic ears as well as an eye, now? 

 The witch glanced toward the shining mahogany door facing the space full of 
pamphlet-makers; Harry looked too, and the rage reared in him like a snake. Where there 
might have been a peephole on a Muggle front door, a large, round eye with a bright blue 
iris had been set into the wood C an eye that was shockingly familiar to anybody who had 
known Alastor Moody. 

 For a split second Harry forgot where he was and what he was doing there: He 
even forgot that he was invisible. He strode straight over to the door to examine the eye. 
It was not moving. It gazed blindly upward, frozen. The plaque beneath it read: 

 

Dolores Umbridge 

Senior Undersecretary to the Minister 

 

 Below that a slightly shinier new plaque read: 

 

Head of the Muggle-Born 

Registration Commission 

 

 Harry looked back at the dozen pamphlet-makers: Though they were intent upon 
their work, he could hardly suppose that they would not notice if the door of an empty 
office opened in front of them. He therefore withdrew from an inner pocket an odd object 
with little waving legs and a rubber-bulbed horn for a body. Crouching down beneath the 
Cloak, he placed the Decoy Detonator on the ground. 

 It scuttled away at once through the legs of the witches and wizards in front of 
him. A few moments later, during which Harry waited with his hand upon the doorknob, 
there came a loud bang and a great deal of acrid smoke billowed from a corner. The 
young witch in the front row shrieked: Pink pages flew everywhere as she and her 
fellows jumped up, looking around for the source of the commotion. Harry turned the 
doorknob, stepped into Umbridges office, and closed the door behind him. 


 He felt he had stepped back in time. The room was exactly like Umbridges office 
at Hogwarts: Lace draperies, doilies and dried flowers covered every surface. The walls 
bore the same ornamental plates, each featuring a highly colored, beribboned kitten, 
gamboling and frisking with sickening cuteness. The desk was covered with a flouncy, 
flowered cloth. Behind Mad-eyes eye, a telescopic attachment enabled Umbridge to spy 
on the workers on the other side of the door. Harry took a look through it and saw that 
they were all still gathered around the Decoy Detonator. He wrenched the telescope out 
of the door, leaving a hole behind, pulled the magical eyeball out of it, and placed it in his 
pocket. The he turned to face the room again, raised his wand, and murmured, Accio 
Locker. 

 Nothing happened, but he had not expected it to; no doubt Umbridge knew all 
about protective charms and spells. He therefore hurried behind her desk and began 
pulling open all the drawers. He saw quills and notebooks and Spellotape; enchanted 
paper clips that coiled snakelike from their drawer and had be beaten back; a fussy little 
lace box full of spare hair bows and clips; but no sign of a locket. 

 There was a filing cabinet behind the desk: Harry set to searching it. Like Filchs 
filing cabinet at Hogwarts, it was full of folders, each labeled with a name. It was not 
until Harry reached the bottommost drawer that he saw something to distract him from 
the search: Mr. Weasleys file. 

 He pulled it out and opened it. 

 

Arthur Weasley 

Blood Status: 

Pureblood, but with unacceptable pro-Muggle 
leanings. Known member of the Order of the 
Phoenix. 

Family: 

Wife (pureblood), seven children, two 
youngest at Hogwarts. NB: Youngest son 
currently at home, seriously ill, Ministry 
inspectors have confirmed. 

Security Status: 

TRACKED. All movements are being 
monitored. Strong likelihood Undesirable No. 
1 will contact (has stayed with Weasley 
family previously) 



 

 Undesirable Number One, Harry muttered under his breath as he replaced Mr. 
Weasleys folder and shut the drawer. He had an idea he knew who that was, and sure 
enough, as he straightened up and glanced around the office for fresh hiding places he 
saw a poster of himself on the wall, with the words UNDESIRABLE NO. 1 emblazoned 
across his chest. A little pink note was stuck to it with a picture of a kitten in the corner. 
Harry moved across to read it and saw that Umbridge had written, To be punished. 

 Angrier than ever, he proceeded to grope in the bottoms of the vases and baskets 
of dried flowers, but was not at all surprised that the locket was not there. He gave the 
office one last sweeping look, and his heart skipped a beat. Dumbledore was staring at 
him from a small rectangular mirror, propped up on a bookcase beside the desk. 

 Harry crossed the room at a run and snatched it up, but realized that the moment 
he touched it that it was not a mirror at all. Dumbledore was smiling wistfully out of the 


front cover of a glossy book. Harry had not immediately noticed the curly green writing 
across his hat C The Life and Lies of Albus Dumbledore C nor the slightly smaller writing 
across his chest: by Rita Skeeter, bestselling author of Armando Dippet: Master or 
Moron? 

 Harry opened the book at random and saw a full-page photograph of two teenage 
boys, both laughing immoderately with their arms around each others shoulders. 
Dumbledore, now with elbow-length hair, had grown a tiny wispy beard that recalled the 
one on Krums chin that had so annoyed Ron. The boy who roared in silent amusement 
beside Dumbledore had a gleeful, wild look about him. His golden hair fell in curls to his 
shoulders. Harry wondered whether it was a young Doge, but before he could check the 
caption, the door of the office opened. 

 If Thicknesse had not been looking over his shoulder as he entered, Harry would 
not have had time to pull the Invisibility Cloak over himself. As it was, he thought 
Thicknesse might have caught a glimpse of movement, because for a moment or two he 
remained quite still, staring curiously at the place where Harry had just vanished. Perhaps 
deciding that that all he had seen was Dumbledore scratching his nose on the front of the 
book, for Harry had hastily replaced it upon the shelf. Thicknesse finally walked to the 
desk and pointed his wand at the quill standing ready in the ink pot. It sprang out and 
began scribbling a note to Umbridge. Very slowly, hardly daring to breathe, Harry 
backed out of the office into the open area beyond. 

 The pamphlet-makers were still clustered around the remains of the Decoy 
Detonator, which continued to hoot feebly as it smoked. Harry hurried off up the corridor 
as the young witch said, I bet it sneaked up here from Experimental Charms, theyre so 
careless, remember that poisonous duck? 

 Speeding back toward the lifts, Harry reviewed his options. It had never been 
likely that the locket was here at the Ministry, and there was no hope of bewitching its 
whereabouts out of Umbridge while she was sitting in a crowded court. Their priority 
now had to be to leave the Ministry before they were exposed, and try again another day. 
The first thing to do was to find Ron, and then they could work out a way of extracting 
Hermione from the courtroom. 

 The lift was empty when it arrived. Harry jumped in and pulled off the Invisibility 
Cloak as it started its descent. To his enormous relief, when it rattled to a halt at level two, 
a soaking-wet and wild-eyed Ron got in. 

 M-morning, he stammered to Harry as the lift set off again. 

 Ron, its me, Harry! 

 Harry! Blimey, I forgot what you looked like C why isnt Hermione with you? 

 She had to go down to the courtrooms with Umbridge, she couldnt refuse, and C
 

 But before Harry could finish the lift had stopped again. The doors opened and 
Mr. Weasley walked inside, talking to an elderly witch whose blonde hair was teased so 
high it resembled an anthill. 

  I quite understand what youre saying, Wakanda, but Im afraid I cannot be 
party to C  

 Mr. Weasley broke off; he had noticed Harry. It was very strange to have Mr. 
Weasley glare at him with that much dislike. The lift doors closed and the four of them 
trundled downward once more. 


 Oh hello, Reg, said Mr. Weasley, looking around at the sound of steady 
dripping from Rons robes. Isnt your wife in for questioning today? Er C whats 
happened to you? Why are you so wet? 

 Yaxleys office is raining, said Ron. He addressed Mr. Weasleys shoulder, and 
Harry felt sure he was scared that his father might recognize him if they looked directly 
into each others eyes. I couldnt stop it, so theyve sent me to get Bernie C Pillsworth, I 
think they said C 

 Yes, a lot of offices have been raining lately, said Mr. Weasley. Did you try 
Meterolojinx Recanto? It worked for Bletchley. 

 Meteolojinx Recanto? whispered Ron. No, I didnt. Thanks, D C I mean, 
thanks, Arthur. 

 The lift doors opened; the old witch with the anthill hair left, and Ron darted past 
her out of sight. Harry made to follow him, but found his path blocked as Percy Weasley 
strode into the lift, his nose buried in some papers he was reading. 

 Not until the doors had clanged shut again did Percy realize he was in a lit with 
his father. He glanced up, saw Mr. Weasley, turned radish red, and left the lift the 
moment the doors opened again. For the second time, Harry tried to get out, but this time 
found his way blocked by Mr. Weasleys arm. 

 One moment, Runcorn. 

 The lift doors closed and as they clanked down another floor, Mr. Weasley said, 
I hear you had information about Dirk Cresswell. 

 Harry had the impression that Mr. Weasleys anger was no less because of the 
brush with Percy. He decided his best chance was to act stupid. 

 Sorry? he said. 

 Dont pretend, Runcorn, said Mr. Weasley fiercely. You tracked down the 
wizard who faked his family tree, didnt you? 

 I C so what if I did? said Harry. 

 So Dirk Cresswell is ten times the wizard you are, said Mr. Weasley quietly, as 
the lift sank ever lower. And if he survives Azkaban, youll have to answer to him, not 
to mention his wife, his sons, and his friends C 

 Arthur, Harry interrupted, you know youre being tracked, dont you? 

 Is that a threat, Runcorn? said Mr. Weasley loudly. 

 No, said Harry, its a fact! Theyre watching your every move C 

 The lift doors opened. They had reached the Atrium. Mr. Weasley gave Harry a 
scathing look and swept from the lift. Harry stood there, shaken. He wished he was 
impersonating somebody other than Runcorn. The lift doors clanged shut. 

 Harry pulled out the Invisibility Cloak and put it back on. He would try to 
extricate Hermione on his own while Ron was dealing with the raining office. When the 
doors opened, he stepped out into a torch-lit stone passageway quite different from the 
wood-paneled and carpeted corridors above. As the left rattled away again, Harry 
shivered slightly, looking toward the distant black door that marked the entrance to the 
Department of Mysteries. 

 He set off, his destination not the black door, but the doorway he remembered on 
the left hand side, which opened onto the flight of stairs down to the court chambers. His 
mind grappled with possibilities as he crept down them: He still had a couple of Decoy 
Detonators, but perhaps it would be better to simply knock on the courtroom door, enter 


as Runcorn, and ask for a quick word with Mafalda? Of course, he did not know whether 
Runcorn was sufficiently important to get away with this, and even if he managed it, 
Hermiones non-reappearance might trigger a search before they were clear of the 
Ministry. 

 Lost in thought, he did not immediately register the unnatural chill that was 
creeping over him, as if he were descending into fog. It was becoming colder and colder 
with every step he took; a cold that reached right down his throat and tore at his lungs. 
And then he felt that stealing sense of despair, or hopelessness, filling him, expanding 
inside him. 

 Dementors, he thought. 

 And as he reached the foot of the stairs and turned to his right he saw a dreadful 
scene. The dark passage outside the courtrooms was packed with tall, black-hooded 
figures, their faces completely hidden, their ragged breathing the only sound in the place. 
The petrified Muggle-borns brought in for questioning sat huddled and shivering on hard 
wooden benches. Most of them were hiding their faces in their hands, perhaps in an 
instinctive attempt to shield themselves from the dementors greedy mouths. Some were 
accompanied by families, others sat alone. The dementors were gliding up and down in 
front of them, and the cold, and the hopelessness, and the despair of the place laid 
themselves upon Harry like a curse. 

 Fight it, he told himself, but he knew that he could not conjure a Patronus here 
without revealing himself instantly. So he moved forward as silently as he could, and 
with every step he took numbness seemed to steal over his brain, but he forced himself to 
think of Hermione and of Ron, who needed him. 

 Moving through the towering black figures was terrifying: The eyeless faces 
hidden beneath their hoods turned as he passed, and he felt sure that they sensed him, 
sensed, perhaps, a human presence that still had some hope, some resilience. 

 And then, abruptly and shockingly amid the frozen silence, one of the dungeon 
doors on the left of the corridor was flung open and screams echoed out of it. 

 No, no, Im half-blood, Im half-blood, I tell you! My father was a wizard, he 
was, look him up, Arkie Alderton, hes a well known broomstick designer, look him up, I 
tell you C get your hands off me, get your hands off C 

 This is your final warning, said Umbridges soft voice, magically magnified so 
that it sounded clearly over the mans desperate screams. If you struggle, you will be 
subjected to the Dementors Kiss. 

 The mans screams subsided, but dry sobs echoed through the corridor. 

 Take him away, said Umbridge. 

 Two dementors appeared in the doorway of the courtroom, their rotting, scabbed 
hands clutching the upper arms of a wizard who appeared to be fainting. They glided 
away down the corridor with him, and the darkness they trailed behind them swallowed 
him from sight. 

 Next C Mary Cattermole, called Umbridge. 

 A small woman stood up; she was trembling from head to foot. Her dark hair was 
smoothed back into a bun and she wore long plain robes. Her face was completely 
bloodless. As she passed the dementors, Harry saw her shudder. 


 Spare us, spat Yaxley. The brats of Mudbloods do not stir our sympathies. 

 Mrs. Cattermoles sobs masked Harrys footsteps as he made his way carefully 
toward the steps that led up to the raised platform. The moment he had passed the place 
where the Patronus cat patrolled, he felt the change in temperature: It was warm and 
comfortable here. The Patronus, he was sure, was Umbridges, and it glowed brightly 
because she was so happy here, in her element, upholding the twisted laws she had 
helped to write. Slowly and very carefully he edged his way along the platform behind 
Umbridge, Yaxley, and Hermione, taking a seat behind the latter. He was worried about 
making Hermione jump. He thought of casting the Muffliato charm upon Umbridge and 
Yaxley, but even murmuring the word might cause Hermione alarm. Then Umbridge 
raised her voice to address Mrs. Cattermole, and Harry seized his chance. 

 Im behind you, he whispered into Hermiones ear. 

 As he had expected, she jumped so violently she nearly overturned the bottle of 
ink with which she was supposed to be recording the interview, but both Umbridge and 
Yaxley were concentrating upon Mrs. Cattermole, and this went unnoticed. 

 A wand was taken from you upon your arrival at the Ministry today, Mrs. 
Cattermole, Umbridge was saying. Eight-and-three-quarter inches, cherry, unicorn-hair 
core. Do you recognize the description? 

 Mrs. Cattermole nodded, mopping her eyes on her sleeve. 

 Could you please tell us from which witch or wizard you took that wand? 

 He did it instinctively, without any sort of plan, because he hated the sight of her 
walking alone into the dungeon: As the door began to swing closed, he slipped into the 
courtroom behind her. 

 It was not the same room in which he had once been interrogated for improper use 
of magic. This one was much smaller, though the ceiling was quite as high it gave the 
claustrophobic sense of being stuck at the bottom of a deep well. 

 There were more dementors in here, casting their freezing aura over the place; 
they stood like faceless sentinels in the corners farthest from the high, raised platform. 
Here, behind a balustrade, sat Umbridge, with Yaxley on one side of her, and Hermione, 
quite as white-faced as Mrs. Cattermole, on the other. At the foot of the platform, a bight-
silver, long-haired cat prowled up and down, up and down, and Harry realized that it was 
there to protect the prosecutors from the despair that emanated from the dementors: That 
was for the accused to feel, not the accusers. 

 Sit down, said Umbridge in her soft, silky voice. 

 Mrs. Cattermole stumbled to the single seat in the middle of the floor beneath the 
raised platform. The moment she had sat down, chains clinked out of the arms of the 
chair and bound her there. 

 You are Mary Elizabeth Cattermole? asked Umbridge. 

 Mrs. Cattermole gave a single, shaky nod. 

 Married to Reginald Cattermole of the Magical Maintenance Department? 

 Mrs. Cattermole burst into tears. 

 I dont know where he is, he was supposed to meet me here! 

 Umbridge ignored her. 

 Mother to Maisie, Ellie and Alfred Cattermole? 
Mrs. Cattermole sobbed harder than ever. 

 Theyre frightened, they think that I might not come home C 


 T-took? sobbed Mrs. Cattermole. I didnt t-take it from anybody. I b-bought it 
when I was eleven years old. It C it C it C chose me. 

 She cried harder than ever. 

 Umbridge laughed a soft girlish laugh that made Harry want to attack her. She 
leaned forward over the barrier, the better to observe her victim, and something gold 
swung forward too, and dangled over the void: the locket. 

 Hermione had seen it; she let out a little squeak, but Umbridge and Yaxley, still 
intent upon their prey, were deaf to everything else. 

 No, said Umbridge, no, I dont think so, Mrs. Cattermole. Wands only choose 
witches or wizards. You are not a witch. I have your responses to the questionnaire that 
was sent to you here C Mafalda, pass them to me. 

 Umbridge held out a small hand: She looked so toadlike at that moment that 
Harry was quite surprised not to see webs between the stubby fingers. Hermiones hands 
were shaking with shock. She fumbled in a pile of documents balanced on the chair 
beside her, finally withdrawing a sheaf of parchment with Mrs. Cattermoles name on it. 

 Thats C thats pretty, Dolores, she said, pointing at the pendant gleaming in the 
ruffled folds of Umbridges blouse. 

 What? snapped Umbridge, glancing down. Oh yes C an old family heirloom, 
she said, patting the locket lying on her large bosom. The S stands for Selwyn. I am 
related to the Selwyns. Indeed, there are few pure-blood families to whom I am not 
related. A pity, she continued in a louder voice, flicking through Mrs. Cattermoles 
questionnaire, that the same cannot be said for you. Parents professions: 
greengrocers. 

 Yaxley laughed jeeringly. Below, the fluffy silver cat patrolled up and down, and 
the dementors stood waiting in the corners. 

 It was Umbridges lie that brought the blood surging into Harrys brain and 
obliterated his sense of caution C that the locket she had taken as a bribe from a petty 
criminal was being used to bolster her own pure-blood credentials. He raised his wand, 
not even troubling to keep it concealed beneath the Invisibility Cloak, and said, 
Stupefy! 

 There was a flash of red light; Umbridge crumpled and her forehead hit the edge 
of the balustrade: Mrs. Cattermoles papers slid off her lap onto the floor and, down 
below, the prowling silver cat vanished. Ice-cold air hit them like an oncoming wind: 
Yaxley, confused, looked around for the source of the trouble and saw Harrys 
disembodied hand and wand pointing at him. He tried to draw his own wand, but too late: 
Stupefy! 

 Yaxley slid to the ground to lie curled on the floor. 

 Harry! 

 Hermione, if you think I was going to sit here and let her pretend C 

 Harry, Mrs. Cattermole! 

 Harry whirled around, throwing off the Invisibility Cloak; down below, the 
dementors had moved out of their corners; they were gliding toward the woman chained 
to the chair: Whether because the Patronus had vanished or because they sensed that their 
masters were no longer in control, they seemed to have abandoned restraint. Mrs. 
Cattermole let out a terrible scream of fear as a slimy, scabbed hand grasped her chin and 
forced her face back. 


 EXPECTO PATRONUM! 

 The silver stag soared from the tip of Harrys wand and leaped toward the 
dementors, which fell back and melted into the dark shadows again. The stags light, 
more powerful and more warming than the cats protection, filled the whole dungeon as it 
cantered around the room. 

 Get the Horcrux, Harry told Hermione. 

 He ran back down the steps, stuffing the Invisibility Cloak into his back, and 
approached Mrs. Cattermole. 

 You? she whispered, gazing into his face. But C but Reg said you were the one 
who submitted my name for questioning! 

 Did I? muttered Harry, tugging at the chains binding her arms, Well, Ive had 
a change of heart. Diffindo! Nothing happened. Hermione, how do I get rid of these 
chains? 
Wait, Im trying something up here C 

 Hermione, were surrounded by dementors! 

 I know that, Harry, but if she wakes up and the lockets gone C I need to 
duplicate it C Geminio! There That should fool her. 

 Hermione came running downstairs. 

 Lets see. Relashio! 

 The chains clinked and withdrew into the arms of the chair. Mrs. Cattermole 
looked just as frightened as ever before. 

 I dont understand, she whispered. 

 Youre going to leave here with us, said Harry, pulling her to her feet. Go 
home, grab your children, and get out, get out of the country if youve got to. Disguise 
yourselves and run. Youve seen how it is, you wont get anything like a fair hearing 
here. 

 Harry, said Hermione, how are we going to get out of here with all those 
dementors outside the door? 

 Patronuses, said Harry, pointing his wand at his own. The stag slowed and 
walked, still gleaming brightly, toward the door. As many as we can muster; do yours, 
Hermione. 

 Expec C Expecto patronum, said Hermione. Nothing happened. 

 Its the only spell she ever has trouble with, Harry told a completely bemused 
Mrs. Cattermole. Bit unfortunate, really Come on Hermione. 

 Expecto patronum! 

 A silver otter burst from the end of Hermiones wand and swam gracefully 
through the air to join the stag. 

 Cmon, said Harry, and he led Hermione and Mrs. Cattermole to the door. 

 When the Patronuses glided out of the dungeon there were cries of shock from the 
people waiting outside. Harry looked around; the dementors were falling back on both 
sides of them, melding into the darkness, scattering before the silver creatures. 

 Its been decided that you should all go home and go into hiding with your 
families, Harry told the waiting Muggle-born, who were dazzled by the light of the 
Patronuses and still cowering slightly. Go abroad if you can. Just get well away from the 
Ministry. Thats the C er C new official position. Now, if youll just follow the Patronuses, 
youll be able to leave the Atrium. 


 They managed to get up the stone stops without being intercepted, but as they 
approached the lifts Harry started to have misgivings. If they emerged into the Atrium 
with a silver stag, and otter soaring alongside it, and twenty or so people, half of them 
accused Muggle-borns, he could not help feeling that they would attract unwanted 
attention. He had just reached this unwelcome conclusion when the lift clanged to a halt 
in front of them. 

 Reg! screamed Mrs. Cattermole, and she threw herself into Rons arms. 
Runcorn let me out, he attacked Umbridge and Yaxley, and hes told all of us to leave 
the country. I think wed better do it, Reg, I really do, lets hurry home and fetch the 
children and C why are you so wet? 

 Water, muttered Ron, disengaging himself. Harry, they know there are 
intruders inside the Ministry, something about a hole in Umbridges office door. I reckon 
weve got five minutes if that C 

 Hermiones Patronus vanished with a pop as she turned a horror struck face to 
Harry. 

 Harry, if were trapped here C ! 

 We wont be if we move fast, said Harry. He addressed the silent group behind 
them, who were all gawping at him. 

 Whos got wands? 

 About half of them raised their hands. 

 Okay, all of you who havent got wands need to attach yourself to somebody 
who has. Well need to be fast before they stop us. Come on. 

 They managed to cram themselves into two lifts. Harrys Patronus stood sentinel 
before the golden grilles as they shut and the lifts began to rise. 

 Level eight, said the witchs cool voice, Atrium. 

 Harry knew at once that they were in trouble. The Atrium was full of people 
moving from fireplace to fireplace, sealing them off. 

 Harry! squeaked Hermione. What are we going to C ? 

 STOP! Harry thundered, and the powerful voice of Runcorn echoed through the 
Atrium: The wizards sealing the fireplaces froze. Follow me, he whispered to the group 
of terrified Muggle-borns, who moved forward in a huddle, shepherded by Ron and 
Hermione. 

 Whats up, Albert? said the same balding wizard who had followed Harry out 
of the fireplace earlier. He looked nervous. 

 This lot need to leave before you seal the exits, said Harry with all the authority 
he could muster. 

 The group of wizards in front of him looked at one another. 

 Weve been told to seal all exits and not let anyone C 

 Are you contradicting me? Harry blustered. Would you like me to have your 
family tree examined, like I had Dirk Cresswells? 

 Sorry! gasped the balding wizard, backing away. I didnt mean nothing, Albert, 
but I thought I thought they were in for questioning and 

 Their blood is pure, said Harry, and his deep voice echoed impressively through 
the hall. Purer than many of yours, I daresay. Off you go, he boomed to the Muggle-
borns, who scurried forward into the fireplaces and began to vanish in pairs. The Ministry 
wizards hung back, some looking confused, others scared and fearful. Then: 


 Mary! 

 Mrs. Cattermole looked over her shoulder. The real Reg Cattermole, no longer 
vomiting but pale and wan, had just come running out of a lift. 

 R- Reg? 

 She looked from her husband to Ron, who swore loudly. 

 The balding wizard gaped, his head turning ludicrously from one Reg Cattermole 
to the other. 

 Hey C whats going on? What is this? 

 Seal the exit! SEAL IT! 

 Yaxley had burst out of another lift and was running toward the group beside the 
fireplaces, into which all of the Muggle-borns but Mrs. Cattermole had now vanished. As 
the balding wizard lifted his wand, Harry raised an enormous fist and punched him, 
sending him flying through the air. 

 Hes been helping Muggle-borns escape, Yaxley! Harry shouted. 

 The balding wizards colleagues set up and uproar, under cover of which Ron 
grabbed Mrs. Cattermole, pulled her into the still-open fireplace, and disappeared. 
Confused, Yaxley looked from Harry to the punched wizard, while the real Reg 
Cattermole screamed, My wife! Who was that with my wife? Whats going on? 

 Harry saw Yaxleys head turn, saw an inkling of truth dawn on that brutish face. 

 Come on! Harry shouted at Hermione; he seized her hand and they jumped into 
the fireplace together as Yaxleys curse sailed over Harrys head. They spun for a few 
seconds before shooting up out of a toilet into a cubicle. Harry flung open the door: Ron 
was standing there beside the sinks, still wrestling with Mrs. Cattermole. 

 Reg, I dont understand C 

 Let go, Im not your husband, youve got to go home! 

 There was a noise in the cubicle behind them; Harry looked around; Yaxley had 
just appeared. 

 LETS GO! Harry yelled. He seized Hermione by the hand and Ron by the arm 
and turned on the stop. 

 Darkness engulfed them, along with the sensation of compressing hands, but 
something was wrong. Hermiones hand seemed to be sliding out of his grip. 

 He wondered whether he was going to suffocate; he could not breathe or see and 
the only solid things in the world were Rons arm and Hermiones fingers, which were 
slowly slipping away. 

 And then he saw the door to number twelve, Grimmauld Place, with its serpent 
door knocker, but before he could draw breath, there was a scream and a flash of purple 
light: Hermiones hand was suddenly vicelike upon his and everything went dark again. 

Chapter Fourteen 

The Thief 

 

Harry opened his eyes and was dazzled by gold and green; he had no idea what 
had happened, he only knew that he was lying on what seemed to be leaves and twigs. 
Struggling to draw breath into lungs that felt flattened, he blinked and realized that the 
gaudy glare was sunlight streaming through a canopy of leaves far above him. Then an 


object twitched close to his face. He pushed himself onto his hands and knees, ready to 
face some small, fierce creature, but saw that the object was Rons foot. Looking around, 
Harry saw that they and Hermione were lying on a forest floor, apparently alone. 

 Harrys first thought was of the Forbidden Forest, and for a moment, even though 
he knew how foolish and dangerous it would be for them to appear in the grounds of 
Hogwarts, his heart leapt at the thought of sneaking through the trees to Hagrids hut. 
However, in the few moments it took for Ron to give a low groan and Harry to start 
crawling toward him, he realized that this was not the Forbidden Forest; The trees looked 
younger, they were more widely spaced, the ground clearer. 

 He met Hermione, also on her hands and knees, at Rons head. The moment his 
eyes fell upon Ron, all other concerns fled Harrys mind, for blood drenched the whole of 
Rons left side and his face stood out, grayish-white, against the leaf-strewn earth. The 
Polyjuice Potion was wearing off now: Ron was halfway between Cattermole and himself 
in appearance, his hair turning redder and redder as his face drained of the little color it 
had left. 

 Whats happened to him? 

 Splinched, said Hermione, her fingers already busy at Rons sleeve, where the 
blood was wettest and darkest. 

 Harry watched, horrified, as she tore open Rons short. He had always thought of 
Splinching as something comical, but this . . . His insides crawled unpleasantly as 
Hermione laid bare Rons upper arm, where a great chunk of flesh was missing, scooped 
cleanly away as though by a knife. 

 Harry, quickly, in my bag, theres a small bottle labeled Essence of DittanyC  

 Bag C right C 

 Harry sped to the place where Hermione had landed, seized the tiny beaded bag, 
and thrust his hand inside it. At once, object after object began presenting itself to his 
touch: He felt the leather spines of books, woolly sleeves of jumpers, heels of shoes C 

 Quickly! 

 He grabbed his wand from the ground and pointed it into the depths of the 
magical bag. 

 Accio Dittany! 

 A small brown bottle zoomed out of the bag; he caught it and hastened back to 
Hermione and Ron, whose eyes were now half-closed, strips of white eyeball all that 
were visible between his lids. 

 Hes fainted, said Hermione, who was also rather pale; she no longer looked 
like Mafalda, though her hair was still gray in places. Unstopper it for me, Harry, my 
hands are shaking. 

 Harry wrenched the stopper off the little bottle, Hermione took it and poured three 
drops of the potion onto the bleeding wound. Greenish smoke billowed upward and when 
it had cleared, Harry saw that the bleeding had stopped. The wound now looked several 
days old; new skin stretched over what had just been open flesh. 

 Wow, said Harry. 

 Its all I feel safe doing, said Hermione shakily. There are spells that would put 
him completely right, but I darent try in case I do them wrong and cause more 
damage. . . . Hes lost so much blood already. . . . 


 How did he get hurt? I mean C Harry shook his head, trying to clear it, to make 
sense of whatever had just taken place C why are we here? I thought we were going back 
to Grimmauld Place? 

 Hermione took a deep breath. She looked close to tears. 

 Harry, I dont think were going to be able to go back there. 

 What dyou C ? 

 As we Disapparated, Yaxley caught hold of me and I couldnt get rid of him, he 
was too strong, and he was still holding on when we arrived at Grimmauld Place, and 
then C well, I think he must have seen the door, and thought we were stopping there, so 
he slackened his grip and I managed to sake him off and I brought us here instead! 

 But then, wheres he? Hang on. . . . You dont mean hes at Grimmauld Place? 
He cant get in there? 

 Her eyes sparkled with unshed tears as she nodded. 

 Harry, I think he can. I C I forced him to let go with a Revulsion Jinx, but Id 
already taken him inside the Fidelius Charms protection. Since Dumbledore died, were 
Secret-Keepers, so Ive given him the secret, havent I? 

 There was no pretending; Harry was sure she was right. It was a serious blow. If 
Yaxley could now get inside the house, there was no way that they could return. Even 
now, he could be bringing other Death Eaters in there by Apparition. Gloomy and 
oppressive though the house was, it had been their one safe refuge; even, now that 
Kreacher was so much happier and friendlier, a kind of home. With a twinge of regret 
that had nothing to do with food, Harry imagined the house-elf busying himself over the 
steak-and-kidney pie that Harry, Ron, and Hermione would never eat. 

 Harry, Im sorry, Im so sorry! 

 Dont be stupid, it wasnt your fault! If anything, it was mine. . . . 

 Harry put his hand in his pocket and drew out Mad-Eyes eye. Hermione recoiled, 
looking horrified. 

 Umbridge had stuck it to her office door, to spy on people. I couldnt leave it 
there . . . but thats how they knew there were intruders. 

 Before Hermione could answer, Ron groaned and opened his eyes. He was still 
gray and his face glistened with sweat. 

 How dyou feel? Hermione whispered. 

 Lousy, croaked Ron, wincing as he felt his injured arm. Where are we? 

 In the woods where they held the Quidditch World Cup, said Hermione. I 
wanted somewhere enclosed, undercover, and this was C 

 C the first place you thought of, Harry finished for her, glancing around at the 
apparently deserted glade. He could not help remembering what had happened the last 
time they had Apparated to the first place Hermione had thought of C how Death Eaters 
had found them within minutes. Had it been Legilimency? Did Voldemort or his 
henchmen know, even now, where Hermione had taken them? 

 Dyou reckon we should move on? Ron asked Harry, and Harry could tell by 
the look on Rons face that he was thinking the same. 

 I dunno. 
Ron still looked pale and clammy. He had made no attempt to sit up and it looked 
as though he was too weak to do so. The prospect of moving him was daunting. 

 Lets stay here for now, Harry said. 


 Looking relieved, Hermione sprang to her feet. 

 Where are you going? asked Ron. 

 If were staying, we should put some protective enchantments around the place, 
she replied, and raising her wand, she began to walk in a wide circle around Harry and 
Ron, murmuring incantations as she went. Harry saw little disturbances in the 
surrounding air: It was as if Hermione had cast a heat haze upon their clearing. 

 Salvio Hexia . . . Protego Totalum . . . Repello Muggletum . . . Muffliato . . . You 
could get out the tent, Harry. . . . 

 Tent? 

 In the bag! 

 In the . . . of course, said Harry. 

 He did not bother to grope inside it this time, but used another Summoning Charm. 
The tent emerged in a lumpy mass of canvas, ropes, and poles. Harry recognized it, partly 
because of the smell of cats, as the same tent in which they had slept on the night of the 
Quidditch World Cup. 

 I thought this belonged to that bloke Perkins at the Ministry? he asked, starting 
to disentangle the pent pegs. 

 Apparently he didnt want it back, his lumbagos so bad, said Hermione, now 
performing complicated figure-of-eight movements with her wand. so Rons dad said I 
could borrow it. Erecto! she added, pointing her wand at the misshapen canvas, which in 
one fluid motion rose into the air and settled, fully constructed, onto the ground before 
Harry, out of whose startled hands a tent peg soared, to land with a final thud at the end 
of a guy rope. 

 Cave Inimicum, Hermione finished with a skyward flourish. Thats as much as 
I can do. At the very least, we should know theyre coming; I cant guarantee it will keep 
out Vol C 

 Dont say the name! Ron cut across her, his voice harsh. 

 Harry and Hermione looked at each other. 

 Im sorry, Ron said, moaning a little as he raised himself to look at them, but it 
feels like a C a jinx or something. Cant we call him You-Know-Who C please? 

 Dumbledore said fear of a name C began Harry. 

 In case you hadnt noticed, mate, calling You-Know-Who by his name didnt do 
Dumbledore much good in the end, Ron snapped back. Just C just show You-Know-
Who some respect, will you? 

 Respect? Harry repeated, but Hermione shot him a warning look; apparently he 
was not to argue with Ron while the latter was in such a weakened condition. 

 Harry and Hermione half carried, half dragged Ron through the entrance of the 
tent. The interior was exactly as Harry remembered it; a small flat, complete with 
bathroom and tiny kitchen. He shoved aside an old armchair and lowered Ron carefully 
onto the lower berth of a bunk bed. Even this very short journey had turned Ron whiter 
still, and once they had settled him on the mattress he closed his eyes again and did not 
speak for a while. 

 Ill make some tea, said Hermione breathlessly, pulling kettle and mugs from 
the depths of her bag and heading toward the kitchen. 


 Harry found the hot drink as welcome as the firewhisky had been on the night that 
Mad-Eye had died; it seemed to burn away a little of the fear fluttering in his chest. After 
a minute or two, Ron broke the silence. 

 What dyou reckon happened to the Cattermoles? 

 With any luck, theyll have got away, said Hermione, clutching her hot mug for 
comfort. As long as Mr. Cattermole had his wits about him, hell have transported Mrs. 
Cattermole by Side-Along-Apparition and theyll be fleeing the country right now with 
their children. Thats what Harry told her to do. 

 Blimey, I hope they escaped, said Ron, leaning back on his pillows. The tea 
seemed to be doing him good; a little of his color had returned. I didnt get the feeling 
Reg Cattermole was all that quick-witted, though, the way everyone was talking to me 
when I was him. God, I hope they made it. . . . If they both end up in Azkaban because of 
us . . . 

 Harry looked over at Hermione and the question he had been about to ask C about 
whether Mrs. Cattermoles lack of a wand would prevent her Apparating alongside her 
husband C died in his throat. Hermione was watching Ron fret over the fate of the 
Cattermoles, and there was such tenderness in her expression that Harry felt almost as if 
he had surprised her in the act of kissing him. 

 So, have you got it? Harry asked her, partly to remind her that he was there. 

 Got C got what? she said with a little start. 

 What did we just go through all that for? The locket! Wheres the locket? 

 You got it? shouted Ron, raising himself a little higher on his pillows. No one 
tells me anything! Blimey, you could have mentioned it! 
Well, we were running for our lives from the Death Eaters, werent we? said 
Hermione. Here. 

 And she pulled the locket out of the pocket of her robes and handed it to Ron. 

 It was as large as a chickens egg. An ornate letter S, inlaid with many small green 
stones, glinted dully in the diffused light shining through the tents canvas roof. 

 There isnt any chance someones destroyed it since Kreacher had it? asked 
Ron hopefully. I mean, are we sure its still a Horcrux? 

 I think so, said Hermione, taking it back from him and looking at it closely. 
Thered be some sign of damage if it had been magically destroyed. 

 She passed it to Harry, who turned it over in his fingers. The thing looked perfect, 
pristine. He remembered the mangled remains of the diary, and how the stone in the 
Horcrux ring had been cracked open when Dumbledore destroyed it. 

 I reckon Kreachers right, said Harry. Were going to have to work out how to 
open this thing before we can destroy it. 

 Sudden awareness of what he was holding, of what lived behind the little golden 
doors, hit Harry as he spoke. Even after all their efforts to find it, he felt a violent urge to 
fling the locket from him. Mastering himself again, he tried to prise the locket apart with 
his fingers, then attempted the charm Hermione had used to open Reguluss bedroom 
door. Neither worked. He handed the locket back to Ron and Hermione, each of whom 
did their best, but were no more successful at opening it than he had been. 

 Can you feel it, though? Ron asked in a hushed voice, as he held it tight in his 
clenched fist. 


 What dyou mean? 
Ron passed the Horcrux to Harry. After a moment or two, Harry thought he knew 
what Ron meant. Was it his own blood pulsing through his veins that he could feel, or 
was it something beating inside the locket, like a tiny metal heart? 

 What are we going to do with it? Hermione asked. 

 Keep it safe till we work out how to destroy it. Harry replied, and, little though 
he wanted to, he hung the chain around his own neck, dropping the locket out of sight 
beneath his robes, where it rested against his chest beside the pouch Hagrid had given 
him. 

 I think we should take it in turns to keep watch outside the tent, he added to 
Hermione, standing up and stretching. And well need to think about some food as well. 
You stay there, he added sharply, as Ron attempted to sit up and turned a nasty shade of 
green. 

 With the Sneakoscope Hermione had given Harry for his birthday set carefully 
upon the table in the tent, Harry and Hermione spent the rest of the day sharing the role 
of lookout. However, the Sneakoscope remained silent and still upon its point all day, and 
whether because of the protective enchantments and Muggle-repelling charms Hermione 
had spread around them, or because people rarely ventured this way, their patch of wood 
remained deserted, apart from occasional birds and squirrels. Evening brought no change; 
Harry lit his wand as he swapped places with Hermione at ten oclock, and looked out 
upon a deserted scene, noting the bats fluttering high above him across the single patch of 
starry sky visible from their protected clearing. 

 He felt hungry now, and a little light-headed. Hermione had not packed any food 
in her magical bag, as she had assumed that they would be returning to Grimmauld Place 
that night, so they had had nothing to eat except some wild mushrooms that Hermione 
had collected from amongst the nearest trees and stewed in a Billycan. After a couple of 
mouthfuls Ron had pushed his portion away, looking queasy; Harry had only persevered 
so as to not hurt Hermiones feelings. 

 The surrounding silence was broken by odd rustlings and what sounded like 
crackings of twigs: Harry thought that they were caused by animals rather than people, 
yet he kept his wand held tight at the ready. His insides, already uncomfortable due to 
their inadequate helping of rubbery mushrooms, tingled with unease. 

 He had though that he would feel elated if they managed to steal back the Horcrux, 
but somehow he did not; all he felt as he sat looking out at the darkness, of which his 
wand lit only a tiny part, was worry about what would happen next. It was as though he 
had been hurtling toward this point for weeks, months, maybe even years, but how he had 
come to an abrupt halt, run out of road. 

 There were other Horcruxes out there somewhere, but he did not have the faintest 
idea where they could be. He did not even know what all of them were. Meanwhile he 
was at a loss to know how to destroy the only one that they had found, the Horcrux that 
currently lay against the bare flesh of his chest. Curiously, it had not taken heat from his 
body, but lay so cold against his skin it might just have emerged from icy water. From 
time to time Harry thought, or perhaps imagined, that he could feel the tiny heartbeat 
ticking irregularly alongside his own. Nameless forebodings crept upon him as he sat 
there in the dark. He tried to resist them, push them away, yet they came at him 
relentlessly. Neither can live while the other survives. Ron and Hermione, now talking 


softly behind him in the tent, could walk away if they wanted to: He could not. And it 
seemed to Harry as he sat there trying to master his own fear and exhaustion, that the 
Horcrux against his chest was ticking away the time he had left. . . . Stupid idea, he told 
himself, dont think that. . . . 

 His scar was starting to prickle again. He was afraid that he was making it happen 
by having these thoughts, and tried to direct them into another channel. He thought of 
poor Kreacher, who had expected them home and had received Yaxley instead. Would 
the elf keep silent or would he tell the Death Eater everything he knew? Harry wanted to 
believe that Kreacher had changed towards him in the past month, that he would be loyal 
now, but who knew what would happen? What if the Death Eaters tortured the elf? Sick 
images swarmed into Harrys head and he tried to push these away too, for there was 
nothing he could do for Kreacher: He and Hermione had already decided against trying to 
summon him; what if someone from the Ministry came too? They could not count on 
elfish Apparition being free from the same flaw that had taken Yaxley to Grimmauld 
Place on the hem of Hermiones sleeve. 

 Harrys scar was burning now. He thought that there was so much they did not 
know: Lupin had been right about magic they had never encountered or imagined. Why 
hadnt Dumbledore explained more? Had he thought that there would be time; that he 
would live for years, for centuries perhaps, like his friend Nicolas Flamel? If so, he had 
been wrong. . . . Snape had seen to that. . . . Snape, the sleeping snake, who had struck at 
the top of the tower . . . 

 And Dumbledore had fallen . . . fallen . . . 

 Give it to me, Gregorovitch. 

 Harrys voice was high, clear, and cold, his wand held in front of him by a long-
fingered white hand. The man at whom he was pointing was suspended upside down in 
midair, though there were no ropes holding him; he swung there, invisibly and eerily 
bound, his limbs wrapped about him, his terrified face, on a level with Harrys ruddy due 
to the blood that had rushed to his head. He had pure-white hair and a thick, bushy beard: 
a trussed-up Father Christmas. 

 I have it not, I have it no more! It was, many years ago, stolen from me! 

 Do not lie to Lord Voldemort, Gregorovitch. He knows. . . . He always knows. 
The hanging mans pupils were wide, dilated with fear, and they seemed to swell, 
bigger and bigger until their blackness swallowed Harry whole C 

 And how Harry was hurrying along a dark corridor in stout little Gregorovitchs 
wake as he held a lantern aloft: Gregorovitch burst into the room at the end of the passage 
and his lantern illuminated what looked like a workshop; wood shavings and gold 
gleamed in the swinging pool of light, and there on the window ledge sat perched, like a 
giant bird, a young man with golden hair. In the split second that the lanterns light 
illuminated him, Harry saw the delight upon his handsome face, then the intruder shot a 
Stunning Spell from his wand and jumped neatly backward out of the window with a 
crow of laughter. 

 And Harry was hurtling back out of those wide, tunnellike pupils and 
Gregorovitchs face was stricken with terror. 

 Who was the thief, Gregorovitch? said the high cold voice. 

 I do not know, I never knew, a young man C no C please C PLEASE! 

 A scream that went on and on and then a burst of green light C 


 Harry! 

 He opened his eyes, panting, his forehead throbbing. He had passed out against 
the side of the tent, had slid sideways down the canvas, and was sprawled on the ground. 
He looked up at Hermione, whose bushy hair obscured the tiny patch of sky visible 
through the dark branches high above them. 

 Dream, he said, sitting up quickly and attempting to meet Hermiones glower 
with a look of innocence. Mustve dozed off, sorry. 

 I know it was your scar! I can tell by the look on your face! You were looking 
into Vol C 

 Dont say his name! came Rons angry voice from the depths of the tent. 

 Fine, retorted Hermione, You-Know-Whos mind, then! 
I didnt mean it to happen! Harry said. It was a dream! Can you control what 
you dream about, Hermione? 

 If you just learned to apply Occlumency C 

 But Harry was not interested in being told off; he wanted to discuss what he had 
just seen. 

 Hes found Gregorovitch, Hermione, and I think hes killed him, but before he 
killed him he read Gregorovitchs mind and I saw C 

 I think Id better take over the watch if youre so tired youre falling sleep, said 
Hermione coldly. 

 I can finish the watch! 

 No, youre obviously exhausted. Go and lie down. 

 She dropped down in the mouth of the tent, looking stubborn. Angry, but wishing 
to avoid a row, Harry ducked back inside. 

 Rons still-pale face was poking out from the lower bunk; Harry climbed into the 
one above him, lay down, and looked up at the dark canvas ceiling. After several 
moments, Ron spoke in a voice so low that it would not carry to Hermione, huddle in the 
entrance. 

 Whats You-Know-Who doing? 

 Harry screwed up his eyes in the effort to remember every detail, then whispered 
into the darkness. 

 He found Gregorovitch. He had him tied up, he was torturing him. 
Hows Gregorovitch supposed to make him a new wand if hes tied up? 

 I dunno. . . . Its weird, isnt it? 

 Harry closed his eyes, thinking of all that he had seen and heard. The more he 
recalled, the less sense it made. . . . Voldemort had said nothing about Harrys wand, 
nothing about the twin cores, nothing about Gregorovitch making a new and more 
powerful wand to beat Harrys. . . . 

 He wanted something from Gregorovitch, Harry said, eyes still closed tight. 
He asked him to hand it over, but Gregorovitch said it had been stolen from him . . . and 
then . . . then . . . 

 He remembered how he, as Voldemort, had seemed to hurtle through 
Gregorovitchs eyes, into his memories. . . . 

 He read Gregorovitchs mind, and I saw this young bloke perched on a 
windowsill, and he fired a curse at Gregorovitch and jumped out of sight. He stole it, he 
stole whatever You-Know-Whos after. And I . . . I think Ive seen him somewhere. . . . 


 Harry wished he could have another glimpse of the laughing boys face. The theft 
had happened many years ago, according to Gregorovitch. Why did the young thief look 
familiar? 

 The noises of the surrounding woods were muffled inside the tent; all Harry could 
hear was Rons breathing. After a while, Ron whispered, Couldnt you see what the 
thief was holding? 

 No . . . it mustve been something small. 

 Harry? 

 The wooden slats of Rons bunk creaked as he repositioned himself in bed. 

 Harry, you dont reckon You-Know-Whos after something else to turn into a 
Horcrux? 

 I dont know, said Harry slowly. Maybe. But wouldnt it be dangerous for him 
to make another one? Didnt Hermione say he had pushed his soul to the limit already? 

 Yeah, but maybe he doesnt know that. 

 Yeah . . .maybe, said Harry. 

 He had been sure that Voldemort had been looking for a way around the problem 
of the twin cores, sure that Voldemort sought a solution from the old wandmaker . . . and 
yet he had killed him, apparently without asking him a single question about wandlore. 

 What was Voldemort trying to find? Why, with the Ministry of Magic and the 
Wizarding world at his feet, was he far away, intent on the pursuit of an object that 
Gregorovitch had once owned, and which had been stolen by the unknown thief? 

 Harry could still see the blond-haired youths face; it was merry, wild; there was a 
Fred and George-ish air of triumphant trickery about him. He had soared from the 
windowsill like a bird, and Harry had seen him before, but he could not think where. . . . 

 With Gregorovitch dead, it was the merry-faced thief who was in danger now, and 
it was on him that Harrys thoughts dwelled, as Rons snores began to rumble from the 
lower bunk and as he himself drifted slowly into sleep once more. 

 

Chapter Fifteen 

The Goblins Revenge 

 

 Early next morning, before the other two were awake, Harry left the tent to search 
the woods around them for the oldest, most gnarled, and resilient-looking tree he could 
find. There in its shadows he buried Mad-Eye Moody's eye and marked the spot by 
gouging a small cross in the bark with his wand. It was not much, but Harry felt that 
Mad-Eye would have much preferred this to being stuck on Dolores Umbridge's door. 
Then he returned to the tent to wait for the others to wake, and discuss what they were 
going to do next. 

 Harry and Hermione felt that it was best not to stay anywhere too long, and Ron 
agreed, wit the sole proviso that their next move took them within reach of a bacon 
sandwich. Hermione therefore removed the enchantments she had placed around the 
clearing, while Harry and Ron obliterated all the marks and impressions on the ground 
that might show they had camped there. Then they Disapparated to the outskirts of a 
small market town. 


 Once they had pitched the tent in the shelter of a small copse of trees and 
surrounded it with freshly cast defensive enchantments. Harry ventured out under the 
Invisibility Cloak to find sustenance. This, however, did not go as planned. He had barely 
entered the town when an unnatural chill, a descending mist, and a sudden darkening of 
the skies made him freeze where he stood. 

"But you can make a brilliant Patronus!" protested Ron, when Harry arrived back at the 
tent empty handed, out of breath, and mouthing the single word, dementors. 

 "I couldn't . . . make one." he panted, clutching the stitch in his side. "Wouldn't . . . 
come." 

Their expressions of consternation and disappointment made Harry feel ashamed. It had 
been a nightmarish experience, seeing the dementors gliding out of the must in the 
distance and realizing, as the paralyzing cold choked his lungs and a distant screaming 
filled his ears, that he was not going to be able to protect himself. It had taken all Harry's 
willpower to uproot himself from the spot and run, leaving the eyeless dementors to glide 
amongst the Muggles who might not be able to see them, but would assuredly feel the 
despair they cast wherever they went. 

 "So we still haven't got any food." 

 "Shut up, Ron," snapped Hermione. "Harry, what happened? Why do you think 
you couldn't make your Patronus? You managed perfectly yesterday!" 

 "I don't know." 

 He sat low in one of Perkins's old armchairs, feeling more humiliated by the 
moment. He was afraid that something had gone wrong inside him. Yesterday seemed a 
long time ago: Today me might have been thirteen years old again, the only one who 
collapsed on the Hogwarts Express. 

 Ron kicked a chair leg. 

 "What?" he snarled at Hermione. "I'm starving! All I've had since I bled half to 
death is a couple of toadstools!" 

 "You go and fight your way through the dementors, then," said Harry, stung. 

 "I would, but my arm's in a sling, in case you hadn't noticed!" 

 "That's convenient." 

 "And what's that supposed to  ?" 

 "Of course!" cried Hermione, clapping a hand to her forehead and startling both 
of them into silence. "Harry, give me the locket! Come on," she said impatiently, clicking 
her fingers at him when he did not react," to Horcrux, Harry, you're still wearing it!" 

 She held out her hands, and Harry lifted the golden chain over his head. The 
moment it parted contact with Harry's skin he free and oddly light. He had not even 
realized that he was clammy or that there was a heavy weight pressing on his stomach 
until both sensations lifted. 

 "Better?" asked Hermione. 

 "Yeah, loads better!" 

 "Harry," she said, crouching down in front of him and using the kind of voice he 
associated with visiting the very sick, "you don't think you've been possessed, do you?" 

 "What? No!" he said defensively, "I remember everything we've done while I've 
bee wearing it. I wouldn't know what I'd done if I'd been possessed, would I? Ginny told 
me there were times when she couldn't remember anything." 


 "Hmm," said Hermione, looking down at the heavy locket. "Well, maybe we 
ought not to wear it. We can just keep it in the tent." 

 "We are not leaving that Horcrux lying around," Harry stated firmly. "If we lose it, 
if it gets stolen" 

 "Oh, all right, all right," said Hermione, and she placed it around her own neck 
and tucked it out of sight down the front of her shirt. "But we'll take turns wearing it, so 
nobody keeps it on too long." 

 "Great," said Ron irritably, "and now we've sorted that out, can we please get 
some food?" 

 "Fine, but we'll go somewhere else to find it," said Hermione with half a glance at 
Harry. "There's no point staying where we know dementors are swooping around." 

 In the end they settled down for the night in a far flung field belonging to a lonely 
farm, from which they had managed to obtain eggs and bread. 

 "It's not stealing, is it?" asked Hermione in a troubled voice, as they devoured 
scrambled eggs on toast. "Not if I left some money under the chicken coo?" 

 Ron rolled his eyes and said, with his cheeks bulging, "Er-my-nee, 'oo worry 'oo 
much. 'Elax!" 

 And, indeed, it was much easier to relax when they were comfortably well fed. 
The argument about the dementors was forgotten in laughter that night, and Harry felt 
cheerful, even hopeful, as he took the first of the three night watches. 

 This was their first encounter with the fact that a full stomach meant good spirits, 
an empty one, bickering and gloom. Harry was least surprised by this, because be had 
suffered periods of near starvation at the Dursleys. Hermione bore up reasonably well on 
those nights when they managed to scavenge nothing but berries or stale biscuits, her 
temper perhaps a little shorter than usual and her silences dour. Ron, however, had 
always been used to three delicious meals a day, courtesy of his mother or of the 
Hogwarts house-elves, and hunger made him both unreasonable and irascible. Whenever 
lack of food coincided with Ron's turn to wear the Horcrux, he became downright 
unpleasant. 

 "So where next?" was his constant refrain. He did not seem to have any ideas 
himself, but expected Harry and Hermione to come up with plans while he sat and 
brooded over the low food supplies. Accordingly Harry and Hermione spent fruitless 
hours trying to decide where they might find the other Horcruxes, and how to destroy the 
one they already got, their conversations becoming increasingly repetitive as they got no 
new information. 

 As Dumbledore had told Harry that be believed Voldemort had hidden the 
Horcruxes in places important to him, they kept reciting, in a sort of dreary litany, those 
locations they knew that Voldemort had lived or visited. The orphanage where he had 
been born and raised: Hogwarts, where he had been educated; Borgin and Burks, where 
he had worked after completing school; then Albania, where he had spent his years of 
exile: These formed the basis of their speculations. 

 "Yeah, let's go to Albania. Shouldn't take more than an afternoon to search an 
entire country," said Ron sarcastically. 

 "There can't be anything there. He'd already made five of his Horcruxes before he 
went into exile, and Dumbledore was certain the snake is the sixth," said Hermione. "We 
know the snake's not in Albania, it's usually with Vol" 


 "Didn't I ask you to stop say that?" 

 "Fine! The snake is usually with You-Know-Whohappy?" 

 "Not particularly." 

 "I can't see him hiding anything at Borgin and Burkes." said Harry, who had made 
this point many times before, but said it again simply to break the nasty silence. "Borgin 
and Burke were experts at Dark objects, they would've recognized a Horcrux 
straightaway." 

 Ron yawned pointedly. Repressing a strong urge to throw something at him, 
Harry plowed on, "I still reckon he might have hidden something at Hogwarts." 

 Hermione sighed. 

 "But Dumbledore would have found it, Harry!" 

 Harry repeated the argument he kept bringing out in favor of this theory. 

 "Dumbledore said in front of me that he never assumed he knew all of Hogwart's 
secrets. I'm telling you, if there was one place Vol" 

 "Oi!" 

 "YOU-KNOW-WHO, then!" Harry shouted, goaded past endurance. "If there was 
one place that was really important to You-Know-Who, it was Hogwarts!" 

 "Oh, come on," scoffed Ron. "His school?" 

 "Yeah, his school! It was his first real home, the place that meant he was special: 
it meant everything to him, and even after he left" 

 "This is You-Know-Who we're talking about, right? Not you?" inquired Ron. He 
was tugging at the chain of the Horcrux around his neck; Harry was visited by a desire to 
seize it and throttle him. 

 "You told us that You-Know-Who asked Dumbledore to give him a job after he 
left," said Hermione. 

 "That's right," said Harry. 

 "And Dumbledore thought he only wanted to come back to try and find something, 
probably another founder's object, to make into another Horcrux?" 

 Yeah, said Harry. 

 But he didnt get the job, did he? said Hermione. So he never got the chance to 
find a founders object there and hide it in the school! 

 Okay, then, said Harry, defeated. Forget Hogwarts. 

 Without any other leads, they traveled into London and, hidden beneath the 
Invisibility Cloak, search for the orphanage in which Voldemort had been raised. 
Hermione stole into a library and discovered from their records that the place had been 
demolished many years before. They visited its site and found a tower block of offices. 

 We could try digging in to foundations? Hermione suggested halfheartedly. 

 He wouldnt have hidden a Horcrux here, Harry said. He had known it all along. 
The orphanage had been the place Voldemort had been determined to escape; he would 
never have hidden a part of his soul there. Dumbledore had shown Harry that Voldemort 
sought grandeur or mystique in his hiding places; this dismal gray corner of London was 
as far removed as you could imagine from Hogwarts of the Ministry or a building like 
Gringotts, the Wizarding banks, with its gilded doors and marble floors. 

 Even without any new idea, they continued to move through the countryside, 
pitching the tent in a different place each night for security. Every morning they made 
sure that they had removed all clues to their presence, then set off to find another lonely 


and secluded spot, traveling by Apparition to more woods, to the shadowy crevices of 
cliffs, to purple moors, gorse-covered mountainsides, and once a sheltered and pebbly 
cove. Every twelve hours or so they passed the Horcrux between them as though they 
were playing some perverse, slow-motion game of pass-the-parcel, where they dreaded 
the music stopping because the reward was twelve hours of increased fear and anxiety. 

 Harrys scare kept prickling. It happened most often, he noticed, when he was 
wearing the Horcrux. Sometimes he could not stop himself reacting to the pain. 

 What? What did you see? demanded Ron, whenever he noticed Harry wince. 

 A face, muttered Harry, every time. The same face. The thief who stole from 
Gregorovitch. 

 And Ron would turn away, making no effort to hide his disappointment. Harry 
knew that Ron was hoping to bear news of his family or the rest of the Order of the 
Phoenix, but after all, he, Harry, was not a television aerial; he could only see what 
Voldemort was thinking at the time, not tune in to whatever took his fancy. Apparently 
Voldemort was dwelling endlessly on the unknown youth with the gleeful face, whose 
name and whereabouts, Harry felt sure, Voldemort knew no better than he did. As 
Harrys scar continued to burn and the merry, blond-haired boy swam tantalizingly in his 
memory, he learned to suppress any sign of pain or discomfort, for the other two showed 
nothing but impatience at the mention of the thief. He could not entirely blame them, 
when they were so desperate for a lean on the Horcruxes. 

 As the days stretched into weeks, Harry began to suspect that Ron and Hermione 
were having conversations without, and about, him. Several times they stopped talking 
abruptly when Harry entered the tent, and twice he came accidentally upon them, huddled 
a little distance away, heads together and talking fast; both times they fell silent when 
they realized he was approaching them and hastened to appear busy collecting wood or 
water. 

 Harry could not help wondering whether they had only agreed to come on what 
now felt like a pointless and rambling journey because they thought he had some secret 
plan that they would learn in due course. Ton was making no effort to hide his bad mood, 
and Harry was starting to fear that Hermione too was disappointed by his poor leadership. 
In desperation he tried to think of further Horcrux locations, but the only one that 
continued to occur to him was Hogwarts, and as neither of the others thought this at all 
likely, he stopped suggesting it. 

 Autumn rolled over the countryside as they moved through it. They were now 
pitching the tent on mulches of fallen leaves. Natural mists joined those cast by the 
dementors; wind and rain added to their troubles. The fact that Hermione was getting 
better at identifying edible fungi could not altogether compensate for their continuing 
isolation, the lack of other peoples company, or their total ignorance of what was going 
on in the war against Voldemort. 

 My mother, said Ron on night, as they sat in the tent on a riverbank in Wales, 
can make good food appear out of thin air. 

 He prodded moodily at the lumps of charred gray fish on his plate. Harry glanced 
automatically at Rons neck and saw, as he has expected, the golden chain of the Horcrux 
glinting there. He managed to fight down the impulse to swear at Ron, whose attitude 
would, he knew, improve slightly when the time came to take off the locket. 


 Your mother cant produce food out of thin air, said Hermione. no one can. 
Food is the first of the five Principal Exceptions to Gamps Law of Elemental 
Transfigura 

 Oh, speak English, cant you? Ron said, prising a fish out from between his 
teeth. 

 Its impossible to make good food out of nothing! You can Summon it if you 
know where it is, you can transform it, you can increase the quantity if youve already got 
some 

 Well, dont bother increasing this, its disgusting, said Ron. 

 Harry caught the fish and I did my best with it! I notice Im always the one who 
ends up sorting out the food, because Im a girl, I suppose! 

 No, its because youre supposed to be the best at magic! shot back Ron. 

 Hermione jumped up and bits of roast pike slid off her tin plate onto the floor. 

 You can do the cooking tomorrow, Ron, you can find the ingredients and try and 
charm them into something worth eating, and Ill sit here and pull faces and moan and 
you can see you 

 Shut up!, said Harry, leaping to his feet and holding up both hands. Shut up 
now! 

 Hermione looked outraged. 

 How can you side with him, he hardly ever does the cook 

 Hermione, be quiet, I can hear someone! 

 He was listening hard, his hands still raised, warning them not to talk. Then, over 
the rush and gush of the dark river beside them, he heard voices again. He looked around 
at the Sneakoscope. It was not moving. 

 You cast the Muffliato charm over us, right? he whispered to Hermione. 

 I did everything, she whispered back, Muffliato, Muggle-Repelling and 
Disillusionment Charms, all of it. They shouldnt be able to hear of see us, whoever they 
are. 

 Heavy scuffing and scraping noises, plus the sound of dislodged stones and twigs, 
told them that several people were clambering down the steep, wooded slope that 
descended to the narrow bank where they had pitched the tent. They drew their wands, 
waiting. The enchantments they had cast around themselves ought to be sufficient, in the 
near total darkness, to shield them from the notice of Muggles and normal witches and 
wizards. If these were Death Eaters, then perhaps their defenses were about to be tested 
by Dark Magic for the first time. 

 The voices became louder but no more intelligible as the group of men reached 
the bank. Harry estimated that their owners were fewer than twenty feet away, but the 
cascading river made it impossible to tell for sure. Hermione snatched up the beaded bag 
and started to rummage; after a moment she drew out three Extendible Ears and threw 
one each to Harry and Ron, who hastily inserted the ends of the flesh-colored strings into 
their ears and fed the other ends out of the tent entrance. 

 Within seconds Harry heard a weary male voice. 

 There ought to be a few salmon in here, or dyou reckon its too early in the 
season? Accio Salmon! 

 There were several distinct splashes and then the slapping sounds of fish against 
flesh. Somebody grunted appreciatively. Harry pressed the Extendable ear deeper into his 


own: Over the murmur of the river he could make out more voices, but they were not 
speaking English or any human language he had ever heard. It was a rough and 
unmelodious tongue, a string of rattling, guttural noises, and there seemed to be two 
speakers, one with a slightly lower, slower voice than the other. 

 A fire danced into life on the other side of the canvas, large shadows passed 
between tent and flames. The delicious smell of baking salmon wafted tantalizingly in 
their direction. Then came the clinking of cutlery on plates, and the first man spoke again. 

 Here, Griphook, Gornuk. 

 Goblins! Hermione mouthed at Harry, who nodded. 

 Thank you, said the goblins together in English. 

 So, you three have been on the run how long? asked a new, mellow, and 
pleasant voice; it was vaguely familiar to Harry, who pictured a round-bellied, cheerful-
faced man. 

 Six weeks . . . Seven . . . I forget, said the tired man. Met up with Griphook in 
the first couple of days and joined forces with Gornuk not long after. Nice to have a but 
of company. There was a pause, while knives scraped plates and tin mugs were picked 
up and replaced on the ground. What made you leave, Ted? continued the man. 

 Knew they were coming for me, replied mellow-voiced Ted, and Harry 
suddenly knew who he was: Tonkss father. Heard Death Eaters were in the area last 
week and decided Id better run for it. Refused to register as a Muggle-born on principle, 
see, so I knew it was a matter of time, knew Id have to leave in the end. My wife should 
be okay, shes pure-blood. And then I net Dean here, what, a few days ago, son? 

 Yeah, said another voice, and Harry, Ron, and Hermione stared at each other, 
silent but besides themselves with excitement, sure they recognized the voice of Dean 
Thomas, their fellow Gryffindor. 

 Muggle-born, eh? asked the first man. 

 Not sure , said Dean. My dad left my mum when I was a kid. Ive got no proof 
he was a wizard, though. 

 There was silence for a while, except for the sounds of munching; then Ted spoke 
again. 

 Ive got to say, Dirk, Im surprised to run into you. Pleased, but surprised. Word 
was that youd been caught. 

 I was, said Dirk. I was halfway to Azkaban when I made a break for it. 
Stunned Dawlish, and nicked his broom. It was easier than youd think; I dont reckon 
hes quite right at the moment .Might be Confunded. If so, Id like to shake the hand of 
the witch or wizard who did it, probably saved my life. 

 There was another pause in which the fire crackled and the river rushed on. The 
Ted said, And where do you two fit in? I, er, had the impression the goblins were for 
You-Know-Who, on the whole. 

 You had a false impression, said the higher-voiced of the goblins. We take no 
sides. This is a wizards war. 

 How come youre in hiding, then? 

 I deemed in prudent, said the deeper-voiced goblin. Having refused what I 
considered an impertinent request, I could see that my person safety was in jeopardy. 

 What did they ask you to do? asked Ted. 


 Duties ill-befitting the dignity of my race, replied the goblin, his voice rougher 
and less human as he said it. I am not a house-elf. 

 What about you, Griphook? 

 Similar reasons, said the higher voiced goblin. Gringotts is no longer under the 
sole control of my race. I recognize no Wizarding master. 

 He added something under his breath in Gobbledegook, and Gornuk laughed. 

 Whats the joke? asked Dean. 

 He said, replied Dirk, that there are things wizards dont recognize, either. 

 There was a short pause. 

 I dont get it, said Dean. 

 I had my small revenge before I left,, said Griphook in English. 

 Good mangoblin, I should say, amended Ted hastily. Didnt manage to lock 
a Death Eater up in one of the old high-security vaults, I suppose? 

 If I had, the sword would not have helped him break out, replied Griphook. 
Gornuk laughed again and even Dirk gave a dry chuckle. 

 Dean and I are still missing something here, said Ted. 

 So is Severus Snape, though he does not know it, said Griphook, and the two 
goblins roared with malicious laughter. Inside the tent Harrys breathing was shallow 
with excitement: He and Hermione stared at each other, listening as hard as they could. 

 Didnt you hear about that, Ted? asked Dirk. About the kids who tried to steal 
Gryffindors sword out of Snapes office at Hogwarts? 

 An electric current seemed to course through Harry, jangling his every nerve as he 
stood rooted to the spot. 

 Never heard a word, said Ted, Not in the Prophet, was it? 

 Hardly, chortled Dirk. Griphook here told me, he heard about it from Bill 
Weasley who works for the bank. One of the kids who tried to take the sword was Bills 
younger sister. 

 Harry glanced toward Hermione and Ron, both of whom were clutching the 
Extendable Ears as tightly as lifelines. 

 She and a couple of friends got into Snapes office and smashed open the glass 
case where he was apparently keeping the sword. Snape caught them as they were trying 
to smuggle it down the staircase. 

 Ah, God bless em, said Ted. What did they think, that theyd be able to use 
the sword on You-Know-Who? Or on Snape himself? 

 Well, whatever they thought they were going to do with it, Snape decided the 
sword wasnt safe where it was, said Dirk. Couple of days later, once hed got the say-
so from You-Know-Who, I imagine, he sent it down to London to be kept in Gringotts 
instead. 

 The goblins started to laugh again. 

 Im still not seeing the joke, said Ted. 

 Its a fake, rasped Griphook. 

 The sword of Gryffindor! 

 Oh yes. It is a copyen excellent copy, it is truebut it was Wizard-made. The 
original was forged centuries ago by goblins and had certain properties only goblin-made 
armor possesses. Wherever the genuine sword of Gryffindor is, it is not in a vault at 
Gringotts bank. 


 I see, said Ted. And I take it you didnt bother telling the Death Eaters this/ 

 I saw no reason to trouble them with the information, said Griphook smugly, 
and now Ted and Dean joined in Gornuk and Dirks laughter. 

 Inside the tent, Harry closed his eyes, willing someone to ask the question he 
needed answered, and after a minute that seemed ten, Dean obliged: he was (Harry 
remembered with a jolt) an ex-boyfriend of Ginnys too. 

 What happened to Ginny and all the others? The ones who tried to steal it? 

 Oh, they were punished, and cruelly, said Griphook indifferently. 

 Theyre okay, though? asked Ted quickly, I mean, the Weasleys dont need 
any more of their kids injured, do they? 

 They suffered no serious injury, as far as I am aware, said Griphook. 

 Lucky for them, said Ted. With Snapes track record I suppose we should just 
be glad theyre still alive. 

 You believe that story, then, do you, Ted? asked Dirk. You believe Snape 
killed Dumbledore? 

 Course I do, said Ted. Youre not going to sit there and tell me you think 
Potter had anything to do with it? 

 Hard to know what to believe these days, muttered Dirk. 

 I know Harry Potter, said Dean. And I reckon hes the real thingthe Chosen 
One, or whatever you want to call it. 

 Yeah, theres a lot would like to believe hes that, son, said Dirk, me included. 
But where is he? Run for it, by the looks of things. Youd think if he knew anything we 
dont, or had anything special going for him, hed be out there now fighting, rallying 
resistance, instead of hiding. And you know, the Prophet made a pretty good case against 
him 

 The Prophet? scoffed Ted. You deserve to be lied to if youre still reading that 
much, Dirk. You want the facts, try the Quibbler. 

 There was a sudden explosion of choking and retching, plus a good deal of 
thumping, by the sound of it. Dirk had swallowed a fish bone. At last he sputtered, The 
Quibbler? That lunatic rag of Xeno Lovegoods? 

 Its not so lunatic these days, said Ted. You want to give it a look, Xeno is 
printing all the stuff the Prophets ignoring, not a single mention of Crumple-Horned 
Snorkacks in the last issue. How long theyll let him get with it, mind, I dont know. But 
Xeno says, front page of every issue, that any wizard whos against You-Know-Who 
ought to make helping Harry Potter their number-one priority. 

 Hard to help a boy whos vanished off the face of the earth, said Dirk. 

 Listen, the fact that they havent caught him yets one hell of an achievement, 
said Ted. Id take tips from him gladly; its what were trying to do, stay free, isnt it? 

 Yeah, well, youve got a point there, said Dirk heavily. With the whole of the 
Ministry and all their informers looking for him, Id have expected him to be caught by 
now. Mind, whos to say they havent already caught and killed him without publicizing 
it? 

 Ah, dont say that, Dirk, murmured Ted. 

 There was a long pause filled with more clattering of knives and forks. When they 
spoke again it was to discuss whether they ought to sleep on the back or retreat back up 


the wooded slope. Deciding the trees would give better cover, they extinguished their fire, 
then clambered back up the incline, their voices fading away. 

 Harry, Ron, and Hermione reeled in the Extendable Ears. Harry, who had found 
the need to remain silent increasingly difficult the longer they eavesdropped, now found 
himself unable to say more then, Ginnythe sword 

 I know! said Hermione. 

 She lunged for the tiny beaded bag, this time sinking her arm in it right up to the 
armpit. 

 Here . . . we . . . are . . . she said between gritted teeth, and she pulled at 
something that was evidently in the depths of the bag. Slowly the edge of an ornate 
picture frame came into sight. Harry hurried to help her. As they lifted the empty portrait 
of Phineas Nigellus free of Hermiones bag, she kept her wand pointing at it, ready to 
cast a spell at any moment. 

 If somebody swapped the real sword for the face while it was in Dumbledores 
office, she panted, as they propped the painting against the side of the tent, Phineas 
Nigellus would have seen it happen, he hangs right beside the case! 

 Unless he was asleep, said Harry, but he still held his breath as Hermione knelt 
down in front of the empty canvas, her wand directed at its center, cleared her throat, then 
said: 

 ErPhineas? Phineas Nigellus? 

 Nothing happened. 

 Phineas Nigellus? said Hermione again. Professor Black? Please could we talk 
to you? Please? 

 Please always helps, said a cold, snide voice, and Phineas Nigellus slid into 
his portrait. At one, Hermione cried: 

 Obscura! 

 A black blindfold appeared over Phineas Nigelluss clever, dark eyes, causing 
him to bump into the frame and shriek with pain. 

 Whathow darewhat are you? 

 Im very sorry, Professor Black, said Hermione, but its a necessary 
precaution! 

 remove this foul addition at once! Remove it, I say! You are ruining a great work 
of art! Where am I? What is going on? 

 Never mind where we are, said Harry, and Phineas Nigellus froze, abandoning 
his attempts to peel off the painted blindfold. 

 Can that possible be the voice of the elusive Mr. Potter? 

 Maybe, said Harry, knowing that this would keep Phineas Nigelluss interest. 
Weve got a couple of questions to ask youabout the sword of Gryffindor. 

 Ah, said Phineas Nigellus, now turning his head this way and that in an effort to 
catch sight of Harry, yes. That silly girl acted most unwisely there 

 Shut up about my sister, said Ron roughly, Phineas Nigellus raised supercilious 
eyebrows. 

 Who else is here? he asked, turning his head from side to side. Your tone 
displeases me! The girl and her friends were foolhardily in the extreme. Thieving from 
the headmaster. 

 They werent thieving, said Harry. That sword isnt Snapes. 


 It belongs to Professor Snapes school, said Phineas Nigellus. Exactly what 
claim did the Weasley girl have upon it? She deserved her punishment, as did the idiot 
Longbottom and the Lovegood oddity! 

 Neville is not an idiot and Luna is not an oddity! said Hermione. 

 Where am I? repeated Phineas Nigellus, starting to wrestle with the blindfold 
again. Where have you brought me? Why have you removed me from the house of my 
forebears? 

 never mind that! How did Snape punish Ginny, Neville, and Luna? asked Harry 
urgently. 

 Professor Snape sent them into the Forbidden Forest, to do some work for the 
oaf, Hagrid. 

 Hagrids not an oaf! said Hermione shrilly. 

 And Snape mightve though that was a punishment, said Harry, buy Ginny, 
Neville, and Luna probably had a good laugh with Hagrid. The Forbidden Forest . . . 
theyve faced plenty worse than the Forbidden Forest, big deal! 

 He felt relieved; he had been imagining horrors, the Cruciatus Curse at the very 
least. 

 What we really wanted to know, Professor Black, is whether anyone else has, um, 
taken out the sword at all? Maybe its been taken away for cleaningor something! 

 Phineas Nigellus paused again in his struggles to free his eyes and sniggered. 

 Muggle-born, he said, Goblin-made armor does not require cleaning, simple 
girl. Goblins silver repels mundane dirt, imbibing only that which strengthens it. 

 Dont call Hermione simple, said Harry. 

 I grow weary of contradiction, said Phineas Nigellus. perhaps it is time for me 
to return to the headmasters office.? 

 Still blindfolded, he began groping the side of his frame, trying to feel his way out 
of his picture and back into the one at Hogwarts. Harry had a sudden inspiration. 

 Dumbledore! Cant you bring us Dumbledore? 

 I beg your pardon? asked Phineas Nigellus. 

 Professor Dumbledores portraitcouldnt you bring him along, here, into 
yours? 

 Phineas Nigellus turned his face in the direction of Harrys voice. 

 Evidently it is not only Muggle-borns who are ignorant, Potter. The portraits of 
Hogwarts may commune with each other, but they cannot travel outside of the castle 
except to visit a painting of themselves elsewhere. Dumbledore cannot come here with 
me, and after the treatment I have received at your hands, I can assure you that I will not 
be making a return visit! 

 Slightly crestfallen, Harry watched Phineas redouble his attempts to leave his 
frame. 

 Professor Black, said Hermione, couldnt you just tell us, please, when was the 
last time the sword was taken out of its case? Before Ginny took it out, I mean? 

 Phineas snorted impatiently. 

 I believe that the last time I saw the sword of Gryffindor leave its case was when 
Professor Dumbledore used it to break open a ring. 

 Hermione whipped around to look at Harry. Neither of them dared say more in 
front of Phineas Nigellus, who had at least managed to locate the exit. 


 Well, good night to you, he said a little waspishly, and he began to move out of 
sight again. Only the edge of his hat brim remained in view when Harry gave a sudden 
shout. 

 Wait! Have you told Snape you saw this? 

 Phineas Nigellus stuck his blindfolded head back into the picture. 

 Professor Snape has more important things on his mind that the many 
eccentricities of Albus Dumbledore. Good-bye, Potter! 

 And with that, he vanished completely, leaving behind him nothing but his murky 
backdrop. 

 Harry! Hermione cried. 

 I know! Harry shouted. Unable to contain himself, he punched the air; it was 
more than he had dared to hope for. He strode up and down the tent, feeling that he could 
have run a mile; he did not even feel hungry anymore. Hermione was squashing Phineas 
Nigelluss back into the beaded bag; when she had fastened the clasp she threw the bag 
aside and raised a shining face to Harry. 

 The sword can destroy Horcruxes! Goblin-made blades imbibe only that which 
strengthens themHarry, that swords impregnated with basilisk venom! 

 And Dumbledore didnt five it to me because he still needed it, he wanted to use 
it on the locket 

 and he must have realized they wouldnt let you have it if he put it in his 
will 

 so he made a copy 

 and put a fake in the glass case 

 and he left the real onewhere? 

 They gazed at east other Harry felt that the answer was dangling invisibly in the 
air above them, tantalizingly close. Why hadnt Dumbledore told him? Or had he, in fact, 
told Harry, but Harry had not realized it at the time? 

 Think! whispered Hermione. Think! Where would he have left it? 

 Not at Hogwarts, said Harry, resuming his pacing. 

 Somewhere in Hogsmeade? suggested Hermione. 

 The Shrieking Shack? said Harry. Nobody ever goes in there. 

 But Snape knows how to get in, wouldnt that be a bit risky? 

 Dumbledore trusted Snape, Harry reminded her. 

 Not enough to tell him that he had swapped the swords, said Hermione. 

 Yeah, youre right! said Harry, and he felt even more cheered at the thought 
that Dumbledore had had some reservations, however faint, about Snapes 
trustworthiness. So, would he have hidden the sword well away from Hogsmeade, then? 
What dyou reckon, Ron? Ron? 

 Harry looked around. For one bewildered moment he thought that Ron had left 
the tent, then realized that Ron was lying in the shadow of a bunk, looking stony. 

 Oh, remembered me, have you? he said. 

 What? 

 Ron snorted as he stared up at the underside of the upper bunk. 

 You two carry on. Dont let me spoil your fun. 

 Perplexed, Harry looked to Hermione for help, but she shook her head, apparently 
as nonplussed as he was. 


 Whats the problem? asked Harry. 

 Problem? Theres no problem, said Ron, still refusing to look at Harry. Not 
according to you, anyways. 

 There were several plunks on the canvas over their heads. It had started to rain. 

 Well, youve obviously got a problem, said Harry. Spit it out, will you? 

 Ron swung his long legs off the bed and sat up. He looked mean, unlike himself. 

 All right, Ill spit it out. Dont expect me to skip up and down the tent because 
theres some other damn thing weve got to find. Just add it to the list of stuff you dont 
know. 

 I dont know? repeated Harry. I dont know? 

 Plunk, plunk, plunk. The rain was falling harder and heavier; it pattered on the 
leaf-strewn bank all around them and into the river chattering through the dark. Dread 
doused Harrys jubilation; Ron was saying exactly what he had suspected and feared him 
to be thinking. 

 Its not like Im not having the time of my life here, said Ron, you know, with 
my arm mangled and nothing to eat and freezing my backside off every night. I just 
hoped, you know, after wed been running round a few weeks, wed have achieved 
something. 

 Ron, Hermione said, but in such a quiet voice that Ron could pretend not to 
have heard it over the loud tattoo the rain was beating on the tent. 

 I thought you knew what youd signed up for, said Harry. 

 Yeah, I thought I did too. 

 So what part of it isnt living up to your expectations? asked Harry. Anger was 
coming to his defense now. Did you think wed be staying in five-star hotels? Finding a 
Horcrux every other day? Did you think youd be back to Mummy by Christmas? 

 We thought you knew what you were doing! shouted Ron, standing up, and his 
words Harry like scalding knives. We thought Dumbledore had told you what to do, we 
thought you had a real plan! 

 Ron! said Hermione, this time clearly audible over the rain thundering on the 
tent roof, but again, he ignored her. 

 Well, sorry to let you down, said Harry, his voice quite calm even though he 
felt hollow, inadequate. Ive been straight with you from the start. I told you everything 
Dumbledore told me. And in the case you havent noticed, weve found one Horcrux 

 Yeah, and were about as near getting rid of it as we are to finding the rest of 
themnowhere effing near in other words. 

 take off the locket, Ron, Hermione said, her voice unusually high. Please take 
it off. You wouldnt be talking like this if you hadnt been wearing it all day. 

 Yeah, he would, said Harry, who did not want excuses made for Ron. Dyou 
think I havent noticed the two of you whispering behind my back? Dyou think I didnt 
guess you were thinking this stuff? 

 Harry, we werent 

 Dont lie! Ron hurled at her. You said it too, you said you were disappointed, 
you said youd thought he had a bit more to go on than 

 I didnt say it like thatHarry, I didnt! she cried. 

 The rain was pounding the tent, tears were pouring down Hermiones face, and 
the excitement of a few minutes before had vanished as if it had never been, a short-lived 


firework that had flared and died, leaving everything dark, wet, and cold. The sword of 
Gryffindor was hidden they knew not where, and their were three teenagers in a tent 
whose only achievement was not, yet, to be dead. 

 So why are you still here? Harry asked Ron. 

 Search me, said Ron. 

 Go home then, said Harry. 

 Yeah, maybe I will! shouted Ron, and he took several steps toward Harry, who 
did not back away. Didnt you hear what they said about my sister? But you dont give a 
rats fart, do you, its only the Forbidden Forest, Harry Ive-Faced-Worse Potter doesnt 
care what happened to her in therewell, I do, all right, giant spiders and mental stuff 

 I was only sayingshe was with the others, they were with Hagrid 

 Yeah, I get it, you dont care! And what about the rest of my family, the 
Weasleys dont need another kid injured, did you hear that? Yeah, I 

 Not bothered what it meant, though? 

 Ron! said Hermione, forcing her way between them. I dont think it means 
anything new has happened, anything we dont know about; think, Ron, Bills already 
scared, plenty of people must have seen that George has lost an ear by now, and youre 
supposed to be on your deathbed with spattergroit, Im sure thats all he meant 

 Oh, youre sure, are you? Right then, well, I wont bother myself about them. 
Its all right for you, isnt it, with your parents safely out of the way 

 My parents are dead! Harry bellowed. 

 And mine could be going the same way! yelled Ron. 

 Then GO! roared Harry. Go back to them, pretend youre got over your 
spattergroit and Mummyll be able to feed you up and 

 Ron made a sudden movement: Harry reacted, but before either wand was clear of 
its owners pocket, Hermione had raised her own. 

 Prestego! she cried, and an invisible shield expanded between her and Harry on 
the one side and Ron on the other; all of them were forced backward a few steps by the 
strength of the spell, and Harry and Ron glared from either side of the transparent barrier 
as though they were seeing each other clearly for the first time. Harry felt a corrosive 
hatred toward Ron: Something had broken between them. 

 Leave the Horcrux, Harry said. 

 Ron wrenched the chain from over his head and cast the locket into a nearby chair. 
He turned to Hermione. 

 What are you doing? 

 What do you mean? 

 Are you staying, or what? 

 I . . . She looked anguished. Yesyes, Im staying. Ron, we said wed go with 
Harry, we said wed help 

 I get it. You choose him. 

 Ron, nopleasecome back, come back! 

 She was impeded by her own Shield Charm; by the time she had removed it he 
had already stormed into the night. Harry stood quite still and silent, listening to her 
sobbing and calling Rons name amongst the trees. 

 After a few minutes she returned, her sopping hair plastered to her face. 

 Hes g-g-gone! Disapparated! 


 She threw herself into a chair, curled up, and started to cry. 

 Harry felt dazed. He stooped, picked up the Horcrux, and placed it around his 
own neck. He dragged blankets off Rons bunk and threw them over Hermione. Then he 
climbed onto his own bed and stared up at the dark canvas roof, listening to the pounding 
of the rain. 

 

Chapter Sixteen 

Godrics Hollow 

 

 When Harry woke the following day it was several seconds before he 
remembered what had happened. Then he hoped childishly, that it had been a dream, that 
Ron was still there and had never left. Yet by turning his head on his pillow he could see 
Ron's deserted bunk. It was like a dead body in the way it seems to draw his eyes. Harry 
jumped down from his own bed, keeping his eyes averted from Ron's. Hermione, who 
was already busy in the kitchen, did not wish Harry good morning, but turned 

her face away quickly as he went by. He's gone, Harry told himself. He's gone. He had to 
keep thinking it as he washed and dressed as though repetition would dull the shock of it. 
He's gone and he's not coming back. And that was the simple truth of it, Harry knew, 
because their protective enchantments meant that it would be impossible, once they 
vacated this spot, for Ron to find them again. He and Hermione ate breakfast in silence. 
Hermione's eyes were puffy and red; she looked as if she had not slept. They packed up 
their things, Hermione dawdling. Harry knew why she wanted to spin out their time on 
the riverbank; several times he saw her look up eagerly, and he was sure she had deluded 
herself into thinking that she heard footsteps through the heavy rain, but no red-haired 
figure appeared between the trees. Every time Harry imitated her, looked around ( for he 
could not help hoping a little, himself) and saw nothing but rain-swept woods, another 
little parcel of fury exploded inside him. He could hear Ron saying, "We thought you 
knew what you were doing!", and he resumed packing with a hard knot in the pit of his 
stomach. 

 The muddy river beside them was rising rapidly and would soon spill over onto their 
bank. They had lingered a good hour after they would usually have departed their 
campsite. Finally having entirely repacked the beaded bag three times, Hermione seemed 
unable to find any more reasons to delay: She and Harry gasped hands and Disapparated, 
reappearing on a windswept heather-covered hillside. The instant they arrived, Hermione 
dropped Harry's hand and walked away from him, finally sitting down on a large rock, 
her face on her knees, shaking with what he knew were sobs. He watched her, supposing 
that he ought to go and comfort her, but something kept him rooted to the spot. 
Everything inside him felt cold and tight: Again he saw the contemptuous expression on 
Ron's face. Harry strode off through the heather, walking in a large circle with the 
distraught Hermione at its center, casting the spell she usually performed to ensure their 
protection. 

 They did not discuss Ron at all over the next few days. Harry was determined never to 
mention his name again and Hermione seemed to know that it was no use forcing the 
issue, although sometimes at night when she thought he was sleeping, he would hear her 


crying. Meanwhile Harry had started bringing out the Marauder's map and examining it 
by wandlight. He was waiting for the moment when Ron's labeled dot would reappear in 
the corridors of Hogwarts, proving that he had returned to the comfortable castle, 
protected by his status of pureblood. However, Ron did not appear on the map and after a 
while Harry found himself taking it out simply to stare at Ginny's name in the girl's 
dormitory, wondering whether the intensity with which he gazed at it might break into 
her sleep, that she would somehow know he was thinking about her, hoping that she was 
all right. 

 By day, hey devoted themselves to trying to determine the possible locations of 
Gryffindor's sword, but the more they talked about the places in which Dumbledore 
might have hidden it, the more desperate and far-fetched their speculation became. 
Cudgel his brains though he might, Harry could not remember Dumbledore ever 
mentioning a place in which he might hide something. There were moments when he did 
not know whether he was angrier with Ron or with Dumbledore. We thought you knew 
what you were doing ...We thought Dumbledore had told you what to do ... We thought 
you had a real plan! 

He could not hide it from himself: Ron had been right. Dumbledore had left him 
with virtually nothing. They had discovered one Horcrux, but they had no means of 
destroying it: The others were as unattainable as they had ever been. Hopelessness 
threatened to engulf him. He was staggered now to think of his own presumption in 
accepting his friends' offers to accompany him on this meandering, pointless journey. he 
knew nothing, he had no ideas, and he was constantly, painfully on the alert for any 
indications that Hermione too was about to tell him that she had had enough. That she 
was leaving. 

 They were spending many evenings in near silence and Hermione took to bringing out 
Phineas Nigellus's portrait and propping it up in a chair, as though he might fill part of 
the gaping hole left by Ron's departure. Despite his previous assertion that he would 
never visit them again, Phineas Nigellus did not seem able to resist the chance to find out 
more about what Harry was up to and consented to reappear, blindfolded, every few days 
of so. Harry was even glad to see him, because he was company, albeit of a snide and 
taunting kind. They relished any news about what was happening at Hogwarts, though 
Phineas Nigellus was not an ideal informer. He venerated Snape, the first Slytherin 
headmaster since he himself had controlled the school, and they had to be careful not to 
criticize or ask impertinent questions about Snape, or Phineas Nigellus would instantly 
leave his painting. 

However, he did let drop certain snippets. Snape seemed to be facing a constant, 
low level of mutiny from a hard core of students. Ginny had been banned from going into 
Hogsmeade. Snape had reinstated Umbridge's old decree forbidding gatherings of three 
or more students or any unofficial student societies. From all of these things, Harry 
deduced that Ginny, and probably Neville and Luna along with her, had been doing their 
best to continue Dumbledore's Army. This scant news made Harry want to see Ginny so 
badly it felt like a stomachache; but it also made him think of Ron again, and of 
Dumbledore, and of Hogwarts itself, which he missed nearly as much as his ex-girlfriend. 
Indeed, as Phineas Niggellus talked about Snape's crackdown, Harry experienced a split 
second of madness when he imagined simply going back to school to join the 
destabilization of Snapes regime: Being fed and having a soft bad, and other people 


being in charge, seemed the most wonderful prospect in the world at this moment. But 
then he remembered that he was Undesirable Number One, that there was a ten-thousand 
Galleon price on his head, and that to walk into Hogwarts these days was just as 
dangerous as walking into the Ministry of Magic. Indeed, Phineas Nigellus inadvertently 
emphasized this fact my slipping in leading questions about Harry and 
Hermione's whereabouts. Hermione shoved him back inside the beaded bag every time 
he did this, and Phineas Nigellus invariably refused to reappear for several days after 
these unceremonious good-byes. 

The weather grew colder and colder. They did not dare remain in any area too 
long, so rather than staying in the south of England, where a hard ground frost was the 
worst of their worries, they continued to meander up and down the country, braving a 
mountainside, where sleet pounded the tent; a wide, flat marsh, where the tent was 
flooded with chill water; and a tiny island in the middle of a Scottish loch, where snow 
half buried the tent in the night. They had already spotted Christmas Trees twinkling 
from several sitting room windows before there came an evening when Harry resolved to 
suggest again, what seemed to him the only unexplored avenue left to them. They had 
just eaten an unusually good meal: Hermione had been to a supermarket under the 
Invisibility Cloak (scrupulously dropping the money into an open till as she left), and 
Harry thought that she might be more persuadable than usual on a stomach full of 
spaghetti Bolognese and tinned pears. 

He had also had the foresight to suggest that they take a few hours break from 
wearing the Horcrux, which was hanging over the end of the bunk beside him. 

 Hermione? 

 Hmm? She was curled up in one of the sagging armchairs with The Tales of 
Beedle the Bard. He could not imagine how much more she could get out of the book, 
which was not, after all, very long, but evidently she was still deciphering something in it, 
because Spellmans Syllabary lay open on the arm of the chair. 

 Harry cleared his throat. He felt exactly as he had done on the occasion, several 
years previously, when he had asked Professor McGonagall whether he could go into 
Hogsmeade, despite the fact that he had not persuaded the Dursleys to sign his 
permission slip. 

 Hermione, Ive been thinking, and C 

 Harry, could you help me with something? 
Apparently she had not been listening to him. She leaned forward and held out 
The Tales of Beedle the Bard. 

 Look at that symbol, she said, pointing to the top of a page. Above what Harry 
assumed was the title of the story (being unable to read runes, he could not be sure), there 
was a picture of what looked like a triangular eye, its pupil crossed with a vertical line. 

 I never took Ancient Runes, Hermione. 

 I know that; but it isnt a rune and its not in the syllabary, either. All along I 
thought it was a picture of an eye, but I dont think it is! Its been inked in, look, 
somebodys drawn it there, it isnt really part of the book. Think, have you ever seen it 
before? 
No . . . No, wait a moment. Harry looked closer. Isnt it the same symbol 
Lunas dad was wearing round his neck? 


 Well, thats what I thought too! 
Then its Grindelwalds mark. 

 She stared at him, openmouthed. 

 What? 

 Krum told me . . . 
He recounted the story that Viktor Krum had told him at the wedding. Hermione 
looked astonished. 

 Grindelwalds mark? 

 She looked from Harry to the weird symbol and back again. Ive never heard that 
Grindelwald had a mark. Theres no mention of it in anything Ive ever read about him. 

 Well, like I say, Krum reckoned that symbol was carved on a wall at Durmstrang, 
and Grindelwald put it there. 
She fell back into the old armchair, frowning. 

 Thats very odd. If its a symbol of Dark Magic, whats it doing in a book of 
childrens stories? 

 Yeah, it is weird, said Harry. And youd think Scrimgeour would have 
recognized it. He was Minister, he ought to have been expert on Dark stuff. 
I know. . . . Perhaps he thought it was an eye, just like I did. All the other stories 
have little pictures over the titles. 
She did not speak, but continued to pore over the strange mark. Harry tried again. 

 Hermione? 

 Hmm? 

 Ive been thinking. I C I want to go to Godrics Hollow. 

 She looked up at him, but her eyes were unfocused, and he was sure she was still 
thinking about the mysterious mark on the book. 

 Yes, she said. Yes, Ive been wondering that too. I really think well have to. 

 Did you hear me right? he asked. 

 Of course I did. You want to go to Godrics Hollow. I agree. I think we should. I 
mean, I cant think of anywhere else it could be either. Itll be dangerous, but the more I 
think about it, the more likely it seems its there. 
Er C whats there? asked Harry. 

 At that, she looked just as bewildered as he felt. 

 Well, the sword, Harry! Dumbledore must have known youd want to go back 
there, and I mean, Godrics Hollow is Godric Gryffindors birthplace C 

 Really? Gryffindor came from Godrics Hollow? 
Harry, did you ever even open A History of Magic? 

 Erm, he said, smiling for what felt like the first time in months: The muscles in 
his face felt oddly stiff. I mightve opened it, you know, when I bought it . . . just the 
once. . . . 

 Well, as the village is named after him Id have thought you might have made 
the connection, said Hermione. She sounded much more like her old self than she had 
done of late; Harry half expected her to announce that she was off to the library. Theres 
a bit about the village in A History of Magic, wait . . . 

 She opened the beaded bag and rummaged for a while, finally extracting her copy 
of their old school textbook, A History of Magic by Bathilda Bagshot, which she thumbed 
through until finding the page she wanted. 


 Upon the signature of the International Statute of Secrecy in 1689, wizards went 
into hiding for good. It was natural, perhaps, that they formed their own small 
communities within a community. Many small villages and hamlets attracted several 
magical families, who banded together for mutual support and protection. The villages of 
Tinworsh in Cornwall, Upper Flagley in Yorkshire, and Ottery St. Catchpole on the south 
coast of England were notable homes to knots of Wizarding families who lived alongside 
tolerant and sometimes Confunded Muggles. Most celebrated of these half-magical 
dwelling places is, perhaps, Godrics Hollow, the West Country village where the great 
wizard Godric Gryffindor was born, and where Bowman Wright, Wizarding smith, forged 
the first Golden Snitch. The graveyard is full of the names of ancient magical families, 
and this accounts, no doubt, for the stories of hauntings that have dogged the little 
church beside it for many centuries. 

 You and your parents arent mentioned. Hermione said, closing the book, 
because Professor Bagshot doesnt cover anything later than the end of the nineteenth 
century. But you see? Godrics Hollow, Godric Gryffindor, Gryffindors sword; dont 
you think Dumbledore would have expected you to make the connection? 

 Oh yeah . . . 

 Harry did not want to admit that he had not been thinking about the sword at all 
when he suggested they go to Godrics Hollow. For him, the lore of the village lay in his 
parents graves, the house where he had narrowly escaped death, and in the person of 
Bathilda Bagshot. 

 Remember what Muriel said? he asked eventually. 

 Who? 

 You know, he hesitated. He did not want to say Rons name. Ginnys great-
aunt. At the wedding. The one who said you had skinny ankles. 

 Oh, said Hermione. It was a sticky moment: Harry knew that she had sensed 
Rons name in the offing. He rushed on: 

 She said Bathilda Bagshot still lived in Godrics Hollow. 

 Bathilda Bagshot, murmured Hermione, running her index finger over 
Bathildas embossed name on the front cover of A History of Magic. Well, I suppose C 

 She gasped so dramatically that Harrys insides turned over; he drew his wand, 
looking around at the entrance, half expecting to see a hand forcing its way through the 
entrance flap, but there was nothing there. 

 What? he said, half angry, half relieved. What did you do that for? I thought 
youd seen a Death Eater unzipping the tent, at least C 

 Harry, what if Bathildas got the sword? What if Dumbledore entrusted it to 
her? 

 Harry considered this possibility. Bathilda would be an extremely old woman by 
now, and according to Muriel, she was gaga. Was it likely that Dumbledore would 
have hidden the sword of Gryffindor with her? If so, Harry felt that Dumbledore had left 
a great deal to chance: Dumbledore had never revealed that he had replaced the sword 
with a fake, nor had he so much as mentioned a friendship with Bathilda. Now, however, 
was not the moment to cast doubt on Hermiones theory, not when she was so 
surprisingly willing to fall in with Harrys dearest wish. 

 Yeah, he might have done! So, are we going to go to Godrics Hollow? 


 Yes, but well have to think it through carefully, Harry. She was sitting up now, 
and Harry could tell that the prospect of having a plan again had lifted her mood as much 
as his. Well need to practice Disapparating together under the Invisibility Cloak for a 
start, and perhaps Disillusionment Charms would be sensible too, unless you think we 
should go the whole hog and use Polyjuice Potion? In that case well need to collect hair 
from somebody. I actually think wed better do that, Harry, the thicker our disguises the 
better. . . . 

 Harry let her talk, nodding and agreeing whenever there was a pause, but his mind 
had left the conversation. For the first time since he had discovered that the sword in 
Gringotts was a fake, he felt excited. 

 He was about to go home, about to return to the place where he had had a family. 
It was in Godrics Hollow that, but for Voldemort, he would have grown up and spent 
every school holiday. He could have invited friends to his house. . . . He might even have 
had brothers and sisters. . . . It would have been his mother who had made his 
seventeenth birthday cake. The life he had lost had hardly ever seemed so real to him as 
at this moment, when he knew he was about to see the place where it had been taken 
from him. After Hermione had gone to bed that night, Harry quietly extracted his 
rucksack from Hermiones beaded bag, and from inside it, the photograph album Hagrid 
had given him so long ago. For the first time in months, he perused the old pictures of his 
parents, smiling and waving up at him from the images, which were all he had left of 
them now. 

 Harry would gladly have set out for Godrics Hollow the following day, but 
Hermione had other ideas. Convinced as she was that Voldemort would expect Harry to 
return to the scene of his parents deaths, she was determined that they would set off only 
after they had ensured that they had the best disguises possible. It was therefore a full 
week later C once they had surreptitiously obtained hairs from innocent Muggles who 
were Christmas shopping, and had practiced Apparating and Disapparating while 
underneath the Invisibility Cloak together C that Hermione agreed to make the journey. 

 They were to Apparate to the village under cover of darkness, so it was late 
afternoon when they finally swallowed Polyjuice Potion, Harry transforming into a 
balding, middle-aged Muggle man, Hermione into his small and rather mousy wife. The 
beaded bag containing all of their possessions (apart from the Horcrux, which Harry was 
wearing around his neck) was tucked into an inside pocket of Hermiones buttoned-up 
coat. Harry lowered the Invisibility Cloak over them, then they turned into the 
suffocating darkness once again. 

 Heart beating in his throat, Harry opened his eyes. They were standing hand in 
hand in a snowy lane under a dark blue sky, in which the nights first stars were already 
glimmering feebly. Cottages stood on either side of the narrow road, Christmas 
decorations twinkling in their windows. A short way ahead of them, a glow of golden 
streetlights indicated the center of the village. 

 All this snow! Hermione whispered beneath the cloak. Why didnt we think of 
snow? After all our precautions, well leave prints! Well just have to get rid of them C 
you go in front, Ill do it C 

 Harry did not want to enter the village like a pantomime horse, trying to keep 
themselves concealed while magically covering their traces. 


 Lets take off the Cloak, said Harry, and when she looked frightened, Oh, 
come on, we dont look like us and theres no one around. 

 He stowed the Cloak under his jacket and they made their way forward 
unhampered, the icy air stinging their faces as they passed more cottages. Any one of 
them might have been the one in which James and Lily had once lived or where Bathilda 
lived now. Harry gazed at the front doors, their snow-burdened roofs, and their front 
porches, wondering whether he remembered any of them, knowing deep inside that it was 
impossible, that he had been little more than a year old when he had left this place forever. 
He was not even sure whether he would be able to see the cottage at all; he did not know 
what happened when the subjects of a Fidelius Charm died. Then the little lane along 
which they were walking curved to the left and the heart of the village, a small square, 
was revealed to them. 

 Strung all around with colored lights, there was what looked like a war memorial 
in the middle, partly obscured by a windblown Christmas tree. There were several shops, 
a post office, a pub, and a little church whose stained-glass windows were glowing jewel-
bright across the square. 

 The snow here had become impacted: It was hard and slippery where people had 
trodden on it all day. Villagers were crisscrossing in front of them, their figures briefly 
illuminated by streetlamps. They heard a snatch of laughter and pop music as the pub 
door opened and closed; then they heard a carol start up inside the little church. 

 Harry, I think its Christmas Eve! said Hermione. 

 Is it? 

 He had lost track of the date; they had not seen a newspaper for weeks. 

 Im sure it is, said Hermione, her eyes upon the church. They . . . theyll be in 
there, wont they? Your mum and dad? I can see the graveyard behind it. 

 Harry felt a thrill of something that was beyond excitement, more like fear. Now 
that he was so near, he wondered whether he wanted to see after all. Perhaps Hermione 
knew how he was feeling, because she reached for his hand and took the lead for the first 
time, pulling him forward. Halfway across the square, however, she stopped dead. 

 Harry, look! 

 She was pointing at the war memorial. As they had passed it, it had transformed. 
Instead of an obelisk covered in names, there was a statue of three people: a man with 
untidy hair and glasses, a woman with long hair and a kind, pretty face, and a baby boy 
sitting in his mothers arms. Snow lay upon all their heads, like fluffy white caps. 

 Harry drew closer, gazing up into his parents faces. He had never imagined that 
there would be a statue. . . . How strange it was to see himself represented in stone, a 
happy baby without a scar on his forehead. . . . 

 Cmon, said Harry, when he had looked his fill, and they turned again toward 
the church. As they crossed the road, he glanced over his shoulder; the statue had turned 
back into the war memorial. 

 The singing grew louder as they approached the church. It made Harrys throat 
constrict, it reminded him so forcefully of Hogwarts, of Peeves bellowing rude versions 
of carols from inside suits of armor, of the Great Halls twelve Christmas trees, of 
Dumbledore wearing a bonnet he had won in a cracker, of Ron in a hand-knitted 
sweater. . . . 


 There was a kissing gate at the entrance to the graveyard. Hermione pushed it 
open as quietly as possible and they edged through it. On either side of the slippery path 
to the church doors, the snow lay deep and untouched. They moved off through the snow, 
carving deep trenches behind them as they walked around the building, keeping to the 
shadows beneath the brilliant windows. 

 Behind the church, row upon row of snowy tombstones protruded from a blanket 
of pale blue that was flecked with dazzling red, gold, and green wherever the reflections 
from the stained glass hit the snow. Keeping his hand closed tightly on the wand in his 
jacket pocket, Harry moved toward the nearest grave. 

 Look at this, its an Abbott, could be some long-lost relation of Hannahs! 

 Keep your voice down, Hermione begged him. 

 They waded deeper and deeper into the graveyard, gouging dark tracks into the 
snow behind them, stooping to peer at the words on old headstones, every now and then 
squinting into the surrounding darkness to make absolutely sure that they were 
unaccompanied. 

 Harry, here! 

 Hermione was two rows of tombstones away; he had to wade back to her, his 
heart positively banging in his chest. 

 Is it C ? 

 No, but look! 

 She pointed to the dark stone. Harry stooped down and saw , upon the frozen, 
lichen-spotted granite, the words Kendra Dumbledore and, a short way down her dates of 
birth and death, and Her Daughter Ariana. There was also a quotation: 

 

 Where your treasure is, there will your heart be also. 

 

 So Rita Skeeter and Muriel had got some of their facts right. The Dumbledore 
family had indeed lived here, and part of it had died here. 

 Seeing the grave was worse than hearing about it. Harry could not help thinking 
that he and Dumbledore both had deep roots in this graveyard, and that Dumbledore 
ought to have told him so, yet he had never thought to share the connection. They could 
have visited the place together; for a moment Harry imagined coming here with 
Dumbledore, of what a bond that would have been, of how much it would have meant to 
him. But it seemed that to Dumbledore, the fact that their families lay side by side in the 
same graveyard had been an unimportant coincidence, irrelevant, perhaps, to the job he 
wanted Harry to do. 

 Hermione was looking at Harry, and he was glad that his face was hidden in 
shadow. He read the words on the tombstone again. Where your treasure is, there will 
your heart be also. He did not understand what these words meant. Surely Dumbledore 
had chosen them, as the eldest member of the family once his mother had died. 

 Are you sure he never mentioned C ? Hermione began. 

 No, said Harry curtly, then, lets keep looking, and he turned away, wishing 
he had not seen the stone: He did not want his excited trepidation tainted with resentment. 

 Here! cried Hermione again a few moments later from out of the darkness. Oh 
no, sorry! I thought it said Potter. 


 She was rubbing at a crumbling, mossy stone, gazing down at it, a little frown on 
her face. 

 Harry, come back a moment. 

 He did not want to be sidetracked again, and only grudgingly made his way back 
through the snow toward her. 

 What? 

 Look at this! 
The grave was extremely old, weathered so that Harry could hardly make out the 
name. Hermione showed him the symbol beneath it. 

 Harry, thats the mark in the book! 

 He peered at the place she indicated: The stone was so worn that it was hard to 
make out what was engraved there, though there did seem to be a triangular mark beneath 
the nearly illegible name. 

 Yeah . . . it could be. . . . 

 Hermione lit her wand and pointed it at the name on the headstone. 

 It says Ig C Ignotus, I think. . . . 
Im going to keep looking for my parents, all right? Harry told her, a slight edge 
to his voice, and he set off again, leaving her crouched beside the old grave. 

 Every now and then he recognized a surname that, like Abbott, he had met at 
Hogwarts. Sometimes there were several generations of the same Wizarding family 
represented in the graveyard: Harry could tell from the dates that it had either died out, or 
the current members had moved away from Godrics Hollow. Deeper and deeper 
amongst the graves he went, and every time he reached a new headstone he felt a little 
lurch of apprehension and anticipation. 

 The darkness and the silence seemed to become, all of a sudden, much deeper. 
Harry looked around, worried, thinking of dementors, then realized that the carols had 
finished, that the chatter and flurry of churchgoers were fading away as they made their 
way back into the square. Somebody inside the church had just turned off the lights. 

 Then Hermiones voice came out of the blackness for the third time, sharp and 
clear from a few yards away. 

 Harry, theyre here . . . right here. 

 And he knew by her tone that it was his mother and father this time: He moved 
toward her, feeling as if something heavy were pressing on his chest, the same sensation 
he had had right after Dumbledore had died, a grief that had actually weighed on his heart 
and lungs. 

 The headstone was only two rows behind Kendra and Arianas. It was made of 
white marble, just like Dumbledores tomb, and this made it easy to read, as it seemed to 
shine in the dark. Harry did not need to kneel or even approach very close to it to make 
out the words engraved upon it. 

 

 JAMES POTTER LILY POTTER 

 

 BORN 27 MARCH 1960 BORN 30 JANUARY 1960 

 DIED 31 OCTOBER 1981 DIED 31 OCTOBER 1981 

 

 The last enemy that shall be destroyed is death. 

 


 Harry read the words slowly, as though he would have only one chance to take in 
their meaning, and he read the last of them aloud. 

 The last enemy that shall be defeated is death . . . A horrible thought came to 
him, and with a kind of panic. Isnt that a Death Eater idea? Why is that there? 

 It doesnt mean defeating death in the way the Death Eaters mean it, Harry, said 
Hermione, her voice gentle. It means . . . you know . . . living beyond death. Living after 
death. 

 But they were not living, thought Harry. They were gone. The empty words could 
not disguise the fact that his parents moldering remains lay beneath snow and stone, 
indifferent, unknowing. And tears came before he could stop them, boiling hot then 
instantly freezing on his face, and what was the point in wiping them off or pretending? 
He let them fall, his lips pressed hard together, looking down at the thick snow hiding 
from his eyes the place where the last of Lily and James lay, bones now, surely, or dust, 
not knowing or caring that their living son stood so near, his heart still beating, alive 
because of their sacrifice and close to wishing, at this moment, that he was sleeping under 
the snow with them. 

 Hermione had taken his hand again and was gripping it tightly. He could not look 
at her, but returned the pressure, now taking deep, sharp gulps of the night air, trying to 
steady himself, trying to regain control. He should have brought something o give them, 
and he had not thought of it, and every plant in the graveyard was leafless and frozen. But 
Hermione raised her wand, moved it in a circle through the air, and a wreath of Christmas 
roses blossomed before them. Harry caught it and laid it on his parents grave. 

 As soon as he stood up he wanted to leave: He did not think he could stand 
another moment there. He put his arm around Hermiones shoulders, and she put hers 
around his waist, and they turned in silence and walked away through the snow, past 
Dumbledores mother and sister, back toward the dark church and the out-of-sight kissing 
gate. 

 

Chapter Seventeen 

Bathildas Secret 

 

"Harry, stop." 
"What's wrong?" 
They had only just reached the grave of the unknown Abbott. 
"There's someone there. Someone watching us. I can tell. There, over by the bushes." 
They stood quite still, holding on to each other, gazing at the dense black boundary of the 
graveyard. Harry could not see anything. 
"Are you sure?" 



"I saw something move. I could have sworn I did..." 
She broke from him to free her wand arm. 
"We look like Muggles," Harry pointed out. 
"Muggles who've just been laying flowers on your parents' grave? Harry, I'm sure there's 
someone over there!" 
Harry thought of A History of Magic; the graveyard was supposed to be haunted; what if 
--? But then he heard a rustle and saw a little eddy of dislodged snow in the bush to 
which Hermione had pointed. Ghosts could not move snow. 
"It's a cat," said Harry, after a second or two, "or a bird. If it was a Death Eater we'd be 
dead by now. But let's get out of here, and we can put the Cloak back on." 
They glanced back repeatedly as they made their way out of the graveyard. Harry, who 
did not feel as sanguine as he had pretended when reassuring Hermione, was glad to 
reach the gate and the slippery pavement. They pulled the Invisibility Cloak back over 
themselves. The pub was fuller than before. Many voices inside it were now singing the 
carol that they had heard as they approached the church. For a moment, Harry considered 
suggesting they take refuge inside it, but before he could say anything Hermione 
murmured, "Let's go this way," and pulled him down the dark street leading out of the 
village in the opposite direction from which they had entered. Harry could make out the 
point where the cottages ended and the lane turned into open country again. They walked 
as quickly as they dared, past more windows sparkling with multicolored lights, the 
outlines of Christmas trees dark through the curtains. 
"How are we going to find Bathilda's house?" asked Hermione, who was shivering a little 
and kept glancing back over her shoulder. "Harry? What do you think? Harry?" 
She tugged at this arm, but Harry was not paying attention. He was looking toward the 
dark mass that stood at the very end of this row of houses. Next moment he sped up, 
dragging Hermione along with him, she slipped a little on the ice. 
"Harry --" 
"Look ... Look at it, Hermione ..." 
"I don't ... oh!" 
He could see it; the Fidelius Charm must have died with James and Lily. The hedge had 
grown wild in the sixteen years since Hagrid had taken Harry from the rubble that lay 
scattered amongst the waist-high grass. Most of the cottage was still standing, though 
entirely covered in the dark ivy and snow, but the right side of the top floor had been 
blown apart; that, Harry was sure, was where the curse had backfired. He and Hermione 


stood at the gate, gazing up at the wreck of what must once have been a cottage just like 
those that flanked it. 
"I wonder why nobody's ever rebuilt it?" whispered Hermione. 
"Maybe you can't rebuild it?" Harry replied. "Maybe it's like the injuries from Dark 
Magic and you can't repair the damage?" 
He slipped a hand from beneath the Cloak and grasped the snowy and thickly rusted gate, 
not wishing to open it, but simply so he'd some part of the house. 
"You're not going to go inside? It looks unsafe, it might -- oh, Harry, look!" 
His touch on the gate seemed to have done it. A sign had risen out of the ground in front 
of them, up thorough the tangles of nettles and weeds, like some bizarre, fast-growing 
flower, and in golden letters upon the wood it said: 
On this spot, on this night of 31 October 1981, 
Lily and James Potter lost their lives. 
Their son, Harry, remains the only wizard 
ever to have survived the Killing Curse. 
This house, invisible to Muggles, has been left 
in its ruined state as a monument to the Potters 
and as a reminder of the violence 
that tore apart their family. 
And all around these neatly lettered words, scribbles had been added by other witches 
and wizards who had come to see the place where the Boy Who Lived had escaped. 
Some had merely signed their names in Everlasting Ink; others had carved their initials 
into the wood, still others had left messages. The most recent of these, shining brightly 
over sixteen years' worth of magical graffiti, all said similar things. 
Good luck, Harry, wherever you are. 
If you read this, Harry, we're all behind you! 
Long live Harry Potter. 
"They shouldn't have written on the sign!" said Hermione, indignant. 
But Harry beamed at her. 
"It's brilliant. I'm glad they did. I ..." 
He broke off. A heavily muffled figure was hobbling up the lane toward them, silhouetted 
by the bright lights in the distant square. Harry thought, though it was hard to judge, that 
the figure was a woman. She was moving slowly, possibly frightened of slipping on the 
snowy ground. Her stoop, her stoutness, her shuffling gait all gave an impression of 


extreme age. They watched in silence as she drew nearer. Harry was waiting to see 
whether she would turn into any of the cottages she was passing, but he knew 
instinctively that she would not. At last she came to a halt a few yards from them and 
simply stood there in the middle of the frozen road, facing them. 
He did not need Hermione's pinch to his arm. There was next to no chance that this 
woman was a Muggle: She was standing there gazing at a house that ought to have been 
completely invisible to her, if she was not a witch. Even assuming that she was a witch, 
however, it was odd behavior to come out on a night this cold, simply to look at an old 
ruin. By all the rules of normal magic, meanwhile, she ought not to be able to see 
Hermione and him at all. Nevertheless, Harry had the strangest feeling that she knew that 
they were there, and also who they were. Just as he had reached this uneasy conclusion, 
she raised a gloved hand and beckoned. 
Hermione moved closer to him under the Cloak, her arm pressed against his. 
"How does she know?" 
He shook his head. The woman beckoned again, more vigorously. Harry could think of 
many reasons not to obey the summons, and yet his suspicions about her identity were 
growing stronger every moment that they stood facing each other in the deserted street. 
Was it possible that she had been waiting for them all these long months? That 
Dumbledore had told her to wait, and that Harry would come in the end? Was it not likely 
that it was she who had moved in the shadows in the graveyard and had followed them to 
this spot? Even her ability to sense them suggested some Dumbledore-ish power that he 
had never encountered before. 
Finally Harry spoke, causing Hermione to gasp and jump. 
"Are you Bathilda?" 
The muffled figure nodded and beckoned again. 
Beneath the Cloak Harry and Hermione looked at each other. Harry raised his eyebrows; 
Hermione gave a tiny, nervous nod. 
They stepped toward the woman and , at once, she turned and hobbled off back the way 
they had come. Leading them past several houses, she turned in at a gate. They followed 
her up the front path through a garden nearly as overgrown as the one they had just left. 
She fumbled for a moment with a key at the front door, then opened it and stepped back 
to let them pass. 
She smelled bad, or perhaps it was her house; Harry wrinkled his nose as they sidled past 
her and pulled off the Cloak. Now that he was beside her, he realized how tiny she was; 
bowed down with age, she came barely level with his chest. She closed the door behind 


them, her knuckles blue and mottled against the peeling paint, then turned and peered into 
Harry's face. Her eyes were thick with cataracts and sunken into folds of transparent skin, 
and her whole face was dotted with broken veins and liver spots. He wondered whether 
she could make him out at all; even if she could, it was the balding Muggle whose 
identity he had stolen that she would see. 
The odor of old age, of dust, of unwashed clothes and stale food intensified as the 
unwound a moth-eaten black shawl, revealing a head of scant white hair through which 
the scalp showed clearly. 
"Bathilda?" Harry repeated. 
She nodded again. Harry became aware of the locket against his skin; the thing inside it 
that sometimes ticked or beat had woken; he could feel it pulsing through the cold gold. 
Did it know, could it sense, that the thing that would destroy it was near? 
Bathilda shuffled past them, pushing Hermione aside as though she had not seen her, and 
vanished into what seemed to be a sitting room. 
"Harry, I'm not sure about this," breathed Hermione. 
"Look at the size of her, I think we could overpower her if we had to," said Harry. "Listen, 
I should have told you, I knew she wasn't all there. Muriel called her 'gaga.'" 
"Come!" called Bathilda from the next room. 
Hermione jumped and clutched Harry's arm. 
"It's okay," said Harry reassuringly, and he led the way into the sitting room. 
Bathilda was tottering around the place lighting candles, but it was still very dark, not to 
mention extremely dirty. Thick dust crunched beneath their feet, and Harry's nose 
detected, underneath the dank and mildewed smell, something worse, like meat gone bad. 
He wondered when was the last time anyone had been inside Bathilda's house to check 
whether she was coping. She seemed to have forgotten that she could do magic, too, for 
she lit the candles clumsily by hand, her trailing lace cuff in constant danger of catching 
fire. 
"Let me do that," offered Harry, and he took the matches from her. She stood watching 
him as he finished lighting the candle stubs that stood on saucers around the room, 
perched precariously on stacks of books and on side tables crammed with cracked and 
moldy cups. 
The last surface on which Harry spotted a candle was a bow-fronted chest of drawers on 
which there stood a large number of photographs. When the flame danced into life, its 
reflection wavered on their dusty glass and silver. He saw a few tiny movements from the 


pictures. As Bathilda fumbled with logs for the fire, he muttered "Tergeo": The dust 
vanished from the photographs, and he saw at once that half a dozen were missing from 
the largest and most ornate frames. He wondered whether Bathilda or somebody else had 
removed them. Then the sight of a photograph near the back of the collection caught his 
eye, and he snatched it up. 
It was the golden-haired, merry-faced thief, the young man who had perched on 
Gregorovitch's windowsill, smiling lazily up at Harry out of the silver frame. And it came 
to Harry instantly where he had seen the boy before: in The Life and Lies of Albus 
Dumbledore, arm in arm with the teenage Dumbledore, and that must be where all the 
missing photographs were: in Rita's book. 
"Mrs. -- Miss -- Bagshot?" he said, and his voice shook slightly. "Who is this?" 
Bathilda was standing in the middle of the room watching Hermione light the fire for her. 
"Miss Bagshot?" Harry repeated, and he advanced with the picture in his hands as the 
flames burst into life in the fireplace. Bathilda looked up at his voice, and the Horcrux 
beat faster upon his chest. 
"Who is this person?" Harry asked her, pushing the picture forward. 
She peered at it solemnly, then up at Harry. 
"Do you know who this is?" he repeated in a much slower and louder voice than usual. 
"This man? Do you know him? What's he called?" 
Bathilda merely looked vague. Harry felt an awful frustration. How had Rita Skeeter 
unlocked Bathilda's memories? 
"Who is this man?" he repeated loudly. 
"Harry, what area you doing?" asked Hermione. 
"This picture. Hermione, it's the thief, the thief who stole from Gregorovitch! Please!" he 
said to Bathilda. "Who is this?" 
But she only stared at him. 
"Why did you ask us to come with you, Mrs. - Miss -- Bagshot?" asked Hermione, 
raising her own voice. "Was there something you wanted to tell us?" 
Giving no sign that she had heard Hermione, Bathilda now shuffled a few steps closer to 
Harry. With a little jerk of her head she looked back into the hall. 
"You want us to leave?" he asked. 


 She repeated the gesture, this time pointing firstly at him, then at herself, then at the 
ceiling. 
"Oh, right... Hermione, I think she wants me to go upstairs with her." 
"All right," said Hermione, "let's go." 
But when Hermione moved, Bathilda shook her head with surprising vigor, once more 
pointing first at Harry, then to herself. 
"She wants me to go with her, alone." 
"Why?" asked Hermione, and her voice rang out sharp and clear in the candlelit room, the 
old lady shook her head a little at the loud noise. 
"Maybe Dumbledore told her to give the sword to me, and only to me?" 
"Do you really think she knows who you are?" 
"Yes," said Harry, looking down into the milky eyes fixed upon his own. "I think she 
does." 
"Well, okay then, but be quick, Harry." 
"Lead the way," Harry told Bathilda. 
She seemed to understand, because she shuffled around him toward the door. Harry 
glanced back at Hermione with a reassuring smile, but he was not sure she had seen it; 
she stood hugging herself in the midst of the candlelit squalor, looking toward the 
bookcase. As Harry walked out of the room, unseen by both Hermione and Bathilda, he 
slipped the silver-framed photograph of the unknown thief inside his jacket. 
The stairs were steep and narrow; Harry was half tempted to place his hands on stout 
Bathilda's backside to ensure that she did not topple over backward on top of him, which 
seemed only too likely. Slowly, wheezing a little, she climbed to the upper landing, 
turned immediately right, and led him into a low-ceilinged bedroom. 
It was pitch-black and smelled horrible: Harry had just made out a chamber pot 
protruding from under the bed before Bathilda closed the door and even that was 
swallowed by the darkness. 
"Lumos," said Harry, and his wand ignited. He gave a start: Bathilda had moved close to 
him in those few seconds of darkness, and he had not heard her approach. 
"You are Potter?" she whispered. 


 "Yes, I am." 
She nodded slowly, solemnly. Harry felt the Horcrux beating fast, faster than his own 
heart; It was an unpleasant, agitating sensation. 
"Have you got anything for me?" Harry asked, but she seemed distracted by his lit wand-
tip. 
"Have you got anything for me?" he repeated. 
Then she closed her eyes and several things happened at once: Harry's scar prickled 
painfully; the Horcrux twitched so that the front of his sweater actually moved; the dark, 
fetid room dissolved momentarily. He felt a leap of joy and spoke in a high, cold voice: 
Hold him! 
Harry swayed where he stood: The dark, foul-smelling room seemed to close around him 
again; he did not know what had just happened. 
"Have you got anything for me?" he asked for a third time, much louder. 
"Over here," she whispered, pointing to the corner. Harry raised his wand and saw the 
outline of a cluttered dressing table beneath the curtained window. 
This time she did not lead him. Harry edged between her and the unmade bed, his wand 
raised. He did not want to look away from her. 
"What is it?" he asked as he reached the dressing table, which was heaped high with what 
looked and smelled like dirty laundry. 
"There," she said, pointing at the shapeless mass. 
And in the instant that he looked away, his eyes taking the tangled mess for a sword hilt, 
a ruby, she moved weirdly: He saw it out of the corner of his eye; panic made him turn 
and horror paralyzed him as he saw the old body collapsing and the great snake pouring 
from the place where her neck had been. 
The snake struck as he raised his wand: The force of the bite to his forearm sent the wand 
spinning up toward the ceiling; its light swung dizzyingly around the room and was 
extinguished; Then a powerful blow from the tail to his midriff knocked the breath out of 
him: He fell backward onto the dressing table, into the mound of filthy clothing -- 
He rolled sideways, narrowly avoiding the snake's tail, which thrashed down upon the 
table where he had been a second earlier. Fragments of the glass surface rained upon him 
as he hit the floor. From below he heard Hermione call, "Harry?" 



He could not get enough breath into his lungs to call back: Then a heavy smooth mass 
smashed him to the floor and he felt it slide over him, powerful, muscular -- 
"No!" he gasped, pinned to the floor. 
"Yes," whispered the voice. "Yesss... hold you ... hold you ..." 
"Accio ... Accio Wand ..." 
But nothing happened and he needed his hands to try to force the snake from him as it 
coiled itself around his torso, squeezing the air from him, pressing the Horcrux hard into 
his chest, a circle of ice that throbbed with life, inches from his own frantic heart, and his 
brain was flooding with cold, white light, all thought obliterated, his own breath drowned, 
distant footsteps, everything going... 
A metal heart was banging outside his chest, and now he was flying, flying with triumph 
in his heart, without need of broomstick or thestral... 
He was abruptly awake in the sour-smelling darkness; Nagini had released him. He 
scrambled up and saw the snake outlined against the landing light: It struck, and 
Hermione dived aside with a shriek; her deflected curse hit the curtained window, which 
shattered. Frozen air filled the room as Harry ducked to avoid another shower of broken 
glass and his foot slipped on a pencil-like something -- his wand -- 
He bent and snatched it up, but now the room was full of the snake, its tail thrashing; 
Hermione was nowhere to be seen and for a moment Harry thought the worst, but then 
there was a loud bang and a flash of red light, and the snake flew into the air, smacking 
Harry hard in the face as it went, coil after heavy coil rising up to the ceiling. Harry 
raised his wand, but as he did so, his scar seared more painfully, more powerfully than it 
had done in years. 
"He's coming! Hermione, he's coming!" 
As he yelled the snake fell, hissing wildly. Everything was chaos: It smashed shelves 
from the wall, and splintered china flew everywhere as Harry jumped over the bed and 
seized the dark shape he knew to be Hermione -- 
She shrieked with pain as he pulled her back across the bed: The snake reared again, but 
Harry knew that worse than the snake was coming, was perhaps already at the gate, his 
head was going to split open with the pain from his scar -- 
The snake lunged as he took a running leap, dragging Hermione with him; as it struck, 
Hermione screamed, "Confringo!" and her spell flew around the room, exploding the 
wardrobe mirror and ricocheting back at them, bouncing from floor to ceiling; Harry felt 
the heat of it sear the back of his hand. Glass cut his cheek as, pulling Hermione with him, 
he leapt from bed to broken dressing table and then straight out of the smashed window 


into nothingness, her scream reverberating through the night as they twisted in midair ... 
And then his scar burst open and he was Voldemort and he was running across the fetid 
bedroom, his long white hands clutching at the windowsill as he glimpsed the bald man 
and the little woman twist and vanish, and he screamed with rage, a scream that mingled 
with the girl's, that echoed across the dark gardens over the church bells ringing in 
Christmas Day... 
And his scream was Harry's scream, his pain was Harry's pain... that it could happen here, 
where it had happened before... here, within sight of that house where he had come so 
close to knowing what it was to die ... to die ... the pain was so terrible ... ripped from his 
body ... But if he had no body, why did his head hurt so badly; if he was dead, how cold 
he feel so unbearably, didn't pain cease with death, didn't it go ... 
The night wet and windy, two children dressed as pumpkins waddling across the square 
and the shop windows covered in paper spiders, all the tawdry Muggle trappings of a 
world in which they did not believe ... And he was gliding along, that sense of purpose 
and power and rightness in him that he always knew on these occasions ... Not anger ... 
that was for weaker souls than he ... but triumph, yes ... He had waited for this, he had 
hoped for it ... 
"Nice costume, mister!" 
He saw the small boy's smile falter as he ran near enough to see beneath the hood of the 
cloak, saw the fear cloud his pained face: Then the child turned and ran away ... Beneath 
the robe he fingered the handle of his wand ... One simple movement and the child would 
never reach his mother ... but unnecessary, quite unnecessary ... 
And along a new and darker street he moved, and now his destination was in sight at last, 
the Fidelius Charm broken, though they did not know it yet ... And he made less noise 
than the dead leaves slithering along the pavement as he drew level with the dark hedge, 
and steered over it ... 
They had not drawn the curtains; he saw them quite clearly in their little sitting room, the 
tall black-haired man in his glasses, making puffs of colored smoke erupt from his wand 
for the amusement of the small black-haired boy in his blue pajamas. The child was 
laughing and trying to catch the smoke, to grab it in his small fist ... 
A door opened and the mother entered, saying words he cold not hear, her long dark-red 
hair falling over her face. Now the father scooped up the son and handed him to the 
mother. He threw his wand down upon the sofa and stretched, yawning... 
The gate creaked a little as he pushed it open, but James Potter did not hear. His white 
hand pulled out the wand beneath his cloak and pointed it at the door, which burst open... 
He was over the threshold as James came sprinting into the hall. It was easy, too easy, he 


had not even picked up his wand ... 
"Lily, take Harry and go! It's him! Go! Run! I'll hold him off!" 
Hold him off, without a wand in his hand! ... He laughed before casting the curse ... 
"Avada Kedavra!" 
The green light filled the cramped hallway, it lit the pram pushed against the wall, it 
made the banisters glow like lighting rods, and James Potter fell like a marionette whose 
strings were cut ... 
He could hear her screaming from the upper floor, trapped, but as long as she was 
sensible, she, at least, had nothing to fear ... He climbed the steps, listening with faint 
amusement to her attempts to barricade herself in ... She had no wand upon her either ... 
How stupid they were, and how trusting, thinking that their safety lay in friends, that 
weapons could be discarded even for moments... 
He forced the door open, cast aside the chair and boxes hastily piled against it with one 
lazy wave of his wand ... and there she stood, the child in her arms. At the sight of him, 
she dropped her son into the crib behind her and threw her arms wide, as if this would 
help, as if in shielding him from sight she hoped to be chosen instead ... 
"Not Harry, not Harry, please not Harry!" 
"Stand aside, you silly girl... stand aside, now." 
"Not Harry, please no, take me, kill me instead --" 
"This is my last warning --" 
"Not Harry! Please ... have mercy ... have mercy ... Not Harry! Not Harry! Please -- I'll 
do anything ..." 
"Stand aside. Stand aside, girl!" 
He could have forced her away from the crib, but it seemed more prudent to finish them 
all ... 
The green light flashed around the room and she dropped like her husband. The child had 
not cried all this time. He could stand, clutching the bars of his crib, and he looked up 
into the intruder's face with a kind of bright interest, perhaps thinking that it was his 
father who hid beneath the cloak, making more pretty lights, and his mother would pop 
up any moment, laughing -- 
He pointed the wand very carefully into the boy's face: He wanted to see it happen, the 


destruction of this one, inexplicable danger. The child began to cry: It had seen that he 
was not James. He did not like it crying, he had never been able to stomach the small 
ones whining in the orphanage -- 
"Avada Kedavra!" 
And then he broke. He was nothing, nothing but pain and terror, and he must hide himself, 
not here in the rubble of the ruined house, where the child was trapped screaming, but far 
away ... far away ... 
"No," he moaned. 
The snake rustled on the filthy, cluttered floor, and he had killed the boy, and yet he was 
the boy ... 
"No..." 
And now he stood at the broken window of Bathilda's house, immersed in memories of 
his greatest loss, and at his feet the great snake slithered over broken china and glass... He 
looked down and saw something... something incredible... 
"No..." 
"Harry, it's all right, you're all right!" 
He stooped down and picked up the smashed photograph. There he was, the unknown 
thief, the thief he was seeking... 
"No... I dropped it... I dropped it ..." 
"Harry, it's okay, wake up, wake up!" 
He was Harry... Harry, not Voldemort ... and the thing that was rustling was not a snake ... 
He opened his eyes. 
"Harry," Hermione whispered. "Do you feel all -- all right?" 
"Yes," he lied. 
He was in the tent, lying on one of the lower bunks beneath a heap of blankets. He could 
tell that it was almost dawn by the stillness and quality of the cold, flat light beyond the 
canvas ceiling. He was drenched in sweat; he could feel it on the sheets and blankets. 
"We got away." 
"Yes," said Hermione. "I had to use a Hover Charm to get you into your bunk. I couldn't 


lift you. You've been ... Well, you haven't been quite ..." 
There were purple shadows under her brown eyes and he noticed a small sponge in her 
hand: She had been wiping his face. 
"You've been ill," she finished. "Quite ill." 
"How long ago did we leave?" 
"Hours ago. It's nearly morning." 
"And I've been... what, unconscious?" 
"Not exactly," said Hermione uncomfortably. "You've been shouting and moaning and ... 
things," she added in a tone that made Harry feel uneasy. What had he done? Screamed 
curses like Voldemort, cried like the baby in the crib? 
"I couldn't get the Horcrux off you," Hermione said, and he knew she wanted to change 
the subject. "It was stuck, stuck to your chest. You've got a mark; I'm sorry, I had to use a 
Severing Charm to get it away. The snake hit you too, but I've cleaned the wound and put 
some dittany on it ..." 
He pulled the sweaty T-shirt he was wearing away from himself and looked down. There 
was a scarlet oval over his heart where the locket had burned him. He could also see the 
half healed puncture marks to his forearm. 
"Where've you put the Horcrux?" 
"In my bag. I think we should keep it off for a while." 
He lay back on his pillows and looked into her pinched gray face. 
"We shouldn't have gone to Godric's Hollow. It's my fault, it's all my fault. Hermione, I'm 
sorry." 
"It's not you fault. I wanted to go too; I really thought Dumbledore might have left the 
sword there for you." 
"Yeah, well ... we got that wrong, didn't we?" 
"What happened, Harry? What happened when she took you upstairs? Was the snake 
hiding somewhere? Did it just come out and kill her and attack you?" 
"No." he said. "She was the snake ... or the snake was her ... all along." 
"W-what?" 


 He closed his eyes. He could still smell Bathilda's house on him; it made the whole thing 
horribly vivid. 
"Bathilda must've been dead a while. The snake was ... was inside her. You-Know-Who 
put it there in Godric's Hollow, to wait. You were right. He knew I'd go back." 
"The snake was inside her?" 
He opened his eyes again. Hermione looked revolted, nauseated. 
"Lupin said there would be magic we'd never imagined." Harry said. "She didn't want to 
talk in front of you, because it was Parseltongue, all Parseltongue, and I didn't realize, 
but of course I could understand her. Once we were up in the room, the snake sent a 
message to You-Know-Who, I heard it happen inside my head, I felt him get excited, he 
said to keep me there ... and then ..." 
He remembered the snake coming out of Bathilda's neck: Hermione did not need to know 
the details. 
"...she changed, changed into the snake, and attacked." 
He looked down at the puncture marks. 
"It wasn't supposed to kill me, just keep me there till You-Know-Who came." 
If he had only managed to kill the snake, it would have been worth it, all of it ... Sick at 
heart, he sat up and threw back the covers. 
"Harry, no, I'm sure you ought to rest!" 
"You're the one who needs sleep. No offense, but you look terrible. I'm fine. I'll keep 
watch for a while. Where's my wand?" 
She did not answer, she merely looked at him. 
"Where's my wand, Hermione?" 
She was biting her lip, and tears swam in her eyes. 
"Harry ..." 
"Where's my wand?" 
She reached down beside the bed and held it out to him. 



The holly and phoenix wand was nearly severed in two. One fragile strand of phoenix 
feather kept both pieces hanging together. The wood had splintered apart completely. 
Harry took it into his hands as though it was a living thing that had suffered a terrible 
injury. He could not think properly: Everything was a blur of panic and fear. Then he 
held out the want to Hermione. 
"Mend it. Please." 
"Harry, I don't think, when it's broken like this --" 
"Please, Hermione, try!" 
"R-Reparo." 
The dangling half of the wand resealed itself. Harry held it up. 
"Lumos!" 
The wand sparked feebly, then went out. Harry pointed it at Hermione. 
"Expelliarmus!" 
Hermione's wand gave a little jerk, but did not leave her hand. The feeble attempt at 
magic was too much for Harry's wand, which split into two again. He stared at it, aghast, 
unable to take in what he was seeing ... the wand that had survived so much ... 
"Harry." Hermione whispered so quietly he could hardly hear her. "I'm so, so sorry. I 
think it was me. As we were leaving, you know, the snake was coming for us, and so I 
cast a Blasting Curse, and it rebounded everywhere, and it must have -- must have hit --" 
"It was an accident." said Harry mechanically. He felt empty, stunned. "We'll -- we'll find 
a way to repair it." 
"Harry, I don't think we're going to be able to," said Hermione, the ears trickling down 
her face. "Remember ... remember Ron? When he broke his wand, crashing the car? It 
was never the same again, he had to get a new one." 
Harry thought of Ollivander, kidnapped and held hostage by Voldemort; of Gregorovitch, 
who was dead. How was he supposed to find himself a new wand? 
"Well," he said, in a falsely matter-of-fact voice, "well, I'll just borrow yours for now, 
then. While I keep watch." 
Her face glazed with tears, Hermione handed over her wand, and he left her sitting beside 
his bed, desiring nothing more than to get away from her. 

 


Chapter Eighteen 

The Life and Lies of Albus Dumbledore 

The sun was coming up: The pure, colorless vastness of the sky stretched over 
him, indifferent to him and his suffering. Harry sat down in the tent entrance and took a 
deep breath of clean air. Simply to be alive to watch the sun rise over the sparkling snowy 
hillside ought to have been the greatest treasure on earth, yet he could not appreciate it: 
His senses had been spiked by the calamity of losing his want. He looked out over a 
valley blanketed in snow, distant church bells chiming through the glittering silence. 

Without realizing it, he was digging his fingers into his arms as if he were trying 
to resist physical pain. He had spilled his own blood more times than he could count; he 
had lost all bones in his right arm once; this journey had already given him scars to his 
chest and forearm to join those on his hand and forehead, but never, until this moment, 
had he felt himself to be fatally weakened, vulnerable, and naked, as though the best part 
of his magical power had been torn from him. He knew exactly what Hermione would 
say if he expressed any of this: The wand is only as good as the wizard. But she was 
wrong, his case was different. She had not felt the wand spin like the needle of a compass 
and shoot golden flames at his enemy. He had lost the protection of the twin cores, and 
only now that it was gone did he realize how much he had been counting on it. 

He pulled the pieces of the broken wand out of his pocket and, without looking at 
them, tucked them away in Hagrids pouch around his neck. The pouch was now too full 
of broken and useless objects to take any more. Harrys hand brushed the old Snitch 
through the mokeskin and for a moment he had to fight the temptation to pull it out and 
throw it away. Impenetrable, unhelpful, useless, like everything else Dumbledore had left 
behind --- 

And his fury at Dumbledore broke over him now like lava, scorching him inside, 
wiping out every other feeling. Out of sheer desperation they had talked themselves into 
believing that Godrics Hollow held answers, convinced themselves that they were 
supposed to go back, that it was all part of some secret path laid out for them by 
Dumbledore: but there was no map, no plan. Dumbledore had left them to grope in the 
darkness, to wrestle with unknown and undreamed-of terrors, alone and unaided: Nothing 
was explained, nothing was given freely, they had no sword, and now, Harry had no 
wand. And he had dropped the photograph of the thief, and it would surely be easy now 
for Voldemort to find out who he was . . . 

Voldemort had all the information now . . . 

Harry? 

Hermione looked frightened that he might curse her with her own wand. Her face 
streaked with tears, she crouched down beside him, two cups of tea trembling in her 
hands and something bulky under her arm. 

Thanks, he said, taking one of the cups. 

Do you mind if I talk to you? 

No, he said because he did not want to hurt her feelings. 

Harry, you wanted to know who that man in the picture was. Well . . . Ive got 
the book. 

Timidly she pushed it onto his lap, a pristine copy of The Life and Lies of Albus 
Dumbledore. 


Where --- how --- ? 

It was in Bathildas sitting room, just lying there. . . . This note was sticking out 
of the top of it. 

Hermione read the few lines of spiky, acid-green writing aloud. 

 Dear Bally, Thanks for your help. Heres a copy of the book, hope you like it. 
You said everything, even if you dont remember it. Rita. I think it must have arrived 
while the real Bathilda was alive, but perhaps she wasnt in any fit state to read it? 

No, she probably wasnt. 

Harry looked down upon Dumbledores face and experienced a surge of savage 
pleasure: Now he would know if all the things that Dumbledore had never thought it 
worth telling him, whether Dumbledore wanted him to or not. 

Youre still really angry at me, arent you? said Hermione; he looked up to see 
fresh tears leaking out of her eyes, and knew that his anger must have shown in his face. 

No, he said quietly. No, Hermione, I know it was an accident. You were trying 
to get us out of there alive, and you were incredible. Id be dead if you hadnt been there 
to help me. 

He tried to return her watery smile, then turned his attention to the book. Its spine 
was stiff; it had clearly never been opened before. He riffled through the pages, looking 
for photographs. He came across the one he sought almost at once, the young 
Dumbledore and his handsome companion, roaring with laughter at some long-forgotten 
joke. Harry dropped his eyes to the caption. 

 

Albus Dumbledore, shortly after his mothers death, 

With his friend Gellert Grindelwald. 

 

Harry gaped at the last word for several long moments. Grindelwald. His friend 
Grindelwald. He looked sideways at Hermione, who was still contemplating the name as 
though she could not believe her eyes. Slowly she looked up at Harry. 

Grindelwald! 

Ignoring the remainder of the photographs, Harry searched the pages around them 
for a recurrence of that fatal name. He soon discovered it and read greedily, but became 
lost: It was necessary to go farther back to make sense of it all, and eventually he found 
himself at the start of a chapter entitled The Greater Good. Together, he and Hermione 
started to read: 

 

Now approaching his eighteenth birthday, Dumbledore left Hogwarts in a blaze 
of glory --- Head Boy, Prefect, Winner of the Barnabus Finkley Prize for 
Exceptional Spell-Casting, British Youth Representative to the Wizengamot, 
Gold Medal-Winner for Ground-Breaking Contribution to the International 
Alchemical Conference in Cairo. Dumbledore intended, next, to take a Grand 
Tour with Elphias Dogbreath Doge, the dim-witted but devoted sidekick he 
had picked up at school. 

The two young men were staying at the Leaky Cauldron in London, 
preparing to depart for Greece the following morning, when an owl arrived 
bearing news of Dumbledores mothers death. Dogbreath Doge, who refused 
to be interviewed for this book, has given the public his own sentimental 


version of what happened next. He represents Kendras death as a tragic blow, 
and Dumbledores decision to give up his expedition as an act of noble self-
sacrifice. 

Certainly Dumbledore returned to Godrics Hollow at once, supposedly to 
care for his younger brother and sister. But how much care did he actually 
give them? 

He were a head case, that Aberforth, said Enid Smeek, whose family lived 
on the outskirts of Godrics Hollow at that time. Ran wild. Course, with his 
mum and dad gone youd have felt sorry for him, only he kept chucking goat 
dung at my head. I dont think Albus was fussed about him. I never saw them 
together, anyway. 

So what was Albus doing, if not comforting his wild young brother? The 
answer, it seems, is ensuring the continued imprisonment of his sister. For 
though her first jailer had died, there was no change in the pitiful condition of 
Ariana Dumbledore. Her very existence continued to be known only to those 
few outsiders who, like Dogbreath Doge, could be counted upon to believe in 
the story of her ill health. 

Another such easily satisfied friend of the family was Bathilda Bagshot, the 
celebrated magical historian who has lived in Godrics Hollow for many years. 
Kendra, of course, had rebuffed Bathilda when she first attempted to welcome 
the family to the village. Several years later, however, the author sent an owl to 
Albus at Hogwarts, having been favorably impressed by his paper on trans-
species transformation in Transfiguration Today. This initial contract led to 
acquaintance with the entire Dumbledore family. At the time of Kendras death, 
Bathilda was the only person in Godrics Hollow who was on speaking terms 
with Dumbledores mother. 

Unfortunately, the brilliance that Bathilda exhibited earlier in her life has 
now dimmed. The fires lit, but the cauldrons empty, as Ivor Dillonsby put it 
to me, or, in Enid Smeeks slightly earthier phrase, Shes nutty as squirrel 
poo. Nevertheless, a combination of tried-and-tested reporting techniques 
enabled me to extract enough nuggets of hard fact to string together the whole 
scandalous story. 

Like the rest of the Wizarding world, Bathilda puts Kendras premature death 
down to a backfiring charm, a story repeated by Albus and Aberforth in later 
years. Bathilda also parrots the family line on Ariana, calling her frail and 
delicate. On one subject, however, Bathilda is well worth the effort I put into 
procuring Veritaserum, for she, and she alone, knows the full story of the best-
kept secret of Albus Dumbledores life. Now revealed for the first time, it calls 
into question everything that his admirers believed of Dumbledore: his 
supposed hatred of the Dark Arts, his opposition into the oppression of Muggles, 
even his devotion to his own family. 

The very same summer that Dumbledore went home to Godrics Hollow, 
now an orphan and head of the family, Bathilda Bagshot agreed to accept into 
her home her great-nephew, Gellert Grindelwald. 

The name of Grindelwald is justly famous: In a list of Most Dangerous Dark 
Wizards of All Time, he would miss out on the top spot only because You-


Know-Who arrived, a generation later, to steal his crown. As Grindelwald never 
extended his campaign of terror to Britain, however, the details of his rise to 
power are not widely known here. 

Educated at Durmstrang, a school famous even then for its unfortunate 
tolerance of the Dark Arts, Grindelwald showed himself quite as precociously 
brilliant as Dumbledore. Rather than channel his abilities into the attainment of 
awards and prizes, however, Gellert Grindelwald devoted himself no other 
pursuits. At sixteen years old, even Durmstrang felt it could no longer turn a 
blind eye to the twisted experiments of Gellert Grindelwald, and he was 
expelled. 

Hitherto, all that has been known of Grindelwalds next movements is that he 
traveled around for some months. It can now be revealed that Grindelwald 
chose to visit his great-aunt in Godrics Hollow, and that there, intensely 
shocking though it will be for many to hear it, he struck up a close friendship 
with none other than Albus Dumbledore. 

He seemed a charming boy to me, babbles Bathilda, whatever he became 
later. Naturally I introduced him to poor Albus, who was missing the company 
of lads his own age. The boys took to each other at once. 

They certainly did. Bathilda shows me a letter, kept by her that Albus 
Dumbledore sent Gellert Grindelwald in the dead of night. 

Yes, even after theyd spent all day in discussion --- both such brilliant 
young boys, they got on like a cauldron on fire --- Id sometimes hear an owl 
tapping at Gellerts bedroom window, delivering a letter from Albus! An idea 
would have struck him and he had to let Gellert know immediately! 

And what ideas they were. Profoundly shocking though Albus Dumbledores 
fans will find it, here are the thoughts of their seventeen-year-old hero, as 
relayed to his new best friend. (A copy of the original letter may be seen on 
page 463.) 

 

Gellert --- 

Your point about Wizard dominance being FOR THE MUGGLES 
OWN GOOD --- this, I think, is the crucial point. Yes, we have been given 
power and yes, that power gives us the right to rule, but it also gives us 
responsibilities over the ruled. We must stress this point, it will be the 
foundation stone upon which we build. Where we are opposed, as we 
surely will be, this must be the basis of all our counterarguments. We seize 
control FOR THE GREATER GOOD. And from this it follows that where 
we meet resistance, we must use only the force that is necessary and no 
more. (This was your mistake at Durmstrang! But I do not complain, 
because if you had not been expelled, we would never have met.) 

Albus 

 

Astonished and appalled though his many admirers will be, this letter 
constitutes the Statute of Secrecy and establishing Wizard rule over Muggles. 
What a blow for those who have always portrayed Dumbledore as the Muggle-
borns greatest champion! How hollow those speeches promoting Muggle rights 


seem in the light of this damning new evidence! How despicable does Albus 
Dumbledore appear, busy plotting his rise to power when he should have been 
mourning his mother and caring for his sister! 

No doubt those determined to keep Dumbledore on his crumbling pedestal 
will bleat that he did not, after all, put his plans into action, that he must have 
suffered a change of heart, that he came to his senses. However, the truth seems 
altogether more shocking. 

Barely two months into their great new friendship, Dumbledore and 
Grindelwald parted, never to see each other again until they met for their 
legendary duel (for more, see chapter 22). What caused this abrupt rupture? Had 
Dumbledore come to his senses? Had he told Grindelwald he wanted no more 
part in his plans? Alas, no. 

It was poor little Ariana dying, I think, that did it, says Bathilda. It came 
as an awful shock. Gellert was there in the house when it happened, and he 
came back to my house all of a dither, told me he wanted to go home the next 
day. Terribly distressed, you know. So I arranged a Portkey and that was the last 
I saw of him. 

Albus was beside himself at Arianas death. It was so dreadful for those two 
brothers. They had lost everybody except for each other. No wonder tempers 
ran a little high. Aberforth blamed Albus, you know, as people will under these 
dreadful circumstances. But Aberforth always talked a little madly, poor boy. 
All the same, breaking Albuss nose at the funeral was not decent. It would have 
destroyed Kendra to see her sons fighting like that, across her daughters body. 
A shame Gellert could not have stayed for the funeral. . . . He would have been 
a comfort to Albus, at least. . . . 

This dreadful coffin-side brawl, known only to those few who attended 
Ariana Dumbledores funeral, raises several questions. Why exactly did 
Aberforth Dumbledore blame Albus for his sisters death? Was it, as Batty 
pretends, a mere effusion of grief? Or could there have been some more 
concrete reason for his fury? Grindelwald, expelled from Durmstrang for the 
near-fatal attacks upon fellow students, fled the country hours after the girls 
death, and Albus (out of shame or fear?) never saw him again, not until forced 
to do so by the pleas of the Wizarding world. 

Neither Dumbledore nor Grindelwald ever seems to have referred to this 
brief boyhood friendship in later life. However, there can be no doubt that 
Dumbledore delayed, for some five years of turmoil, fatalities, and 
disappearances, his attack upon Gellert Grindelwald. Was it lingering affection 
for the man or fear of exposure as his once best friend that caused Dumbledore 
to hesitate? Was it only reluctantly that Dumbledore set out to capture the man 
he was once so delighted he had met? 

And how did the mysterious Ariana die? Was she the inadvertent victim of 
some Dark rite? Did she stumble across something she ought not to have done, 
as the two young men sat practicing for their attempt at glory and domination? 
Is it possible that Ariana Dumbledore was the first person to die for the greater 
good? 

 


The chapter ended here and Harry looked up. Hermione had reached the bottom 
of the page before him. She tugged the book out of Harrys hands, looking a little 
alarmed by his expression, and closed it without looking at it, as though hiding something 
indecent. 

Harry --- 

But he shook his head. Some inner certainty had crashed down inside him; it was 
exactly as he had felt after Ron left. He had trusted Dumbledore, believed him the 
embodiment of goodness and wisdom. All was ashes: How much more could he lose? 
Ron, Dumbledore, the phoenix wand . . . 

Harry. She seemed to have heard his thoughts. "Listen to me. It --- it doesn't 
make a very nice reading ---" 

"Yeah, you could say that ---" 

"--- but don't forget, Harry, this is Rita Skeeter writing." 

"You did read that letter to Grindelwald, didn't you?" 

"Yes, I --- I did." She hesitated, looking upset, cradling her tea in her cold hands. 
"I think that's the worst bit. I know Bathilda thought it was all just talk, but 'For the 
Greater Good' became Grindelwald's slogan, his justification for all the atrocities he 
committed later. And . . . from that . . . it looks like Dumbledore gave him the idea. They 
say 'For the Greater Good' was even carved over the entrance to Nurmengard." 

"What's Nurmengard?" 

"The prison Grindelwald had built to hold his opponents. He ended up in there 
himself, once Dumbledore had caught him. Anyway, it's --- its an awful thought that 
Dumbledore's ideas helped Grindelwald rise to power. But on the other hand, even Rita 
can't pretend that they knew each other for more than a few months one summer when 
they were both really young, and ---" 

"I thought you'd say that," said Harry. He did not want to let his anger spill out at 
her, but it was hard to keep his voice steady. "I thought you'd say 'They were young.' 
They were the same age as we are now. And here we are, risking our lives to fight the 
Dark Arts, and there he was, in a huddle with his new best friend, plotting their rise to 
power over the Muggles." 

His temper would not remain in check much longer: He stood up and walked 
around, trying to work some of it off. 

"I'm not trying to defend what Dumbledore wrote," said Hermione. "All that 'right 
to rule' rubbish, it's 'Magic Is Might' all over again. But Harry, his mother had just died, 
he was stuck alone in the house ---" 

"Alone? He wasn't alone! He had his brother and sister for company, his Squib 
sister he was keeping locked up ---" 

"I don't believe it," said Hermione. She stood up too. "Whatever was wrong with that 
girl, I don't think she was a Squib. The Dumbledore we knew would never, ever have 
allowed---" 

"The Dumbledore we thought we knew didn't want to conquer Muggles by force!" 
Harry shouted, his voice echoing across the empty hilltop, and several blackbirds rose 
into the air, squawking and spiraling against the pearly sky. 

"He changed, Harry, he changed! It's as simple as that! Maybe he did believe 
these things when he was seventeen, but the whole of the rest of his life was devoted to 
fighting the Dark Arts! Dumbledore was the one who stopped Grindelwald, the one who 


always voted for Muggle protection and Muggle born rights, who fought You-Know-
Who from the start, and who died trying to bring him down!" 

Rita's book lay on the ground between them, so that the face of Albus 
Dumbledore smiled dolefully at both. 

"Harry, I'm sorry, but I think the real reason you're so angry is that Dumbledore 
never told you any of this himself." 

"Maybe I am!" Harry bellowed, and he flung his arms over his head, hardly 
knowing whether he was trying to hold in his anger or protect himself from the weight of 
his own disillusionment. "Look what he asked from me, Hermione! Risk your life, Harry! 
And again! And again! And don't expect me to explain everything, just trust me blindly, 
trust that I know what I'm doing, trust me even though I don't trust you! Never the whole 
truth! Never!" 

His voice cracked with the strain, and they stood looking at each other in the 
whiteness and emptiness, and Harry felt they were as insignificant as insects beneath that 
wide sky. 

"He loved you," Hermione whispered. "I know he loved you." 

Harry dropped his arms. 

"I don't know who he loved, Hermione, but it was never me. This isn't love, the 
mess he's left me in. He shared a damn sight more of what he was really thinking with 
Gellert Grindelwald than he ever shared with me." 

Harry picked up Hermione's wand, which he had dropped in the snow, and sat 
back down in the entrance of the tent. 

"Thanks for the tea. I'll finish the watch. You get back in the warm." 

She hesitated, but recognized the dismissal. She picked up the book and then walked 
back past him into the tent, but as she did so, she brushed the top of his head lightly with 
her hand. He closed his eyes at her touch, and hated himself for wishing that what she 
said was true: that Dumbledore had really cared. 

 

Chapter Nineteen 

The Silver Doe 

 

 It was snowing by the time Hermione took over the watch at midnight. Harry's 
dreams were confused and disturbing: Nagini wove in and out of them, first through a 
wreath of Christmas roses. He woke repeatedly, panicky, convinced that somebody had 
called out to him in the distance, imagining that the wind whipping around the tent was 
footsteps or voices. 

 Finally he got up in the darkness and joined Hermione, who was huddled in the 
entrance to the tent reading A History of Magic by the light of her wand. The snow was 
falling thickly, and she greeted with relief his suggestion of packing up early and moving 
on. 

 "We'll somewhere more sheltered," she agreed, shivering as she pulled on a 
sweatshirt over her pajamas. "I kept thinking I could hear people moving outside. I even 
though I saw somebody one or twice." 


 Harry paused in the act of pulling on a jumper and glanced at the silent, 
motionless Sneakoscope on the table. 

 "I'm sure I imagined it," said Hermione, looking nervous. "The snow the dark, it 
plays tricks on your eyes.... But perhaps we ought to Disapparate under the Invisibility 
Cloak, just in case?" 

 Half an hour later, with the tent packed, Harry wearing the Horcrux, and 
Hermione clutching the beaded bag, they Disapparated. The usual tightness engulfed 
them; Harry's feet parted company with the snowy ground, then slammed hard onto what 
felt like frozen earth covered in leaves. 

 "Where are we?" he asked, peering around at the fresh mass of trees as Hermione 
opened the beaded bag and began tugging out the tent poles. 

 "The Forest of Dean," she said, "I came camping here once with my mum and 
dad." 

 Here too snow lay on the trees all around and it was bitterly cold, but they were at 
least protected from the wind. They spent most of the day inside the tent, huddled for 
warmth around the useful bright blue flames that Hermione was adept at producing, and 
which could be scooped up and carried in a jar. Harry felt as though he was recuperating 
from some brief but severe, an impression reinforced by Hermione's solicitousness. That 
afternoon fresh flakes drifted down upon them, so that even their sheltered clearing had a 
fresh dusting of powdery snow. 

 After two nights of little sleep, Harry's senses seemed more alert than usual. 
Their escape from Godric's Hollow had been so narrow that Voldemort seemed somehow 
closer than before, more threatening. As darkness drove in again Harry refused 
Hermione's offer to keep watch and told her to go to bed. 

 Harry moved an old cushion into the tent mouth and sat down, wearing all the 
sweaters he owned but even so, still shivery. The darkness deepened with the passing 
hours until it was virtually impenetrable. He was on the point of taking out the 
Marauder's Map, so as to watch Ginny's dot for a while, before he remembered that it was 
the Christmas holidays and that she would be back at the Burrow. 

 Every tiny movement seemed magnified in the vastness of the forest. Harry knew 
that it must be full of living creatures, but he wished they would all remain still and silent 
so that he could separate their innocent scurryings and prowlings from noises that might 
proclaim other, sinister movements. He remembered the sound of a cloak slithering over 
dead leaves many years ago, and at once thought he heard it again before mentally 
shaking himself. Their protective enchantments had worked for weeks; why should they 
break now? And yet he could no throw off the feeling that something was different 
tonight. 

 Several times he jerked upright, his neck aching because he had fallen asleep, 
slumped at an awkward angle against the side of the tent. The night reached such a depth 
of velvety blackness that he might have been suspended in limbo between Disapparation 
and Apparation. He had just held a hand in front of his face to see whether he could 
make out his fingers when it happened. 

 A bright silver light appeared right ahead of him, moving through the trees. 
Whatever the source, it was moving soundlessly. The light seemed simply to drift toward 
him. 


 He jumped to his feet, his voice frozen in his throat, and raised Hermione's wand. 
He screwed up his eyes as the light became blinding, the trees in front of it pitch black in 
silhouette, and still the thing came closer.... 

 And then the source of the light stepped out from behind an oak. It was a silver 
white doe, moon-bright and dazzling, picking her way over the ground, still silent, and 
leaving no hoofprints in the fine powdering of snow. She stepped toward him, her 
beautiful head with its wide, long-lashed eyes held high. 

 Harry stared at the creature, filled with wonder, not at her strangeness, but her 
inexplicable familiarity. He felt that he had been waiting for her to come, but that he had 
forgotten, until this moment, that they had arranged to meet. His impulse to shout for 
Hermione, which had been so strong a moment ago, had gone. He knew, he would have 
staked his life on it, that she had come for him, and him alone. 

 They gazed at each other for several long moments and then she turned and 
walked away. 

 "No," he said, and his voice was cracked with lack of use. "Come back!" 

 She continued to step deliberately through the trees, and soon he brightness was 
striped by their thick black trunks. For one trembling second he hesitated. Caution 
murmured it could be a trick, a lure, a trap. But instinct, overwhelming instinct, told him 
that this was not Dark Magic. He set off in pursuit. 

 Snow crunched beneath his feet, but the doe made no noise as she passed through 
the trees, for she was nothing but light. Deeper and deeper into the forest she led him, 
and Harry walked quickly, sure that when she stopped, she would allow him to approach 
her properly. And then she would speak and the voice would tell him what he needed to 
know. 

 At last she came to a halt. She turned her beautiful head toward him once more, 
and he broke into a run, a question burning in him, but as he opened his lips to ask it, she 
vanished. 

 Though the darkness had swallowed her whole, her burnished image was still 
imprinted on his retinas; it obscured his vision, brightening when he lowered his eyelids, 
disorienting him. Now fear came: Her presence had meant safety. 

 "Lumos!" he whispered, and the wand-tip ignited. 

 The imprint of the doe faded away with every blink of his eyes as he stood there, 
listening to the sounds of the forest, to distant crackles of twigs, soft swishes of snow. 
Was he about to be attacked? Had she enticed him into an ambush? Was he imagining 
that somebody stood beyond the reach of the wandlight, watching him? 

 He held the wand higher. Nobody ran out at him, no flash of green light burst 
from behind a tree. Why, then, had she led him to this spot? 

 Something gleamed in the light of the wand, and Harry spun about, but all that 
was there was a small, frozen pool, its black, cracked surface glittering as he raised his 
wand higher to examine it. 

 He moved forward rather cautiously and looked down. The ice reflected his 
distorted shadow and the beam of wandlight, but deep below the thick, misty gray 
carapace, something else glinted. A great silver cross... 

 His heart skipped into his mouth: He dropped to his knees at the pool's edge and 
angled the wand so as to flood the bottom of the pool with as much light as possible. A 


glint of deep red...It was a sword with glittering rubies in its hilt....The sword of 
Gryffindor was lying at the bottom of the forest pool. 

 Barely breathing, he stared down at it. How was this possible? How could it 
have come to be lying in a forest pool, this close to the place where they were camping? 
Had some unknown magic drawn Hermione to this spot, or was the doe, which he had 
taken to be a Patronus, some kind of guardian of the pool? Or had the sword been put 
into the pool after they had arrived, precisely because they were here? In which case, 
where was the person who wanted to pass it to Harry? Again he directed the wand at the 
surrounding trees and bushes, searching for a human outline, for the glint of an eye, but 
he could not see anyone there. All the same, a little more fear leavened his exhilaration 
as he returned his attention to the sword reposing upon the bottom of the frozen pool. 

 He pointed the wand at the silvery shape and murmured, "Accio Sword." 

 It did not stir. He had not expected it to. If it had been that easy the sword would 
have lain on the ground for him to pick up, not in the depths of a frozen pool. He set off 
around the circle of ice, thinking hard about the last time the sword had delivered itself to 
him. He had been in terrible danger then, and had asked for help. 

 "Help," he murmured, but the sword remained upon the pool bottom, indifferent, 
motionless. 

 What was it, Harry asked himself (walking again), that Dumbledore had told him 
the last time he had retrieved the sword? Only a true Gryffindor could have pulled that 
out of the hat. And what were the qualities that defined a Gryffindor? A small voice 
inside Harry's head answered him: Their daring nerve and chivalry set Gryffindor apart. 

 Harry stopped walking and let out a long sigh, his smoky breath dispersing 
rapidly upon the frozen air. He knew what he had to do. If he was honest with himself, 
he had thought it might come to this from the moment he had spotted the sword through 
the ice. 

 He glanced around at the surrounding trees again, but was convinced now that 
nobody was going to attack him. They had had their chance as he walked alone through 
the forest, had had plenty of opportunity as he examined the pool. The only reason to 
delay at this point was because the immediate prospect was so deeply uninviting. 

 With fumbling fingers Harry started to remove his many layers of clothing. 
Where "chivalry" entered into this, he thought ruefully, he was not entirely sure, unless it 
counted as chivalrous that he was not calling for Hermione to do it in his stead. 

 An owl hooted somewhere as he stripped off, and he thought with a pang of 
Hedwig. He was shivering now, his teeth chattering horribly, and yet he continued to 
strip off until at last he stood there in his underwear, barefooted in the snow. He placed 
the pouch containing his wand, his mother's letter, the shard of Sirius's mirror, and the old 
Snitch on top of his clothes, then he pointed Hermione's wand at the ice. 

 "Diffindo." 

 It cracked with a sound like a bullet in the silence. The surface of the pool broke 
and chunks of dark ice rocked on the ruffled water. As far as Harry could judge, it was 
not deep, but to retrieve the sword he would have to submerge himself completely. 

 Contemplating the task ahead would not make it easier or the water warmer. He 
stepped to the pool's edge and placed Hermione's wand on the ground still lit. Then, 
trying not to imagine how much colder he was about to become or how violently he 
would soon be shivering, he jumped. 


 Every pore of his body screamed in protest. The very air in his lungs seemed to 
freeze solid as he was submerged to his shoulders in the frozen water. He could hardly 
breathe: trembling so violently the water lapped over the edges of the pool, he felt for the 
blade with his numb feet. He only wanted to dive once. 

 Harry put off the moment of total submersion from second to second, gasping and 
shaking, until he told himself that it must be done, gathered all his courage, and dived. 

 The cold was agony: It attacked him like fire. His brain itself seemed to have 
frozen as he pushed through the dark water to the bottom and reached out, groping for the 
sword. His fingers closed around the hilt; he pulled it upward. 

 Then something closed tight around his neck. He thought of water weeds, though 
nothing had brushed him as he dived, and raised his hand to free himself. It was not 
weed: The chain of the Horcrux had tightened and was slowly constricting his windpipe. 

 Harry kicked out wildly, trying to push himself back to the surface, but merely 
propelled himself into the rocky side of the pool. Thrashing, suffocating, he scrabbled at 
the strangling chain, his frozen fingers unable to loosen it, and now little lights were 
popping inside his head, and he was going to drown, there was nothing left, nothing he 
could do, and the arms that closed around his chest were surely Death's.... 

 Choking and retching, soaking and colder than he had ever been in his life, he 
came to facedown in the snow. Somewhere, close by, another person was panting and 
coughing and staggering around, as she had come when the snake attacked....Yet it did 
not sound like her, not with those deep coughs, no judging by the weight of the 
footsteps.... 

 Harry had no strength to lift his head and see his savior's identity. All he could do 
was raise a shaking hand to his throat and feel the place where the locket had cut tightly 
into his flesh. It was gone. Someone had cut him free. Then a panting voice spoke from 
over his head. 

 "Are -- you -- mental?" 

 Nothing but the shock of hearing that voice could have given Harry the strength to 
get up. Shivering violently, he staggered to his feet. There before him stood Ron, fully 
dressed but drenched to the skin, his hair plastered to his face, the sword of Gryffindor in 
one hand and the Horcrux dangling from its broken chain in the other. 

 "Why the hell," panted Ron, holding up the Horcrux, which swung backward and 
forward on its shortened chain in some parody of hypnosis, "didn't you take the thing off 
before you dived?" 

 Harry could not answer. The silver doe was nothing, nothing compared with 
Ron's reappearance; he could not believe it. Shuddering with cold, he caught up the pile 
of clothes still lying at the water's edge and began to pull them on. As he dragged 
sweater after sweater over his head, Harry stared at Ron, half expecting him to have 
disappeared every time he lost sight of him, and yet he had to be real: He had just dived 
into the pool, he had saved Harry's life. 

 "It was y-you?" Harry said at last, his teeth chattering, his voice weaker than usual 
due to his near-strangulation. 

 "Well, yeah," said Ron, looking slightly confused. 

 "Y-you cast that doe?" 

 "What? No, of course not! I thought it was you doing it!" 

 "My Patronus is a stag." 


 "Oh yeah. I thought it looked different. No antlers." 

 Harry put Hagrid's pouch back around his neck, pulled on a final sweater, stooped 
to pick up Hermione's wand, and faced Ron again. 

 "How come you're here?" 

 Apparently Ron had hoped that this point would come up later, if at all. 

 "Well, I've -- you know -- I've come back. If --" He cleared his throat. "You 
know. You still want me." 

 There was a pause, in which the subject of Ron's departure seemed to rise like a 
wall between them. Yet he was here. He had returned. He had just saved Harry's life. 

 Ron looked down at his hands. He seemed momentarily surprised to see the 
things he was holding. 

 "Oh yeah, I got it out," he said, rather unnecessarily, holding up the sword for 
Harry's inspection. "That's why you jumped in, right?" 

 "Yeah," said Harry. "But I don't understand. How did you get here? How did 
you find us?" 

 "Long story," said Ron. "I've been looking for you for hours, it's a big forest, isn't 
it? And I was just thinking I'd have to go kip under a tree and wait for morning when I 
saw that dear coming and you following." 

 "You didn't see anyone else?" 

 "No," said Ron. "I --" 

 But he hesitated, glancing at two trees growing close together some yards away. 

 "I did think I saw something move over there, but I was running to the pool at the 
time, because you'd gone in and you hadn't come up, so I wasn't going to make a detour 
to -- hey!" 

 Harry was already hurrying to the place that Ron had indicated. The two oaks 
grew close together; there was a gap of only a few inches between the trunks at eye level, 
an ideal place to see but not be seen. The ground around the roots, however, was free of 
snow, and Harry could see no sign of footprints. He walked back to where Ron stood 
waiting, still holding the sword and the Horcrux. 

 "Anything there?" Ron asked. 

 "No," said Harry. 

 "So how did the sword get in that pool?" 

 "Whoever cast the Patronus must have put it there." 

 They both looked at the ornate silver sword, its rubied hilt glinting a little in the 
light from Hermione's wand. 

 "You reckon this is the real one?" asked Ron. 

 "One way to find out, isn't there?" said Harry. 

 The Horcrux was still swinging from Ron's hand. The locket was twitching 
slightly. Harry knew that the thing inside it was agitated again. It had sensed the 
presence of the sword and had tried to kill Harry rather than let him possess it. Now was 
not the time for long discussions; now was the moment to destroy once and for all. Harry 
looked around, holding Hermione's wand high, and saw the place: a flattish rock lying in 
the shadow of a sycamore tree. 

 "Come here." he said and he led the way, brushed snow from the rock's surface, 
and held out his hand for the Horcrux. When Ron offered the sword, however, Harry 
shook his head. 


 "No you should do it." 

 "Me?" said Ron, looking shocked. "Why?" 

 "Because you got the sword out of the pool. I think it's supposed to be you." 

 He was not being kind or generous. As certainly as he had known that the doe 
was benign, he knew that Ron had to be the one to wield the sword. Dumbledore had at 
least taught Harry something about certain kinds of magic, of the incalculable power of 
certain acts. 

 "I'm going to open it," said Harry, "and you will stab it. Straightaway okay? 
Because whatever's in there will put up a fight. The bit of Riddle in the Diary tried to kill 
me." 

 "How are you going to open it?" asked Ron. He looked terrified 

 "I'm going to ask it to open, using Parseltongue," said Harry. The answer came so 
readily to his lips that thought that he had always known it deep down: Perhaps it had 
taken his recent encounter with Nagini to make him realize it. He looked at the 
serpentine S, inlaid with glittering green stones: It was easy to visualize it as a miniscule 
snake, curled upon the cold rock. 

 "No!" said Ron. "Don't open it! I'm serious!" 

 "Why not?" asked Harry. "Let's get rid of the damn thing, it's been months --" 

 "I can't, Harry, I'm serious -- you do it --" 

 "But why?" 

 "Because that thing's bad for me!" said Ron, backing away from the locket on the 
rock. "I can't handle it! I'm not making excuses, for what I was like, but it affects me 
worse than it affects you and Hermione, it made me think stuff -- stuff that I was thinking 
anyway, but it made everything worse. I can't explain it, and then I'd take it off and I'd 
get my head straight again, and then I'd have to put the effing thing back on -- I can't do it 
Harry!" 

 He had backed away, the sword dragging at his side, shaking his head. 

 "You can do it," said Harry, "you can! You've just got the sword, I know it's 
supposed to be you who uses it. Please just get rid of it Ron." 

 The sound of his name seemed to act like a stimulant. Ron swallowed, then still 
breathing hard through his long nose, moved back toward the rock. 

 "Tell me when," he croaked. 

 "On three," said Harry, looking back down at the locket and narrowing his eyes, 
concentrating on the letter S, imagining a serpent, while the contents of the locket rattled 
like a trapped cockroach. It would have been easy to pity it, except that the cut around 
Harry's neck still burned. 

 "One . . . two . . . three . . .open." 

 The last word came as a hiss and a snarl and the golden doors of the locket swung 
wide open with a little click. 

 Behind both of the glass windows within blinked a living eye, dark and handsome 
as Tom Riddle's eyes had been before he turned them scarlet and slit-pupiled 

 "Stab," said Harry, holding the locket steady on the rock. 

 Ron raised the sword in his shaking hands: The point dangled over the frantically 
swiveling eyes, and Harry gripped the locket tightly, bracing himself, already imagining 
blood pouring from the empty windows. 

 Then a voice hissed from out the Horcrux. 


 "I have seen your heart, and it is mine." 

 "Don't listen to it!" Harry said harshly. "Stab it!" 

 "I have seen your dreams, Ronald Weasley, and I have seen your fears. All you 
desire is possible, but all that you dread is also possible...." 

 "Stab!" shouted Harry, his voice echoed off the surrounding trees, the sword point 
trembled, and Ron gazed down into Riddle's eyes. 

 "Least loved, always, by the mother who craved a daughter . . . Least loved, now, 
by the girl who prefers your friend . . . Second best, always, eternally overshadowed . . ." 

"Ron, stab it now!" Harry bellowed: He could feel the locket quivering in the grip and 
was scared of what was coming. Ron raised the sword still higher, and as he did so, 
Riddle's eyes gleamed scarlet. 

 
Out of the locket's two windows, out of the eyes, there bloomed like two grotesque 
bubbles, the heads of Harry and Hermione, weirdly distorted. 

 

Ron yelled in shock and backed away as the figures blossomed out of the locket, first 
chests, then waists, then legs, until they stood in the locket, side by side like trees with a 
common root, swaying over Ron and the real Harry, who had snatched his fingers away 
from the locket as it burned, suddenly, white-hot. 

 

"Ron!" he shouted, but the Riddle-Harry was now speaking with Voldemort's voice and 
Ron was gazing, mesmerized, into its face. 

 

"Why return? We were better without you, happier without you, glad of your absence.... 
We laughed at your stupidity, your cowardice, your presumption--" 

 

"Presumption!" echoed the Riddle-Hermione, who was more beautiful and yet more 
terrible than the real Hermione: She swayed, cackling, before Ron, who looked horrified, 
yet transfixed, the sword hanging pointlessly at his side. "Who could look at you, who 
would ever look at you, beside Harry Potter? What have you ever done, compared with 
the Chosen One? What are you, compared with the Boy Who Lived?" 

 

"Ron, stab it, STAB IT!" Harry yelled, but Ron did not move. His eyes were wide, and 
the Riddle-Harry and the Riddle-Hermione were reflected in them, their hair swirling like 
flames, their eyes shining red, their voices lifted in an evil duet. 

 

"Your mother confessed," sneered Riddle-Harry, while Riddle-Hermione jeered, "that she 
would have preferred me as a son, would be glad to exchange..." 

 

"Who wouldn't prefer him, what woman would take you, you are nothing, nothing, 
nothing to him," crooned Riddle-Hermione, and she stretched like a snake and entwined 
herself around Riddle-Harry, wrapping him in a close embrace: Their lips met. 

 
On the ground in front of them, Ron's face filled with anguish. he raised the sword high, 
his arms shaking. 


 "Do it, Ron!" Harry yelled. 

 
Ron looked toward him, and Harry thought he saw a trace of scarlet in his eyes. 

 
"Ron --?" 

 

The sword flashed, plunged: Harry threw himself out of the way, there as a clang of metal 
and a long, drawn-out scream. Harry whirled around, slipping in the snow, wand held 
ready to defend himself, but there was nothing to fight. 

 

The monstrous versions of himself and Hermione were gone: There was only Ron, 
standing there with the sword held slackly in his hand, looking down at the shattered 
remains of the locket on the flat rock. 

 

Slowly, Harry walked back to him, hardly knowing what to say or do. Ron was breathing 
heavily: His eyes were no longer red at all, but their normal blue: they were also wet. 

 
Harry stooped, pretending he had not seen, and picked up the broken Horcrux. Ron had 
pierced the glass in both windows: Riddle's eyes were gone, and the stained silk lining of 
the locket was smoking slightly. The thing that had lived in the Horcrux had vanished; 
torturing Ron had been its final act. The sword clanged as Ron dropped it. He had sunk to 
his knees, his head in his arms. He was shaking, but not, Harry realized, from cold. Harry 
crammed the broken locket into his pocket, knelt down beside Ron, and placed a hand 
cautiously on his shoulder. He took it as a good sign that Ron did not throw it off. 

 

"After you left," he said in a low voice, grateful for the fact that Ron's face was hidden, 
"she cried for a week. Probably longer, only she didn't want me to see. There were loads 
of nights when we never even spoke to each other. With you gone..." 

 

He could not finish; it was now that Ron was here again that Harry fully realized how 
much his absence had cost them. 

 

"She's like my sister," he went on. "I love her like a sister and I reckon that she feels the 
same way about me. It's always been like that. I thought you knew." 

 

Ron did not respond, but turned his face away from Harry and wiped his nose noisily on 
his sleeve. Harry got to his feet again and walked to where Ron's enormous rucksack lay 
yards away, discarded as Ron had run toward the pool to save Harry from drowning. He 
hoisted it onto his own back and walked back to Ron, who clambered to his feet as Harry 
approached, eyes bloodshot but otherwise composed. 

 

"I'm sorry," he said in a thick voice. "I'm sorry I left. I know I was a -- a --" 

 

He looked around at the darkness, as if hoping a bad enough word would swoop down 
upon him and claim him. 


 

"You've sort of made up for it tonight," said Harry. "Getting the sword. Finishing off the 
Horcrux. Saving my life." 

 

"That makes me sound a lot cooler than I was," Ron mumbled. 

 

"Stuff like that always sounds cooler than it really was" said Harry. "I've been trying to 
tell you that for years." 

 

Simultaneously they walked forward and hugged, Harry gripping the still-sopping back 
of Ron's jacket. 

 

"And now," said Harry as they broke apart, "all we've got to do is find that tent again." 

 

But it was not difficult. Though the walk through the dark forest with the doe had seemed 
lengthy, with Ron by his side, the journey back seemed to take a surprisingly short time. 
Harry could not wait to wake Hermione, and it was with quickening excitement that he 
entered the tent, Ron lagging a little behind him. 

 

It was gloriously warm after the pool and the forest, the only illumination the bluebell 
flames still shimmering in a bowl on the floor. Hermione was fast asleep, curled up under 
her blankets, and did not move until Harry had said her name several times. 

 

"Hermione!" 

 

She stirred, then sat up quickly, pushing her hair out of her face. 

 
"What's wrong? Harry? Are you all right?" 

 

"It's okay, everything's fine. More than fine, I'm great. There's someone here." 

 

"What do you mean? Who --?" 

 

She saw Ron, who stood there holding the sword and dripping onto the threadbare carpet. 
Harry backed into a shadowy corner, slipped off Ron's rucksack, and attempted to blend 
in with the canvas. 

 

Hermione slid out of her bunk and moved like a sleepwalker toward Ron, her eyes upon 
his pale face. She stopped right in front of him, her lips slightly parted, her eyes wide. 
Ron gave a weak hopeful smile and half raised his arms. 

 

Hermione launched herself forward and started punching every inch of him that she could 
reach. 

 

"Ouch -- ow -- gerroff! What the --? Hermione -- OW!" 

 


"You -- complete -- arse -- Ronald -- Weasley!" 

 

She punctuated every word with a blow: Ron backed away, shielding his head as 
Hermione advanced. 

 

"You -- crawl -- back -- here -- after -- weeks -- and -- weeks -- oh, where's my wand?" 

 

She looked as though ready to wrestle it out of Harry's hands and he reacted instinctively. 

 

"Protego!" 

 

The invisible shield erupted between Ron and Hermione. The force of it knocked her 
backward onto the floor. Spitting hair out of her mouth, she lept up again. 

 
"Hermione!" said Harry. "Calm --" 

 

"I will not calm down!" she screamed. Never before had he seen her lose control like this; 
she looked quite demented. "Give me back my wand! Give it back to me!" 

 

"Hermione, will you please --" 

 

"Don't you tell me what do, Harry Potter!" she screeched. "Don't you dare! Give it back 
now! And YOU!" 

 

She was pointing at Ron in dire accusation: It was like a malediction, and Harry could not 
blame Ron for retreating several steps. 

 

"I cam running after you! I called you! I begged you to come back" 
"I know," Ron said, "Hermione, I'm sorry, I'm really --" 

 

"Oh, you're sorry!" 

 

She laughed a high-pitched, out-of-control sound; Ron looked at Harry for help, but 
Harry merely grimaced his helplessness. 

 

"You came back after weeks -- weeks -- and you think it's all going to be all right if you 
just say sorry?" 

 

"Well, what else can I say?" Ron shouted, and Harry was glad that Ron was fighting back. 

 

"Oh, I don't know!" yelled Hermione with awful sarcasm. "Rack your brains, Ron, that 
should only take a couple of seconds --" 

 

"Hermione," interjected Harry, who considered this a low blow, "he just saved my --" 

 


"I don't care!" she screamed. "I don't care what he's done! Weeks and weeks, we could 
have been dead for all he knew --" 

 

"I knew you weren't dead!" bellowed Ron, drowning her voice for the first time, and 
approaching as close as he could with the Shield Charm between them. "Harry's all over 
the Prophet, all over the radio, they're looking for you everywhere, all these rumors and 
mental stories, I knew I'd hear straight off if you were dead, you don't know what it's 
been like --" 

 

"What it's been like for you?? 

 

Her voice was not so shrill only bats would be able to hear it soon, but she had reached a 
level of indignation that rendered her temporarily speechless, and Ron seized his 
opportunity. 

 

"I wanted to come back the minute I'd Disapparated, but I walked straight into a gang of 
Snatchers, Hermione, and I couldn't go anywhere!" 
"A gang of what?" asked Harry, as Hermione threw herself down into a chair with her 
arms and legs crossed so tightly it seemed unlikely that she would unravel them for 
several years. 

 

"Snatchers," said Ron. "They're everywhere -- gangs trying to earn gold by rounding up 
Muggle-borns and blood traitors, there's a reward from the Ministry for everyone 
captured. I was on my own and I look like I might be school age; they got really excited, 
thought I was a Muggle-born in hiding. I had to talk fast to get out of being dragged to 
the Ministry." 

 

"What did you say to them?" 
"Told them I was Stan Shunpike. First person I could think of." 
"And they believed that?" 
"They weren't the brightest. One of them was definitely part troll, the smell of him...." 

 

Ron glanced at Hermione, clearly hopeful she might soften at this small instance of 
humor, but her expression remained stony above her tightly knotted limbs. 

 

"Anyway, they had a row about whether I was Stan or not. It was a bit pathetic to be 
honest, but there were still five of them and only one of me, and they'd taken my wand. 
Then two of them got into a fight and while the others were distracted I managed to hit 
the one holding me in the stomach, grabbed his wand, Disarmed the bloke holding mine, 
and Disapparated. I didn't do it so well. Splinched myself again" -- Ron held up his right 
hand to show two missing fingernails: Hermione raised her eyebrows coldly -- "and I 


came out miles from where you were. By the time I got back to that bit of riverbank 
where we'd been ... you were gone." 

 

"Gosh, what a gripping story," Hermione said in the lofty voice she adopted when 
wishing to wound. "You must have been simply terrified. Meanwhile we went to Godric's 
Hollow and, let's think, what happened there, Harry? Oh yes, You-Know-Who's snake 
turned up, it nearly killed both of us, and then You-Know-Who himself arrived and 
missed us by about a second." 
"What?" Ron said, gaping from her to Harry, but Hermione ignored him. 

 
"Imagine losing fingernails, Harry! That really puts our sufferings into perspective, 
doesn't it?" 
"Hermione," said Harry quietly, "Ron just saved my life." 

 

She appeared not to have heard him. 

 
"One thing I would like to know, though," she said, fixing her eyes on a spot a foot over 
Ron's head. "How exactly did you find us tonight? That's important. Once we know, we'll 
be able to make sure we're not visited by anyone else we don't want to see." 

 

Ron glared at her, then pulled a small silver object from his jeans pocket. 

 
"This." 

 

She had to look at Ron to see what he was showing them. 

 

"The Deluminator?" she asked, so surprised she forgot to look cold and fierce. 

 

"It doesn't just turn the lights on and off," said Ron. "I don't know how it works or why it 
happened then and not any other time, because I've been wanting to come back ever since 
I left. But I was listening to the radio really early on Christmas morning and I heard ... I 
heard you." 

 

He was looking at Hermione. 

 

"You heard me on the radio?" she asked incredulously. 

 

"No, I heard you coming out of my pocket. Your voice," he held up the Deluminator 
again, "came out of this." 

 

"And what exactly did I say?" asked Hermione, her tone somewhere between skepticism 
and curiosity. 

 

"My name. 'Ron.' And you said ... something about a wand...." 


 

Hermione turned a fiery shade of scarlet. Harry remembered: it had been the first time 
Won's name had been said aloud by either of them since the day he had left; Hermione 
had mentioned it when talking about repairing Harry's wand. 

 

"So I took it out," Ron went on, looking at the Deluminator, "and it didn't seem different 
or anything, but I was sure I'd heard you. So I clicked it. And the light went out in my 
room, but another light appeared right outside the window." 

 

Ron raised his empty hand and pointed in front of him, his eyes focused on something 
neither Harry nor Hermione could see. 

 

"It was a ball of light, kind of pulsing, and bluish, like that light you get around a Portkey, 
you know?" 

 

"Yeah," said Harry and Hermione together automatically. 

 

"I knew this was it," said Ron. "I grabbed my stuff and packed it, then I put on my 
rucksack and went out into the garden. 

 

"The little ball of light was hovering there, waiting for me, and when I came out it 
bobbed along a bit and I followed it behind the shed and then it ... well, it went inside 
me." 

 

"Sorry?" said Harry, sure he had not heard correctly. 

 

"It sort of floated toward me," said Ron, illustrating the movement with his free index 
finger, "right to my chest, and then -- it just went straight through. It was here," he 
touched a point close to his heard, "I could feel it, it was hot. And once it was inside me, I 
knew what I was supposed to do. I knew it would take me where I needed to go. So I 
Disapparated and came out on the side of a hill. There was snow everywhere...." 

 

"We were there," said Harry. "We spent two nights there, and the second night I kept 
thinking I could hear someone moving around in the dark and calling out!" 
"Yeah, well, that would've been me," said Ron. "Your protective spells work, anyway, 
because I couldn't see you and I couldn't hear you. I was sure you were around, though, 
so in the end I got in my sleeping bag and waited for one of you to appear. I thought 
you'd have to show yourselves when you packed up the tent." 

 

"No, actually," said Hermione. "We've been Disapparating under the Invisibility Cloak as 
an extra precaution. And we left really early, because as Harry says, we'd heard 
somebody blundering around." 

 

"Well, I stayed on that hill all day," said Ron. "I kept hoping you'd appear. But when it 
started to get dark I knew I must have missed you, so I clicked the Deluminator again, the 


blue light came out and went inside me, and I Disapparated and arrived here in these 
woods. I still couldn't see you, so I just had to hope one of you would show yourselves in 
the end -- and Harry did. Well, I saw the doe first, obviously." 

 

"You saw the what?" said Hermione sharply. 

 

They explained what had happened and as the story of the silver doe and the sword in the 
pool unfolded, Hermione frowned form one to the other of them, concentrating so hard 
she forgot to keep her limbs locked together. 

 
"But it must have been a Patronus!" she said. "Couldn't you see who was casting it? 
Didn't you see anyone? And it led you to the sword! I can't believe this! Then what 
happened?" 

 

Ron explained how he had watched Harry jump into the pool, and had waited for him to 
resurface; how he had realized that something was wrong, dived in, and saved Harry, 
then returned for the sword. He got as far as the opening of the locket, then hesitated, and 
Harry cut in. 

 

"-- and Ron stabbed it with the sword." 

 

"And ... and it went? Just like that?" she whispered. 

 

"Well, it -- it screamed," said Harry with half a glance at Ron. "Here." 

 

He threw the locket into her lap; gingerly she picked it up and examined its punctured 
windows. 

 

Deciding that it was at last safe to do so, Harry removed the Shield Charm with a wave of 
Hermione's wand and turned to Ron. 

 
"Did you just say now that you got away from the snatchers with a spare wand?" 

 

"What?" said Ron, who had been watching Hermione examining the locket. "Oh -- oh 
yeah." 

 

He tugged open a buckle on his rucksack and pulled a short dark wand out of his pocket. 
"Here, I figured it's always handy to have a backup." 

 

"You were right," said Harry, holding out his hand. "Mine's broken." 

 

"You're kidding?" Ron said, but at that moment Hermione got to her feet, and he looked 
apprehensive again. 

 

Hermione put the vanquished Horcrux into the beaded bag, then climbed back into her 
bed and settled down without another word. 


 

Ron passed Harry the new wand. 

 

"About the best you could hope for, I think," murmured Harry. 

 

"Yeah," said Ron. "Could've been worse. Remember those birds she set on me?" 

 

"I still haven't ruled it out," came Hermione's muffled voice from beneath her blankets, 
but Harry saw Ron smiling slightly as he pulled his maroon pajamas out of his rucksack. 

 

 

Chapter Twenty 

Xenophilius Lovegood 

 

Harry had not expected Hermione's anger to abate over night and was 
therefore unsurprised that she communicated mainly by dirty looks and 
pointed silences the next morning. Ron responded by maintaining an 
unnaturally somber demeanor in her presence as an outward sign of continuing 
remorse. In fact, when all three of them were together Harry felt like the 
only non-mourner at a poorly attended funeral. During those few moments he 
spent alone with Harry, however (collecting water and searching the 
undergrowth for mushrooms). Ron became shamelessly cheery. 
"Someone helped us," he kept saying, "Someone sent that doe, Someone's on 
our side, One Horcrux down, mate!" 
Bolstered by the destruction of the locket they set to debating the possible 
locations of the other Horcruxes and even though they had discussed the 
matter so often before. Harry felt optimistic, certain that more 
breakthroughs would succeed the first. Hermione's sulkiness could not mar 
his buoyant spirits; The sudden upswing in their fortunes, the appearance of 
the mysterious due, the recovery of Gryffindors sword, and above all, Ron's 
return made Harry so happy that it was quite difficult to maintain a 
straight face. 
Late in the afternoon he and Ron escaped Hermione's baleful presence again 
and under the pretense of scouring the bare hedges for nonexistent 
blackberries, they continued their ongoing exchange of news. Harry had 
finally managed to tell Ron the whole story of his and Hermione's various 
wanderings, right up to the full story of what had happened at Godric's 
Hollow; Ron was now filling Harry in on everything he had discovered about 
the wider Wizarding world during his weeks away. 



"... and how did you find out about the Taboo?" he asked Harry after 
explaining the many desperate attempts of Muggle-borns to evade the 
Ministry." 
"The what?" 
"You and Hermione have stopped saying You-Know-Who's name!" 
"Oh, yeah, Well, it's just a bad habit we've slipped into," said Harry. "But 
I haven't got a problem calling him V ---" 
"NO!" roared Ron, causing Harry to jump into the hedge and Hermione (nose 
buried in a book at the tent entrance) to scowl over at them. "Sorry," said 
Ron, wrenching Harry back out of the brambles, "but the name's been jinxed, 
Harry, that's how they track people! Using his name breaks protective 
enchantments, it causes some kind of magical disturbance --- it's how they 
found us in Tottenham Court Road!" 
"Because we used his *name*?" 
"Exactly! You've got to give them credit, it makes sense. It was only people 
who were serious about standing up to him, like Dumbledore, who even dared 
use it. Now they've put a Taboo on it, anyone who says it is trackable --- 
quick-and-easy way to find Order members! They nearly got Kingsley ---" 
"You're kidding?" 
"Yeah, a bunch of Death Eaters cornered him, Bill said but he fought his way 
out. He's on the run now just like us." Ron scratched his chin 
thoughtfully with 
the end of his wand. "You don't reckon Kingsley could have sent that doe?" 
"His Patronus is a lynx, we saw it at the wedding, remember?" 
"Oh yeah..." 
They moved farther along the hedge, away from the tent and Hermione. 
"Harry... you don't reckon it could've been Dumbledore?" 
"Dumbledore what?" 
Ron looked a little embarrassed, but said in a low voice, "Dumbledore ... the 
doe? I mean," Ron was watching Harry out of the corners of his eyes, "he had 
the real sword last, didn't he? 



Harry did not laugh at Ron, because he understood too well the longing 
behind the question. The idea that Dumbledore had managed to come back to 
them, that he was watching over them, would have inexpressibly comforting. 
He shook his head. 
"Dumbledores dead," he said. "I saw it happen, I saw the body. He's 
definitely gone. Anyway his Patronus was a phoenix, not a doe" 
"Patronuses can change, though can't they?" said Ron, "Tonkss changed 
didn't it?" 
Yeah, but if Dumbledore was alive, why wouldn't he show himself? Why 
wouldn't he just hand us the sword? 
"Search me," said Ron. "Same reason he didn't give it to you while he was 
alive? Same reason he left you an old Snitch and Hermione a book of kid's 
stories?" 
"Which is what?" asked Harry, turning to look Ron full in the face desperate 
for the answer. 
"I dunno," said Ron. "Sometimes I've thought, when I've been a bit hacked 
off, he was having a laugh or --- or he just wanted to make it more 
difficult, But I don't think so, not anymore. He knew what he was doing when 
he gave me the Deluminator, didn't he? He -- well," Ron's ears turned bright 
red and he became engrossed in a tuft of grass at his feet, which he prodded 
with his toe, "he must've known I'd run out on you." 
"No," Harry corrected him. "He must've known you'd always want to come 
back." 
Ron looked grateful, but still awkward. Partly to change the subject, Harry 
said, "Speaking of Dumbledore, have you heard what Skeeter wrote about him?" 
"Oh yeah," said Ron at once, "people are talking about it quite a lot. 
'Course, if things were different it'd be huge news, Dumbledore being pals 
with Grindelwald, but now it's just something to laugh about for people who 
didn't like Dumbledore, and a bit of a slap in the face for everyone who 
thought he was such a good bloke. I don't know that it's such a big deal, 
though. He was really young when they --" 
"Our age," said Harry, just as he had retorted to Hermione, and something in 
his face seemed to decide Ron against pursuing the subject. 
A large spider sat in the middle of a frosted web in the brambles. Harry 
took aim at it with the wand Ron had given him the previous night, which 


Hermione had since condescended to examine, and had decided was made of 
blackthorn. 
"*Engorgio*" 
"The spider gave a little shiver, bouncing slightly in the web. Harry tried 
again. This time the spider grew slightly larger. 
"Stop that," said Ron sharply, " I'm sorry I said Dumbledore was young, 
okay?" 
Harry had forgotten Ron's hatred of spiders. 
"Sorry --- *Reducio*" 
The spider did not shrink. Harry looked down at the blackthorn wand. Every 
minor spell he had cast with it so far that day had seemed less powerful 
than those he had produced with his phoenix wand. The new one felt 
intrusively unfamiliar, like having somebody else's hand sewn to the end of 
his arm. 
"You just need to practice," said Hermione, who had approached them 
noiselessly from behind and had stood watching anxiously as Harry tried to 
enlarge and reduce the spider. "Its all a matter of confidence Harry." 
He knew why she wanted it to be all right; She still felt guilty about 
breaking his wand. He bit back the retort that sprung to his lips, that she 
could take the blackthorn wand if she thought it made no difference, and he 
would have hers instead. Keen for them all to be friends again, however, he 
agreed; but when Ron gave Hermione a tentative smile, she stalked off and 
vanished behind her book once more. 
All three of them returned to the tent when darkness fell, and Harry took 
first watch. Sitting in the entrance, he tried to make the blackthorn wand 
levitate small stones at his feet; but his magic still seemed clumsier and 
less powerful than it had done before. Hermione was lying on her bunk 
reading, while Ron, after many nervous glances up at her, had taken a small 
wooden wireless out of his rucksack and started to try to tune it. 
"There's this one program," he told Harry in a low voice, "that tells the 
news like it really is. All the others are on You-Know-Who's side and are 
following the Ministry line, but this one ... you wait till you hear it, it's 
great. Only they can't do it every night, they have to keep changing 
locations in case they're raided and you need a password to tune in ... 
Trouble is, I missed the last one..." 



He drummed lightly on the top of the radio with his wand muttering random 
words under his breath. He threw Hermione many covert glances, plainly 
fearing an angry outburst, but for all the notice she took of him he might 
not have been there. For ten minutes or so Ron tapped and muttered, Hermione 
turned the pages of her book, and Harry continued to practice with the 
blackthorn wand. 
Finally Hermione climbed down from her bunk. Ron ceased his tapping at once. 
"If it's annoying you, I'll stop!" he told Hermione nervously. 
Hermione did not deign to respond, but approached Harry. 
"We need to talk," she said. 
He looked at the book still clutched in her hand. It was * The Life and Lies 
of Albus Dumbledore.* 
"What?" he said apprehensively. It flew through his mind that there was a 
chapter on him in there; he was not sure he felt up to hearing Rita's 
version of his relationship with Dumbledore. Hermione's answer however, was 
completely unexpected. 
"I want to go and see Xenophilius Lovegood." 
He stared at her. 
"Sorry?" 

 

Xenophilius Lovegood, Lunas father. I want to go and talk to him! 

er C why? 

She took a deep breath, as though bracing herself, and said, Its that mark, the 
mark in Beedle the Bard. Look at this! 

She thrust The Life and Lies of Albus Dumbledore under Harrys unwilling eyes 
and saw a photograph of the original letter that Dumbledore had written Grindelwald, 
with Dumbledores familiar thin, slanting handwriting. He hated seeing absolute proof 
that Dumbledore really had written those words, that they had not been Ritas invention. 

The signature, said Hermione. Look at the signature, Harry! 

He obeyed. For a moment he had no idea what she was talking about, but, looking 
more closely with the aid of his lit wand, he saw that Dumbledore had replaced the A of 
Albus with a tiny version of the same triangular mark inscribed upon The Tales of Beedle 
the Bard. 

Er C what are you -- ? said Ron tentatively, but Hermione quelled him with a 
look and turned back to Harry. 

It keeps cropping up, doesnt it? she said. I know Viktor said it was 
Grindelwalds mark, but it was definitely on that old grave in Godrics Hollow, and the 


dates on the headstone were long before Grindelwald came along! And now this! Well, 
we cant ask Dumbledore or Grindelwald what it means C I dont even know whether 
Grindelwalds still alive C but we can ask Mr. Lovegood. He was wearing the symbol at 
the wedding. Im sure this is important, Harry! 

Harry did not answer immediately. He looked into her intense, eager face and 
then out into the surrounding darkness, thinking. After a long pause he said, Hermione, 
we dont need another Godrics Hollow. We talked ourselves into going there, and C 

 But it keeps appearing, Harry! Dumbledore left me The Tales of Beedle the Bard, 
how do you know were not supposed to find out about the sign? 

 Here we go again! Harry felt slightly exasperated. We keep trying to convince 
ourselves Dumbledore left us secret signs and clues C 

 The Deluminator turned out to be pretty useful, piped up Ron. I think 
Hermiones right, I think we ought to go and see Lovegood. 

 Harry threw him a dark look. He was quite sure that Rons support of Hermione 
had little to do with a desire to know the meaning of the triangular rune. 

 It wont be like Godrics Hollow, Ron added, Lovegoods on your side, Harry, 
The Quibblers been for you all along, it keeps telling everyone theyve got to help you! 

 Im sure this is important! said Hermione earnestly. 

 But dont you think if it was, Dumbledore would have told me about it before he 
died? 

 Maybe . . . maybe its something you need to find out for yourself, said 
Hermione with a faint air of clutching at straws. 

 Yeah, said Ron sycophantically, that makes sense. 

 No, it doesnt, snapped Hermione, but I still think we ought to talk to Mr. 
Lovegood. A symbol that links Dumbledore, Grindelwald, and Godrics Hollow? Harry, 
Im sure we ought to know about this! 

 I think we should vote on it, said Ron. Those in favor of going to see Love 
good C 

 His hand flew into the air before Hermiones. Her lips quivered suspiciously as 
she raised her own. 

 Outvoted, Harry, sorry, said Ron, clapping him on the back. 

 Fine, said Harry, half amused, half irritated. Only, once weve seen Lovegood, 
lets try and look for some more Horcruxes, shall we? Where do the Lovegoods live, 
anyway? Do either of you know? 

 Yeah, theyre not far from my place, said Ron. I dunno exactly where, but 
Mum and Dad always point toward the hills whenever they mention them. Shouldnt be 
hard to find. 

 When Hermione had returned to her bunk, Harry lowered his voice. 

 You only agreed to try and get back in her good books. 

 Alls fair in love and war, said Ron brightly, and this is a bit of both. Cheer up, 
its the Christmas holidays, Lunall be home! 

 They had an excellent view of the village of Ottery St. Catchopole from the 
breezy hillside to which they Disapparated next morning. From their high vantage point 
the village looked like a collection of toy houses in the great slanting shafts of sunlight 
stretching to earth in the breaks between clouds. They stood for a minute or two looking 
toward the Burrow, their hands shadowing their eyes, but all they could make out were 


the high hedges and trees of the orchard, which afforded the crooked little house 
protection from Muggle eyes. 

 Its weird, being this near, but not going to visit, said Ron. 

 Well, its not like you havent just seen them. You were there for Christmas, 
said Hermione coldly. 

 I wasnt at the Burrow! said Ron with an incredulous laugh. Do you think I 
was going to go back there and tell them all Id walked out on you? Yeah, Fred and 
George wouldve been great about it. And Ginny, shed have been really understanding. 

 But where have you been, then? asked Hermione, surprised. 

 Bill and Fleurs new place. Shell cottage. Bills always been decent to me. He C 
he wasnt impressed when he heard what Id done, but he didnt go on about it. He knew 
I was really sorry. None of the rest of the family know I was there. Bill told Mum he and 
Fleur werent going home for Christmas because they wanted to spend it alone. You 
know, first holiday after they were married. I dont think Fleur minded. You know how 
much she hates Celestina Warbeck. 

 Ron turned his back on the Burrow. 

 Lets try up here, he said, leading the way over the top of the hill. 

 They walked for a few hours, Harry, at Hermiones insistence, hidden beneath the 
Invisibility Cloak. The cluster of low hills appeared to be uninhabited apart from one 
small cottage, which seemed deserted. 

 Do you think its theirs, and theyve gone away for Christmas? said Hermione, 
peering through the window at a neat little kitchen with geraniums on the windowsill. 
Ron snorted. 

 Listen, Ive got a feeling youd be able to tell who lived there if you looked 
through the Lovegoods window. Lets try the next lot of hills. 

 So they Disapparated a few miles farther north. 

 Aha! shouted Ron, as the wind whipped their hair and clothes. Ron was 
pointing upward, toward the top of the hill on which they had appeared, where a most 
strange-looking house rose vertically against the sky, a great black cylinder with a 
ghostly moon hanging behind it in the afternoon sky. Thats got to be Lunas house, 
who else would live in a place like that? It looks like a giant rook! 

 Its nothing like a bird, said Hermione, frowning at the tower. 

 I was talking about a chess rook, said Ron. A castle to you. 

 Rons legs were the longest and he reached the top of the hill first. When Harry 
and Hermione caught up with him, panting and clutching stitches in their sides, they 
found him grinning broadly. 

 Its theirs, said Ron. Look. 

 Three hand-painted signs had been tacked to a broke-down gate. The first read, 

 THE QUIBBLER. EDITOR, X. LOVEGOOD 

 

the second, 

 PICK YOUR OWN MISTLETOE 

 

the third, 

 KEEP OFF THE DIRIGIBLE PLUMS 

 


 The gate creaked as they opened it. The zigzagging path leading to the front door 
was overgrown with a variety of odd plants, including a bush covered in orange 
radishlike fruit Luna sometimes wore as earrings. Harry thought he recognized a 
Snargaluff and gave the wizened stump a wide berth. Two aged crab apple trees, bent 
with the wind, stripped of leaves but still heavy with berry-sized red fruits and bushy 
crowns of white beaded mistletoe, stood sentinel on either side of the front door. A little 
owl with a slightly flattened hawklike head peered down at them from one of the 
branches. 

 Youd better take off the Invisibility Cloak, Harry, said Hermione. Its you Mr. 
Lovegood wants to help, not us. 

 He did as she suggested, handing her the Cloak to stow in the beaded bag. She 
then rapped three times on the thick black door, which was studded with iron nails and 
bore a knocker shaped like an eagle. 

Barely ten seconds passed, then the door was flung open and there stood 
Xenophilius Lovegood, barefoot and wearing what appeared to be a stained 
nightshirt. His long white candyfloss hair was dirty and unkempt. Xenophilius 
had been positively dapper at Bill and Fleur's wedding by comparison. 
"What? What is it? Who are you? What do you want?" he cried in a 
high-pitched, querulous voice, looking first at Hermione, then at Ron, and 
finally at Harry, upon which his mouth fell open in a perfect, comical O. 
"Hello, Mr. Lovegood," said Harry, holding out his hand, "I'm Harry, 
Harry Potter." 
Xenophilius did not take Harry's hand, although the eye that was not 
pointing inward at his nose slid straight to the scar on Harry's forehead. 
"Would it be okay if we came in?" asked Harry. "There's something we'd 
like to ask you." 
"I . . . I'm not sure that's advisable," whispered Xenophilius, He 
swallowed and cast a quick look around the garden. "Rather a shock . . . My 
word . . . I . . . I'm afraid I don't really think I ought to ---" 
"It wont take long" said Harry, slightly disappointed by this 
less-than-warm welcome. 
"I --- oh, all right then. Come in, quickly, Quickly!" 
They were barely over the threshold when Xenophilius slammed the door 
shut behind them, They were standing in the most peculiar kitchen Harry had 
ever seen. The room was perfectly circular, so that he felt like being 
inside a giant pepper pot. Everything was curved to fit the walls - the 
stove, the sink, and the cupboards - and all of it had been painted with 
flowers, insects, and birds in bright primary colors. Harry thought he 
recognized Luna's styles. The effect in such and enclosed space, was 
slightly overwhelming. 
In the middle of the floor, a wrought-iron spiral staircase ld to the 
upper levels. There was a great deal of clattering and banging coming from 
overhead: Harry wondered what Luna could be doing. 
"You'd better come up." said Xenophilius, still looking extremely 
uncomfortable, and he led the way. 
The room above seemed to be a combination of living room and workplace, 


and as such, was even more cluttered than the kitchen. Though much smaller 
and entirely round, the room somewhat resembled the Room of Requirement on 
the unforgettable occasion that it had transformed itself into a gigantic 
labyrinth comprised of centuries of hidden objects. There were piles upon 
piles of books and papers on every surface. Delicately made models of 
creatures Harry did not recognize, all flapping wings or snapping jaws, hung 
from the ceiling. 
Luna was not there: The thing that was making such a racket was a wooden 
object covered in magically turning cogs and wheels, It looked like the 
bizarre offspring of a workbench and a set of shelves, but after a moment 
Harry deduced that it was an old-fashioned printing press, due to the fact 
that it was churning out Quibblers. 
"Excuse me," said Xenophilius, and he strode over to the machine, seized 
grubbily tablecloth from beneath an immense number of books and papers, 
which all tumbled onto the floor, and threw it over the press, somewhat 
muffling the loud bangs and clatters. He then faced Harry. 
"Why have you come here?" 
Before Harry could speak, however, Hermione let out a small cry of shock. 
"Mr. Lovegood - what's that?" 
See was pointing at an enormous, gray spiral horn, not unlike that of a 
unicorn, which had been mounted on the wall, protruding several feet into 
the room. 
"It is the horn of a Crumple-Horned Snorkack," said Xenophilius. 
"No it isn't!" said Hermione. 
"Hermione," muttered Harry, embarrassed, "now's not the moment -" 
"But Harry, it's an Erumpent horn! It's a Class B Tradeable Material and 
it's an extraordinary dangerous thing to have in a house!" 
"How'd you know it's an Erumpent horn?" asked Ron, edging away from the 
horn as fast as he could, given the extreme clutter of the room. 
"There's a description in Fantastic Beasts and Where to Find Them! Mr. 
Lovegood, you need to get rid of it straightaway, don't you know it can 
explode at the slightest touch?" 
"The Crumple Horned Snorkack" said Xenophilius very clearly, a mulish 
look upon his face, is a shy and highly magical creature, and it's horn -" 
"Mr. Lovegood. I recognize the grooved markings around the base, that's 
an Erumpent horn and it's incredibly dangerous - I don't know where you got 
it-" 
"I bought it," said Xenophilius dogmatically. "Two weeks ago, from a 
delightful young wizard who knew my interest in the exquisite Snorkack. A 
Christmas surprise for my Luna. Now," he said, turning to Harry, "why 
exactly have you come here, Mr. Potter?" 
"We need some help," said Harry, before Hermione could start again. 
"Ah," said Xenophilius, "Help, Hmm." 
His good eye moved again to Harry's scar. He seemed simultaneously 
terrified and mesmerized. 
"Yes. The thing is ... helping Harry Potter ... rather dangerous..." 


 "Aren't you the one who keeps telling everyone it's their first duty to 
help Harry?" said Ron. "In that magazine of yours?" 
Xenophilius glanced behind him at the concealed printing press, still 
banging and clattering beneath the tablecloth. 
"Er - yes, I have expressed that view. however -" 
"That's for everyone else to do, not you personally?" said Ron. 
Xenophilius did not answer. He kept swallowing, his eyes darting between 
the three of them. Harry had the impression that he was undergoing some 
painful internal struggle. 
"Where's Luna?" asked Hermione. "Let's see what she thinks." 
Xenophilius gulped. He seemed to be steeling himself. Finally he said in 
a shaky voice difficult to hear over the noise of the printing press, "Luna 
is down at the stream, fishing for Freshwater Plimpies. She...she will like 
to see you. I'll go and call her and then - yes, very well. I shall try to 
help you." 
He disappeared down the spiral staircase and they heard the front open 
and close. They looked at each other. 
"Cowardly old wart," said Ron. "Luna's got ten times his guts." 
"He's probably worried about what'll happen to them if the Death Eaters 
find out I was here" said Harry. 
"Well, I agree with Ron, " said Hermione, "Awful old hypocrite, telling 
everyone else to help you and trying to worm our of it himself. And for 
heaven's sake keep away from that horn." 
Harry crossed to the window on the far side of the room. He could see a 
stream, a thin, glittering ribbon lying far below them at the base of the 
hill. They were very high up; a bird fluttered past the window as he stared 
in the direction of the Burrow, now invisible beyond another line of hills. 
Ginny was over there somewhere. They were closer to each other today than 
they had been since Bill and Fleur's wedding, but she could have no idea he 
was gazing toward her now, thinking of her. He suppose he ought to be glad 
of it; anyone he came into contact with was in danger, Xenophilius's attitude 
proved that. 
he turned away from the windows and his gaze fell upon another peculiar 
object standing upon the cluttered, curved slide board; a stone but of a 
beautiful but austere-looking witch wearing a most bizarre-looking 
headdress. Two objects that resembled golden ear trumpets curved out from 
the sides. A tiny pair of glittering blue wing was stuck to a leather strap 
that ran over the top of her head, while one of the orange radishes had been 
stuck to a second strap around her forehead. 
"Look at this," said Harry. 
"Fetching," said Ron. "Surprised he didn't hear that to the wedding." 
They heard the front door close, and a moment later Xenophilius climbed 
back up the spiral staircase into the room, his thin legs now encase in 
Wellington boots, bearing a tray of ill-assorted teacups and a steaming 
teapot. 
"Ah, you have spotted my pet invention," he said, shoving the tray into 


Hermione's arms and joining Harry at the statue's side. 
"Modeled, fittingly enough, upon the head of the beautiful Rowens Ravenclaw, 
'Wit beyond measure is a man's greatest treasure!'" 
He indicated the objects like ear trumpets. 
"These are the Wrackpurt siphons - to remove all sources of distraction 
from the thinker's immediate area. Here, "he pointed out the tiny wings, "a 
billywig propeller, to induce an elevated frame of mind. Finally, "he 
pointed to the orange radish, "the dirigible Plum, so as to enhance the 
ability to accept the extraordinary." 
Xenophilius strode back to the tea tray, which Hermione had managed to 
balance precariously on one of the cluttered side tables. 
"May I offer you all an infusion of Gurdyroots?" said Xenophilius. "We 
make it ourselves." As he started to pour out the drink, which was as deeply 
purple as beetroot juice, he added, "Luna is down beyond Bottom Bridge, she 
is most excited that you are here She ought not to be too long, she has 
caught nearly enough Plumpies to make soup for all of us. Do sit down and 
help yourselves to sugar. 
"Now," he remove a tottering pile of papers from an armchair and sat 
down, his Wellingtoned legs crossed, "how may I help you, Mr. Potter?" 
"Well," said Harry, glancing at Hermione, who nodded encouragingly, 
"it's about that symbol you were wearing around your neck at Bill and 
Fleur's wedding, Mr. Lovegood. We wondered what it meant." 
Xenophilius raised his eyebrows. 
"Are you referring to the sign of the Deathly Hallows?" 

 

 

 

Chapter Twenty-One 

The Tale of the Three Brothers 

 

Harry turned to look at Ron and Hermione. Neither of them seemed to have 
understood what Xenophilius had said either. 

"The Deathly Hallows?" 

"That's right," said Xenophilius. "You haven't heard of them? I'm not surprised. 
Very, very few wizards believe. Witness that knuckle-headed young man at your 
brother's wedding," he nodded at Ron, "who attacked me for sporting the symbol of a 
well-known Dark wizard! Such ignorance. There is nothing Dark about the Hallows C at 
least not in that crude sense. One simply uses the symbol to reveal oneself to other 
believers, in the hope that they might help one with the Quest." 

He stirred several lumps of sugar into his Gurdyroot infusion and drank some. 

"I'm sorry," said Harry, "I still don't really understand." 

To be polite, he took a sip from his cup too, and almost gagged: The stuff was 
quite disgusting, as though someone had liquidized bogey-flavored Every Flavor Beans. 


"Well, you see, believers seek the Deathly Hallows," said Xenophilius, smacking 
his lips in apparent appreciation of the Gurdyroot infusion. 

"But what are the Deathly Hallows?" asked Hermione. 

Xenophilius set aside his empty teacup. 

"I assume that you are familiar with 'The Tale of the Three Brothers'?" 

Harry said, "No," but Ron and Hermione both said, "Yes." Xenophilius nodded 
gravely. 

"Well, well, Mr. Potter, the whole thing starts with 'The Tale of the Three 
Brothers' . . . I have a copy somewhere . . ." 

He glanced vaguely around the room, at the piles of parchment and books, but 
Hermione said, "I've got a copy, Mr. Lovegood, I've got it right here." 

And she pulled out The Tales of Beedle the Bard from the small, beaded bag. 

"The original?" inquired Xenophilius sharply, and when she nodded, he said, 
"Well then, why don't you read it out aloud? Much the best way to make sure we all 
understand." 

"Er. . . all right," said Hermione nervously. She opened the book, and Harry saw 
that the symbol they were investigating headed the top of the page as she gave a little 
cough, and began to read. 

"'There were once three brothers who were traveling along a lonely, winding road 
at twilight C'" 

"Midnight, our mum always told us," said Ron, who had stretched out, arms 
behind his head, to listen. Hermione shot him a look of annoyance. 

"Sorry, I just think it's a bit spookier if it's midnight!" said Ron. 

"Yeah, because we really need a bit more fear in our lives," said Harry before he 
could stop himself. Xenophilius did not seem to be paying much attention, but was 
staring out of the window at the sky. "Go on, Hermione." 

"In time, the brothers reached a river too deep to wade through and too 
dangerous to swim across. However, these brothers were learned in the magical arts, and 
so they simply waved their wands and made a bridge appear across the treacherous 
water. They were halfway across it when they found their path blocked by a hooded 
figure. 

"'And Death spoke to them C'" 

"Sorry," interjected Harry, "but Death spoke to them?" 

"It's a fairy tale, Harry!" 

"Right, sorry. Go on." 

"'And Death spoke to them. He was angry that he had been cheated out of the 
three new victims, for travelers usually drowned in the river. But Death was cunning. He 
pretended to congratulate the three brothers upon their magic, and said that each had 
earned a prize for having been clever enough to evade him. 

"'So the oldest brother, who was a combative man, asked for a wand more 
powerful than any in existence: a wand that must always win duels for its owner, a wand 
worthy of a wizard who had conquered Death! So Death crossed to an elder tree on the 
banks of the river, fashioned a wand from a branch that hung there, and gave it to the 
oldest brother. 

"'Then the second brother, who was an arrogant man, decided that he wanted to 
humiliate Death still further, and asked for the power to recall others from Death. So 


Death picked up a stone from the riverbank and gave it to the second brother, and told 
him that the stone would have the power to bring back the dead. 

"'And then Death asked the third and youngest brother what he would like. The 
youngest brother was the humblest and also the wisest of the brothers, and he did not 
trust Death. So he asked for something that would enable him to go forth from that place 
without being followed by Death. And Death, most unwillingly, handed over his own 
Cloak of Invisibility.'" 

"Death's got an Invisibility Cloak?" Harry interrupted again. 

"So he can sneak up on people," said Ron. "Sometimes he gets bored of running at 
them, flapping his arms and shrieking . . . sorry, Hermione." 

"'Then Death stood aside and allowed the three brothers to continue on their way, 
and they did so talking with wonder of the adventure they had had and admiring Death's 
gifts. 

"'In due course the brothers separated, each for his own destination. 

"'The first brother traveled on for a week more, and reaching a distant village, 
sought out a fellow wizard with whom he had a quarrel. Naturally, with the Elder Wand 
as his weapon, he could not fail to win the duel that followed. Leaving his enemy dead 
upon the floor the oldest brother proceeded to an inn, where he boasted loudly of the 
powerful wand he had snatched from Death himself, and of how it made him invincible. 

"'That very night, another wizard crept upon the oldest brother as he lay, wine-
sodden upon his bed. The thief took the wand and for good measure, slit the oldest 
brother's throat. 

"'And so Death took the first brother for his own. 

"'Meanwhile, the second brother journeyed to his own home, where he lived alone. 
Here he took out the stone that had the power to recall the dead, and turned it thrice in 
his hand. To his amazement and his delight, the figure of the girl he had once hoped to 
marry, before her untimely death, appeared at once before him. 

"'Yet she was sad and cold, separated from him as by a veil. Though she had 
returned to the mortal world, she did not truly belong there and suffered. Finally the 
second brother, driven mad with hopeless longing, killed himself so as to truly join her. 

"'And so Death took the second brother from his own. 

"'But though Death searched for the third brother for many years, he was never 
able to find him. It was only when he had attained a great age that the youngest brother 
finally took off the Cloak of Invisibility and gave it to his son. And the he greeted Death 
as an old friend, and went with him gladly, and, equals, they departed this life.'" 

Hermione closed the book. It was a moment or two before Xenophilius seemed to 
realize that she had stopped reading; then he withdrew his gaze from the window and 
said: "Well, there you are." 

"Sorry?" said Hermione, sounding confused. 

"Those are the Deathly Hallows," said Xenophilius. 

He picked up a quill from a packed table at his elbow, and pulled a torn piece of 
parchment from between more books. 

"The Elder Wand," he said, and drew a straight vertical line upon the parchment. 
"The Resurrection Stone," he said, and added a circle on top of the line. "The Cloak of 
Invisibility," he finished, enclosing both line and circle in a triangle, to make the symbols 
that so intrigued Hermione. "Together," he said, "the Deathly Hallows." 


"But there's no mention of the words 'Deathly Hallows' in the story," said 
Hermione. 

"Well, of course not," said Xenophilius, maddeningly smug. "That is a children's 
tale, told to amuse rather than to instruct. Those of us who understand these matters, 
however, recognize that the ancient story refers to three objects, or Hallows, which, if 
united, will make the possessor master of Death." 

There was a short silence in which Xenophilius glanced out of the window. 
Already the sun was low in the sky. 

"Luna ought to have enough Plimpies soon," he said quietly. 

"When you say 'master of Death' C"said Ron. 

"Master," said Xenophilius, waving an airy hand. "Conqueror. Vanquisher. 
Whichever term you prefer." 

"But then . . . do you mean . . ." said Hermione slowly, and Harry could tell that 
she was trying to keep any trace of skepticism out of her voice, "that you believe these 
objects C these Hallows C really exist?" 

Xenophilius raised his eyebrows again. 

"Well, of course." 

"But," said Hermione, and Harry could hear her restraint starting to crack, "Mr. 
Lovegood, how can you possibly believe C ?" 

"Luna has told me all about you, young lady," said Xenophilius. "You are, I 
gather, not unintelligent, but painfully limited. Narrow. Close-minded." 

"Perhaps you ought to try on the hat, Hermione," said Ron, nodding toward the 
ludicrous headdress. His voice shook with the strain of not laughing. 

"Mr. Lovegood," Hermione began again, "We all know that there are such things 
as Invisibility Cloaks. They are rare, but they exist. But C" 

"Ah, but the Third Hallow is a true Cloak of Invisibility, Miss Granger! I mean to 
say, it is not a traveling cloak imbued with a Disillusionment Charm, or carrying a 
Bedazzling Hex, or else woven from Demiguise hair, which will hide one initially but 
fade with the years until it turns opaque. We are talking about a cloak that really and truly 
renders the wearer completely invisible, and endures eternally, giving constant and 
impenetrable concealment, no matter what spells are cast at it. How many cloaks have 
you ever seen like that, Miss Granger?" 

Hermione opened her mouth to answer, then closed it again, looking more 
confused than ever. She, Harry and Ron glanced at one another, and Harry knew that they 
were all thinking the same thing. It so happened that a cloak exactly like the one 
Xenophilius had just described was in the room with them at that very moment. 

"Exactly," said Xenophilius, as if he had defeated them all in reasoned argument. 
"None of you have ever seen such a thing. The possessor would be immeasurably rich, 
would he not?" 

He glanced out of the window again. The sky was now tinged with the faintest 
trace of pink. 

"All right," said Hermione, disconcerted. "Say the Cloak existed. . . what about 
that stone, Mr. Lovegood? The thing you call the Resurrection Stone?" 

"What of it?" 

"Well, how can that be real?" 

"Prove that is not," said Xenophilius. 


Hermione looked outraged. 

"But that's C I'm sorry, but that's completely ridiculous! How can I possibly prove 
it doesn't exist? Do you expect me to get hold of C of all the pebbles in the world and test 
them? I mean, you could claim that anything's real if the only basis for believing in it is 
that nobody's proved it doesn't exist!" 

"Yes, you could," said Xenophilius. "I am glad to see that you are opening your 
mind a little." 

"So the Elder Wand," said Harry quickly, before Hermione could retort, "you 
think that exists too?" 

"Oh, well, in that case there is endless evidence," said Xenophilius. "The Elder 
Wand is the Hallow that is most easily traced, because of the way in which it passes from 
hand to hand." 

"Which is what?" asked Harry. 

"Which is that the possessor of the wand must capture it from its previous owner, 
if he is to be truly master of it," said Xenophilius. "Surely you have heard of the way the 
wand came to Egbert the Egregious, after his slaughter of Emeric the Evil? Of how 
Godelot died in his own cellar after his son, Hereward, took the wand from him? Of the 
dreadful Loxias, who took the wand from Baraabas Deverill, whom he had killed? The 
bloody trail of the Elder Wand is splattered across the pages of Wizarding history." 

Harry glanced at Hermione. She was frowning at Xenophilius, but she did not 
contradict him. 

"So where do you think the Elder Wand is now?" asked Ron. 

"Alas, who knows?" said Xenophilius, as he gazed out of the window. "Who 
knows where the Elder Wand lies hidden? The trail goes cold with Arcus and Livius. 
Who can say which of them really defeated Loxias, and which took the wand? And who 
can say who may have defeated them? History, alas, does not tell us." 

There was a pause. Finally Hermione asked stiffly, "Mr. Lovegood, does the 
Peverell family have anything to do with the Deathly Hallows?" 

Xenophilius looked taken aback as something shifted in Harry's memory, but he 
could not locate it. Peverell. . . he had heard that name before. . . 

"But you have been misleading me, young woman!" said Xenophilius, now sitting 
up much straighter in his chair and goggling at Hermione. "I thought you were new to the 
Hallows Quest! Many of us Questers believe that the Peverells have everything C 
everything! C to do with the Hallows!" 

"Who are the Peverells?" asked Ron. 

"That was the name on the grave with the mark on it, in Godric's Hollow," said 
Hermione, still watching Xenophilius. "Ignotus Peverell." 

"Exactly!" said Xenophilius, his forefinger raised pedantically. "The sign of the 
Death Hallows on Ignotus's grave is conclusive proof!" 

"Of what?" asked Ron. 

"Why, that the three brothers in the story were actually the three Peverell brothers, 
Antioch, Cadmus and Ignotus! That they were the original owners of the Hallows!" 

With another glance at the window he got to his feet, picked up the tray, and 
headed for the spiral staircase. 

"You will stay for dinner?" he called, as he vanished downstairs again. 
"Everybody always requests our recipe for Freshwater Plimply soup." 


"Probably to show the Poisoning Department at St. Mungo's," said Ron under his 
breath. 

Harry waited until they could hear Xenophilius moving about in the kitchen 
downstairs before speaking. 

"What do you think?" he asked Hermione. 

"Oh, Harry," she said wearily, "it's a pile of utter rubbish. This can't be what the 
sign really means. This must just be his weird take on it. What a waste of time." 

"I s'pose this is the man who brought us Crumple-Horned Snorkacks," said Ron. 

"You didn't believe it either?" Harry asked him. 

"Nah, that story's just one of those things you tell kids to teach them lessons, isn't 
it? 'Don't go looking for trouble, don't go pick fights, don't go messing around with stuff 
that's best left alone! Just keep your head down, mind your own business, and you'll be 
okay. Come to think of it," Ron added, "maybe that story's why elder wands are supposed 
to be unlucky." 

"What are you talking about?" 

"One of those superstitions, isn't it? 'May-born witches will marry Muggles.' 'Jinx 
by twilight, undone by midnight.' 'Wand of cider, never prosper.' You must have heard 
them. My mum's full of them." 

"Harry and I were raised by Muggles," Hermione reminded him. "We were taught 
different superstitions." She sighed deeply as a rather pungent smell drifted up from the 
kitchen. The one good thing about her exasperation with Xenophilius was that it seemed 
to have made her forget that she was annoyed at Ron. "I think you're right," she told him. 
"It's just a morality tale, it's obvious which gift is best, which one you'd choose C" 

The three of them spoke at the same time: Hermione said, "the Cloak," Ron said, 
"the wand," and Harry said, "the stone." 

They looked at each other, half surprised, half amused. 

"You're supposed to say the Cloak," Ron told Hermione, "but you wouldn't need 
to be invisible if you had the wand. An unbeatable wand, Hermione, come on!" 

 
"We've already got an Invisibility Cloak," said Harry, "And it's helped us rather a lot, in 
case you hadn't noticed!" said Hermione. "Whereas the wand would be bound to attract 
trouble--" 
"Only if you shouted about it," argued Ron. "Only if you were prat enough to go dancing 
around waving it over your head, and singing, 'I've got an unbeatable want, come and 
have a go if you think you're hard enough.' As long as you kept your trap shut --" 
-Yes, but could you keep your trap shut?" said Hermione, looking skeptical. "You know 
the only true thing he said to us was that there have been stories about extra-powerful 
wands for hundreds of years." 
"There have?" asked Harry. 
Hermione looked exasperated: The expression was so endearingly familiar that Harry and 
Ron grinned at each other. 
"The Deathstick, the Wand of Destiny, they crop up under different names through the 
centuries, usually in the possession of some Dark wizard whos boasting about them. 
Professor Binns mentioned some of them, but -- oh it's all nonsense. Wands are only as 
powerful as the wizards who use them. Some wizards just like to boast that theirs are 
bigger and better than other people's" 


"But how do you know," said Harry, "that those wants -- the Deathstick, and the Wand of 
Destiny -- aren't the same want, surfacing over the centuries under different names?" 
"What if they're all really the Elder Wand, made by Death?" said Ron. 
Harry laughed: The strange idea that had occurred to him was after all, ridiculous. His 
wand, he reminded himself, had been of holly, not elder, and it had been made by 
Ollivander, whatever it had done that night Voldemort had pursued him across the skies 
and if it had been unbeatable, how could it have been broken? 
"So why would you take the stone?" Ron asked him. 
"Well, if you could bring people back, we could have Sirius...Mad-
Eye...Dumbledore...my parents..." 
Neither Ron nor Hermione smiled. 
"But according to Beedle the Bard, they wouldn't want to come back, would they?" said 
Harry, thinking about the tail they had just heard. "I don't suppose there have been loads 
of other stories about a stone that can raise the dead, have there?: he asked Hermione. 
"No," she replied sadly. "I don't think anyone except Mr. Lovegood could kid themselves 
that's possible. Beedle probably took the idea from the Sorcerer's Stone; you know, 
instead of a stone to make you immortal, a stone to reverse death." 
The smell from the kitchen was getting stronger. It was something like burning 
underpants. Harry wondered whether it would be possible to eat enough of whatever 
Xenophilius was cooking to spare his feelings. 
"What about the Cloak, though?" said Ron slowly. "Don't you realize, he's right? I've got 
so used to Harry's Cloak and how good it is, I never stopped to think. I've never heard of 
one like Harry's. It's infallible. We've never been spotted under it --" 
"Of course not -- we're invisible when we're under it, Ron!" 
"But all the stuff he said about other cloaks, and they're not exactly ten a Knut, you know, 
is true! It's never occurred to me before but I've heard stuff about charms wearing off 
cloaks when they get old, or them being ripped apart by spells so they've got holes, 
Harry's was owned by his dad, so it's not exactly new, is it, but it's just ... perfect!" 
"Yes, all right, but Ron, the stone..." 
As they argued in whispers, Harry moved around the room, only half listening. Reaching 
the spiral stair, he raised his eyes absently to the next level and was distracted at once. 
His own face was looking back at him from the ceiling of the room above. After a 
moment's bewilderment, he realized that it was not a mirror, but a painting. Curious, he 
began to clime the stairs. 
"Harry, what are you doing? I don't think you should look around when he's not here!" 
But Harry had already reached the next level. Luna had decorated her bedroom ceiling 
with five beautifully painted faces: Harry, Ron, Hermione, Ginny, and Neville. They 
were not moving as the portraits at Hogwarts moved, but there was a certain magic about 
them all the same. Harry thought they breathed. What appeared to be a fine golden chains 
wove around the pictures linking them together, but after examining them for a minute or 
so, Harry realized that the chains were actually one work repeated a thousand times in 
golden ink: friends... friends... friends... 
Harry felt a great rush of affection for Luna. He looked around the room. There was a 
large photograph beside the bed, of a young Luna and a woman who looked very like her. 
They were hugging. Luna looked rather better-groomed in this picture than Harry had 
ever seen her in life. The picture was dusty. This struck Harry as slightly odd. He stared 


around. Something was wrong. The pale blue carpet was also thick with dust. There were 
no clothes in the wardrobe, whose doors stood ajar. The bed had a cold, unfriendly look, 
as though it had not been slept in for weeks. A single cobweb stretched over the nearest 
window across the blood red sky. 
"What's wrong?" Hermione asked as Harry descended the staircase, but before he could 
respond, Xenophilius reached the top of the stairs from the kitchen, now holding a tray 
laden with bowls. 
"Mr. Lovegood," said Harry. "Where's Luna?" 
"Excuse me?" 
"Where's Luna?" 
Xenophilius halted on the top step. 
"I -- I've already told you. She is down at the Botions Bridge fishing for Plimpies." 
"So why have you only laid that tray for four?" 
Xenophilius tried to speak, but no sound came out. The only noise was the continued 
chugging of the printing press, and a slight rattle from the tray as Xenophilius's hands 
shook. 
"I don't think Luna's been here for weeks." said Harry. "Her clothes are gone, her bed 
hasn't been slept in. Where is she? and why do you keep looking out of the window?" 
Xenophilius dropped the tray. The bowls bounced and smashed Harry, Ron, and 
Hermione drew their wands. Xenophilius froze his hand about to enter his pocket. At that 
moment the printing press have a huge bank and numerous Quibblers came streaming 
across the floor from underneath the tablecloth, the press fell silent at last. Hermione 
stooped down and picked up one of the magazines, her wand still pointing at Mr. 
Lovegood. 
"Harry, look at this" He strode over to her as quickly as he could through all the clutter. 
The front of the Quibbler carried his own picture, emblazoned with the words 
"Undesirable Number One" and captioned with the reward money. 
"The Quibbler's going for a new angle, then?: Harry asked coldly, his mind working very 
fast. "Is that what you were doing when you went into the garden, Mr. Lovegood? 
Sending an owl to the Ministry? 
Xenophilius licked his lips 
"They took my Luna," he whispered, "Because of what I've been writing. They took my 
Luna and I don't know where she is, what they've done to her. But they might give her 
back to me if I -- If I--" 
"Hand over Harry?" Hermione finished for him. 
"No deal." said Ron flatly. "Get out of the way, we're leaving." 
Xenophilius looked ghastly, a century old, his lips drawn back into a dreadful leer. 
"They will be here any moment. I must save Luna. I cannot lose Luna. You must not 
leave." 
He spread his arms in front of the staircase, and Harry had a sudden vision of his mother 
doing the same thing in front of his crib. 
"Don't make us hurt you," Harry said. "Get out of the way, Mr. Lovegood." 
"HARRY!" Hermione screamed. 
Figures on broomsticks were flying past the windows. As the three of them looked away 
from him. Xenophilius drew his wand. Harry realized their mistake just in time. He 
launched himself sideways, shoving Ron and Hermione out of harm's way as 


Xenophilius's Stunning Spell soared across the room and hit the Erumpent horn. 
There was a colossal explosion. The sound of it seemed to blow the room apart. 
Fragments of wood and paper and rubble flew in all directions, along with an 
impenetrable cloud of thick white dust. Harry flew through the air, then crashed to the 
floor, unable to see as debris rained upon him, his arms over his head. He heard 
Hermione's scream, Ron's yell, and a series of sickening metallic thuds which told him 
that Xenophilius had been blasted off his feet and fallen backward down the spiral stairs. 
Half buried in rubble, Harry tried to raise himself. He could barely breathe or see for dust. 
Half of the ceiling had fall in and the end of Luna's bead was hanging through the hole. 
The bust of Rowena Ravenclaw lay beside him with half its face missing fragments of 
torn parchment were floating through the air, and most of the printing press lay on its side, 
blocking the top of the staircase to the kitchen. Then another white shape moved close by, 
and Hermione, coated in dust like a second statue, pressed his finger to her lips. 
The door downstairs crashed open. 
"Didn't I tell you there was no need to hurry, Travers?" said a rough voice. "Didn't I tell 
you this nutter was just raving as usual?" There was a bang and a scream of pain from 
Xenophilius. 
"No...no...upstairs...Potter!" 
"I told you last week Lovegood, we weren't coming back for anything less than some 
solid information! Remember last week? When you wanted to swap your daughter for 
that stupid bleeding headdress? And the week before" -- Another bang, another squeal -- 
"When you thought we'd give her back if you offered us proof there are Cumple" -- Bang 
-- "Headed"--bang--"Snorkacks?" 
"No -- no -- I beg of you!" sobbed Xenophilius. "It really is Potter, Really!" 
"And now it turns out you only called us here to try and blow us up!" roared the Death 
Eater, and there was a volley of bangs interspersed with squeals of agony from 
Xenophilius. 
"The place looks like it's about to fall in, Selwyn," said a cool second voice, echoing up 
the mangled staircase. "The stairs are completely blocked. Could try clearing it? Might 
bring the place down." 
"You lying piece of filth." shouted the wizard named Selwyn. 
"You have never seen Potter in your life, have you? Thought you'd lure us here to kill us, 
did you? And you think you'll get your girl back like this?" 
"I swear...I swear...Potter's upstairs!" 
"Homenum revelio." said the voice at the foot of the stairs. Harry heard Hermione gasp, 
and he had the odd sensation something was swooping low over him, immersing his body 
in its shadow. 
"There's someone up there all right, Selwyn," said the second man sharply. 
"It's Potter, I tell you, it's Potter!" sobbed Xenophilius. "Please...please...give me Luna, 
just let me have Luna..." 
"You can have your little girl, Lovegood," said Selwyn, "if you get up those stairs and 
bring me down Harry Potter. But if this is a plot, if it's a trick, if you've got an accomplice 
waiting up there to ambush us, we'll see if we can spare a bit of your daughter for you to 
bury." 
Xenophilius gave a wail of fear and despair. There were scurryings and scrapings. 
Xenophilius was trying to get through the debris on the stairs. 


"Come on," Harry whispered, "we've got to get out of here." 
He started to dig himself out under cover of all the noise Xenophilius was making on the 
staircase. Ron was buried the deepest. Harry and Hermione climbed, as quietly as they 
could, over all the wreckage to where he lay, trying to prise a heavy chest of drawers off 
his legs. While Xenophilius banging and scraping drew nearer and nearer, Hermione 
managed to free Ron with the use of a Hover Charm. 
"All right." breathed Hermione, as the broken printing press blocking the top of the stairs 
begin to tremble. Xenophilius was feet away from them. She was still white with dust. 
"Do you trust me Harry?" 
Harry nodded. 
"Okay then." Hermione whispered. "give me the invisibility Cloak. Ron, you're going to 
put it on." 
"Me? But Harry --" 
"Please, Ron! Harry, hold on tight to my hand, Ron grab my shoulder." 
Harry held out his left hand. Ron vanished beneath the Cloak. The printing press blocking 
the stairs was vibrating. Xenophilius was trying to shift it using a Hover Charm. Harry 
did not know what Hermione was waiting for. 
"Hold tight" she whispered. "Hold tight...any second..." 
Xenophilius's paper-white face appeared over the top of the sideboard. 
"Obliviate!" cried Hermione, pointing her want first into his face then at the floor beneath 
them. "Deprimo!" 
She had blasted a hole in the sitting room floor. They fell like boulders. Harry still 
holding onto her hand for dear life, there was a scream from below, and he glimpsed two 
men trying to get out of the way as vast quantities of rubble and broken furniture rained 
all around them from the shattered ceiling. Hermione twisted in midair and thundering of 
the collapsing house rang in Harry's ears as she dragged him once more into darkness. 

 

Chapter Twenty-Two 

The Deathly Hallows 

 

 Harry fell, panting, onto grass and scrambled up at once. They seemed to have 
landed in the corner of a field at dusk; Hermione was already running in a circle around 
them, waving her wand. 

 Protego TotalumSalvio Hexia 

 That treacherous old bleeder. Ron panted, emerging from beneath the 
Invisibility Cloak and throwing it to Harry. Hermione youre a genius, a total genius. I 
cant believe we got out of that. 

 Cave InimicumDidnt I say it was an Frumpent horn, didnt I tell him? And 
now his house has been blown apart! 

 Serves him right, said Ron, examining his torn jeans and the cuts to his legs, 
Whatd you reckon theyll do to him? 

 Oh I hope they dont kill him! groaned Hermione, Thats why I wanted the 
Death Eaters to get a glimpse of Harry before we left, so they knew Xenophilius hadnt 
been lying! 


 Why hide me though? asked Ron. 

 Youre supposed to be in bed with spattergrolt, Ron! Theyve kidnapped Luna 
because her father supported Harry! What would happen to your family if they knew 
youre with him? 

 But what about your mum and dad? 

 Theyre in Australia, said Hermione, They should be all right. They dont 
know anything. 

Youre a genius, Ron repeated, looking awed. 

Yeah, you are, Hermione, agreed Harry fervently. I dont know what wed do 
without you. 

She beamed, but became solemn at once. 

What about Luna? 

Well, if theyre telling the truth and shes still Alive --- began Ron. 

Dont say that, dont say it! squealed Hermione. She must be alive, she must! 

Then shell be in Azkaban, I expect, said Ron. Whether she survives the place, 
thoughLoads dont 

She will, said Harry. He could not bear to contemplate the alternative. Shes 
tough, Luna, much tougher than youd think. Shes probably teaching all the inmates 
about Wrackspurts and Nargles. 

I hope youre right, said Hermione. She passed a hand over her eyes. Id feel 
so sorry for Xenophilius if --- 

---if he hadnt just tried to sell us to the Death Eaters, yeah, said Ron. 

They put up the tent and retreated inside it, where Ron made them tea. After their 
narrow escape, the chilly, musty old place felt like home: safe, familiar, and friendly. 

Oh, why did we go there? groaned Hermione after a few minutes silence. 
Harry, you were right, it was Godrics Hollow all over again, a complete waste of time! 
The Deathly Hallowssuch rubbishalthough actually, a sudden thought seemed to 
have struck her, he might have made it all up, mightnt he? He probably doesnt believe 
in the Deathly Hallows at all, he just wanted to keep us talking until the Death Eaters 
arrived! 

I dont think so, said Ron. Its a damn sight harder making stuff up when 
youre under stress than youd think. I found that out when the Snatchers caught me. It 
was much easier pretending to be Stan, because I knew a bit about him, than inventing a 
whole new person. Old Lovegood was under loads of pressure, trying to make sure we 
stayed put. I reckon he told us the truth, or what he thinks is the truth, just to keep us 
talking. 

Well, I dont suppose it matters, sighed Hermione. Even if he was being 
honest, I never heard such a lot of nonsense in all my life. 

Hang on, though, said Ron. The Chamber of Secrets was supposed to be a 
myth, wasnt it? 

But the Deathly Hallows cant exist, Ron! 

You keep saying that, but one of them can, said Ron. Harrys Invisibility 
Cloak --- 

The Tale of the Three Brothers is a story, said Hermione firmly. A story about 
how humans are frightened of death. If surviving was as simple as hiding under the 
Invisibility Cloak, wed have everything we need already! 


I dont know. We could do with an unbeatable wand, said Harry, turning the 
blackthorn wand he so disliked over in his fingers. 

Theres no such thing, Harry! 

You said there have been loads of wands --- the Deathstick and whatever they 
were called --- 

All right, even if you want to kid yourself the Elder Wands real, what about the 
Resurrection Stone? Her fingers sketched quotation marks around the name, and her 
tone dripped sarcasm. No magic can raise the dead, and thats that! 

When my wand connected with You-Know-Whos, it made my mum and dad 
appearand Cedric 

But they werent really back from the dead, were they? said Hermione. Those 
kind of ---of pale imitations arent the same as truly bringing someone back to life. 

But she, the girl in the tale, didnt really come back, did she? The story says that 
once people are dead, they belong with the dead. But the second brother still got to see 
her and talk to her, didnt he? He even lived with her for a while 

He saw concern and something less easily definable in Hermiones expression. 
Then, as she glanced at Ron, Harry realized that it was fear: He had scared her with his 
talk of living with dead people. 

So that Peverell bloke whos buried in Godrics Hollow, he said hastily, trying 
to sound robustly sane, you dont know anything about him, then? 

No, she replied, looking relieved at the change of subject. I looked him up 
after I saw the mark on his grave; if hed been anyone famous or done anything important, 
Im sure hed be in one of our books. The only place Ive managed to find the name 
Peverell Is Natures Nobility: A Wizarding Genealogy. I borrowed it from Kreacher, 
she explained as Ron raised his eyebrows. It lists the pure-blood families that are now 
extinct in the male line. Apparently the Peverells were one of the earliest families to 
vanish. 

Extinct in the male line? repeated Ron. 

It means the name died out, said Hermione, centuries ago, in the case of the 
Peverells. They could still have descendents, though, theyd just be called something 
different. 

And then it came to Harry in one shining piece, the memory that had stirred at the 
sound of the name Peverell: a filthy old man brandishing an ugly ring in the face of a 
Ministry official, and he cried aloud, Marvolo Gaunt! 

Sorry said Ron and Hermione together. 

Marvolo Gaunt! You-Know-Whos grandfather! In the Pensieve! With 
Dumbledore! Marvolo Gaunt said he was descended from the Peverells! 

Ron and Hermione looked bewildered. 

The ring, the ring that became the Horcrux, Marvolo Gaunt said it had the 
Peverell coat of arms on it! I saw him waving it in the bloke from the Ministrys face, he 
nearly shoved it up his nose! 

The Peverell coat of arms? said Hermione sharply. Could you see what it 
looked like? 

Not really, said Harry, trying to remember. There was nothing fancy on there, 
as far as I could see; maybe a few scratches. I only ever saw it really close up after it had 
been cracked open. 


Harry saw Hermiones comprehension in the sudden widening of her eyes. Ron 
was looking from one to the other, astonished. 

BlimeyYou reckon it was this sign again? The sign of the Hallows? 

Why not said Harry excitedly, Marvolo Gaunt was an ignorant old git who lived 
like a pig, all he cared about was his ancestry. If that ring had been passed down through 
the centuries, he might not have known what it really was. There were no books in that 
house, and trust me, he wasnt the type to read fairy tales to his kids. Hed have loved to 
think the scratches on the stone were a coat of arms, because as far as he was concerned, 
having pure blood made you practically royal. 

Yesand thats all very interesting, said Hermione cautiously, but Harry, if 
youre thinking what I think youre think --- 

Well, why not? Why not? said Harry, abandoning caution. It was a stone, 
wasnt it? He looked at Ron for support. What if it was the Resurrection Stone? 

Rons mouth fell open. 

Blimey --- but would it still work if Dumbledore broke --- ? 

Work? Work? Ron, it never worked! Theres no such thing as a Resurrection 
Stone! 

Hermione leapt to her feet, looking exasperated and angry. Harry youre trying to 
fit everything into the Hallows story --- 

Fit everything in? he repeated. Hermione, it fits of its own accord! I know the 
sign of the Deathly Hallows was on that stone! Gaunt said he was descended from the 
Peverells! 

A minute ago you told us you never saw the mark on the stone properly! 

Whered you reckon the ring is now? Ron asked Harry. What did Dumbledore 
do with it after he broke it open? 

But Harrys imagination was racing ahead, far beyond Ron and Hermiones 

Three objects, or Hallows, which, if united, will make the possessor master of 
DeathMasterConquerorVanquisherThe last enemy that shall be destroyed is 
death 

And he saw himself, possessor of the Hallows, facing Voldemort, whose 
Horcruxes were no matchNeither can live while the other survivesWas this the 
answer? Hallows versus Horcruxes? Was there a way after all, to ensure that he was the 
one who triumphed? If he were the master of the Deathly Hallows, would he be safe? 

Harry? 

But he scarcely heard Hermione: He had pulled out his Invisibility Cloak and was 
running it through his fingers, the cloth supple as water, light as air. He had never seen 
anything to equal it in his nearly seven years in the Wizarding world. The Cloak was 
exactly what Xenophilius had described: A cloak that really and truly renders the wearer 
completely invisible, and endures eternally, giving constant and impenetrable 
concealment, no matter what spells are cast at it 

And then, with a gasp, he remembered 

Dumbledore had my Cloak the night my parents died! 

His voice shook and he could feel the color in his face, but he did not care. 

My mum told Sirius that Dumbledore borrowed the Cloak! This is why! He 
wanted to examine it, because he thought it was the third Hallow! Ignotus Peverell is 
buried in Godrics Hollow Harry was walking blindly around the tent, feeling as 


though great new vistas of truth were opening all around him. Hes my ancestor. Im 
descended from the third brother! It all makes sense! 

He felt armed in certainty, in his belief in the Hallows, as if the mere idea of 
possessing them was giving him protection, and he felt joyous as he turned back to the 
other two. 

Harry, said Hermione again, but he was busy undoing the pouch around his 
neck, his fingers shaking hard. 

Read it, he told her, pushing his mothers letter into her hand. Read it! 
Dumbledore had the Cloak, Hermione! Why else would he want it? He didnt need a 
Cloak, he could perform a Disillusionment Charm so powerful that he made himself 
completely invisible without one! 

Something fell to the floor and rolled, glittering, under a chair: He had dislodged 
the Snitch when he pulled out the letter. He stooped to pick it up, and then the newly 
tapped spring of fabulous discoveries threw him another gift, and shock and wonder 
erupted inside him so that he shouted out. 

ITS IN HERE! He left me the ring C its in the Snitch! 

You --- you reckon? 

He could not understand why Ron looked taken aback. It was so obvious, so clear 
to Harry. Everything fit, everythingHis Cloak was the third Hallow, and when he 
discovered how to open the Snitch he would have the second, and then all he needed to 
do was find the first Hallow, the Elder Wand, and then --- 

But it was as though a curtain fell on a lit stage: All his excitement, all his hope 
and happiness were extinguished at a stroke, and he stood alone in the darkness, and the 
glorious spell was broken. 

Thats what hes after. 

The change in his voice made Ron and Hermione look even more scared. 

You-Know-Whos after the Elder Wand. 

He turned his back on their strained, incredulous faces. He knew it was the truth. 
It all made sense, Voldemort was not seeking a new wand; he was seeking an old wand, a 
very old wand indeed. Harry walked to the entrance of the tent, forgetting about Ron and 
Hermione as he looked out into the night, thinking 

Voldemort had been raised in a Muggle orphanage. Nobody could have told him 
The Tales of Beedle the Bard when he was a child, any more than Harry had heard them. 
Hardly any wizards believed in the Deathly Hallows. Was it likely that Voldemort knew 
about them? 

Harry gazed into the darknessIf Voldemort had known about the Deathly 
Hallows, surely he would have sought them, done anything to possess them: three objects 
that made the possessor master of Death? If he had known about the Deathly Hallows, he 
might not have needed Horcruxes in the first place. Didnt the simple fact that he had 
taken a Hallow, and turned it into a Horcrux, demonstrate that he did not know this last 
great Wizarding secret? 

Which meant that Voldemort sought the Elder Wand without realizing its full 
power, without understanding that it was one of threefor the wand was the Hallow that 
could not be hidden, whose existence was best knownThe bloody trail of the Elder 
Wand is splattered across the pages of Wizarding history 


Harry watched the cloudy sky, curves of smoke-gray and silver sliding over the 
face of the white moon. He felt lightheaded with amazement at his discoveries. 

He turned back into the tent. It was a shock to see Ron and Hermione standing 
exactly where he had left them, Hermione still holding Lilys letter, Ron at her side 
looking slightly anxious. Didnt they realize how far they had traveled in the last few 
minutes? 

This is it? Harry said, trying to bring them inside the glow of his own 
astonished certainty, This explains everything. The Deathly Hallows are real and Ive 
got one --- maybe two --- 

He held up the Snitch. 

--- and You-Know-Whos chasing the third, but he doesnt realizehe just 
thinks its a powerful wand --- 

Harry, said Hermione, moving across to him and handing him back Lilys letter, 
Im sorry, but I think youve got this wrong, all wrong. 

But dont you see? It all fits --- 

Not, it doesnt, she said. It doesnt. Harry, youre just getting carried away. 
Please, she said as she started to speak, please just answer me this: If the Deathly 
Hallows really existed, and Dumbledore knew about them, knew that the person who 
possessed all of them would be master of Death --- Harry, why wouldnt he have told 
you? Why? 

He had his answer ready. 

But you said it, Hermione! Youve got to find out about them for yourself! Its a 
Quest! 

But I only said that to try and persuade you to come to the Lovegoods! cried 
Hermione in exasperation. I didnt really believe it! 

Harry took no notice. 

Dumbledore usually let me find out stuff for myself. He let me try my strength, 
take risks. This feels like the kind of thing hed do. 

Harry, this isnt a game, this isnt practice! This is the real thing, and 
Dumbledore left you very clear instructions: Find and destroy the Horcruxes! That 
symbol doesnt mean anything, forget the Deathly Hallows, we cant afford to get 
sidetracked --- 

Harry was barely listening to her. He was turning the Snitch over and over in his 
hands, half expecting it to break open, to reveal the Resurrection Stone, to prove to 
Hermione that he was right, that the Deathly Hallows were real. 

She appealed to Ron. 

You dont believe in this, do you? 

Harry looked up, Ron hesitated. 

I dunnoI meanbits of it sort of fit together, said Ron awkwardly, But 
when you look at the whole thing He took a deep breath. I think were supposed to 
get rid of Horcruxes, Harry. Thats what Dumbledore told us to do. Maybemaybe we 
should forget about this Hallows business. 

Thank you, Ron, said Hermione. Ill take first watch. 

And she strode past Harry and sat down in the tent entrance bringing the action to 
a fierce full stop. 


But Harry hardly slept that night. The idea of the Deathly Hallows had taken 
possession of him, and he could not rest while agitating thoughts whirled through his 
mind: the wand, the stone, and the Cloak, if he could just possess them all 

I open at the closeBut what was the close? Why couldnt he have the stone 
now? If only he had the stone, he could ask Dumbledore these questions in personand 
Harry murmured words to the Snitch in the darkness, trying everything, even 
Parseltongue, but the golden ball would not open 

And the wand, the Elder Wand, where was that hidden? Where was Voldemort 
searching now? Harry wished his scar would burn and show him Voldemorts thoughts, 
because for the first time ever, he and Voldemort were united in wanting the very same 
thingHermione would not like that idea, of courseBut then, she did not 
believe.Xenophilius had been right, in a wayLimited, Narrow, Close-minded. The 
truth was that she was scared of the idea of the Deathly Hallows, especially of the 
Resurrection Stoneand Harry pressed his mouth again to the Snitch, kissing it, nearly 
swallowing it, but the cold medal did not yield 

It was nearly dawn when he remembered Luna, alone in a cell in Azkaban, 
surrounded by dementors, and he suddenly felt ashamed of himself. He had forgotten all 
about her in his feverish contemplation of the Hallows. If only they could rescue her, but 
dementors in those numbers would be virtually unassailable. Now he came to think about 
it, he had not tried casting a Patronus with the blackthorn wandHe must try that in the 
morning 

If only there was a way of getting a better wand 

And desire for the Elder Wand, the Deathstick, unbeatable, invincible, swallowed 
him once more 

They packed up the tent next morning and moved on through a dreary shower of 
rain. The downpour pursued them to the coast, where they pitched the tent that night, and 
persisted through the whole week, through sodden landscapes that Harry found bleak and 
depressing. He could think only of the Deathly Hallows. It was as though a flame had 
been lit inside him that nothing, not Hermiones flat disbelief nor Rons persistent doubts, 
could extinguish. And yet the fiercer the longing for the Hallows burned inside him, the 
less joyful it made him. He blamed Ron and Hermione: Their determined indifference 
was as bad as the relentless rain for dampening his spirits, but neither could erode his 
certainty, which remained absolute. Harrys belief in and longing for the Hallows 
consumed him so much that he felt isolated from the other two and their obsession with 
the Horcruxes. 

Obsession? said Hermione in a low fierce voice, when Harry was careless 
enough to use the word one evening, after Hermione had told him off for his lack of 
interest in locating more Horcruxes. Were not the one with an obsession, Harry! Were 
the ones trying to do what Dumbledore wanted us to do! 

But he was impervious to the veiled criticism. Dumbledore had left the sign of the 
Hallows for Hermione to decipher, and he had also, Harry remained convinced of it, left 
the Resurrection Stone hidden in the golden Snitch. Neither can live while the other 
survivesmaster of DeathWhy didnt Ron and Hermione understand? 

The last enemy shall be destroyed is death, Harry quoted calmly. 

I thought it was You-Know-Who we were supposed to be fighting? Hermione 
retorted, and Harry gave up on her. 


Even the mystery of the silver doe, which the other two insisted on discussing, 
seemed less important to Harry now, a vaguely interesting sideshow. The only other thing 
that mattered to him was that his scar had begun to prickle again, although he did all he 
could to hide this fact from the other two. He sought solitude whenever it happened, but 
was disappointed by what he saw. The visions he and Voldemort were sharing had 
changed in quality; they had become blurred, shifting as though they were moving in and 
out of focus. Harry was just able to make out the indistinct features of an object that 
looked like a skull, and something like a mountain that was more shadow than substance. 
Used to images sharp as reality, Harry was disconcerted by the change. He was worried 
that the connection between himself and Voldemort had been damaged, a connection that 
he both feared and, whatever he had told Hermione, prized. Somehow Harry connected 
these unsatisfying, vague images with the destruction of his wand, as if it was the 
blackthorn wands fault that he could no longer see into Voldemorts mind as well as 
before. 

As the weeks crept on, Harry could not help but notice, even through his new self-
absorption, that Ron seemed to be taking charge. Perhaps because he was determined to 
make up for having walked out on them, perhaps because Harrys descent into 
listlessness galvanized his dormant leadership qualities, Ron was the one now 
encouraging and exhorting the other two into action. 

Three Horcruxes left, he kept saying. We need a plan of action, come on! 
Where havent we looked? Lets go through it again. The orphanage 

Diagon Alley, Hogwarts, the Riddle House, Borgin and Burkes, Albania, every 
place that they knew Tom Riddle had ever lived or worked, visited or murdered, Ron and 
Hermione raked over them again, Harry joining in only to stop Hermione pestering him. 
He would have been happy to sit alone in silence, trying to read Voldemorts thoughts, to 
find out more about the Elder Wand, but Ron insisted on journeying to ever more 
unlikely places simply, Harry was aware, to keep them moving. 

You never know, was Rons constant refrain. Upper Flagley is a Wizarding 
village, he mightve wanted to live there. Lets go and have a poke around. 

These frequent forays into Wizarding territory brought them within occasional 
sight of Snatchers. 

Some of them are supposed to be as bad as Death Eaters, said Ron. The lot that 
got me were a bit pathetic, but Bill recons some of them are really dangerous. They said 
on Potterwatch --- 

On what? said Harry. 

Potterwatch, didnt I tell you thats what it was called? The program I keep 
trying to get on the radio, the only one that tells the truth about whats going on! Nearly 
all of the programs are following You-Know-Whos line, all except Potterwatch, I really 
want you to hear it, but its tricky tuning in 

Ron spent evening after evening using his wand to beat out various rhythms on 
top of the wireless while the dials whirled. Occasionally they would catch snatches of 
advice on how to treat dragonpox, and once a few bars of A Cauldron Full of Hot, 
Strong Love. While he taped, Ron continued to try to hit on the correct password, 
muttering strings of random words under his breath. 

Theyre normally something to do with the Order, he told them. Bill had a real 
knack for guessing them. Im bound to get one in the end 


But not until March did luck favor Ron at last. Harry was sitting in the tent 
entrance, on guard duty, staring idly at a clump of grape hyacinths that had forced their 
way through the chilly ground, when Ron shouted excitedly from inside the tent. 

Ive got it, Ive got it! Password was Albus! Get in here, Harry. 

Roused for the first time in days from his contemplation of the Deathly Hallows, 
Harry hurried back inside the tent to find Ron and Hermione kneeling on the floor beside 
the little radio. Hermione, who had been polishing the sword of Gryffindor just for 
something to do, was sitting open-mouthed, staring at the tiny speaker, from which a 
most familiar voice was issuing. 

apologize for our temporary absence from the airwaves, which was due to a 
number of house calls in our area by those charming Death Eaters. 

But thats Lee Jordan! said Hermione. 

I know! beamed Ron. Cool, eh? 

now found ourselves another secure location, Lee was saying, and Im 
pleased to tell you that two of our regular contributors have joined me here this evening. 
Evening, boys! 

Hi. 

Evening, River. 

River thats Lee, Ron explained. Theyve all got code names, but you can 
usually tell --- 

Shh! said Hermione. 

But before we hear from Royal and Romulus, Lee went on, lets take a 
moment to report those deaths that the Wizarding Wireless Network News and Daily 
Prophet dont think important enough to mention. It is with great regret that we inform 
our listeners of the murders of Ted Tonks and Dirk Cresswell. 

Harry felt a sick, swooping in his belly. He, Ron, and Hermione gazed at one 
another in horror. 

A goblin by the name of Gornuk was also killed. It is believed that Muggle-born 
Dean Thomas and a second goblin, both believed to have been traveling with Tonks, 
Cresswell, and Gornuk, may have escaped. If Dean is listening, or if anyone has any 
knowledge of his whereabouts, his parents and sisters are desperate for news. 

Meanwhile, in Gaddley, a Muggle family of five has been found dead in their 
home. Muggle authorities are attributing their deaths to a gas leak, but members of the 
Order of the Phoenix inform me that it was the Killing Curse --- more evidence, as if it 
were needed, of the fact that Muggle slaughter is becoming little more than a recreational 
sport under the new regime. 

Finally, we regret to inform our listeners that the remains of Bathilda Bagshot 
have been discovered in Godrics Hollow. The evidence is that she died several months 
ago. The Order of the Phoenix informs us that her body showed unmistakable signs of 
injuries inflicted by Dark Magic. 

Listeners, Id like to invite you now to join us in a minutes silence in memory of 
Ted Tonks, Dirk Cresswell, Bathilda Bagshot, Gornuk, and the unnamed, but no less 
regretted, Muggles murdered by the Death Eaters. 

Silence fell, and Harry, Ron, and Hermione did not speak. Half of Harry yearned 
to hear more, half of him was afraid of what might come next. It was the first time he had 
felt fully connected to the outside world for a long time. 


Thank you, said Lees voice. And now we can return to regular contributor 
Royal, for an update on how the new Wizarding order is affecting the Muggle world. 

Thanks, River, said an unmistakable voice, deep, measured, reassuring. 

Kingsley! burst out Ron. 

We know! said Hermione, hushing him. 

Muggles remain ignorant of the source of their suffering as they continue to 
sustain heavy casualties, said Kingsley. However, we continue to hear truly 
inspirational stories of wizards and witches risking their own safety to protect Muggle 
friends and neighbors, often without the Muggles knowledge. Id like to appeal to all our 
listeners to emulate their example, perhaps by casting a protective charm over any 
Muggle dwellings in your street. Many lives could be saved if such simple measures are 
taken. 

And what would you say, Royal, to those listeners who reply that in these 
dangerous times, it should be Wizards first? asked Lee. 

Id say that its one short step from Wizards first to Purebloods first, and then 
to Death Eaters, replied Kingsley. Were all human, arent we? Every human life is 
worth the same, and worth saving. 

Excellently put, Royal, and youve got my vote for Minister of Magic if we ever 
get out of this mess, said Lee. And now, over to Romulus for our popular feature Pals 
of Potter. 

Thanks, River, said another very familiar voice. Ron started to speak, but 
Hermione forestalled him in a whisper. 

We know its Lupin! 

Romulus, do you maintain, as you have every time youve appeared on our 
program, that Harry Potter is still alive? 

I do, said Lupin firmly. There is no doubt at all in my mind that his death 
would be proclaimed as widely as possible by the Death Eaters if it had happened, 
because it would strike a deadly blow at the morale of those resisting the new regime. 
The Boy Who Lived remains a symbol of everything for which we are fighting: the 
triumph of good, the power of innocence, the need to keep resisting. 

A mixture of gratitude and shame welled up in Harry. Had Lupin forgiven him, 
then, for the terrible things he had said when they had last met? 

And what would you say to Harry if you knew he was listening, Romulus? 

Id tell him were all with him in spirit, said Lupin, then hesitated slightly, 
And Id tell him to follow his instincts, which are good and nearly always right. 

Harry looked at Hermione, whose eyes were full of tears. 

Nearly always right, she repeated. 

Oh, didnt I tell you? said Ron in surprise. Bill told me Lupins living with 
Tonks again! And apparently shes getting pretty big too 

and our usual update on those friends of Harry Potters who are suffering for 
their allegiance? Lee was saying. 

 Well, as regular listeners will know, several of the more outspoken supporters of 
Harry Potter have now been imprisoned, including Xenophilius Lovegood, erstwhile 
editor of The Quibbler, said Lupin. 

 At least hes still alive! muttered Ron. 


 We have also heard within the last few hours that Rubeus Hagrid C all three of 
them gasped, and so nearly missed the rest of the sentence -- well-known gamekeeper at 
Hogwarts School, has narrowly escaped arrest within the grounds of Hogwarts, where he 
is rumored to have hosted a Support Harry Potter party in his house. However, Hagrid 
was not taken into custody, and is, we believe, on the run. 

 I suppose it helps, when escaping from Death Eaters, if youve got a sixteen-
foot-high half brother? asked Lee. 

 It would tend to give you an edge, agreed Lupin gravely. May I just add that 
while we here at Potterwatch applaud Hagrids spirit, we would urge even the most 
devoted of Harrys supporters against following Hagrids lead. Support Harry Potter 
parties are unwise in the present climate. 

 Indeed they are, Romulus, said Lee, so we suggest that you continue to show 
your devotion to the man with the lightning scar by listening to Potterwatch! And now 
lets move to news concerning the wizard who is proving just as elusive as Harry Potter. 
We like to refer to him as the Chief Death Eater, and here to give his views on some of 
the more insane rumors circulating about him, Id like to introduce a new correspondent. 
Rodent? 

 Rodent? said yet another familiar voice, and Harry, Ron, and Hermione cried 
out together: 

 Fred! 

 No C is it George? 

 Its Fred, I think, said Ron, leaning in closer, as whichever twin it was said, 

 Im not being Rodent, no way, I told you I wanted to be Rapier! 

 Oh, all right then, Rapier, could you please give us your take on the various 
stories weve been hearing about the Chief Death Eater? 

 Yes, River, I can, said Fred. As our listeners will know, unless theyve taken 
refuge at the bottom of a garden pond or somewhere similar, You-Know-Whos strategy 
of remaining in the shadows is creating a nice little climate of panic. Mind you, if all the 
alleged sightings of him are genuine, we must have a good nineteen You-Know-Whos 
running around the place. 

 Which suits him, of course, said Kingsley. The air of mystery is creating more 
terror than actually showing himself. 

 Agreed, said Fred. So, people, lets try and calm down a bit. Things are bad 
enough without inventing stuff as well. For instance, this new idea that You-Know-Who 
can kill people with a single glance from his eyes. Thats a basilisk, listeners. One simple 
test: Check whether the thing thats glaring at you has got legs. If it has, its safe to look 
into its eyes, although if it really is You-Know-Who, thats still likely to be the last thing 
you ever do. 

 For the first time in weeks and weeks, Harry was laughing: He could feel the 
weight of tension leaving him. 

 And the rumors that he keeps being sighted abroad? asked Lee. 

 Well, who wouldnt want a nice little holiday after all the hard work hes been 
putting in? asked Fred. Point is, people, dont get lulled into a false sense of security, 
thinking hes out of the country. Maybe he is, maybe he isnt, but the fact remains he can 
move faster than Severus Snape confronted with shampoo when he wants to, so dont 


count on him being a long way away if youre planning to take any risks. I never thought 
Id hear myself say it, but safety first! 

 Thank you very much for those wise words, Rapier, said Lee. Listeners, that 
brings us to the end of another Potterwatch. We dont know when it will be possible to 
broadcast again, but you can be sure we shall be back. Keep twiddling those dials: The 
next password will be Mad-Eye. Keep each other safe: Keep faith. Good night. 

 The radios dial twirled and the lights behind the tuning panel went out. Harry, 
Ron, and Hermione were still beaming. Hearing familiar, friendly voices was an 
extraordinary tonic; Harry had become so used to their isolation he had nearly forgotten 
that other people were resisting Voldemort. It was like waking from a long sleep. 

 Good, eh? said Ron happily. 

 Brilliant, said Harry. 

 Its so brave of them, sighed Hermione admiringly. If they were found  

 Well, they keep on the move, dont they? said Ron. Like us. 

 But did you hear what Fred said? asked Harry excitedly; now the broadcast was 
over, his thoughts turned around toward his all consuming obsession. Hes abroad! Hes 
still looking for the Wand, I knew it! 

 Harry 

 Come on, Hermione, why are you so determined not to admit it? Vol C 

 HARRY, NO! 

 demorts after the Elder Wand! 

 The names Taboo! Ron bellowed, leaping to his feet as a loud crack sounded 
outside the tent. I told you, Harry, I told you, we cant say it anymore C weve got to put 
the protection back around us C quickly C its how they find C 

 But Ron stopped talking, and Harry knew why. The Sneakoscope on the table had 
lit up and begun to spin; they could hear voices coming nearer and nearer: rough, excited 
voices. Ron pulled the Deluminator out of his pocket and clicked it: Their lamps went out. 

 Come out of there with your hands up! came a rasping voice through the 
darkness. We know youre in there! Youve got half a dozen wands pointing at you and 
we dont care who we curse! 

 

 

Chapter Twenty-Three 

Malfoy Manor 

 

Harry looked around at the other two, now mere outlines in the darkness. He saw 
Hermione point her wand, set toward the outside, but into his face; there was a bang, a 
burst of white light, and he buckled in agony, unable to see. He could feel his face 
swelling rapidly under his hands as heavy footfalls surrounded him. 

 "Get up, vermin." 

 Unknown hands dragged Harry roughly off the ground, before he could stop them, 
someone had rummaged through his pockets and removed the blackthorn wand. Harry 
clutched at his excruciatingly painful face, which felt unrecognizable beneath his fingers, 
tight, swollen, and puffy as though he had suffered some violent allergic reaction. His 


eyes had been reduced to slits through which he could barely see; his glasses fell off as he 
was bundled out of the tent: all he could make out were the blurred shapes of four or five 
people wrestling Ron and Hermione outside too. 

 "Get -- off - her!" Ron shouted. There was the unmistakable sound of knuckles 
hitting flesh: Ron grunted in pain and Hermione screamed, "No! Leave him alone, leave 
him alone!" 

 "Your boyfriend's going to have worse than that done to him if he's on my list," 
said the horribly familiar, rasping voice. "Delicious girl... what a treat . . . I do enjoy the 
softness of the skin. . . ." 

 Harry's stomach turned over. He knew who this was, Fenrit Greyback, the 
werewolf who was permitted to wear Death Eater robes in return for his hired savagery. 

 "Search the tent!" said another voice. 

 Harry was thrown face down onto the ground. A thud told him that Ron had been 
cast down beside him. They could hear footsteps and crashes; the men were pushing over 
chairs inside the tent as they searched. 

 "Now, let's see who we've got," said Greyback's gloating voice from overhead, 
and Harry was rolled over onto his back. A beam of wand light fell onto his face and 
Greyback laughed. 

 "I'll be needing butterbeer to wash this one down. What happened to you, ugly?" 

 Harry did not answer immediately. 

 "I said," repeated Greyback, and Harry received a blow to the diaphragm that 
made him double over in pain. "what happened to you?" 

 "Stung." Harry muttered. "Been Stung." 

 "Yeah, looks like it." said a second voice. 

 "Whats your name?" snarled Greyback. 

 "Dudley." said Harry. 

 "And your first name?" 

 "I -- Vernon. Vernon Dudley." 

 "Check the list, Scabior." said Greyback, and Harry head him move sideways to 
look down at Ron, instead. "And what about you, ginger?" 

 "Stan Shunpike." said Ron. 

 "Like 'ell you are." said the man called Scabior. "We know Stan Shunpike, 'e's put 
a bit of work our way." 

 There was another thud. 

 "I'b Bardy," said Ron, and Harry could tell that his mouth was full of blood. 
"Bardy Weasley." 

 "A Weasley?" rasped Greyback. "So you're related to blood traitors even if you're 
not a Mudblood. And lastly, your pretty little friend . . ." The relish in his voice made 
Harry's flesh crawl. 

 "Easy, Greyback." said Scabior over the jeering of the others. 

 "Oh, I'm not going to bite just yet. We'll see if shes a bit quicker at remembering 
her name than Barny. Who are you, girly? 

 "Penelope Clearwater." said Hermione. She sounded terrified, but convincing. 

 "What's your blood status?" 

 "Half-Blood." said Hermione. 


 "Easy enough to check," said Scabior. "But the 'ole lot of 'em look like they could 
still be 'ogwarts age -" 

 "We'b lebt," said Ron. 

 "Left, 'ave you, ginger?" said Scabior. "And you decided to go camping? And you 
thought, just for a laugh, you'd use the Dark Lords name?" 

 "Nod a laugh," said Ron. "Aggiden." 

 "Accident?" There was more jeering laughter. 

 "You know who used to like using the Dark Lord's name, Weasley?" growled 
Greyback, "The Order of the Phoenix. Mean anything to you?" 

 "Doh." 

 "Well, they don't show the Dark Lord proper respect, so the name's been Tabooed. 
A few Order members have been tracked that way. We'll see. Bind them up with the 
other two prisoners!" 

 Someone yanked Harry up by the hair, dragged him a short way, pushed him 
down into a sitting position, then started binding him back-to-back with other people. 
Harry was still half blind, barely able to see anything through his puffed-up eyes. When 
at last the man tying then had walked away, Harry whispered to the other prisoners. 

 "Anyone still got a wand?" 

 "No." Said Ron and Hermione from either side of him. 

 "This is all my fault. I said the name. I'm sorry -" 

 "Harry?" 

 It was a new, but familiar voice. and it came from directly behind Harry, from the 
person tied to Hermione's left. 

 "Dean?" 

 "It is you! If they find out who they've got -! They're Snatchers, they're only 
looking for truants to sell for gold -" 

 "Not a bad little haul for one night." Greyback was saying, as a pair of hobnailed 
boots marched close by Harry and they heard more crashes from inside the tent. "A 
Mudblood, a runaway goblin, and these truants. You checked their names on the list yet, 
Scabior?" he roared. 

 "Yeah. There's no Vernon Dudley un 'ere, Greyback." 

 "Interesting," said Greyback. "That's interesting." 

 He crouched down beside Harry, who saw, through the infinitesimal gap left 
between his swollen eyelids, a face covered in matted gray hair and whiskers, with 
pointed brown teeth and sores in the corners of his mouth. Greyback smelled as he had 
done at the top of the tower where Dumbledore had died: of dirt, sweat, and blood. 

 "So you aren't wanted, then, Vernon? Or are you on that list under a different 
name? What house were you in at Hogwarts?" 

 "Slytherin," said Harry automatically. 

 "Funny 'ow they all thinks we wants to 'ear that." leered Scabior out of the 
shadows. "But none of 'em can tell us where the common room is." 

 "It's in the dungeons." said Harry clearly. "You enter through the wall. It's full of 
skulls and stuff and its under the lake, so the light's all green," 

 There was a short pause. 


 "Well, well, looks like we really 'ave caught a little Slytherin." said Scabior. 
"Good for you, Vernon, 'cause there ain't a lot of Mudblood Slytherins. Who's your 
father?" 

 "He works at the Ministry," Harry lied. He knew that his whole story would 
collapse with the smallest investigation, but on the other hand, he only had until his face 
regained its usual appearance before the game was up in any case. "Department of 
Magical Accidents and Catastrophes." 

 "You know what, Greyback," said Scabior. "I think there is a Dudley in there." 

 Harry could barely breathe: Could luck, sheer luck, get them safely out of this? 

 "Well, well." said Greyback, and Harry could hear the tiniest note of trepidation 
in that callous voice, and knew that Greyback was wondering whether he had just indeed 
just attacked and bound the son of a Ministry Official. Harry's heart was pounding against 
the ropes around his ribs; he would not have been surprised to know that Greyback could 
see it. "If you're telling the truth, ugly, you've got nothing to fear from a trip to the 
Ministry. I expect your father'll reward us just for picking you up." 

 "But," said Harry, his mouth bone dry, "if you just let us -" 

 "Hey!" came a shout from inside the tent. "Look at this. Greyback!" 

 A dark figure came bustling toward them, and Harry saw a glint of silver to the 
light of their wands. They had found Gryffindor's sword. 

 "Ve-e-ery nice," said Greyback appreciatively, taking it from his companion. "Oh, 
very nice indeed. Looks goblin-made, that. Where did you get something like this?" 

 "It's my father's," Harry lied, hoping against hope that it was too dark for 
Greyback to see the name etched just below the hilt. "We borrowed it to cut firewood -" 

 "'ang on a minute, Greyback! Look at this, in the Prophet!" 

 As Scabior said it, Harry's scar, which was stretched tight across his distended 
forehead, burned savagely. More clearly than he could make out anything around him, he 
saw a towering building, a grim fortress, jet-black and forbidding: Voldemort's thoughts 
had suddenly become Razor-Sharp again; he was gliding toward the gigantic building 
with a sense of calmly euphoric purpose . . . 

 So close . . . So close . . . 

With a huge effort of will Harry closed his mind to Voldemort's thoughts, pulling himself 
back to where he sat, tied to Ron, Hermione, Dean, and Griphook in the darkness, 
listening to Greyback and Scabior. 

"'Hermione Granger," Scabior was saying, "the Mudblood who is known to be traveling 
with 'arry Potter." 

 Harry's scar burned in the silence, but he made a supreme effort to keep himself 
present, nor to slip into Voldemort's mind. He heard the creak of Greyback's boots as he 
crouched down, in front of Hermione. 

 "you know what, little girly? This picture looks a hell of a lot like you." 

 "It isn't! It isn't me!" 

 Hermione's terrified squeak was as good as a confession. 

 "... known to be traveling with Harry Potter," repeated Greyback quietly. 

 A stillness had settled over the scene. Harry's scar was Exquisitely painful, but he 
struggled with all his strength against the pull of Voldemort's thoughts. It had never been 
so important to remain in his own right mind. 


 "Well, this changed things, doesn't it?" whispered Greyback. Nobody spoke: 
Harry sensed the gang of Snatchers watching, frozen, and felt Hermione's arm trembling 
against his. Greyback got up and took a couple of steps to where Harry sat, crouching 
down again to stare closely at his misshapen features. 

 "What's that on your forehead, Vernon?" he asked softly, his breath foul in 
Harry's nostrils as he pressed a filthy finger to the taught scar. 

 "Don't touch it! Harry yelled; he could not stop himself, he thought he might be 
sick from the pain of it. 

 "I thought you wore glasses, Potter?" breathed Greyback. 

 "I found glasses!" yelped one of the Snatchers skulking in the background. "There 
was glasses in the tent, Greyback, wait -" 

 And seconds later Harry's glasses had been rammed back onto his face. The 
Snatchers were closing in now, peering at him. 

 "It Is!" rasped Greyback. "We've caught Potter!" 

 They all took several steps backward, stunned by what they had done. Harry, still 
fighting to remain present in his own splitting head, could think of nothing to say. 
Fragmented visions were breaking across the surface of his mind - 

 --He was hiding around the high walls of the black fortress-- 

 No, he was Harry, tied up and wandless, in grave danger-- 

 --looking up, up to the topmost window, the highest tower-- 

 He was Harry, and they were discussing his fate in low voices-- 

 --Time to fly . . . 

 ". . . To the Ministry?" 

 "To hell with the Ministry." growled Greyback. "They'll take the credit, and we 
won't get a look in. I say we take him straight to You-Know-Who." 

 "Will you summon 'im? 'ere?" said Scabior, sounding awed, terrified. 

 "No," snarled Greyback, "I haven't got -- they say he's using the Malfoy's place as 
a base. We'll take the boy there." 

 Harry thought he knew why Greyback was not calling Voldemort. The werewolf 
might be allowed to wear Death Eater robes when they wanted to use him, but only 
Voldemort's inner circle were branded with the Dark Mark: Greyback had not been 
granted this highest honor. 

Harrys scar seared again C 

C and he rose into the night, flying straight up to the windows at the very top of 
the tower C 

. . . completely sure its him? Cause if it aint, Greyback, were dead. 

Whos in charge here? roared Greyback, covering his moment of inadequacy. I 
say thats Potter, and him plus his wand, thats two hundred thousand Galleons right 
there! But if youre too gutless to come along, any of you, its all for me, and with any 
luck, Ill get the girl thrown in! 

 C The window was the merest slit in the black rock, not big enough for a man to 
enter. . . . A skeletal figure was just visible through it, curled beneath a blanket. . . . Dead, 
or sleeping . . . ? 

All right! said Scabior. All right, were in! And what about the rest of em, 
Greyback, whatll we do with em? 


Might as well take the lot. Weve got two Mudbloods, thats another ten 
Galleons. Give me the sword as well. If theyre rubies, thats another small fortune right 
there. 

The prisoners were dragged to their feet. Harry could hear Hermiones breathing, 
fast and terrified. 

Grab hold and make it tight. Ill do Potter! said Greyback, seizing a fistful of 
Harrys hair; Harry could feel his long yellow nails scratching his scalp. On three! One C 
two C three C 

They Disapparated, pulling the prisoners with them. Harry struggled, trying to 
throw off Greybacks hand, but it was hopeless: Ron and Hermione were squeezed tightly 
against him on either side; he could not separate from the group, and as the breath was 
squeezed out of him his scar seared more painfully still C 

 C as he forced himself through the slit of a window like a snake and landed, 
lightly as vapor inside the cell-like room C 

 The prisoners lurched into one another as they landed in a country lane. Harrys 
eyes, still puffy, took a moment to acclimatize, then he saw a pair of wrought-iron gates 
at the foot of what looked like a long drive. He experienced the tiniest trickle of relief. 
The worst had not happened yet: Voldemort was not here. He was, Harry knew, for he 
was fighting to resist the vision, in some strange, fortresslike place, at the top of a tower. 
How long it would take Voldemort to get to this place, once he knew that Harry was here, 
was another matter. . . . 

 One of the Snatchers strode to the gates and shook them. 

 How do we get in? Theyre locked, Greyback, I cant C blimey! 

 He whipped his hands away in fright. The iron was contorting, twisting itself out 
of the abstract furls and coils into a frightening face, which spoke in a clanging, echoing 
voice. State your purpose! 

 Weve got Potter! Greyback roared triumphantly. Weve captured Harry 
Potter! 

 The gates swung open. 

 Come on! said Greyback to his men, and the prisoners were shunted through the 
gates and up the drive, between high hedges that muffled their footsteps. Harry saw a 
ghostly white shape above him, and realized it was an albino peacock. He stumbled and 
was dragged onto his feet by Greyback; now he was staggering along sideways, tied 
back-to-back to the four other prisoner. Closing his puffy eyes, he allowed the pain in his 
scar to overcome him for a moment, wanting to know what Voldemort was doing, 
whether he knew yet that Harry was caught. . . . 

 The emaciated figure stirred beneath its thin blanket and rolled over toward him, 
eyes opening in a skull of a face. . . . The frail man sat up, great sunken eyes fixed upon 
him, upon Voldemort, and then he smiled. Most of his teeth were gone. . . . 

 So, you have come. I thought you would . . . one day. But your journey was 
pointless. I never had it. 

 You lie! 

 As Voldemorts anger throbbed inside him, Harrys scar threatened to burst with 
pain, and he wrenched his mind back to his own body, fighting to remain present as the 
prisoners were pushed over gravel. 


 Light spilled out over all of them. 

 What is this? said a womans cold voice. 

 Were here to see He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named! rasped Greyback. 

 Who are you? 

 You know me! There was resentment in the werewolfs voice. Fenrit 
Greyback! Weve caught Harry Potter! 

 Greyback seized Harry and dragged him around to face the light, forcing the other 
prisoners to shuffle around too. 

 I know es swollen, maam, but its im! piped up Scabior. If you look a bit 
closer, youll see is scar. And this ere, see the girl? The Mudblood whos been traveling 
around with im, maam. Theres no doubt its im, and weve got is wand as well! Ere, 
maam C 

 Through his puffy eyelids Harry saw Narcissa Malfoy scrutinizing his swollen 
face. Scabior thrust the blackthorn wand at her. She raised her eyebrows. 

 Bring them in, she said. 

 Harry and the others were shoved and kicked up broad stone steps into a hallway 
lined with portraits. 

 Follow me, said Narcissa, leading the way across the hall. My son, Draco, is 
home for his Easter holidays. If that is Harry Potter, he will know. 

 The drawing room dazzled after the darkness outside; even with his eyes almost 
closed Harry could make out the wide proportions of the room. A crystal chandelier hung 
from the ceiling, more portraits against the dark purple walls. Two figures rose from 
chairs in front of an ornate marble fireplace as the prisoners were forced into the room by 
the Snatchers. 

 What is this? 

 The dreadfully familiar, drawling voice of Lucius Malfoy fell on Harrys ears. He 
was panicking now. He could see no way out, and it was easier, as his fear mounted, to 
block out Voldemorts thoughts, though his scar was still burning. 

 They say theyve got Potter, said Narcissas cold voice. Draco, come here. 
Harry did not dare look directly at Draco, but saw him obliquely; a figure slightly 
taller than he was, rising from an armchair, his face a pale and pointed blur beneath 
white-blond hair. 

 Greyback forced the prisoners to turn again so as to place Harry directly beneath 
the chandelier. 

 Well, boy? rasped the werewolf. 

 Harry was facing a mirror over the fireplace, a great gilded thing in an intricately 
scrolled frame. Through the slits of his eyes he saw his own reflection for the first time 
since leaving Grimmauld Place. 

 His face was huge, shiny, and pink, every feature distorted by Hermiones jinx. 
His black hair reached his shoulders and there was a dark shadow around his jaw. Had he 
not known that it was he who stood there, he would have wondered who was wearing his 
glasses. He resolved not to speak, for his voice was sure to give him away; yet he still 
avoided eye contact with Draco as the latter approached. 

 Well, Draco? said Lucius Malfoy. He sounded avid. Is it? Is it Harry Potter? 
I cant C I cant be sure, said Draco. He was keeping his distance from 
Greyback, and seemed as scared of looking at Harry as Harry was of looking at him. 


 But look at him carefully, look! Come closer! 

 Harry had never heard Lucius Malfoy so excited. 

 Draco, if we are the ones who hand Potter over to the Dark Lord, everything will 
be forgiv C 

 Now, we wont be forgetting who actually caught him, I hope Mr. Malfoy? said 
Greyback menacingly. 

 Of course not, of course not! said Lucius impatiently. He approached Harry 
himself, came so close that Harry could see the usually languid, pale face in sharp detail 
even through his swollen eyes. With his face a puffy mask, Harry felt as though he was 
peering out from between the bars of a cage. 

 What did you do to him? Lucius asked Greyback. How did he get into this 
state? 

 That wasnt us. 
Looks more like a Stinging Jinx to me, said Lucius. 

 His gray eyes raked Harrys forehead. 

 Theres something there, he whispered. it could be the scar, stretched 
tight. . . . Draco, come here, look properly! What do you think? 

 Harry saw Dracos face up close now, right beside his fathers. They were 
extraordinarily alike, except that while his father looked beside himself with excitement, 
Dracos expression was full of reluctance, even fear. 

 I dont know, he said, and he walked away toward the fireplace where his 
mother stood watching. 

 We had better be certain, Lucius, Narcissa called to her husband in her cold, 
clear voice. Completely sure that it is Potter, before we summon the Dark Lord . . . They 
say this is his C she was looking closely at the blackthorn wand C but it does not 
resemble Ollivanders description. . . . If we are mistaken, if we call the Dark Lord here 
for nothing . . . Remember what he did to Rowle and Dolohov? 

 What about the Mudblood, then? growled Greyback. Harry was nearly thrown 
off his feet as the Snatchers forced the prisoners to swivel around again, so that the light 
fell on Hermione instead. 

 Wait, said Narcissa sharply. Yes C yes, she was in Madam Malkins with 
Potter! I saw her picture in the Prophet! Look, Draco, isnt it the Granger girl? 

 I . . . maybe . . . yeah. 

 But then, thats the Weasley boy! shouted Lucius, striding around the bound 
prisoners to face Ron. Its them, Potters friends C Draco, look at him, isnt it Arthur 
Weasleys son, whats his name C ? 

 Yeah, said Draco again, his back to the prisoners. It could be. 

 The drawing room door opened behind Harry. A woman spoke, and the sound of 
the voice wound Harrys fear to an even higher pitch. 

 What is this? Whats happened, Cissy? 

 Bellatrix Lestrange walked slowly around the prisoners, and stopped on Harrys 
right, staring at Hermione through her heavily lidded eyes, 

 But surely, she said quietly, this is the Mudblood girl? This is Grander? 

 Yes, yes, its Granger! cried Lucius, And beside her, we think, Potter! Potter 
and his friends, caught at last! 
Potter? shrieked Bellatrix, and she backed away, the better to take in Harry. 


Are you sure? Well then, the Dark Lord must be informed at once! 
She dragged back her left sleeve: Harry saw the Dark Mark burned into the flesh 
of her arm, and knew that she was about to touch it, to summon her beloved masterC 

 I was about to call him! said Lucius, and his hand actually closed upon 
Bellatrixs wrist, preventing her from touching the Mark. I shall summon him, Bella. 
Potter has been brought to my house, and it is therefore upon my authority C 

 Your authority! she sneered, attempting to wrench her hand from his grasp. 
You lost your authority when you lost your wand, Lucius! How dare you! Take your 
hands off me! 

 This is nothing to do with you, you did not capture the boy C 

 Begging your pardon, Mr. Malfoy, interjected Greyback, but its us that caught 
Potter, and its us thatll be claiming the gold C 

 Gold! laughed Bellatrix, still attempting to throw off her brother-in-law, her 
free hand groping in her pocket for her wand. Take your gold, filthy scavenger, what do 
I want with gold? I seek only the honor of his C of C 

 She stopped struggling, her dark eyes fixed upon something Harry could not see. 
Jubilant at her capitulation, Lucius threw her hand from him and ripped up his own sleeve 
C 

 STOP! shrieked Bellatrix, Do not touch it, we shall all perish if the Dark Lord 
comes now! 

 Lucius froze, his index finger hovering over his own Mark. Bellatrix strode out of 
Harrys limited line of vision. 

 What is that? he heard her say. 

 Sword, grunted an out-of-sight Snatcher. 

 Give it to me. 

 Its not yours, missus, its mine, I reckon I found it. 

 There was a bang and a flash of red light; Harry knew that the Snatcher had been 
Stunned. There was a roar of anger from his fellows: Scabior drew his wand. 

 What dyou think youre playing at, woman? 

 Stupefy! she screamed, Stupefy! 

 They were no match for her, even thought there were four of them against one of 
her: She was a witch, as Harry knew, with prodigious skill and no conscience. They fell 
where they stood, all except Greyback, who had been forced into a kneeling position, his 
arms outstretched. Out of the corners of his eyes Harry saw Bellatrix bearing down upon 
the werewolf, the sword of Gryffindor gripped tightly in her hand, her face waxen. 

 Where did you get this sword? she whispered to Greyback as she pulled his 
wand out of his unresisting grip. 

 How dare you? he snarled, his mouth the only thing that could move as he was 
forced to gaze up at her. He bared his pointed teeth. Release me, woman! 
Where did you find this sword? she repeated, brandishing it in his face, Snape 
sent it to my vault in Gringotts! 

 It was in their tent, rasped Greyback. Release me, I say! 

 She waved her wand, and the werewolf sprang to his feet, but appeared too wary 
to approach her. He prowled behind an armchair, his filthy curved nails clutching its back. 

 Draco, move this scum outside, said Bellatrix, indicating the unconscious men. 
If you havent got the guts to finish them, then leave them in the courtyard for me. 


 Dont you dare speak to Draco like C said Narcissa furiously, but Bellatrix 
screamed. 

 Be quiet! The situation is graver than you can possibly imagine, Cissy! We have 
a very serious problem! 

 She stood, panting slightly, looking down at the sword, examining its hilt. Then 
she turned to look at the silent prisoners. 

 If it is indeed Potter, he must not be harmed, she muttered, more to herself than 
to the others. The Dark Lord wishes to dispose of Potter himself. . . . But if he finds 
out . . . I must . . . I must know. . . . 

 She turned back to her sister again. 

The prisoners must be placed in the cellar, while I think what to do! 
This is my house, Bella, you dont give orders in my C 

Do it! You have no idea of the danger were in! shrieked Bellatrix. She looked 
frightening, mad; a thin stream of fire issued from her wand and burned a hole in the 
carpet. 

Narcissa hesitated for a moment, then addressed the werewolf. 

Take these prisoners down to the cellar, Greyback. 

Wait, said Bellatrix sharply. All except. . . . except for the Mudblood. 
Greyback gave a grunt of pleasure. 

No! shouted Ron. You can have me, keep me! 
Bellatrix hit him across the face: the blow echoed around the room. 

If she dies under questioning, Ill take you next, she said. Blood traitor is next 
to Mudblood in my book. Take them downstairs, Greyback, and make sure they are 
secure, but do nothing more to them C yet. 

She threw Greybacks wand back to him, then took a short silver knife from under 
her robes. She cut Hermione free from the other prisoners, then dragged her by the hair 
into the middle of the room, while Greyback forced the rest of them to shuffle across to 
another door, into a dark passageway, his wand held out in front of him, projecting an 
invisible and irresistible force. 

Reckon shell let me have a bit of the girl when shes finished with her? 
Greyback crooned as he forced them along the corridor. Id say Ill get a bite or two, 
wouldnt you, ginger? 

Harry could feel Ron shaking. They were forced down a steep flight of stairs, still 
tied back-to-back and in danger of slipping and breaking their necks at any moment. At 
the bottom was a heavy door. Greyback unlocked it with a tap of his wand, then forced 
them into a dank and musty room and left them in total darkness. The echoing bang of the 
slammed cellar door had not died away before there was a terrible, drawn out scream 
from directly above them. 

HERMIONE! Ron bellowed, and he started to writhe and struggle against the 
ropes tying them together, so that Harry staggered. HERMIONE! 

Be quiet! Harry said. Shut up. Ron, we need to work out a way C 

HERMIONE! HERMIONE! 

We need a plan, stop yelling C we need to get these ropes off C 

Harry? came a whisper through the darkness. Ron? Is that you? 

Ron stopped shouting. There was a sound of movement close by them, then Harry 
saw a shadow moving closer. 


Harry? Ron? 

Luna? 

Yes, its me! Oh no, I didnt want you to be caught! 

Luna, can you help us get these ropes off? said Harry. 

Oh yes, I expect so. . . . Theres an old nail we use if we need to break 
anything. . . . Just a moment . . . 

Hermione screamed again from overhead, and they could hear Bellatrix 
screaming too, but her words were inaudible, for Ron shouted again, HERMIONE! 
HERMIONE! 

Mr. Ollivander? Harry could hear Luna saying. Mr. Ollivander, have you got 
the nail? If you just move over a little bit . . . I think it was beside the water jug. 

She was back within seconds. 

Youll need to stay still, she said. 

Harry could feel her digging at the ropes tough fibers to work the knots free. 
From upstairs they heard Bellatrixs voice. 

Im going to ask you again! Where did you get this sword? Where? 

We found it C we found it C PLEASE! Hermione screamed again; Ron 
struggled harder than ever, and the rusty nail slipped onto Harrys wrist. 

Ron, please stay still! Luna whispered. I cant see what Im doing C 

My pocket! said Ron, In my pocket, theres a Deluminator, and its full of 
light! 

A few seconds later, there was a click, and the luminescent spheres the 
Deluminator had sucked from the lamps in the tent flew into the cellar: Unable to rejoin 
their sources, they simply hung there, like tiny suns, flooding the underground room with 
light. Harry saw Luna, all eyes in her white face, and the motionless figure of Ollivander 
the wandmaker, curled up on the floor in the corner. Craning around, he caught sight of 
their fellow prisoners: Dean and Griphook the goblin, who seemed barely conscious, kept 
standing by the ropes that bound him to the humans. 

Oh, thats much easier, thanks, Ron, said Luna, and she began hacking at their 
bindings again. Hello, Dean! 

From above came Bellatrixs voice. 

Youre lying, filthy Mudblood, and I know it! You have been inside my vault at 
Gringotts! Tell the truth, tell the truth! 

Another terrible screamC 

HERMIONE! 

What else did you take? What else have you got? Tel me the truth or, I swear, I 
shall run you through with this knife! 

There! 

Harry felt the ropes fall away and turned, rubbing his wrists, to see Ron running 
around the cellar, looking up at the low ceiling, searching for a trapdoor. Dean, his face 
bruised and bloody, said Thanks to Luna and stood there, shivering, but Griphook sank 
onto the cellar floor, looking groggy and disoriented, many welts across his swarthy face. 

Ron was now trying to Disapparate without a wand. 

Theres no way out, Ron, said Luna, watching his fruitless efforts. The cellar 
is completely escape-proof. I tried, at first. Mr. Ollivander has been here for a long time, 
hes tried everything. 


Hermione was screaming again: The sound went through Harry like physical pain. 
Barely conscious of the fierce prickling of his scar, he too started to run around the cellar, 
feeling the walls for he hardly knew what, knowing in his heart that it was useless. 

What else did you take, what else? ANSWER ME! CRUCIO! 

Hermiones screams echoed off the walls upstairs, Ron was half sobbing as he 
pounded the walls with his fists, and Harry in utter desperation seized Hagrids pouch 
from around his neck and groped inside it: He pulled out Dumbledores Snitch and shook 
it, hoping for he did not know what C nothing happened C he waved the broken halves of 
the phoenix wand, but they were lifeless C the mirror fragment fell sparkling to the floor, 
and he saw a gleam of brightest blue C 

Dumbledores eye was gazing at him out of the mirror. 

Help us! he yelled at it in mad desperation. Were in the cellar of Malfoy 
Manor, help us! 

The eye blinked and was gone. 

Harry was not even sure that it had really been there. He tilted the shard of mirror 
this way and that, and saw nothing reflected there but the walls and ceiling of their prison, 
and upstairs Hermione was screaming worse than ever, and next to him Ron was 
bellowing, HERMIONE! HERMIONE! 

How did you get into my vault? they heard Bellatrix scream. Did that dirty 
little goblin in the cellar help you? 

We only met him tonight! Hermione sobbed. Weve never been inside your 
vault. . . . It isnt the real sword! Its a copy, just a copy! 

A copy? screeched Bellatrix. Oh, a likely story! 

But we can find out easily! came Luciuss voice. Draco, fetch the goblin, he 
can tell us whether the sword is real or not! 

Harry dashed across the cellar to where Griphook was huddled on the floor. 

Griphook, he whispered into the goblins pointed ear, you must tell them that 
swords a fake, they mustnt know its the real one, Griphook, please C 

He could hear someone scuttling own the cellar steps; next moment, Dracos 
shaking voice spoke from behind the door. 

Stand back. Line up against the back wall. Dont try anything, or Ill kill you! 

They did as they were bidden; as the lock turned, Ron clicked the Deluminator 
and the lights whisked back into his pocket, restoring the cellars darkness. The door flew 
open; Malfoy marched inside, wand held out in front of him, pale and determined. He 
seized the little goblin by the arm and backed out again, dragging Griphook with him. 
The door slammed shut and at the same moment a loud crack echoed inside the cellar. 

Ron clicked the Deluminator. Three balls of light flew back into the air from his 
pocket, revealing Dobby the house-elf, who had just Apparated into their midst. 

DOB C ! 

Harry hit Ron on the arm to stop him shouting, and Ron looked terrified at his 
mistake. Footsteps crossed the ceiling overhead: Draco marching Griphook to Bellatrix. 

Dobbys enormous, tennis-ball shaped eyes were wide; he was trembling from his 
feet to the tips of his ears. He was back in the home of his old masters, and it was clear 
that he was petrified. 

Harry Potter, he squeaked in the tiniest quiver of a voice, Dobby has come to 
rescue you. 


But how did you C ? 

An awful scream drowned Harrys words: Hermione was being tortured again. He 
cut to the essentials. 

You can Disapparate out of this cellar? he asked Dobby, who nodded, his ears 
flapping. 

And you can take humans with you? 

Dobby nodded again. 

Right. Dobby, I want you to grab Luna, Dean, and Mr. Ollivander, and take them 
C take them to C 

Bill and Fleurs, said Ron. Shell Cottage on the outskirts of Tinworth! 

The elf nodded for a third time. 

And then come back, said Harry. Can you do that, Dobby? 

Of course, Harry Potter, whispered the little elf. He hurried over to Mr. 
Ollivander, who appeared to be barely conscious. He took one of the wandmakers hands 
in his own, then held out the other to Luna and Dean, neither of whom moved. 

Harry, we want to help you! Luna whispered. 

We cant leave you here, said Dean. 

Go, both of you! Well see you at Bill and Fleurs. 

As Harry spoke, his scar burned worse than ever, and for a few seconds he looked 
down, not upon the wandmaker, but on another man who was just as old, just as thin, but 
laughing scornfully. 

Kill me, then. Voldemort, I welcome death! But my death will not bring you what 
you seek. . . . There is so much you do not understand. . . 

He felt Voldemorts fury, but as Hermione screamed again he shut it out, 
returning to the cellar and the horror of his own present. 

Go! Harry beseeched to Luna and Dean. Go! Well follow, just go! 

They caught hold of the elfs outstretched fingers. There was another loud crack, 
and Dobby, Luna, Dean, and Ollivander vanished. 

What was that? shouted Lucius Malfoy from over their heads. Did you hear 
that? What was that noise in the cellar? 

Harry and Ron stared at each other. 

Draco C no, call Wormtail! Make him go and check! 

Footsteps crossed the room overhead, then there was silence. Harry knew that the 
people in the drawing room were listening for more noises from the cellar. 

Were going to have to try and tackle him, he whispered to Ron. They had no 
choice: The moment anyone entered the room and saw the absence of three prisoners, 
they were lost. Leave the lights on, Harry added, and as they heard someone 
descending the steps outside the door, they backed against the wall on either side of it. 

Stand back, came Wormtails voice. Stand away from the door. Im coming 
in. 
The door flew open. For a split second Wormtail gazed into the apparently empty cellar, 
ablaze with light from the three miniature suns floating in midair. Then Harry and Ron 
launched themselves upon him. Ron seized Wormtails wand arm and forced it upwards. 
Harry slapped a hand to his mouth, muffling his voice. Silently they struggled: 
Wormtails wand emitted sparks; his silver hand closed around Harrys throat. 

What is it, Wormtail? called Lucius Malfoy from above. 


Nothing! Ron called back, in a passable imitation of Wormtails wheezy voice. 
All fine! 

Harry could barely breathe. 

Youre going to kill me? Harry choked, attempting to prise off the metal fingers. 
After I saved your life? You owe me, Wormtail! 

The silver fingers slackened. Harry had not expected it: He wrenched himself free, 
astonished, keeping his hand over Wormtails mouth. He saw the ratlike mans small 
watery eyes widen with fear and surprise: He seemed just as shocked as Harry at what his 
hand had done, at the tiny, merciful impulse it had betrayed, and he continued to struggle 
more powerfully, as though to undo that moment of weakness. 

And well have that, whispered Ron, tugging Wormtails wand from his other 
hand. 

Wandless, helpless, Pettigrews pupils dilated in terror. His eyes had slid from 
Harrys face to something else. His own silver fingers were moving inexorably toward 
his own throat. 

No C 

Without pausing to think, Harry tried to drag back the hand, but there was no 
stopping it. The silver tool that Voldemort had given his most cowardly servant had 
turned upon its disarmed and useless owner; Pettigrew was reaping his reward for his 
hesitation, his moment of pity; he was being strangled before their eyes. 

No! 

Ron had released Wormtail too, and together he and Harry tried to pull the 
crushing metal fingers from around Wormtails throat, but it was no use. Pettigrew was 
turning blue. 

Relashio! said Ron, pointing the wand at the silver hand, but nothing happened; 
Pettigrew dropped to his knees, and at the same moment, Hermione gave a dreadful 
scream from overhead. Wormtails eyes rolled upward in his purple face; he gave a last 
twitch, and was still. 

Harry and Ron looked at each other, then leaving Wormtails body on the floor 
behind them, ran up the stairs and back into the shadowy passageway leading to the 
drawing room. Cautiously they crept along it until they reached the drawing room door, 
which was ajar. Now they had a clear view of Bellatrix looking down at Griphook, who 
was holding Gryffindors sword in his long-fingered hands. Hermione was lying at 
Bellatrixs feet. She was barely stirring. 

Well? Bellatrix said to Griphook. Is it the true sword? 

Harry waited, holding his breath, fighting against the prickling of his scar. 

No, said Griphook. It is a fake. 

Are you sure? panted Bellatrix. Quite sure? 

Yes, said the goblin. 

Relief broke across her face, all tension drained from it. 

Good, she said, and with a casual flick of her wand she slashed another deep cut 
into the goblins face, and he dropped with a yell at her feet. She kicked him aside. And 
now, she said in a voice that burst with triumph, we call the Dark Lord! 

And she pushed back her sleeve and touched her forefinger to the Dark Mark. 

At once, Harrys scar felt as though it had split open again. His true surroundings 
vanished: He was Voldemort, and the skeletal wizard before him was laughing 


toothlessly at him; he was enraged at the summons he felt C he had warned them, he had 
told them to summon him for nothing less than Potter. If they were mistaken . . . 

Kill me, then! demanded the old man. You will not win, you cannot win! That 
wand will never, ever be yours C 

And Voldemorts fury broke: A burst of green light filled the prison room and the 
frail old body was lifted from its hard bed and then fell back, lifeless, and Voldemort 
returned to the window, his wrath barely controllable. . . . They would suffer his 
retribution if they had no good reason for calling him back. . . . 

And I think, said Bellatrixs voice, we can dispose of the Mudblood. Greyback, 
take her if you want her. 

NOOOOOOOOOOOO! 

Ron had burst into the drawing room; Bellatrix looked around, shocked; she 
turned her wand to face Ron instead C 

Expelliarmus! he roared, pointing Wormtails wand at Bellatrix, and hers flew 
into the air and was caught by Harry, who had sprinted after Ron. Lucius, Narcissa, 
Draco and Greyback wheeled about; Harry yelled, Stupefy! and Lucius Malfoy 
collapsed onto the hearth. Jets of light flew from Dracos, Narcissas, and Greybacks 
wands; Harry threw himself to the floor, rolling behind a sofa to avoid them. 

STOP OR SHE DIES! 

Panting, Harry peered around the edge of the sofa. Bellatrix was supporting 
Hermione, who seemed to be unconscious, and was holding her short silver knife to 
Hermiones throat. 

Drop your wands, she whispered. Drop them, or well see exactly how filthy 
her blood is! 

Ron stood rigid, clutching Wormtails wand. Harry straightened up, still holding 
Bellatrixs. 

I said, drop them! she screeched, pressing the blade into Hermiones throat: 
Harry saw beads of blood appear there. 

All right! he shouted, and he dropped Bellatrixs wand onto the floor at his feet, 
Ron did the same with Wormtails. Both raised their hands to shoulder height. 

Good! she leered. Draco, pick them up! The Dark Lord is coming, Harry 
Potter! Your death approaches! 

Harry knew it; his scar was bursting with the pain of it, and he could feel 
Voldemort flying through the sky from far away, over a dark and stormy sea, and soon he 
would be close enough to Apparate to them, and Harry could see no way out. 

Now, said Bellatrix softly, as Draco hurried back to her with the wands. Cissy, 
I think we ought to tie these little heroes up again, while Greyback takes care of Miss 
Mudblood. I am sure the Dark Lord will not begrudge you the girl, Greyback, after what 
you have done tonight. 

At the last word there was a peculiar grinding noise from above. All of them 
looked upward in time to see the crystal chandelier tremble; then, with a creak and an 
ominous jingling, it began to fall. Bellatrix was directly beneath it; dropping Hermione, 
she threw herself aside with a scream. The chandelier crashed to the floor in an explosion 
of crystal and chains, falling on top of Hermione and the goblin, who still clutched the 
sword of Gryffindor. Glittering shards of crystal flew in all directions; Draco doubled 
over, his hands covering his bloody face. 


As Ron ran to pull Hermione out of the wreckage, Harry took the chance: He 
leapt over an armchair and wrested the three wands from Dracos grip, pointed all of 
them at Greyback, and yelled, Stupefy! The werewolf was lifted off his feet by the 
triple spell, flew up to the ceiling and then smashed to the ground. 

As Narcissa dragged Draco out of the way of further harm, Bellatrix sprang to her 
feet, her hair flying as she brandished the silver knife; but Narcissa had directed her wand 
at the doorway. 

Dobby! she screamed and even Bellatrix froze. You! You dropped the 
chandelier C ? 

The tiny elf trotted into the room, his shaking finger pointing at his old mistress. 

You must not hurt Harry Potter, he squeaked. 

Kill him, Cissy! shrieked Bellatrix, but there was another loud crack, and 
Narcissas wand too flew into the air and landed on the other side of the room. 

You dirty little monkey! bawled Bellatrix. How dare you take a witchs wand, 
how dare you defy your masters? 

Dobby has no master! squealed the elf. Dobby is a free elf, and Dobby has 
come to save Harry Potter and his friends! 

Harrys scar was blinding him with pain. Dimly he knew that they had moments, 
seconds before Voldemort was with them. 

Ron, catch C and GO! he yelled, throwing one of the wands to him; then he bent 
down to tug Griphook out from under the chandelier. Hoisting the groaning goblin, who 
still clung to the sword, over one shoulder, Harry seized Dobbys hand and spun on the 
spot to Disapparate. 

As he turned into darkness he caught one last view of the drawing room of the 
pale, frozen figures of Narcissa and Draco, of the streak of red that was Rons hair, and a 
blue of flying silver, as Bellatrixs knife flew across the room at the place where he was 
vanishing C 

Bill and Fleurs . . . Shell Cottage . . . Bill and Fleurs . . . 

He had disappeared into the unknown; all he could do was repeat the name of the 
destination and hope that it would suffice to take him there. The pain in his forehead 
pierced him, and the weight of the goblin bore down upon him; he could feel the blade of 
Gryffindors sword bumping against his back: Dobbys hand jerked in his; he wondered 
whether the elf was trying to take charge, to pull them in the right direction, and tried, by 
squeezing the fingers, to indicate that that was fine with them. . . . 

And then they hit solid earth and smelled salty air. Harry fell to his knees, 
relinquished Dobbys hand, and attempted to lower Griphook gently to the ground. 

Are you all right? he said as the goblin stirred, but Griphook merely whimpered. 

Harry squinted around through the darkness. There seemed to be a cottage a short 
way away under the wide starry sky, and he thought he saw movement outside it. 

Dobby, is this Shell Cottage? he whispered, clutching the two wands he had 
brought from the Malfoys, ready to fight if he needed to. Have we come to the right 
place? Dobby? 

He looked around. The little elf stood feet from him. 

DOBBY! 

The elf swayed slightly, stars reflected in his wide, shining eyes. Together, he and 
Harry looked down at the silver hilt of the knife protruding from the elfs heaving chest. 


Dobby C no C HELP! Harry bellowed toward the cottage, toward the people 
moving there. HELP! 

He did not know or care whether they were wizards or Muggles, friends or foes; 
all he cared about was that a dark stain was spreading across Dobbys front, and that he 
had stretched out his own arms to Harry with a look of supplication. Harry caught him 
and laid him sideways on the cool grass. 

Dobby, no, dont die, dont die C 

The elfs eyes found him, and his lips trembled with the effort to form words. 

Harry . . . Potter . . . 

And then with a little shudder the elf became quite still, and his eyes were nothing 
more than great glassy orbs, sprinkled with light from the stars they could not see. 


 

 

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter Twenty-Four 

The Wandmaker 

 

It was like sinking into an old nightmare; for an instant Harry knelt again beside 
Dumbledores body at the foot of the tallest tower at Hogwarts, but in reality he was 
staring at a tiny body curled upon the grass, pierced by Bellatrixs silver knife. Harrys 
voice was still saying, DobbyDobby even though he knew that the elf had gone 
where he could not call him back. 

 After a minute or so he realized that they had, after all, come to the right place, for 
here were Bill and Fleur, Dean and Luna, gathering around him as he knelt over the elf. 
Hermione, he said suddenly. Where is she? 

Rons taken her inside, said Bill. Shell be all right. Harry looked back down at 
Dobby. He stretched out a hand and pulled the sharp blade from the elfs body, then 
dragged off his own jacket and covered Dobby in it like a blanket. 

 The sea was rushing against the rock somewhere nearby; Harry listened to it 
while the others talked, discussing matters in which he could take no interest, making 
decisions, Dean carried the injured Griphook into the house, Fleur hurrying with them; 
now Bill was really knowing what he was saying. As he did so, he gazed down at the 
tiny body, and his scar prickled and burned, and in one part of his mind, viewed as if 
from the wrong end of a long telescope, he saw Voldemort punishing those they had left 
behind at the Malfoy Manor. His rage was dreadful and yet Harrys grief for Dobby 
seemed to diminish it, so that it became a distant storm that reached Harry from across a 
vast, silent ocean. 


 I want to do it properly, were the first words of which Harry was fully 
conscious of speaking. Not by magic. Have you got a spade? And shortly afterward he 
had set to work, alone, digging the grave in the place that Bill had shown him at the end 
of the garden, between bushes. He dug with a kind of fury, relishing the manual work, 
glorying in the non-magic of it, for every drop of his sweat and every blister felt like a 
gift to the elf who had saved their lives. 

 His scar burned, but he was master of the pain, he felt it, yet was apart from it. 
He had learned control at last, learned to shut his mind to Voldemort, the very thing 
Dumbledore had wanted him to learn from Snape. Just as Voldemort had not been able 
to possess Harry while Harry was consumed with grief for Sirius, so his thoughts could 
not penetrate Harry now while he mourned Dobby. Grief, it seemed, drove Voldemort 
outthough Dumbledore, of course, would have said that it was love. 

 On Harry dug, deeper and deeper into the hard, cold earth, subsuming his grief in 
sweat, denying the pain in his scar. In the darkness, with nothing but the sound of his 
own breath and the rushing sea to keep him company, the things that had happened at the 
Malfoys returned to him, the things he had heard came back to him, and understanding 
blossomed in the darkness 

 The steady rhythm of his arms beat time with his thoughts. 
HallowsHorcruxesHallowsHorcruxesyet no longer burned with that weird, 
obsessive longing. Loss and fear had snuffed it out. He felt as though he had been 
slapped awake again. 

 Deeper and deeper Harry sank into the grave, and he knew where Voldemort had 
been tonight, and whom he had killed in the topmost cell of Nurmengard, and why 

 And he thought of Wormtail, dead because of one small unconscious impulse of 
mercyDumbledore had foreseen thatHow much more had he known? 

 Harry lost track of time. He knew only that the darkness had lightened a few 
degrees when he was rejoined by Ron and Dean. Hows Hermione? Better, said 
Ron. Fleurs looking after her. Harry had his retort ready for when they asked him 
why he had not simply created a perfect grave with his wand, but he did not need it. 
They jumped down into the hole he had made with spades of their own and together they 
worked in silence until the hole seemed deep enough. 

 Harry wrapped the elf more snuggly in his jacket. Ron sat on the edge of the 
grave and stripped off his shoes and socks, which he placed on the elfs bare feet. Dean 
produced a woolen hat, which Harry placed carefully upon Dobbys head, muffling his 
batlike ears. We should close his eyes. 

 Harry had not heard the others coming through the darkness. Bill was wearing a 
traveling cloak, Fleur a large white apron, from the pocket of which protruded a bottle of 
what Harry recognized to be Skele-Gro. Hermione was wrapped in a borrowed dressing 
gown, pale and unsteady on her feet; Ron put an arm around her when she reached him. 
Luna, who was huddled in one of Fleurs coats, crouched down and placed her fingers 
tenderly upon each of the elfs eyelids, sliding them over his glassy stare. There, she 
said softly. Now he could be sleeping. 

 Harry placed the elf into the grave, arranged his tiny limbs so that he might have 
been resting, then climbed out and gazed for the last time upon the little body. He forced 
himself not to break down as he remembered Dumbledores funeral, and the rows and 
rows of golden chairs, and the Minister of Magic in the front row, the recitation of 


Dumbledores achievements, the stateliness of the white marble tomb. He felt that 
Dobby deserved just as grand a funeral, and yet here the elf lay between bushes in a 
roughly dug hole. I think we ought to say something, piped up Luna. Ill go first, 
shall I? 

 And as everybody looked at her, she addressed the dead elf at the bottom of the 
grave. Thank you so much Dobby for rescuing me from that cellar. Its so unfair that 
you had to die when you were so good and brave. Ill always remember what you did for 
us. I hope youre happy now. 

 She turned and looked expectingly at Ron, who cleared his throat and said in a 
thick voice, yeahthanks Dobby. Thanks, muttered Dean. Harry swallowed. 
Good bye Dobby, he said It was all he could manage, but Luna had said it all for him. 
Bill raised his wand, and the pile of earth beside the grave rose up into the air and fell 
neatly upon it, a small, reddish mound. Dya mind if I stay here a moment? He asked 
the others. 

 They murmured words he did not catch; he felt gentle pats upon his back, and 
then they all traipsed back toward the cottage, leaving Harry alone beside the elf. 

 He looked around: There were a number of large white stones, smoothed by the 
sea, marking the edge of the flower beds. He picked up one of the largest and laid it, 
pillowlike, over the place where Dobbys head now rested. He then felt in his pocket for 
a wand. There were two in there. He had forgotten, lost track; he could not now 
remember whose wands these were; he seemed to remember wrenching them out of 
someones hand. He selected the shorter of the two, which felt friendlier in his hand, and 
pointed it at the rock. 

 Slowly, under his murmured instruction, deep cuts appeared upon the rocks 
surface. He knew that Hermione could have done it more neatly, and probably more 
quickly, but he wanted to mark the spot as he had wanted to dig the grave. When Harry 
stood up again, the stone read: HERE LIES DOBBY, A FREE ELF. 

 He looked at his handiwork for a few more seconds, then walked away, his scar 
still prickling a little, and his mind full of those things that had come to him in the grave, 
ideas that had taken shape in the darkness, ideas both fascinating and terrible. 

 They were all sitting in the living room when he entered the little hall, their 
attention focused upon Bill, who was talking. The room was light-colored, pretty, with a 
small fire of driftwood burning brightly in the fireplace. Harry did not want to drop mud 
upon the carpet, so he stood in the doorway, listening. 

 lucky that Ginnys on holiday. If shed been at Hogwarts they could have 
taken her before we reached her. Now we know shes safe too. He looked around and 
saw Harry standing there. Ive been getting them all out of the Burrow, he explained. 
Moved them to Muriels. The Death Eaters know Rons with you now, theyre bound to 
target the family Cdont apologize, he added at the sight of Harrys expression. It was 
always a matter of time, Dads been saying so for months. Were the biggest blood 
traitor family there is. 

 How are they protected? asked Harry. Fidelius Charm. Dads Secret-Keeper. 
And weve done it on this cottage too; Im Secret-Keeper here. None of us can go to 
work, but thats hardly the most important thing now. Once Ollivander and Griphook are 
well enough, well move them to Muriels too. There isnt much room here, but shes got 


plenty. Griphooks legs are on the mend. Fleurs given him Skele-Gro-we could 
probably move them in an hour or 

 No, Harry said and Bill looked startled. I need both of them here. I need to 
talk to them. Its important. He heard the authority of his own voice, the conviction, the 
voice of purpose that had come to him as he dug Dobbys grave. All of their faces were 
turned toward him looking puzzled. 

 Im going to wash, Harry told Bill looking down at his hands still covered with 
mud and Dobbys blood. Then Ill need to see them, straight away. He walked into the 
little kitchen, to the basin beneath a window overlooking the sea. Dawn was breaking 
over the horizon, shell pink and faintly gold, as he washed, again following the train of 
thought that had come to him in the dark garden 

 Dobby would never be able to tell them who had sent him to the cellar, but Harry 
knew what he had seen. A piercing blue eye had looked out of the mirror fragment, and 
then help had come. Help will always be given at Hogwarts to those who ask for it. 

 Harry dried his hands, impervious to the beauty of the scene outside the window 
and to the murmuring of the others in the sitting room. He looked out over the ocean and 
felt closer, this dawn, than ever before, closer to the heart of it all. 

 And still his scar prickled, and he knew that Voldemort was getting there too. 
Harry understood and yet did not understand. His instinct was telling him one thing, his 
brain quite another. The Dumbledore in Harrys head smiled, surveying Harry over the 
tips of his fingers, pressed together as if in prayer. 

 You gave Ron the DeluminatorYou understood himYou gave him a way 
back 

And you understood Wormtail tooYou knew there was a bit of regret there, 
somewhere 

And if you knew themWhat did you know about me, Dumbledore? 

Am I meant to know but not to seek? Did you know how hard Id feel that? Is 
that why you made it this difficult? So Id have time to work that out? 

 Harry stood quite still, eyes glazed, watching the place where a bright gold ray of 
dazzling sun was rising over the horizon. Then he looked down at his clean hands and 
was momentarily surprised to see the cloth he was holding in them. He set it down and 
returned to the hall, and as he did so, he felt his scar pulse angrily, and then flashed 
across his mind, swift as the reflection of a dragonfly over water, the outline of a building 
he knew extremely well. 

 Bill and Fleur were standing at the foot of the stairs. 

 I need to speak to Griphook and Ollivander, Harry said. 

 No, said Fleur. You will ave to wait, Arry. Zey are both too tired C 

 Im sorry, he said without heat, but it cant wait. I need to talk to them now. 
Privately C and separately. Its urgent. 

 Harry, what the hells going on? asked Bill. You turn up here with a dead 
house-elf and a half-conscious goblin, Hermione looks as though shes been tortured, and 
Rons just refused to tell me anything C 

 We cant tell you what were doing, said Harry flatly. Youre in the Order, Bill, 
you know Dumbledore left us a mission. Were not supposed to talk about it to anyone 
else. 


 Fleur made an impatient noise, but Bill did not look at her; he was staring at 
Harry. His deeply scarred face was hard to read. Finally, Bill said, All right. Who do 
you want to talk to first? 

 Harry hesitated. He knew what hung on his decision. There was hardly any time 
left; now was the moment to decide: Horcruxes or Hallows? 

 Griphook, Harry said. Ill speak to Griphook first. 

 His heart was racing as if he had been sprinting and had just cleared an enormous 
obstacle. 

 Up here, then, said Bill, leading the way. 

 Harry had walked up several steps before stopping and looking back. 

 I need you two as well! he called to Ron and Hermione, who had been skulking, 
half concealed, in the doorway of the sitting room. 

 They both moved into the light, looking oddly relieved. 

 How are you? Harry asked Hermione. You were amazing C coming up with 
that story when she was hurting you like that C 

 Hermione gave a weak smile as Ron gave her a one-armed squeeze. 

 What are we doing now, Harry? he asked. 

 Youll see. Come on. 

 Harry, Ron, and Hermione followed Bill up the steep stairs onto a small landing. 
Three doors led off it. 

 In here, said Bill, opening the door into his and Fleurs room, it too had a view 
of the sea, now flecked with gold in the sunrise. Harry moved to the window, turned his 
back on the spectacular view, and waited, his arms folded, his scar prickling. Hermione 
took the chair beside the dressing table; Ron sat on the arm. 

 Bill reappeared, carrying the little goblin, whom he set down carefully upon the 
bed. Griphook grunted thanks, and Bill left, closing the door upon them all. 

 Im sorry to take you out of bed, said Harry. How are your legs? 

 Painful, replied the goblin. But mending. 

 He was still clutching the sword of Gryffindor, and wore a strange look: half 
truculent, half intrigued. Harry noted the goblins sallow skin, his long thin fingers, his 
black eyes. Fleur had removed his shoes: His long feet were dirty. He was larger than a 
house-elf, but not by much. His domed head was much bigger than a humans. 

 You probably dont remember C Harry began. 

 that I was the goblin who showed you to your vault, the first time you ever 
visited Gringotts? said Griphook. I remember, Harry Potter. Even amongst goblins, you 
are very famous. 

 Harry and the goblin looked at each other, sizing each other up. Harrys scar was 
still prickling. He wanted to get through this interview with Griphook quickly, and at the 
same time was afraid of making a false move. While he tried to decide on the best way to 
approach his request, the goblin broke the silence. 

 You buried the elf, he said, sounding unexpectedly rancorous. I watched you 
from the window of the bedroom next door. 

 Yes, said Harry. 

 Griphook looked at him out of the corners of his slanting black eyes. 

 You are an unusual wizard, Harry Potter. 

 In what way? asked Harry, rubbing his scar absently. 


 You dug the grave. 

 So? 

 Griphook did not answer. Harry rather thought he was being sneered at for acting 
like a Muggle, but it did not matter to him whether Griphook approved of Dobbys grave 
or not. He gathered himself for the attack. 

 Griphook, I need to ask C 

 You also rescued a goblin. 

 What? 

 You brought me here. Saved me. 

 Well, I take it youre not sorry? said Harry a little impatiently. 

 No, Harry Potter, said Griphook, and with one finger he twisted the thin black 
beard upon his chin, but you are a very odd wizard. 

 Right, said Harry. Well, I need some help, Griphook, and you can give it to 
me. 

 The goblin made no sign of encouragement, but continued to frown at Harry as 
though he had never seen anything like him. 

 I need to break into a Gringotts vault. 

 Harry had not meant to say it so badly: the words were forced from him as pain 
shot through his lightning scar and he saw, again, the outline of Hogwarts. He closed his 
mind firmly. He needed to deal with Griphook first. Ron and Hermione were staring at 
Harry as though he had gone mad. 

 Harry C said Hermione, but she was cut off by Griphook. 

 Break into a Gringotts vault? repeated the goblin, wincing a little as he shifted 
his position upon the bed. It is impossible. 

 No, it isnt, Ron contradicted him. Its been done. 

 Yeah, said Harry. The same day I first met you, Griphook. My birthday, seven 
years ago. 

 The vault in question was empty at the time, snapped the goblin, and Harry 
understood that even though Griphook had let Gringotts, he was offended at the idea of 
its defenses being breached. Its protection was minimal. 

 Well, the vault we need to get into isnt empty, and Im guessing its protection 
will be pretty powerful, said Harry. It belongs to the Lestranges. 

 He saw Hermione and Ron look at each other, astonished, but there would be time 
enough to explain after Griphook had given his answer. 

 You have no chance, said Griphook flatly. No chance at all. If you seek 
beneath our floors, a treasure that was never yours C 

 Thief, you have been warned, beware C yeah, I know, I remember, said Harry. 
But Im not trying to get myself any treasure, Im not trying to take anything for 
personal gain. Can you believe that? 

 The goblin looked slantwise at Harry, and the lightning scar on Harrys forehead 
prickled, but he ignored it, refusing to acknowledge its pain or its invitation. 

 If there was a wizard of whom I would believe that they did not seek personal 
gain, said Griphook finally, it would be you, Harry Potter. Goblins and elves are not 
used to the protection or the respect that you have shown this night. Not from wand-
carriers. 


 Wand-carriers, repeated Harry: The phrase fell oddly upon his ears as his scar 
prickled, as Voldemort turned his thoughts northward, and as Harry burned to question 
Ollivander next door. 

 The right to carry a wand, said the goblin quietly, has long been contested 
between wizards and goblins. 

 Well, goblins can do magic without wands, said Ron. 

 That is immaterial! Wizards refuse to share the secrets of wand-lore with other 
magical beings, they deny us the possibility of extending our powers! 

 Well, goblins wont share any of their magic either, said Ron. You wont tell 
us how to make swords and armor the way you do. Goblins know how to work metal in a 
way wizards have never C 

 It doesnt matter, said Harry, noting Griphooks rising color. This isnt about 
wizards versus goblins or any other sort of magical creature C 

 Griphook gave a nasty laugh. 

 But it is, it is precisely that! As the Dark Lord becomes ever more powerful, 
your race is set still more firmly above mine! Gringotts falls under Wizarding rule, 
house-elves are slaughtered, and who amongst the wand-carriers protests? 

 We do! said Hermione. She had sat up straight, her eyes bright. We protest! 
And Im hunted quite as much as any goblin or elf, Griphook! Im a Mudblood! 

 Dont call yourself C Ron muttered. 

 Why shouldnt I? said Hermione. Mudblood, and proud of it! Ive got no 
higher position under this new order than you have, Griphook! It was me they chose to 
torture, back at the Malfoys! 

 As she spoke, she pulled aside the neck of the dressing gown to reveal the thin cut 
Bellatrix had made, scarlet against her throat. 

 Did you know that it was Harry who set Dobby free? she asked. Did you know 
that weve wanted elves to be freed for years? (Ron fidgeted uncomfortably on the arm 
of Hermiones chair.) You cant want You-Know-Who defeated more than we do, 
Griphook! 

 The goblin gazed at Hermione with the same curiousity he had shown Harry. 

 What do you seek within the Lestranges vault? he asked abruptly. The sword 
that lies inside it is a fake. This is the real one. He looked from one to the other of them. 
I think that you already know this. You asked me to lie for you back there. 

 But the fake sword isnt the only thing in that vault, is it? asked Harry. Perhaps 
youve seen other things in there? 

 His heart was pounding harder than ever. He redoubled his efforts to ignore the 
pulsing of his scar. 

 The goblin twisted his beard around his finger again. 

 It is against our code to speak of the secrets of Gringotts. We are the guardians 
of fabulous treasures. We have a duty to the objects placed in our care, which were, so 
often, wrought by our fingers. 

 The goblin stroked the sword, and his black eyes roved from Harry to Hermione 
to Ron and then back again. 

 So young, he said finally, to be fighting so many. 

 Will you help us? said Harry. We havent got a hope of breaking in without a 
goblins help. Youre our one chance. 


 I shall . . . think about it, said Griphook maddeningly. 

 But C Ron started angrily; Hermione nudged him in the ribs. 

 Thank you, said Harry. 

 The goblin bowed his great domed head in acknowledgement, then flexed his 
short legs. 

 I think, he said, settling himself ostentatiously upon Bill and Fleurs bed, that 
the Skele-Gro has finished its work. I may be able to sleep at last. Forgive me. . . . 

 Yeah, of course, said Harry, but before leaving the room he leaned forward and 
took the sword of Gryffindor from beside the goblin. Griphook did not protest, but Harry 
thought he saw resentment in the goblins eyes as he closed the door upon him. 

 Little git, whispered Ron. Hes enjoying keeping us hanging. 

 Harry, whispered Hermione, pulling them both away from the door, into the 
middle of the still-dark landing, are you saying what I think youre saying? Are you 
saying theres a Horcrux in the Lestranges vault? 

 Yes, said Harry. Bellatrix was terrified when she thought wed been in there, 
she was beside herself. Why? What did she think wed seen, what else did she think we 
might have taken? Something she was petrified You-Know-Who would find out about. 

 But I thought we were looking for places You-Know-Whos been, places hes 
done something important? said Ron, looking baffled. Was he ever inside the 
Lestranges vault? 

 I dont know whether he was ever inside Gringotts, said Harry. He never had 
gold there when he was younger, because nobody left him anything. He would have seen 
the bank from the outside, though, the first time he ever went to Diagon Alley. 

 Harrys scar throbbed, but he ignored it; he wanted Ron and Hermione to 
understand about Gringotts before they spoke to Ollivander. 

 I think he would have envied anyone who had a key to a Gringotts vault. I think 
hed have seen it as a real symbol of belonging to the Wizarding world. And dont forget, 
he trusted Bellatrix and her husband. They were his most devoted servants before he fell, 
and they went looking for him after he vanished. He said it night he came back, I heard 
him. 

 Harry rubbed his scar. 

 I dont think hed have told Bellatrix it was a Horcrux, though. He never told 
Lucius Malfoy the truth about the diary. He probably told her it was a treasured 
possession and asked her to place it in her vault. The safest place in the world for 
anything you want to hide, Hagrid told me. . . except for Hogwarts. 

 When Harry had finished speaking, Ron shook his head. 

 You really understand him. 

 Bits of him, said Harry. Bits . . . I just wish Id understood Dumbledore as 
much. But well see. Come on C Ollivander now. 

 Ron and Hermione looked bewildered but very impressed as they followed him 
across the little landing and knocked upon the door opposite Bill and Fleurs. A weak 
Come in! answered them. 

 The wandmaker was lying on the twin bed farthest from the window. He had been 
held in the cellar for more than a year, and tortured, Harry knew, on at least one occasion. 
He was emaciated, the bones of his face sticking out sharply against the yellowish skin. 
His great silver eyes seemed vast in their sunken sockets. The hands that lay upon the 


blanket could have belonged to a skeleton. Harry sat down on the empty bed, beside Ron 
and Hermione. The rising sun was not visible here. The room faced the cliff-top garden 
and the freshly dug grave. 

 Mr. Ollivander, Im sorry to disturb you, Harry said. 

 My dear boy, Ollivanders voice was feeble. You rescued us, I thought we 
would die in that place, I can never thank you . . . never thank you . . . enough. 

 We were glad to do it. 

 Harrys scar throbbed. He knew, he was certain, that there was hardly any time 
left in which to beat Voldemort to his goal, or else to attempt to thwart him. He felt a 
flutter of panic . . . yet he had made his decision when he chose to speak to Griphook first. 
Feigning a calm he did not feel, he groped in the pouch around his neck and took out the 
two halves of his broken wand. 

 Mr. Ollivander, I need some help. 

 Anything. Anything. Said the wandmaker weakly. 

 Can you mend this? Is it possible? 

 Ollivander held out a trembling hand, and Harry placed the two barely connected 
halves in his palm. 

 Holly and phoenix feather, said Ollivander in a tremulous voice. Eleven inches. 
Nice and supple. 

 Yes, said Harry. Can you -- ? 

 No, whispered Ollivander. I am sorry, very sorry, but a wand that has suffered 
this degree of damage cannot be repaired by any means that I know of. 

 Harry had been braced to hear it, but it was a blow nevertheless. He took the wand 
halves back and replaced them in the pouch around his neck. Ollivander stared at the 
place where the shattered wand had vanished, and did not look away until Harry had 
taken from his pocket the two wands he had brought from the Malfoys. 

 Can you identify these? Harry asked. 

 The wandmaker took the first of the wands and held it close to his faded eyes, 
rolling it between his knobble-knuckled fingers, flexing it slightly. 

 Walnut and dragon heartstring, he said. Twelve-and-three-quarter inches. 
Unyielding. This wand belonged to Bellatrix Lestrange. 

 And this one? 

 Ollivander performed the same examination. 

 Hawthorn and unicorn hair. Ten inches precisely. Reasonably springy. This was 
the wand of Draco Malfoy. 

 Was? repeated Harry. Isnt it still his? 

 Perhaps not. If you took it C 

 I did C  

 then it may be yours. Of course, the manner of taking matters. Much also 
depends upon the wand itself. In general, however, where a wand has been won, its 
allegiance will change. 

 There was a silence in the room, except for the distant rushing of the sea. 

 You talk about wands like theyve got feelings, said Harry, like they can think 
for themselves. 

 The wand chooses the wizard, said Ollivander. That much has always been 
clear to those of us who have studied wandlore. 


 A person can still use a wand that hasnt chosen them, though? asked Harry. 

 Oh yes, if you are any wizard at all you will be able to channel your magic 
through almost any instrument. The best results, however, must always come where there 
is the strongest affinity between wizard and wand. These connections are complex. An 
initial attraction, and then a mutual quest for experience, the wand learning from the 
wizard, the wizard from the wand. 

 The sea gushed forward and backward; it was a mournful sound. 
I took this wand from Draco Malfoy by force, said Harry. Can I use it safely? 

 I think so. Subtle laws govern wand ownership, but the conquered wand will 
usually bend its will to its new master. 

 So I should use this one? said Ron, pulling Wormtails wand out of his pocket 
and handing it to Ollivander. 

 Chestnut and dragon heartstring. Nine-and-a-quarter inches. Brittle. I was forced 
to make this shortly after my kidnapping, for Peter Pettigrew. Yes, if you won it, it is 
more likely to do your bidding, and do it well, than another wand. 

 And this holds true for all wands, does it? asked Harry. 

 I think so, replied Ollivander, his protuberant eyes upon Harrys face. You ask 
deep questions, Mr. Potter. Wandlore is a complex and mysterious branch of magic. 

 So, it isnt necessary to kill the previous owner to take the possession of a 
wand? asked Harry. 

 Ollivander swallowed. 

 Necessary? No, I should not say that it is necessary to kill. 

 There are legends, though, said Harry, and as his heart rate quickened, the pain 
in his scar became more intense; he was sure that Voldemort has decided to put his idea 
into action. Legends about a wand C or wands C that have been passed from hand to 
hand by murder. 

 Ollivander turned pale. Against the snowy pillow he was light gray, and his eyes 
were enormous, bloodshot, and bulging with what looked like fear. 

 Only one wand, I think, he whispered. 

 And You-Know-Who is interested in it, isnt he? asked Harry. 

 I C how? croaked Ollivander, and he looked appealingly at Ron and Hermione 
for help. How do you know this? 

 He wanted you to tell him how to overcome the connection between our wands, 
said Harry. 

 Ollivander looked terrified. 

 He tortured me, you must understand that! The Cruciatus Curse, I C I had no 
choice but to tell him what I knew, what I guessed! 

 I understand, said Harry. You told him about the twin cores? You said he just 
had to borrow another wizards wand? 

 Ollivander looked horrified, transfixed, by the amount that Harry knew. He 
nodded slowly. 

 But it didnt work, Harry went on. Mine still beat the borrowed wand. Do you 
know why that is? 

 Ollivander shook his head slowly as he had just nodded. 


 I had . . . never heard of such a thing. Your wand performed something unique 
that night. The connection of the twin cores is incredibly rare, yet why your wand would 
have snapped the borrowed wand, I do not know. . . . 

We were talking about the other wand, the wand that changes hands by murder. 
When You-Know-Who realized my wand had done something strange, he came back and 
asked about that other wand, didnt he? 

How do you know this? 

 Harry did not answer. 

 Yes, he asked, whispered Ollivander. He wanted to know everything I could 
tell him about the wand variously known as the Deathstick, the Wand of Destiny, or the 
Elder Wand. 

 Harry glanced sideways at Hermione. She looked flaggergasted. 

 The Dark Lord, said Ollivander in hushed and frightened tones, had always 
been happy with the wand I made him C yes and phoenix feather, thirteen-and-a-half 
inches. C until he discovered the connection of the twin cores. Now he seeks another, 
more powerful wand, as the only way to conquer yours. 

 But hell know soon, if he doesnt already, that mines broken beyond repair, 
said Harry quietly. 

 No! said Hermione, sounding frightened. He cant know that, Harry, how 
could he --? 

Priori Incantatem, said Harry. We left your wand and the blackthorn wand at 
the Malfoys, Hermione. If they examine them properly, make them re-create the spells 
theyve cast lately, theyd see that yours broke mine, theyll see that you tried and failed 
to mend it, and theyll realize that Ive been using the blackthorn one ever since. 

The little color she had regained since their arrival had drained from her face. Ron 
gave Harry a reproachful look, and said, Lets not worry about that now --- 

But Mr. Ollivander intervened. 

The Dark Lord no longer seeks the Elder Wand only for your destruction, Mr. 
Potter. He is determined to possess it because he believes it will make him truly 
invulnerable. 

 And will it? 

 The owner of the Elder Wand must always fear attack, said Ollivander, but the 
idea of the Dark Lord in possession of the Deathstick is, I must admit . . . formidable. 

 Harry was suddenly reminded of how unsure, when they first met, of how much 
he like Ollivander. Even now, having been tortured and imprisoned by Voldemort, the 
idea of the Dark Wizard in possession of this wand seemed to enthrall him as much as it 
repulsed him. 

 You C you really think this wand exists, then, Mr. Ollivander? asked Hermione. 

 Oh yes, said Ollivander. Yes, it is perfectly possible to trace the wands course 
through history. There are gaps, of, course, and long ones, where it vanishes from view, 
temporarily lost or hidden; but always it resurfaces. It has certain identifying 
characteristics that those who are learned in wandlore recognize. There are written 
accounts, some of them obscure, that I and other wandmakers have made it our business 
to study. They have the ring of authenticity. 

 So you C you dont think it can be a fairy tale or a myth? Hermione asked 
hopefully. 


 No, said Ollivander. Whether it needs to pass by murder, I do not know. Its 
history is bloody, but that may be simply due to the fact that it is such a desirable object, 
and arouses such passions in wizards. Immensely powerful, dangerous in the wrong 
hands, and an object of incredible fascination to all of us who study the power of wands. 

 Mr. Ollivander, said Harry, you told You-Know-Who that Gregorovitch had 
the Elder Wand, didnt you? 

 Ollivander turned, if possible, even paler. He looked ghostly as he gulped. 

 But how C how do you -- ? 

 Never mind how I know it, said Harry, closing his eyes momentarily as his scar 
burned and he saw, for mere seconds, a vision of the main street in Hogsmeade, still dark, 
because it was so much farther north. You told You-Know-Who that Gregorovitch had 
the wand? 

 It was a rumor, whispered Ollivander. A rumor, years and years ago, long 
before you were born I believe Gregorovitch himself started it. You can see how good it 
would be for business; that he was studying and duplicating the qualities of the Elder 
Wand! 

 Yes, I can see that, said Harry. He stood up. Mr. Ollivander, one last thing, and 
then well let you get some rest. What do you know about the Deathly Hallows? 

 The C the what? asked the wandmaker, looking utterly bewildered. 

 The Deathly Hallows. 

 Im afraid I dont know what youre talking about. Is this still something to do 
with wands? 

 Harry looked into the sunken face and believed that Ollivander was not acting. He 
did not know about the Hallows. 

 Thank you, said Harry. Thank you very much. Well leave you to get some 
rest now. 

 Ollivander looked stricken. 

 He was torturing me! he gasped. The Cruciatus Curse . . . you have no 
idea. . . . 

 I do, said Harry, I really do. Please get some rest. Thank you for telling me all 
of this. 

 He led Ron and Hermione down the staircase. Harry caught glimpses of Bill, 
Fleur, Luna, and Dean sitting at the table in the kitchen, cups of tea in front of them. They 
all looked up at Harry as he appeared in the doorway, but he merely nodded to them and 
continued into the garden, Ron and Hermione behind him. The reddish mound of earth 
that covered Dobby lay ahead, and Harry walked back to it, as the pain in his head built 
more and more powerfully. It was a huge effort now to close down the visions that were 
forcing themselves upon him, but he knew that he would have to resist only a little longer. 
He would yield very soon, because he needed to know that his theory was right. He must 
make only one more short effort, so that he could explain to Ron and Hermione. 

 Gregorovitch had the Elder Wand a long time ago, he said, I saw You-Know-
Who trying to find him. When he tracked him down, he found that Gregorovitch didnt 
have it anymore: It was stolen from him by Grindelwald. How Grindelwald found out 
that Gregorovitch had it, I dont know C but if Gregorovitch was stupid enough to spread 
the rumor, it cant have been that difficult. 


 Voldemort was at the gates of Hogwarts; Harry could see him standing there, and 
see too the lamp bobbing in the pre-dawn, coming closer and closer. 

 And Grindelwald used the Elder Wand to become powerful. And at the height of 
his power, when Dumbledore knew he was the only one who could stop him, he dueled 
Grindelwald and beat him, and he took the Elder Wand. 

 Dumbledore had the Elder Wand? said Ron. But then C where is it now? 

At Hogwarts, said Harry, fighting to remain with them in the cliff-top garden. 

 But then, lets go! said Ron urgently. Harry, lets go and get it before he 
does! 

 Its too late for that, said Harry. He could not help himself, but clutched his 
head, trying to help it resist. He knows where it is. Hes there now. 

 Harry! Ron said furiously. How long have you known this C why have we 
been wasting time? Why did you talk to Griphook first? We could have gone C we could 
still go C 

 No, said Harry, and he sank to his knees in the grass. Hermiones right. 
Dumbledore didnt want me to have it. He didnt want me to take it. He wanted me to get 
the Horcruxes. 

 The unbeatable wand, Harry! moaned Ron. 

 Im not supposed to . . . Im supposed to get the Horcruxes. . . . 

 And now everything was cool and dark: The sun was barely visible over the 
horizon as he glided alongside Snape, up through the grounds toward the lake. 

 I shall join you in the castle shortly, he said in his high, cold voice. Leave me 
now. 

 Snape bowed and set off back up the path, his black cloak billowing behind him. 
Harry walked slowly, waiting for Snapes figure to disappear. It would not do for Snape, 
or indeed anyone else, to see where he was going. But there were no lights in the castle 
windows, and he could conceal himself . . . and in a second he had cast upon himself a 
Disillusionment Charm that hid him even from his own eyes. 

 And he walked on, around the edge of the lake, taking in the outlines of the 
beloved castle, his first kingdom, his birthright. . . . 

 And here it was, beside the lake, reflected in the dark waters. The white marble 
tomb, an unnecessary blot on the familiar landscape. He felt again that rush of controlled 
euphoria, that heady sense of purpose in destruction. He raised the old yew wand: How 
fitting that this would be its last great act. 

 The tomb split open from head to foot. The shrouded figure was as long as thin as 
it had been in life. He raised the wand again. 

 The wrappings fell open. The face was translucent, pale, sunken, yet almost 
perfectly preserved. They had left his spectacles on the crooked nose: He felt amused 
derision. Dumbledores hands were folded upon his chest, and there it lay, clutched 
beneath them, buried with him. 

 Had the old fool imagined that marble or death would protect the wand? Had he 
thought that the Dark Lord would be scared to violate his tomb? The spiderlike hand 
swooped and pulled the wand from Dumbledores grasp, and as he took it, a shower of 
sparks flew from its tip, sparkling over the corpse of its last owner, ready to serve a new 
master at last. 

 


 

 

Chapter Twenty-Five 

Shell Cottage 

 

Bill and Fleur's cottage stood alone on a cliff overlooking the sea, its walls embedded 
with shells and whitewashed. It was a lonely and beautiful place. Wherever Harry went 
inside the tiny cottage or its garden, he could hear the constant ebb and flow of the sea, 
like the breathing of some great, slumbering creature. He spent much of the next few 
days making excuses to escape the crowded cottage, craving the cliff-top view of open 
sky and wide, empty sea, and the feel of cold, salty wind on his face. 

The enormity of his decision not to race Voldemort to the wand still scared Harry. He 
could not remember, ever before, choosing /not/ to act. He was full of doubts, doubts that 
Ron could not help voicing whenever they were together. 

"What if Dumbledore wanted us to work out the symbol in time to get the wand?" "What 
if working out what the symbol meant made you 'worthy' to get the Hallows?" "Harry, if 
that really is the Elder Wand, how the hell are we supposed to finish off You-Know-
Who?" 

Harry had no answers: There were moments when he wondered whether it had been 
outright madness not to try to prevent Voldemort breaking open the tomb. He could not 
even explain satisfactorily why he had decided against it: Every time he tried to 
reconstruct the internal arguments that had led to his decision, they sounded feebler to 
him. 

The odd thing was that Hermione's support made him feel just as confused as Ron's 
doubts. Now forced to accept that the Elder Wand was real, she maintained that it was an 
evil object, and that the way Voldemort had taken possession of it was repellent, not to be 
considered. 

"You could never have done that, Harry," she said again and again. "You couldn't have 
broken into Dumbledore's grave." 

But the idea of Dumbledore's corpse frightened Harry much less than the possibility that 
he might have misunderstood the living Dumbledore's intentions. He felt that he was still 
groping in the dark; he had chosen his path but kept looking back, wondering whether he 
had misread the signs, whether he should not have taken the other way. From time to time, 
anger at Dumbledore crashed over him again, powerful as the waves slamming 
themselves against the cliff beneath the cottage, anger that Dumbledore had not explained 
before he died. 

"But /is/ he dead?" said Ron, three days after they had arrived at the cottage. Harry had 
been staring out over the wall that separated the cottage garden from the cliff when Ron 
and Hermione had found him; he wished they had not, having no wish to join in with 
their argument. 

"Yes, he is. Ron, /please" don't start that again!" 

"Look at the facts, Hermione," said Ron, speaking across Harry, who continued to gaze at 
the horizon. "The solve doe. The sword. The eye Harry saw in the mirror --" 


"Harry admits he could have imagined the eye! Don't you, Harry?" 

"I could have," said Harry without looking at her. 

"But you don't thing you did, do you?" asked Ron. 

"No, I don't," said Harry. 

"There you go!" said Ron quickly, before Hermione could carry on. "If it wasn't 
Dumbledore, explain how Dobby knew we were in the cellar, Hermione?" 

"I can't -- but can you explain how Dumbledore sent him to us if he's lying in a tomb at 
Hogwarts?" 

"I dunno, it could've been his ghost!" 

"Dumbledore wouldn't come back as a ghost," said Harry. There was little about 
Dumbledore he was sure of now, but he knew that much. "He would have gone on." 

"What d'you mean, 'gone on'?" asked Ron, but before Harry could say any more, a voice 
behind them said, "'Arry?" 

Fleur had come out of the cottage, her long silver hair flying in the breeze. 

"'Arry, Grip'ook would like to speak to you. 'E eez in ze smallest bedroom, 'e says 'e does 
not want to be over'eard." 

Her dislike of the goblin sending her to deliver messages was clear; she looked irritable 
as she walked back around the house. 

Griphook was waiting for them, as Fleur had said, in the tiniest of the cottage's three 
bedrooms, in which Hermione and Luna slept by night. He had drawn the red cotton 
curtains against the bright, cloudy sky, which gave the room a fiery glow at odds with the 
rest of the airy, light cottage. 

"I have reached my decision, Harry Potter," said the goblin, who was sitting cross-legged 
in a low chair, drumming its arms with his spindly fingers. "Though the goblins of 
Gringotts will consider it base treachery, I have decided to help you --" 

"That's great!" said Harry, relief surging through him. "Griphook, thank you, we're really 
--" 

"-- in return," said the goblin firmly, "for payment." 

Slightly taken aback, Harry hesitated. 

"How much do you want? I've got gold." 

"Not gold," said Griphook. "I have gold." 

His black eyes glittered; there were no whites to his eyes. 

"I want the sword. The sword of Godric Gryffindor." 

Harry's spirits plummeted. 

"You can't have that," he said. "I'm sorry." 

"Then," said the goblin softly, "we have a problem." 

"We can give you something else," said Ron eagerly. "I'll bet the Lestranges have got 
loads of stuff, you can take your pick once we get into the vault." 

He had said the wrong thing. Griphook flushed angrily. 

"I am not a thief, boy! I am not trying to procure treasures to which I have no right!" 

"The sword's ours --" 

"it is not," said the goblin. 

"We're Gryffindors, and it was Godric Gryffindor's --" 

"And before it was Gryffindor's, whose was it?" demanded the goblin, sitting up straight. 

"No one's," said Ron. "It was made for him, wasn't it?" 


"No!" cried the goblin, bristling with anger as he pointed a long finger at Ron. 
"Wizarding arrogance again! That sword was Ragnuk the First's, taken from him by 
Godric Gryffindor! It is a _____ _________, a masterpiece of goblinwork! It belongs 
with the gobl___. The sword is the price of my hire, take it or leave it!" 

Griphook glared at them. Harry glanced at the other ____, then said, "We need to discuss 
this, Griphook, if that's all right. Could you give us a few minutes?" 

The goblin nodded, looking sour. 

Downstairs in the empty sitting room, Harry walked to the fireplace, brow furrowed, 
trying to think what to do. Behind him, Ron said, "He's having a laugh. We can't let him 
have that sword." 

"It is true?" Harry asked Hermione. "Was the sword stolen by Gryffindor?" 

"I don't know," she said hopelessly. "Wizarding history often skates over what the 
wizards have done to other magical races, but there's no account that I know of that says 
Gryffindor stole the sword." 

"It'll be one of those goblin stories," said Ron, "about how the wizards are always trying 
to get one over on them. I suppose we should think ourselves lucky he hasn't asked for 
one of our wands." 

"Goblins have got good reason to dislike wizards, Ron." said Hermione. "They've been 
treated brutally in the past." 

"Goblins aren't exactly fluffy little bunnies, though, are they?" said Ron. "They've killed 
plenty of us. They've fought dirty too." 

"But arguing with Griphook about whose race is most underhanded and violent isn't 
going to make him more likely to help us, is it?" 

There was a pause while they tried to think of a way around the problem. Harry looked 
out of the window at Dobby's grave. Luna was arranging sea lavender in a jam jar beside 
the headstone. 

"Okay," said Ron, and Harry turned back to face him, "how's this? We tell Griphook we 
need the sword until we get inside the _____ and then he can have it. There's a fake in 
these, isn't there? We switch them, and give him the fake." 

"Ron, he'd know the difference better than we would!" said Hermione. "He's the only one 
who realized there had been a swap!" 

"Yeah, but we could _ca_per before he realizes --" 

He quailed beneath the look Hermione was giving him. 

"That," she said quietly, "is despicable. Ask for his help, then double-cross him? And you 
wonder why goblins don't like wizards, Ron?" 

Ron's ears had turned red. 

"All right, all right! It was the only thing I could think of! What's your solution, then?" 

"We need to offer him something else, something just as valuable." 

"Brilliant, I'll go and get one of our ancient goblin-made swords and you can gift wrap 
it." 

Silence fell between them again. Harry was sure that the goblin would accept nothing but 
the sword, even if they had something as valuable to offer him. Yet the sword was their 
one, indispensable weapon against the Horcruxes. 

He closed his eyes for a moment or two and listened to the rush of the sea. The idea that 
Gryffindor might have stolen the sword was unpleasant to him: He had always been 


proud to be a Gryffindor; Gryffindor had been the champion of Muggle-borns, the wizard 
who had clashed with the pureblood-loving Slytherin.... 

"Maybe he's lying," Harry said, opening his eyes again. "Griphook. Maybe Gryffindor 
didn't take the sword. How do we know the goblin version of history's right?" 

"Does it make a difference?" asked Hermione. 

"Changes how I feel about it," said Harry. 

He took a deep breath. 

"We'll tell him he can have the sword after he's helped us get into that vault -- but we'll be 
careful to avoid telling him exactly /when/ he can have it." 

A grin spread slowly across Ron's face. Hermione, however, looked alarmed. 

"Harry, we can't --" 

"He can have it," Harry went on, "after we've used it on all of the Horcruxes. I'll make 
sure he gets it then. I'll keep my word." 

"But that could be years!" said Hermione. 

"I know that, but /he/ needn't. I won't be lying... really." 

Harry met her eyes with a mixture of defiance and shame. He remembered the words that 
had been engraved over the gateway to Nurmengard: FOR THE GREATER GOOD. He 
pushed the idea away. What choice did they have? 

"I don't like it," said Hermione. 

"Nor do I, much," Harry admitted. 

"Well, I think it's genius," said Ron, standing up again. "Let's go and tell him." 

Back in the smallest bedroom, Harry made the offer, careful to phrase it so as not to give 
any definite time for the handover of the sword. Hermione frowned at the floor while he 
was speaking; he felt irritated at her, afraid that she might give the game away. However, 
Griphook had eyes for nobody but Harry. 

"I have your word, Harry Potter, that you will give me the sword of Gryffindor if I help 
you?" 

"Yes," said Harry. 

"Then shake," said the goblin, holding out his hand. 

Harry took it and shook. He wondered whether those black eyes saw any misgivings in 
his own. Then Griphook relinquished him, clapped his hands together, and said, "So. We 
begin!" 

It was like planning to break into the Ministry all over again. They settled to work in the 
smallest bedroom, which was kept, according to Griphook's preference, in semidarkness. 

"I have visited the Lestranges' vault only once," Griphook told them, "on the occasion I 
was told to place inside it the false sword. It is one of the most ancient chambers. The 
oldest Wizarding families store their treasures at the deepest level, where the vaults are 
largest and best protected...." 

They remained shut in the cupboardlike room for hours at a time. Slowly the days 
stretched into weeks. There was problem after problem to overcome, not least of which 
was that their store of Polyjuice Potion was greatly depleted. 

"There's really only enough left for one of us," said Hermione, tilting the thick mudlike 
potion against the lamplight. 

"That'll be enough," said Harry, who was examining Griphook's hand-drawn map of the 
deepest passageways. 


The other inhabitants of Shell Cottage could hardly fail to notice that something was 
going on now that Harry, Ron and Hermione only emerged for mealtimes. Nobody asked 
questions, although Harry often felt Bill's eyes on the three of them at the table, 
thoughtful, concerned. 

The longer they spent together, the more Harry realized that he did not much like the 
goblin. Griphook was unexpectedly bloodthirsty, laughed at the idea of pain in lesser 
creatures and seemed to relish the possibility that they might have to hurt other wizards to 
reach the Lestranges' vault. Harry could tell that his distaste was shared by the other two, 
but they did not discuss it. They needed Griphook. 

The goblin ate only grudgingly with the rest of them. Even after his legs had mended, he 
continued to request trays of food in his room, like the still-frail Ollivander, until Bill 
(following an angry outburst from Fleur) went upstairs to tell him that the arrangement 
could not continue. Thereafter Griphook joined them at the overcrowded table, although 
he refused to eat the same food, insisting, instead, on lumps of raw meat, roots, and 
various fungi. 

Harry felt responsible: It was, after all, he who had insisted that the goblin remain at Shell 
Cottage so that he could question him; his fault that the whole Weasley family had been 
driven into hiding, that Bill, Fred, George, and Mr. Weasley could no longer work. 

"I'm sorry," he told Fleur, one blustery April evening as he helped her prepare dinner. "I 
never meant you to have to deal with all of this." 

She had just set some knives to work, chipping up steaks for Griphook and Bill, who had 
preferred his meat bloody ever since he had been attacked by Greyback. While the knives 
sliced behind her, her somewhat irritable expression softened. 

"'Arry, you saved my sister's life, I do not forget." 

This was not, strictly speaking, true, but Harry decided against reminding her that 
Gabrielle had never been in real danger. 

"Anyway," Fleur went on, pointing her want at a pot of sauce on the stove, which began 
to bubble at once, "Mr. Ollivander leaves for Muriel's zis evening. Zat will make zings 
easier. Ze goblin," she scowled a little at the mention of him, "can move downstairs, and 
you, Ron, and Dean can take zat room." 

"We don't mind sleeping in the living room," said Harry, who knew that Griphook would 
thing poorly of having to sleep on the sofa; keeping Griphook happy was essential to 
their plans. "Don't worry about us." And when she tried to protest he went on, "We'll be 
off your hands soon too, Ron, Hermione, and I. We won't need to be here much longer." 

"But, what do you mean?" she said, frowning at him, her wand pointing at the casserole 
dish now suspended in midair. "Of course you must not leave, you are safe 'ere!" 

She looked rather like Mrs. Weasley as she said it, and he was glad that the back door 
opened at that moment. Luna and Dean entered, their hair damp from the rain outside and 
their arms full of driftwood. 

"... and tiny little ears," Luna was saying, "a bit like hippo's, Daddy says, only purple and 
hairy. And if you want to call them, you have to hum; they prefer a waltz, nothing too 
fast...." 

Looking uncomfortable, Dean shrugged at Harry as he passed, following Luna into the 
combined dining and sitting room where Ron and Hermione were laying the dinner table. 
Seizing the chance to escape Fleur's questions, Harry grabbed two jugs of pumpkin juice 
and followed them. 


"... and if you ever come to our house I'll be able to show you the horn, Daddy wrote to 
me about it but I haven't seen it yet, because the Death Eaters took me from the Hogwarts 
Express and I never got home for Christmas," Luna was saying, as she and Dean relit the 
fire. 

"Luna, we told you," Hermione called over to her. "That horn exploded. It came from an 
Erumpent, not a Crumple-Horned Snorkack --" 

"No, it was definitely a Snorkack horn," said Luna serenely, "Daddy told me. It will 
probably have re-formed by now, they mend themselves, you know." 

Hermione shook her head and continued laying down forks as Bill appeared, leading Mr. 
Ollivander down the stairs. The wandmaker still looked exceptionally frail, and he clung 
to Bill's arm as the latter supported him, carrying a large suitcase. 

"I'm going to miss you, Mr. Ollivander," said Luna, approaching the old man. 

"And I you, my dear," said Ollivander, patting her on the shoulder. 

"You were an inexpressible comfort to me in that terrible place." 

"So, au revoir, Mr. Ollivander," said Fleur, kissing him on both cheeks. "And I wonder 
whezzer you could oblige me by delivering a package to Bill's Auntie Murie!? I never 
returned 'er tiara." 

"It will be an honor," said Ollivander with a little bow, "the very least I can do in return 
for your generous hospitality." 

Fleur drew out a worn velvet case, which she opened to show the wandmaker. The tiara 
sat glittering and twinkling in the light from the low-hanging lamp. 

"Moonstones and diamonds," said Griphook, who had sidled into the room without Harry 
noticing. "Made by goblins, I think?" 

"And paid for by wizards," said Bill quietly, and the goblin shot him a look that was both 
furtive and challenging. 

A strong wind gusted against the cottage windows as Bill and Ollivander set off into the 
night. The rest of them squeezed in around the table; elbow to elbow and with barely 
enough room to move, they started to eat. The fire crackled and popped in the grate 
beside them. Fleur, Harry noticed, was merely playing with her food; she glanced at the 
window every few minutes; however, Bill returned before they had finished their first 
course, his long hair tangled by the wind. 

"Everything's fine," he told Fleur. "Ollivander settled in, Mum and Dad say hello. Ginny 
sends you all her love, Fred and George are driving Muriel up the wall, they're still 
operating an Owl-Order business out of her back room. It cheered her up to have her tiara 
back, though. She said she thought we'd stolen it." 

"Ah, she eez charmant, your aunt," said Fleur crossly, waving her wand and causing the 
dirty plates to rise and form a stack in midair. She caught them and marched out of the 
room. 

"Daddy's made a tiara," piped up Luna, "Well, more of a crown, really." 

Ron caught Harry's eye and grinned; Harry knew that he was remembering the ludicrous 
headdress they had seen on their visit to Xenophilius. 

"Yes, he's trying to re-create the lost diadem of Ravenclaw. He thinks he's identified most 
of the main elements now. Adding the billywig wings really made a difference --" 

There was a bang on the front door. Everyone's head turned toward it. Fleur came 
running out of the kitchen, looking frightened; Bill jumped to his feed, his wand pointing 


at the door; Harry, Ron, and Hermione did the same. Silently Griphook slipped beneath 
the table, out of sight. 

"Who is it?" Bill called. 

"It is I, Remus John Lupin!" called a voice over the howling wind. Harry experienced a 
thrill of fear; what had happened? "I am a werewolf, married to Nymphadora Tonks, and 
you, the Secret-Keeper of Shell Cottage, told me the address and bade me come in an 
emergency!" 

"Lupin," muttered Bill, and he ran to the door and wrenched it open. 

Lupin fell over the threshold. He was white-faced, wrapped in a traveling cloak, his 
graying hair windswept. He straightened up, looked around the room, making sure of 
who was there, then cried aloud, "It's a boy! We've named him Ted, after Dora's father!" 

Hermione shrieked. 

"Wha --? Tonks -- Tonks has had the baby?" 

"Yes, yes, she's had the baby!" shouted Lupin. All around the table came cries of delight, 
sighs of relief: Hermione and Fleur both squealed, "Congratulations!" and Ron said, 
"Blimey, a baby!" as if he had never heard of such a thing before. 

"Yes -- yes -- a boy," said Lupin again, who seemed dazed by his own happiness. He 
strode around the table and hugged Harry; the scene in the basement of Grimmauld Place 
might never have happened. 

"You'll be godfather?" he said as he released Harry. 

"M-me?" stammered Harry. 

"You, yes, of course -- Dora quite agrees, no one better --" 

"I -- yeah -- blimey --" 

Harry felt overwhelmed, astonished, delighted; now Bill was hurrying to fetch wine, and 
Fleur was persuading Lupin to join them for a drink. 

"I can't stay long, I must get back," said Lupin, beaming around at them all: He looked 
years younger than Harry had ever seen him. "Thank you, thank you, Bill" 

Bill had soon filled all of their goblets, they stood and raised them high in a toast. 

"To Teddy Remus Lupin," said Lupin, "a great wizard in the making!" 

"'Oo does 'e look like?" Fleur inquired. 

"I think he looks like Dora, but she thinks he is like me. Not much hair. It looked black 
when he was born, but I swear it's turned ginger in the hour since. Probably blond by the 
time I get back. Andromeda says Tonks's hair started changing color the day that she was 
born." He drained his goblet. "Oh, go on then, just one more," he added, beaming, as Bill 
made to fill it again. 

The wind buffeted the little cottage and the fire leapt and crackled, and Bill was soon 
opening another bottle of wine. Lupin's news seemed to have taken them out of 
themselves, removed them for a while from their state of siege: Tidings of new life were 
exhilarating. Only the goblin seemed untouched by the suddenly festive atmosphere, and 
after a while he slunk back to the bedroom he now occupied alone. Harry thought he was 
the only one who had noticed this, until he saw Bill's eyes following the goblin up the 
stairs. 

"No... no... I really must get back," said Lupin at last, declining yet another goblet of 
wine. He got to his feet and pulled his traveling cloak back around himself. 

"Good-bye, good-bye -- I'll try and bring some pictures in a few day's time -- they'll all be 
so glad to know that I've seen you --" 


He fastened his cloak and made his farewells, hugging the women and grasping hands 
with the men, then, still beaming, returned into the wild night. 

"Godfather, Harry!" said Bill as they walked into the kitchen together, helping clear the 
table. "A real honor! Congratulations!" 

As Harry set down the empty goblets he was carrying, Bill pulled the door behind him 
closed, shutting out the still-voluble voices of the others, who were continuing to 
celebrate even in Lupin's absence. 

"I wanted a private word, actually, Harry. It hasn't been easy to get an opportunity with 
the cottage this full of people." 

Bill hesitated. 

"Harry, you're planning something with Griphook." 

It was a statement, not a question, and Harry did not bother to deny it. He merely looked 
at Bill, waiting. 

"I know goblins," said Bill. "I've worked for Gringotts ever since I left Hogwarts. As far 
as there can be friendship between wizards and goblins, I have goblin friends -- or, at 
least, goblins I know well, and like." Again, Bill hesitated. 

"Harry, what do you want from Griphook, and what have you promised him in return?" 

"I can't tell you that," said Harry. "Sorry, Bill." 

The kitchen door opened behind them; Fleur was trying to bring through more empty 
goblets. 

"Wait," Bill told her, "Just a moment." 

She backed out and he closed the door again. 

"Then I have to say this," Bill went on. "If you have struck any kind of bargain with 
Griphook, and most particularly if that bargain involves treasure, you must be 
exceptionally careful. Goblin notions of ownership, payment, and repayment are not the 
same as human ones." 

Harry felt a slight squirm of discomfort, as though a small snake had stirred inside him. 

"What do you mean?" he asked. 

"We are talking about a different breed of being," said Bill. "Dealings between wizards 
and goblins have been fraught for centuries -- but you'll know all that from History of 
Magic. There has been fault on both sides, I would never claim that wizards have been 
innocent. However, there is a belief among some goblins, and those at Gringotts are 
perhaps most prone to it, that wizards cannot be trusted in matters of gold and treasure, 
that they have no respect for goblin ownership." 

"I respect --" Harry began, but Bill shook his head. 

"You don't understand, Harry, nobody could understand unless they have lived with 
goblins. To a goblin, the rightful and true master of any object is the maker, not the 
purchaser. All goblin made objects are, in goblin eyes, rightfully theirs." 

"But it was bought --" 

"-- then they would consider it rented by the one who had paid the money. They have, 
however, great difficulty with the idea of goblin-made objects passing from wizard to 
wizard. You saw Griphook's face when the tiara passed under his eyes. He disapproves. I 
believe he thinks, as do the fiercest of his kind, that it ought to have been returned to the 
goblins once the original purchaser died. They consider our habit of keeping goblin-made 
objects, passing them from wizard to wizard without further payment, little more than 
theft." 


Harry had an ominous feeling now; he wondered whether Bill guessed more than he was 
letting on. 

"All I am saying," said Bill, setting his hand on the door back into the sitting room, "is to 
be very careful what you promise goblins, Harry. It would be less dangerous to break into 
Gringotts than to renege on a promise to a goblin." 

"Right," said Harry as Bill opened the door, "yeah. Thanks. I'll bear that in mind." 

As he followed Bill back to the others a wry thought came to him, born no doubt of the 
wine he had drunk. He seemed set on ______ to become just as reckless a godfather to 
Teddy Lupin as Sirius Black had been to him. 

 

Chapter Twenty-Six 

Gringotts 

 Their plans were made, their preparations complete; in the smallest bedroom a 
single long, coarse black hair (plucked from the sweater Hermione had been wearing at 
Malfoy Manor) lay curled in a small glass phial on the mantelpiece. 

 "And you'll be using her actual wand," said Harry, nodding toward the walnut 
wand, "so I reckon you'll be pretty convincing." 

 Hermione looked frightened that the wand might sting or bit her as she picked it 
up. 

 "I hate that thing," she said in a low voice. "I really hate it. It feels all wrong, it 
doesn't work properly for me . . . It's like a bit of her." 

 Harry could not help but remember how Hermione has dismissed his loathing of 
the blackthorn wand, insisting that he was imagining things when it did not work as well 
as his own, telling him to simply practice. He chose not to repeat her own advice back to 
her, however, the eve of their attempted assault on Gringotts felt like the wrong moment 
to antagonize her. 

 "It'll probably help you get in character, though," said Ron. "think what that 
wand's done!" 

 "But that's my point!" said Hermione. "This is the wand that tortured Neville's 
mum and dad, and who knows how many other people? This is the wand that killed 
Sirius!" 

 Harry had not thought of that: He looked down at the wand and was visited by a 
brutal urge to snap it, to slice it in half with Gryffindor's sword, which was propped 
against the wall beside him. 

 "I miss my wand," Hermione said miserably. "I wish Mr. Ollivander could have 
made me another one too." 

 Mr. Ollivander had sent Luna a new wand that morning. She was out on the back 
lawn at that moment, testing its capabilities in the late afternoon sun. Dean, who had lost 
his wand to the Snatchers, was watching rather gloomily. 

 Harry looked down at the hawthorn wand that had once belonged to Draco 
Malfoy. He had been surprised, but pleased to discover that it worked for him at least as 
well as Hermione's had done. Remembering what Ollivander had told them of the secret 


workings of wands, Harry thought he knew what Hermione's problem was: She had not 
won the walnut wand's allegiance by taking it personally from Bellatrix. 

 The door of the bedroom opened and Griphook entered. Harry reached 
instinctively for the hilt of the sword and drew it close to him, but regretted his action at 
once. He could tell that the goblin had noticed. Seeking to gloss over the sticky moment, 
he said, "We've just been checking the last-minute stuff, Griphook. We've told Bill and 
Fleur we're leaving tomorrow, and we've told them not to get up to see us off." 

 They had been firm on this point, because Hermione would need to transform in 
Bellatrix before they left, and the less that Bill and Fleur knew or suspected about what 
they were about to do, the better. They had also explained that they would not be 
returning. As they had lost Perkin's old tent on the night that the Snatcher's caught them, 
Bill had lent them another one. It was now packed inside the beaded bag, which, Harry 
was impressed to learn, Hermione had protected from the Snatchers by the simple 
expedient of stuffing it down her sock. 

 Though he would miss Bill, Fleur, Luna, and Dean, not to mention the home 
comforts they had enjoyed over the last few weeks, Harry was looking forward to 
escaping the confinement of Shell Cottage. He was tired of trying to make sure that they 
were not overheard, tired of being shut in the tiny, dark bedroom. Most of all, he longed 
to be rid of Griphook. However, precisely how and when they were to part from the 
goblin without handing over Gryffindor's sword remained a question to which Harry had 
no answer. It had been impossible to decide how they were going to do it, because the 
goblin rarely left Harry, Ron, and Hermione alone together for more than five minutes at 
a time: "He could give my mother lessons," growled Ron, as the goblin's long fingers 
kept appearing around the edges of doors. With Bill's warning in mind, Harry could not 
help suspecting that Griphook was on the watch for possible skullduggery. Hermione 
disapproved so heartily of the planned double-cross that Harry had given up attempting to 
pick her brains on how best to do it: Ron, on the rare occasions that they had been able to 
snatch a few Griphook-free moments, had come up with nothing better than "We'll just 
have to wing it, mate." 

 Harry slept badly that night. Lying away in the early hours, he thought back to the 
way he had felt the night before they had infiltrated the Ministry of Magic and 
remembered a determination, almost an excitement. Now he was experiencing jolts of 
anxiety nagging doubts: He could not shake off the fear that it was all going to go wrong. 
He kept telling himself that their plan was good, that Griphook knew what they were 
facing, that they were well-prepared for all the difficulties they were likely to encounter, 
yet still he felt uneasy. Once or twice he heard Ron stir and was sure that he too was 
awake, but they were sharing the sitting room with Dean, so Harry did not speak. 

 It was a relief when six o-clock arrived and they could slip out of their sleeping 
bags, dress in the semidarkness, then creep out into the garden, where they were to meet 
Hermione and Griphook. The dawn was chilly, but there was little wind now that it was 
May. Harry looked up at the stars still glimmering palely in the dark sky and listened to 
the sea washing backward and forward against the cliff: He was going to miss the sound. 

 Small green shoots were forcing their way up through the red earth of Dobby's 
grave now, in a year's time the mound would be covered in flowers. The white stone that 
bore the elf's name had already acquired a weathered look. He realized now that they 
could hardly have laid Dobby to rest in a more beautiful place, but Harry ached with 


sadness to think of leaving him behind. Looking down on the grave, he wondered yet 
again how the elf had known where to come to rescue them. His fingers moved 
absentmindedly to the little pouch still strung around his neck, thorough which he could 
feel the jagged mirror fragment in which he had been sure he had seen Dumbledore's eye. 
Then the sound of a door opening made him look around. 

 Bellatrix Lestrange was striding across the lawn toward them, accompanied by 
Griphook. As she walked, she was tucking the small, beaded bag into the inside pocket of 
another set of the old robes they had taken from Grimmauld Place. Though Harry knew 
perfectly well that it was really Hermione, he could not suppress a shiver of loathing. She 
was taller than he was, her long black hair rippling down her back, her heavily lidded 
eyes disdainful as they rested upon him; but then she spoke, and he heard Hermione 
through Bellatrix's low voice. 

 "She tasted disgusting, worse than Gurdyroots! Okay, Ron, come here so I can do 
you . . ." 

 "right, but remember, I don't like the beard too long" 

 "Oh, for heaven's sake, this isn't about looking handsome" 

 "It's not that, it gets in the way! But I liked my nose a bit shorter, try and do it the 
way you did last time." 

 Hermione sighed and set to work, muttering under her breath as she transformed 
various aspects of Ron's appearance. He was to be given a completely fake identity, and 
they were trusting to the malevolent aura cast by Bellatrix to protect him. Meanwhile 
Harry and Griphook were to be concealed under the Invisibility Cloak. 

 "There," said Hermione, "how does he look, Harry?" 

 It was just not possible to discern Ron under his disguise, but only, Harry thought 
because he knew him so well. Ron's hair was now long and wavy; he had a thick brown 
beard and mustache, no freckles, a short, broad nose, and heavy eyebrows. 

 "Well, he's not my type, but he'll do," said Harry. "Shall we go, then?" 

 All three of them glanced back at Shell Cottage, lying dark and silent under the 
fading stars, then turned and began to walk toward the point, just beyond the boundary 
wall, where the Fidelius Chard stopped working and they would be able to Disapparate. 
Once past the gate, Griphook spoke. 

 "I should climb up now, Harry Potter, I think?" 

 Harry bent down and the goblin clambered onto his back, his hands linked on 
front of Harry's throat. He was not heavy, but Harry disliked the feeling of the goblin and 
the surprising strength with which he clung on. Hermione pulled the Invisibility Cloak 
out of the beaded bag and threw it over them both. 

 "Perfect," she said, bending down to check Harry's feet. "I can't see a thing. Let's 
go." 

 Harry turned on the spot, with Griphook on his shoulders, concentrating with all 
his might on the Leaky Cauldron, the inn that was the entrance to Diagon Alley. The 
goblin clung even tighter as they moved into the compressing darkness, and seconds later 
Harry's feet found pavement and he opened his eyes on Charing Cross Road. Muggles 
bustled past wearing the hangdog expressions of early morning, quite unconscious of the 
little inn's existence. 

 The bar of the Leaky Cauldron was nearly deserted. Ton, the stooped and 
toothless landlord, was polishing glasses behind the bar counter; a couple of warlocks 


having a muttered conversation in the far corner glanced at Hermione and drew back into 
the shadows. 

 "Madam Lestrange," murmured Tom, and as Hermione paused he inclined his 
head subserviently. 

 "Good morning," said Hermione, and as Harry crept past, still carrying Griphook 
piggyback under the Cloak, he saw Tom look surprised. 

 "Too polite," Harry whispered in Hermione's ear as they passed out of the Inn into 
the tiny backyard. "You need to treat people like they're scum!" 

 "Okay, okay!" 

 Hermione drew out Bellatrix's wand and rapped a brick in the nondescript wall in 
front of them. At once the bricks began to whirl and spin: A hole appeared in the middle 
of them, which grew wider and wider, finally forming an archway onto the narrow 
cobbled street that was Diagon Alley. 

 It was quiet, barely time for the shops to open, and there were hardly and 
shoppers abroad. The crooked, cobbled street was much altered now from the bustling 
place Harry had visited before his first team at Hogwarts so many years before. More 
shops than ever were boarded up, though several new establishments dedicated to the 
Dark Arts had been created since his last visit. Harry's own face glared down at him from 
posters plastered over many windows, always captioned with the words UNDESIRABLE 
NUMBER ONE. 

 A number of ragged people sat huddled in doorways. He heard them moaning to 
the few passersby, pleading for gold, insisting that they were really wizards. One man 
had a bloody bandage over his eye. 

 As they set off along the street, the beggars glimpsed Hermione. they seemed to 
melt away before her, drawing hoods over their faces and fleeing as fast as they could. 
Hermione looked after them curiously, until the man with the bloodied bandage came 
staggering right across her path. 

 "My children," he bellowed, pointing at her. His voice was cracked, high-pitched, 
he sounded distraught. "Where are my children? What has he done with them? You know, 
you know!" 

 "I--I really--" stammered Hermione. 

 The man lunged at her, reaching for her throat. Then, with a bang and a burst of 
red light he was thrown backward onto the ground, unconscious. Ron stood there, his 
wand still outstretched and a look of shock visible behind his beard. Faces appeared at the 
windows on either side of the street, while a little knot of prosperous-looking passerby 
gathered their robes about them and broke into gentle trots, keen to vacate the scene. 

 their entrance into Diagon Alley could hardly have been more conspicuous; for a 
moment Harry wondered whether it might not be better to leave now and try to think of a 
different plan. Before they could move or consult one another, however, they heard a cry 
from behind them. 

 "Why, Madam Lestrange!" 

 Harry whirled around and Griphook tightened his hold around Harry's neck: A tall, 
think wizard with a crown of bushy gray hair and a long, sharp nose was striding toward 
them. 


 "It's Travers," hissed the goblin into Harry's ear, but at that moment Harry could 
not think who Travers was. Hermione had drawn herself up to full height and said with as 
much contempt as she could muster: 

 "And what do you want?" 

 Travers stopped in his tracks, clearly affronted. 

 "He's another Death Eater!" breathed Griphook, and Harry sidled sideways to 
repeat the information into Hermione's ear. 

 "I merely sought to greet you," said Travers coolly, "but if my presence is not 
welcome . . ." 

 Harry recognized his voice now: Travers was one of the Death Eaters who had 
been summoned to Xenophiliuss house. 

 "No, no, not at all, Travers," said Hermione quickly, trying to cover up her 
mistake. "How are you?" 

 "Well, I confess I am surprised to see you out and about, Bellatrix." 

 "Really? Why?" asked Hermione. 

 "Well," Travers coughed, "I heard that the Inhabitants of Malfoy Manor were 
confined to the house, after the . . . ah . . . escape." 

 Harry willed Hermione to keep her head. If this was true, and Bellatrix was not 
supposed to be out in public-- 

 "The Dark Lord forgives those who have served him most faithfully in the past," 
said Hermione in a magnificent imitation of Bellatrix's most contemptuous manner. 
"Perhaps your credit is not as good with him as mine is, Travers." 

 Though the Death Eater looked offended, he also seemed less suspicious. He 
glanced down at the man Ron had just Stunned. 

 "How did it offend you?" 

 "It does not matter, it will not do so again," said Hermione coolly. 

 "Some of these wandless can be troublesome," said Travers. "While they do 
nothing but beg I have no objection, but one of them actually asked me to plead her case 
in the Ministry last week. 'I'm a witch, sir, I'm a witch, let me prove it to you!" he said in 
a squeaky impersonation. "As if I was going to give her my wand--but whose wand," said 
Travers curiously, "are you using at the moment, Bellatrix? I heard that your own was--" 

 "I have my wand here," said Hermione coldly, holding up Bellatrix's wand. "I 
don't know what rumors you have been listening to, Travers, but you seem sadly 
misinformed." 

 Travers seemed a little taken aback at that, and he turned instead to Ron. 

 "Who is your friend? I do not recognize him." 

 "This is Dragomir Despard," said Hermione; they had decided that a fictional 
foreigner was the safest cover for Ron to assume. "He speaks very little English, but he is 
in sympathy with the Dark Lord's aims. He has traveled here from Transylvania to see 
our new regime." 

 "Indeed? How do you do, Dragomir?" 

 "'Ow you?" said Ron, holding out his hand. 

 Travers extended two fingers and shook Ron's hand as though frightened of 
dirtying himself. 

 So what brings you and your--ah--sympathetic friend to Diagon Alley this early?" 
asked Travers. 


 "I need to visit Gringotts," said Hermione. 

 "Alas, I also," said Travers. "Gold, filthy gold! We cannot live without it, yet I 
confess I deplore the necessity of consorting with our long-fingered friends." 

 Harry felt Griphook's clasped hands tighten momentarily around his neck. 

 "Shall we?" said Travers, gesturing Hermione forward. 

 Hermione had no choice but to fall into step beside him and head along the 
crooked, cobbled street toward the place where the snowy-white Gringotts stood towering 
over the other little shops. Ron sloped along beside them, and Harry and Griphook 
followed. 

 A watchful Death Eater was the very last thing they needed, and the worst of it 
was, with Travers matching at what he believed to be Bellatrix's side, there was no means 
for Harry to communicate with Hermione or Ron. All too soon they arrived at the foot of 
the marble steps leading up to the great bronze doors. As Griphook had already warned 
them, the liveried goblins who usually flanked the entrance had been replaced by two 
wizards, both of whom were clutching long thin golden rods. 

 "Ah, Probity Probes," signed Travers theatrically, "so crude--but so effective!" 

 And he set off up the steps, nodding left and right to the wizards, who raised the 
golden rods and passed them up and down his body. The Probes, Harry knew, detected 
spells of concealment and hidden magical objects. Knowing that he had only seconds, 
Harry pointed Draco's wand at each of the guards in turn and murmured, "Confundo" 
twice. Unnoticed by Travers, who was looking through the bronze doors at the inner hall, 
each of the guards gave a little start as the spells hit them. 

 Hermione's long black hair rippled behind her as she climbed the steps. 

 "One moment, madam," said the guard, raising his Probe. 

 "But you've just done that!" said Hermione in Bellatrix's commanding, arrogant 
voice. Travers looked around, eyebrows raised. The guard was confused. He stared down 
at the thin golden Probe and then at his companion, who said in a slightly dazed voice, 

 "Yeah, you've just checked them, Marius." 

 Hermione swept forward. Ron by her side, Harry and Griphook trotting invisibly 
behind them. Harry glanced back as they crossed the threshold. The wizards were both 
scratching their heads. 

 Two goblins stood before the inner doors, which were made of silver and which 
carried the poem warning of dire retribution to potential thieves. Harry looked up at it, 
and all of a sudden a knife-sharp memory came to him: standing on this very spot on the 
day that he had turned eleven, the most wonderful birthday of his life, and Hagrid 
standing beside him saying, "Like I said, yeh'd be mad ter try an' rob it." Gringotts had 
seemed a place of wonder that day, the enchanted repository of a trove of gold he had 
never known he possessed, and never for an instant could he have dreamed that he would 
return to steal . . . But within seconds they were standing in the vast marble hall of the 
bank. 

 The long counter was manned by goblins sitting on high stools serving the first 
customers of the day. Hermione, Ron, and Travers headed toward an old goblin who was 
examining a thick gold coin through an eyeglass. Hermione allowed Travers to step 
ahead of her on the pretext of explaining features of the hall to Ron. 


 The goblin tossed the coin he was holding aside, said to nobody in particular, 
"Leprechaun," and then greeted Travers, who passed over a tiny golden key, which was 
examined and given back to him. 

 Hermione stepped forward. 

 "Madam Lestrange!" said the goblin, evidently startled. "Dear me!" How--how 
may I help you today?" 

 "I wish to enter my vault," said Hermione. 

 The old goblin seemed to recoil a little. Harry glanced around. Not only was 
Travers hanging back, watching, but several other goblins had looked up from their work 
to stare at Hermione. 

 "You have . . . identification?" asked the goblin. 

 "Identification? I--I have never been asked for identification before!" said 
Hermione. 

 "They know!" whispered Griphook in Harry's ear, "They must have been warned 
there might be an imposter!" 

 "Your wand will do, madam," said the goblin. He held out a slightly trembling 
hand, and in a dreadful blast of realization Harry knew that the goblins of Gringotts were 
aware that Bellatrix's wand had been stolen. 

 "Act now, act now," whispered Griphook in Harry's ear, "the Imperious Curse!" 

 Harry raised the hawthorn wand beneath the cloak, pointed it at the old goblin, 
and whispered, for the first time in his life, "Imperio!" 

 A curious sensation shot down Harry's arm, a feeling of tingling, warmth that 
seemed to flow from his mind, down the sinews and veins connecting him to the wand 
and the curse it had just cast. The goblin took Bellatrix's wand, examined it closely, and 
then said, "Ah, you have had a new wand made, Madam Lestrange!" 

 "What?" said Hermione, "No, no, that's mine--" 

 "A new wand?" said Travers, approaching the counter again; still the goblins all 
around were watching. "But how could you have done, which wandmaker did you use?" 

 Harry acted without thinking. Pointing his wand at Travers, he muttered, 
"Imperio!" once more. 

 "Oh yes, I see," said Travers, looking down at Bellatrix's wand, "yes, very 
handsome. and is it working well? I always think wands require a little breaking in, don't 
you?" 

 Hermione looked utterly bewildered, but to Harry's enormous relief she accepted 
the bizarre turn of events without comment. 

 The old goblin behind the counter clapped his hands and a younger goblin 
approached. 

 "I shall need the Clankers," he told the goblin, who dashed away and returned a 
moment later with a leather bag that seemed to be full of jangling metal, which he handed 
to his senior. "Good, good! S, if you will follow me, Madam Lestrange," said the old 
goblin, hopping down off his stool and vanishing from sight. "I shall take you to your 
vault." 

 He appeared around the end of the counter, jogging happily toward them, the 
contents of the leather bag still jingling. Travers was now standing quite still with his 
mouth hanging wide open. Ron was drawing attention to this odd phenomenon by 
regarding Travers with confusion. 


 Wait C Bogrod! 

 Another goblin came scurrying around the counter. 

 We have instructions, he said with a bow to Hermione. Forgive me, Madam, 
but there have been special orders regarding the vault of Lestrange. 

 He whispered urgently in Bogrods ear, but the Imperiused goblin shook him off. 

 I am aware of the instructions, Madam Lestrange wishes to visit her vault  
Very old family  old clients  This way, please   

 And, still clanking, he hurried toward one of the many doors leading off the hall. 
Harry looked back at Travers , who was still rooted to the spot looking abnormally vacant, 
and made his decision. With a flick of his wand he made Travers come with them, 
walking meekly in their wake as they reached the door and passed into the rough stone 
passageway beyond, which was lit with flaming torches. 

 Were in trouble; they suspect, said Harry as the door slammed behind them 
and he pulled off the Invisibility Cloak. Griphook jumped down from his shoulders: 
neither Travers nor Bogrod showed the slightest surprise at the sudden appearance of 
Harry Potter in their midst. Theyre Imperiused, he added, in response to Hermione and 
Rons confused queries about Travers and Bogrod, who were both now standing there 
looking blank. I dont think I did it strongly enough, I dont know  

 And another memory darted through his mind, of the real Bellatrix Lestrange 
shrieking at him when he had first tried to use an Unforgivable Curse: You need to mean 
them, Potter! 

 What do we do? asked Ron. Shall we get out now, while we can? 

 If we can, said Hermione, looking back toward the door into the main hall, 
beyond which who knew what was happening. 

 Weve got this far, I say we go on, said Harry. 

 Good! said Griphook. So, we need Bogrod to control the cart; I no long have 
the authority. But there will not be room for the wizard. 

 Harry pointed his wand at Travers. 

 Imperio! 

 The wizard turned and set off along the dark track at a smart pace. 

 What are you making him do? 

 Hide, said Harry as he pointed his wand at Bogrod, who whistled to summon a 
little cart that came trundling along the tracks toward them out of the darkness. Harry was 
sure he could hear shouting behind them in the main hall as they all clambered into it, 
Bogrod in front of Griphook, Harry, Ron, and Hermione crammed together in the back. 

 With a jerk the cart moved off, gathering speed: They hurried past Travers, who 
was wriggling into a crack in the wall, then the cart began twisting and turning through 
the labyrinthine passages, sloping downward all the time. Harry could not hear anything 
over the rattling of the cart on the tracks: His hair flew behind him as they swerved 
between stalactites, flying ever deeper into the earth, but he kept glancing back. They 
might as well have left enormous footprints behind them; the more he thought about it, 
the more foolish it seemed to have disguised Hermione as Bellatrix, to have brought 
along Bellatrixs wand, when the Death Eaters knew who had stolen it C 

 There were a deeper than Harry had ever penetrated within Gringotts; they took a 
hairpin bend at speed and saw ahead of them, with seconds to spare, a waterfall pounding 
over the track. Harry heard Griphook shout, No! but there was no braking. They 


zoomed through it. Water filled Harrys eyes and mouth: He could not see or breathe: 
Then, with an awful lurch, the cart flipped over and they were all thrown out of it. Harry 
heard the cart smash into pieces against the passage wall, heard Hermione shriek 
something, and felt himself glide back toward the ground as though weightless, landing 
painlessly on the rocky passage floor. 

 C-Cushioning Charm, Hermione spluttered, as Ron pulled her to her feet, but to 
Harrys horror he saw that she was no longer Bellatrix; instead she stood there in 
overlarge robes, sopping wet and completely herself; Ron was red-haired and beardless 
again. They were realizing it as they looked at each other, feeling their own faces. 

 The Thiefs Downfall! said Griphook, clambering to his feet and looking back 
the deluge onto the tracks, which, Harry knew now, had been more than water. It washes 
away all enchantment, all magical concealment! They know there are imposers in 
Gringotts, they have set off defenses against us! 

 Harry saw Hermione checking that she still had the beaded bag, and hurriedly 
thrust his own hand under his jacket to make sure he had not lost the Invisibility Cloak. 
Then he turned to see Bogrod shaking his head in bewilderment: The Thiefs Downfall 
seemed to have lifted his Imperius Curse. 

 We need him, said Griphook, we cannot enter the vault without a Gringotts 
goblin. And we need the clankers! 

 Imperio! Harry said again; his voice echoed through the stone passage as he felt 
again the sense of heady control that flowed from brain to wand. Bogrod submitted once 
more to his will, his befuddled expression changing to one of polite indifference, as Ron 
hurried to pick up the leather bag of metal tools. 

 Harry, I think I can hear people coming! said Hermione, and she pointed 
Bellatrixs wand at the waterfall and cried, Protego! They saw the Shield Charm break 
the flow of enchanted water as it flew up the passageway. 

 Good thinking, said Harry. Lead the way, Griphook! 

 How are we going to get out again? Ron asked as they hurried on foot into the 
darkness after the goblin, Bogrod panting in their wake like an old dog. 

 Lets worry about that when we have to, said Harry. He was trying to listen: He 
thought he could hear something clanking and moving around nearby. Griphook, how 
much farther? 

 Not far, Harry Potter, not far   

 And they turned a corner and saw the thing for which Harry had been prepared, 
but which still brought all of them to a halt. 

 A gigantic dragon was tethered to the ground in front of them, barring access to 
four or five of the deepest vaults in the place. The beasts scales had turned pale and flaky 
during its long incarceration under the ground, its eyes were milkily pink; both rear legs 
bore heavy cuffs from which chains led to enormous pegs driven deep into the rocky 
floor. Its great spiked wings, folded close to its body, would have filled the chamber if it 
spread them, and when it turned its ugly head toward them, it roared with a noise that 
made the rock tremble, opened its mouth, and spat a jet of fire that sent them running 
back up the passageway. 

 It is partially blind, panted Griphook, but even more savage for that. However, 
we have the means to control it. It has learned what to expect when the Clankers come. 
Give them to me. 


 Ron passed the bag to Griphook, and the goblin pulled out a number of small 
metal instruments that when shaken made a long ringing noise like miniature hammers on 
anvils. Griphook handed them out: Bogrod accepted his meekly. 

 You know what to do, Griphook told Harry, Ron, and Hermione. It will expect 
pain when it hears the noise. It will retreat, and Bogrod must place his palm upon the 
door of the vault. 

 They advanced around the corner again, shaking the Clankers, and the noise 
echoed off the rocky walls, grossly magnified, so that the inside of Harrys skull seemed 
to vibrate with the den. The dragon let out another hoarse roar, then retreated. Harry 
could see it trembling, and as they drew nearer he saw the scars made by vicious slashes 
across its face, and guess that it had been taught to fear hot swords when it heard the 
sound of the Clankers. 

 Make him press his hand to the door! Griphook urged Harry, who turned his 
wand again upon Bogrod. The old goblin obeyed, pressing his palm to the wood, and the 
door of the vault melted away to reveal a cavelike opening crammed from floor to ceiling 
with golden coins and goblets, silver armor, the skins of strange creatures C some with 
long spines, other with drooping wings C potions in jeweled flasks, and a skull still 
wearing a crown. Search, fast! said Harry as they all hurried inside the vault. He had 
described Hufflepuffs cap to Ron and Hermione, but if it was the other, unknown 
Horcrux that resided in this vault, he did not know what it looked like. He barely had 
time to glance around, however, before there was a muffled clunk from behind them: The 
door had reappeared, sealing them inside the vault, and they were plunged into total 
darkness. 

 No matter, Bogrod will be able to release us! said Griphook as Ron gave a 
shout of surprise. Light your wands, cant you? And hurry, we have little time! 

 Lumos! 

 Harry shone his lit wand around the vault: Its beam fell upon glittering jewels; he 
saw the fake sword of Gryffindor lying on a high shelf amongst a jumble of chains. Ron 
and Hermione had lit their wands too, and were now examining the piles of objects 
surrounding them. 

 Harry, could this be -- ? Aargh! 

 Hermione screamed in pain, and Harry turned his wand on her in time to see a 
jeweled goblet tumbling from her grip. But as it fell, it split, became a shower of goblets, 
so that a second later, with a great clatter, the floor was covered in identical cups rolling 
in every direction, the original impossible to discern amongst them. 

 It burned me! moaned Hermione, sucking her blistered fingers. 

 They have added Germino and Flagrante Curses! said Griphook. 

 Everything you touch will burn and multiply, but the copies are worthless C and 
if you continue to handle the treasure, you will eventually be crushed to death by the 
weight of expanding gold! 

 Okay, dont touch anything! said Harry desperately, but even as he said it, Ron 
accidentally nudged one of the fallen goblets with his foot, and twenty more exploded 
into being while Ron hopped on the spot, part of his shoe burned away by contact with 
the hot metal. 

 Stand still, dont move! said Hermione, clutching at Ron. 


 Just look around! said Harry. Remember, the cups small and gold, its got a 
badger engraved on it, two handles C otherwise see if you can spot Ravenclaws symbol 
anywhere, the eagle C 

 They directed their wands into every nook and crevice, turning cautiously on the 
spot. It was impossible not to brush up against anything; Harry sent a great cascade of 
fake Galleons onto the ground where they joined the goblets, and now there was scarcely 
room to place their feet, and the glowing gold blazed with heat, so that the vault felt like a 
furnace. Harrys wandlight passed over shields and goblin-made helmets set on shelves 
rising to the ceiling; higher and higher he raised the beam, until suddenly it found an 
object that made his heart skip and his hand tremble. 

 Its there, its up there! 

 Ron and Hermione pointed there wands at it too, so that the little golden cup 
sparkled in a three-way spotlight: the cup that had belonged to Helga Hufflepuff, which 
had passed into the possession of Hepzibah Smith, from whom it had been stolen by Tom 
Riddle. 

 And how the hell are we going to get up there without touching anything? asked 
Ron. 

 Accio Cup! cried Hermione, who had evidently forgotten in her desperation 
what Griphook had told them during their planning sessions. 

 No use, no use! snarled the goblin. 

 Then what do we do? said Harry, glaring at the goblin. If you want the sword, 
Griphook, then youll have to help us more than C wait! Can I touch stuff with the sword? 
Hermione, give it here! 

 Hermione fumbled insider her robes, drew out a beaded bag, rummaged for a few 
seconds, then removed the shining sword. Harry seized it by its rubied hilt and touched 
the tip of the blade to a silver flagon nearby, which did not multiply. 

 If I can just poke the sword through a handle C but how am I going to get up 
there? 

 The shelf on which the cup reposed was out of reach for any of them, even Ron, 
who was tallest. The heat from the enchanted treasure rose in waves, and sweat ran down 
Harrys face and back as he struggled to think of a way up to the cup; and then he heard 
the dragon roar on the other side of the vault door, and the sound of clanking growing 
louder and louder. 

 They were truly trapped now: There was no way out except through the door, and 
a horde of goblins seemed to be approaching on the other side. Harry looked at Ron and 
Hermione and saw terror in their faces. 

 Hermione, said Harry, as the clanking grew louder, Ive got to get up there, 
weve got to get rid of it C 

 She raised her wand, pointed it at Harry, and whispered, Levicorpus. 

 Hoisted into the air by his ankle, Harry hit a suit of armor and replicas burst out of 
it like white-hot bodies, filling the cramped space. With screams of pain, Ron, Hermione, 
and the two goblins were knocked aside into other objects, which also began to replicate. 
Half buried in a rising tide of red-hot treasure, they struggled and yelled has Harry thrust 
the sword through the handle of Hufflepuffs cup, hooking it onto the blade. 

 Impervius! screeched Hermione in an attempt to protect herself, Ron, and the 
goblins from the burning metal. 


 Then the worst scream yet made Harry look down: Ron and Hermione were waist 
deep in treasure, struggling to keep Bogrod from slipping beneath the rising tide, but 
Griphook had sunk out of sight; and nothing but the tips of a few long fingers were left in 
view. 

 Harry seized Griphooks fingers and pulled. The blistered goblin emerged by 
degrees, howling. 

 Liberatocorpus! yelled Harry, and with a crash he and Griphook landed on the 
surface of the swelling treasure, and the sword flew out of Harrys hand. 

 Get it! Harry yelled, fighting the pain of the hot metal on his skin, as Griphook 
clambered onto his shoulders again, determined to avoid the swelling mass of red-hot 
objects. Wheres the sword? It had the cup on it! 

 The clanking on the other side of the door was growing deafening C it was too late 
C 

 There! 

 It was Griphook who had seen it and Griphook who lunged, and in that instant 
Harry knew that the goblin had never expected them to keep their word. One hand 
holding tightly to a fistful of Harrys hair, to make sure he did not fall into the heaving 
sea of burning gold, Griphook seized the hilt of the sword and swung it high out of 
Harrys reach. The tiny golden cup, skewered by the handle on the swords blade was 
flung into the air. The goblin astride him, Harry dived and caught it, and although he 
could feel it scalding his flesh he did not relinquish it, even while countless Hufflepuff 
cups burst from his fist, raining down upon him as the entrance of the vault opened up 
again and he found himself sliding uncontrollably on an expanding avalanche of fiery 
gold and silver that bore him, Ron, Hermione into the outer chamber. 

 Hardly aware of the pain from the burns covering his body, and still borne along 
the swell of replicating treasure, Harry shoved the cup into his pocket and reached up to 
retrieve the sword, but Griphook was gone. Sliding from Harrys shoulders the moment 
he could, he had sprinted for cover amongst the surrounding goblins, brandishing the 
sword and crying, Thieves! Thieves! Help! Thieves! He vanished into the midst of the 
advancing crowd, all of whom were holding daggers and who accepted him without 
question. 

 Slipping on the hot metal, Harry struggled to his feet and knew that the only way 
out was through. 

 Stupefy! he bellowed, and Ron and Hermione joined in: Jets of red light flew 
into the crowd of goblins, and some toppled over, but others advanced, and Harry saw 
several wizard guards running around the corner. 

 The tethered dragon let out a roar, and a gush of flame flew over the goblins; The 
wizards fled, doubled-up, back the way they had come, and inspiration, or madness, came 
to Harry. Pointing his wand at the thick cuffs chaining the beast to the floor, he yelled, 
Relashio! 

 The cuffs broken open with loud bangs. 

 This way! Harry yelled, and still shooting Stunning Spells at the advancing 
goblins, he sprinted toward the blind dragon. 

 Harry C Harry C what are you doing? cried Hermione. 

 Get up, climb up, come on C 


 The dragon had not realized that it was free: Harrys foot found the crook of its 
hind leg and he pulled himself up onto its back. The scales were hard as steel; it did not 
even seem to feel him. He stretched out an arm; Hermione hoisted herself up; Ron 
climbed on behind them, and a second later the dragon became aware that it was 
untethered. 

 With a roar it reared: Harry dug in his knees, clutching as tightly as he could to 
the jagged scales as the wings opened, knocking the shrieking goblins aside like skittles, 
and it soared into the air. Harry, Ron, and Hermione, flat on its back, scraped against the 
ceiling as it dived toward the passage opening, while the pursuing goblins hurled daggers 
that glanced off its flanks. 

 Well never get out, its too big! Hermione screamed, but the dragon opened its 
mouth and belched flame again, blasting the tunnel, whose floors and ceiling cracked and 
crumbled. By sheer force, the dragon clawed and fought its way through. Harrys eyes 
were shut tight against the heat and dust: Deafened by the crash of rock and the dragons 
roars, he could only cling to its back, expecting to be shaken off at any moment; then he 
heard Hermione yelling, Defodio! 

 She was helping the dragon enlarge the passageway, carving out the ceiling as it 
struggled upward toward the fresher air, away from the shrieking and clanking goblins: 
Harry and Ron copied her, blasting the ceiling apart with more gouging spells. They 
passed the underground lake, and the great crawling, snarling beast seemed to sense 
freedom and space ahead of it, and behind them the passage was full of the dragons 
thrashing, spiked tail, of great lumps of rock, gigantic fractured stalactites, and the 
clanking of the goblins seemed to be growing more muffled, while ahead, the dragons 
fire kept their progress clear C 

 And then at last, by the combined force of their spells and the dragons brute 
strength, they had blasted their way out of the passage into the marble hallway. Goblins 
and wizards shrieked and ran for cover, and finally the dragon had room to stretch its 
wings: Turning its horned head toward the cool outside air it could smell beyond the 
entrance, it took off, and with Harry, Ron, and Hermione still clinging to its back, it 
forced its way through the metal doors, leaving them buckled and hanging from their 
hinges, as it staggered into Diagon Alley and launched itself into the sky. 

 

 

 

Chapter Twenty-Seven 

The Final Hiding Place 

 

There was no means of steering; the dragon could not see where it was 
going, and Harry knew that if it turned sharply or rolled in midair they 
would find it impossible to cling onto its broad back. Nevertheless, as they 
climbed higher and higher, London unfurling below them like a gray-and-green 
map, Harry's overwhelming feeling was of gratitude for an escape that had 
seemed impossible. Crouching low over the beast's neck, he clung tight to 


the metallic scales, and the cool breeze was soothing on his burned and 
blistered skin, the dragon's wings beating the air like the sails of a 
windmill. Behind him, whether from delight or fear he could not tell. Ron 
kept swearing at the top of his voice, and Hermione seemed to be sobbing. 
After five minutes or so, Harry lost some of his immediate dread that 
the dragon was going to throw them off, for it seemed intent on nothing but 
getting as far away from its underground prison as possible; but the 
question of how and when they were to dismount remained rather frightening. 
He had no idea how long dragons could fly without landing, nor how this 
particular dragon, which could barely see, would locate a good place to put 
down. He glanced around constantly, imagining that he could feel his seat 
prickling. 
How long would it be before Voldemort knew that they had broken into the 
Lestranges' vault? How soon would the goblins of Gringotts notify Bellatrix? 
How quickly would they realize what had been taken? And then, when they 
discovered that the golden cup was missing? Voldemort would know, at last, 
that they were hunting Horcruxes. 
The dragon seemed to crave cooler and fresher air. It climbed steadily 
until they were flying through wisps of chilly cloud, and Harry could no 
longer make out the little colored dots which were cars pouring in and out 
of the capital. On and on they flew, over countryside parceled out in 
patches of green and brown, over roads and rivers winding through the 
landscape like strips of matte and glossy ribbon. 
"What do you reckon it's looking for?" Ron yelled as they flew farther 
and farther north. 
"No idea," Harry bellow back. His hands were numb with cold but he did 
not date attempt to shift his grip. He had been wondering for some time what 
they would do if they saw the coast sail beneath them, if the dragon headed 
for open seal he was cold and numb, not to mention desperately hungry and 
thirsty. When, he wondered, had the beast itself last eaten? Surely it would 
need sustenance before long? And what if, at that point, it realized it had 
three highly edible humans sitting on its back? 
The sun slipped lower in the sky, which was turning indigo; and still 
the dragon flew, cities and towns gliding out of sight beneath them, its 
enormous shadow sliding over the earth like a giant dark cloud. Every part 
of Harry ached with the effort of holding on to the dragon's back. 
"Is it my imagination," shouted Ron after a considerable stretch of 
silence, "or are we losing height?" 
Harry looked down and saw deep green mountains and lakes, coppery in the 
sunset. the landscape seemed to grow larger and more detailed as he squinted 
over the side of the dragon, and he wondered whether it had divined the 
presence of fresh water by the flashes of reflected sunlight. 
Lower and lower the dragon flew, in great spiraling circles, honing in, 
it seemed, upon one of the smaller lakes. 
"I say we jump when it gets low enough!" Harry called back to the 
others. "Straight into the water before it realizes we're here!" 


 They agreed, Hermione a little faintly, and now Harry could see the 
dragon's wide yellow underbelly rippling in the surface of the water. 
"NOW!" 
He slithered over the side of the dragon and plummeted feetfirst toward 
the surface of the lake; the drop was greater than he had estimated and he 
hit the water hard, plunging like a stone into a freezing, green, 
reed-filled world. He kicked toward the surface and emerged, panting, to see 
enormous ripples emanating in circles from the places where Ron and Hermione 
had fallen. The dragon did not seem to have noticed anything; it was already 
fifty feet away, swooping low over the lake to scoop up water in its scarred 
snout. As Ron and Hermione emerged, spluttering and gasping, from the depths 
of the lake, the dragon flew on, its wings beating hard, and landed at last 
on a distant bank. 
Harry, Ron and Hermione struck out for the opposite shore. The lake did 
not seem to be deep. Soon it was more a question of fighting their way 
through reeds and mud than swimming, and at last they flopped, sodden, 
panting, and exhausted, onto slippery grass. 
Hermione collapsed, coughing and shuddering. Though Harry could have 
happily lain down and slept, he staggered to his feet, drew out his wand, 
and started casting the usual protective spells around them. 
When he had finished, he joined the others. It was the first time that 
he had seen them properly since escaping from the vault. Both had angry red 
burns all over their faces and arms, and their clothing was singed away in 
places. They were wincing as they dabbed essence of dittany onto their many 
injuries. Hermione handed Harry the bottle, then pulled out three bottles of 
pumpkin juice she had brought from Shell Cottage and clean, dry robes for 
all of them. They changes and then gulped down the juice. 
"Well, on the upside," said Ron finally, who was sitting watching the 
skin on his hands regrow, "we got the Horcrux. On the downside-" 
"-- no sword," said Harry through gritted teeth, as he dripped dittany 
through the singed hole in his jeans onto the angry burn beneath. 
"No sword," repeated Ron. "That double-crossing little scab..." 
Harry pulled the Horcrux from the pocket of the wet jacket he had just 
taken off and set it down on the grass in front of them. Glinting in the 
sun, it drew their eyes as they swigged their bottles of juice. 
"At least we can't wear it this time, that'd look a bit weird hanging 
around our necks," said Ron, wiping his mouth on the back of his hand. 
Hermione looked across the lake to the far bank where the dragon was 
still drinking. 
"What'll happen to it, do you think?" she asked, "Will it be alright?" 
"You sound like Hagrid," said Ron, "It's a dragon, Hermione, it can look 
after itself. It's us we need to worry about." 
"What do you mean?" 
"Well I don't know how to break this to you," said Ron, "but I think 
they might have noticed we broke into Gringotts." 
All three of them started to laugh, and once started, it was difficult 


to stop. Harry's ribs ached, he felt lightheaded with hunger, but he lay 
back on the grass beneath the reddening sky and laughed until his throat was 
raw. 
"What are we going to do, though?" said Hermione finally, hiccuping 
herself back to seriousness. "He'll know, won't he? You-Know-Who will know 
we know about his Horcruxes!" 
"Maybe they'll be too scared to tell him!" said Ron hopefully, "Maybe 
they'll cover up --" 
The sky, the smell of the lake water, the sound of Ron's voice were 
extinguished. Pain cleaved Harry's head like a sword stroke. He was standing 
in a dimly lit room, and a semicircle of wizards faced him, and on the floor 
at his feet knelt a small, quaking figure. 
"What did you say to me?" His voice was high and cold, but fury and fear 
burned inside him. The one thing that he had dreaded - but it could not be 
true, he could not see how... 
The goblin was trembling, unable to meet the red eyes high above his. 
"Say it again!" murmured Voldemort. "Say it again!" 
"M-my Lord," stammered the goblin, its black eyes wide with terror, 
"m-my Lord... we t-tried to st-stop them... Im-impostors, my Lord... broke - 
broke into the - into the Lestranges' vault..." 
"Impostors? What impostors? I thought Gringotts had ways of revealing 
impostors? Who were they? 
"It was... it was... the P-Potter b-boy and the t-two accomplices..." 
"And they took?" he said, his voice rising, a terrible fear gripping 
him, "Tell me! What did they take?" 
"A... a s-small golden c-cup m-my Lord..." 
The scream of rage, of denial left him as if it were a stranger's. He 
was crazed, frenzied, it could not be true, it was impossible, nobody had 
known. How was it possible that the boy could have discovered his secret? 
The Elder Wand slashed through the air and green light erupted through 
the room; the kneeling goblin rolled over dead; the watching wizards 
scattered before him, terrified. Bellatrix and Lucius Malfoy threw others 
behind them in their race for the door, and again and again his wand fell, 
and those who were left were slain, all of them, for bringing him this news, 
for hearing about the golden cup - 
Alone amongst the dead he stomped up and down, and they passed before him 
in vision: his treasures, his safeguards, his anchors to immortality - the 
diary was destroyed and the cup was stolen. What if, what if, the boy knew 
about the others? Could he know, had he already acted, had he traced more of 
them? Was Dumbledore at the root of this? Dumbledore, who had always 
suspected him; Dumbledore, dead on his orders; Dumbledore, whose wand was 
his now, yet who reached out from the ignominy of death through the boy, the 
boy - 
But surely if the boy had destroyed any of his Horcruxes, he, Lord 
Voldemort, would have known, would have felt it? He, the greatest wizard of 
them all; he, the most powerful; he, the killer of Dumbledore and of how 


many other worthless, nameless men. How could Lord Voldemort not have known, 
if he, himself, most important and precious, had been attacked, mutilated? 
True, he had not felt it when the diary had been destroyed, but he had 
thought that was because he had no body to fell, being less than ghost... 
No, surely, the rest were safe... The other Horcruxes must be intact... 
But he must know, he must be sure... He paced the room, kicking aside 
the goblin's corpse as he passed, and the pictures blurred and burned in his 
boiling brain: the lake, the shack, and Hogwarts - 
A modicum of calm cooled his rage now. How could the boy know that he 
had hidden the ring in the Gaunt shack? No one had ever known him to be 
related to the Gaunts, he had hidden the connection, the killings had never 
been traced to him. The ring, surely, was safe. 
And how could the boy, or anybody else, know about the cave or penetrate 
its protection? The idea of the locket being stolen was absurd... 
As for the school: He alone knew where in Hogwarts he had stowed the 
Horcrux, because he alone had plumed the deepest secrets of that place... 
And there was still Nagini, who must remain close now, no longer sent to 
do his bidding, under his protection... 
But to be sure, to be utterly sure, he must return to each of his hiding 
places, he must redouble protection around each of his Horcruxes... A job, 
like the quest for the Elder Wand, that he must undertake alone... 
Which should he visit first, which was in most danger? An old unease 
flickered inside him. Dumbledore had known his middle name... Dumbledore 
might have made the connection with the Gaunts... Their abandoned home was, 
perhaps, the least secure of his hiding places, it was there that he would 
go first... 
The lake, surely impossible... though was there a slight possibility 
that Dumbledore might have known some of his past misdeeds, through the 
orphanage. 
And Hogwarts... but he knew the his Horcrux there was safe; it would be 
impossible for Potter to enter Hogsmeade without detection, let alone the 
school. Nevertheless, it would be prudent to alert Snape to the fact that 
the boy might try to reenter the castle. ... To tell Snape why the boy might 
return would be foolish, of course; it had been a grave mistake to trust 
Bellatrix and Malfoy. Didn't their stupidity and carelessness prove how 
unwise it was ever to trust? 
He would visit the Gaunt shack first, then, and take Nagini with him. He 
would not be parted from the snake anymore ... and he strode from the room, 
through the hall, and out into the dark garden where the fountain played; he 
called the snake in Parseltongue and it slithered out to join him like a 
long shadow. ... 
Harry's eyes flew open as he wrenched himself back to the present. He 
was lying on the bank of the lake in the setting sun, and Ron and Hermione 
were looking down at him. Judging by their worried looks, and by the 
continued pounding of his scar, his sudden excursion into Voldemort's mind 
had not passed unnoticed. He struggled up, shivering, vaguely surprised that 


he was still wet to his skin, and saw the cup lying innocently in the grass 
before him, and the lake, deep blue shot with gold in the falling sun. 
"He knows." His own voice sounded strange and low after Voldemort's high 
screams. "He knows and he's going to check where the others are, and the 
last one," he was already on his feet," is at Hogwarts. I knew it. I knew 
it." 
"What?" 
Ron was gaping at him; Hermione sat up, looking worried. 
"But what did you see? How do you know?" 
"I saw him find out about the cup, I - I was in his head, he's" - Harry 
remembered the killings - "he's seriously angry, and scared too, he can't 
understand how we knew, and now he's going to check the others are safe, the 
ring first. He things the Hogwarts one is safest, because Snape's there, 
because it'll be so hard not to be seen getting in. I think he'll check that 
one last, but he could still be there within hours -" 
"Did you see where in Hogwarts it is?" asked Ron, now scrambling to his 
feet too. 
"No, he was concentrating on warning Snape, he didn't think about 
exactly where it is -" 
"Wait, wait!" cried Hermione as Ron caught up to the Horcrux and Harry 
pulled out the Invisibility Cloak again. "We can't just go, we haven't got a 
plan, we need to -" 
"We need to get going," said Harry firmly. He had been hoping to sleep, 
looking forward to getting into the new tent, but that was impossible now, 
"Can you imagine what he's going to do once he realizes the ring and the 
locket are gone? What if he moves the Hogwarts Horcrux, decides it isn't 
safe enough? 
"But how are we going to get in?" 
"We'll go to Hogsmeade," said Harry, "and try to work something out once 
we see what the protection around the school's like. Get under the Cloak, 
Hermione, I want to stick together this time." 
"But we don't really fit -" 
"It'll be dark, no one's going to notice our feet." 
The flapping of enormous wings echoed across the black water. The dragon 
had drunk its fill and risen into the air. They paused in their preparations 
to watch it climb higher and higher, now black against the rapidly darkening 
sky, until it vanished over a nearby mountain. Then Hermione walked forward 
and took her place between the other two, Harry pulled the Cloak down as far 
as it would go, and together they turned on the spot into the crushing 
darkness. 

Chapter Twenty-Eight 

The Missing Mirror 

 


 Harry's feet touched the road. He saw the achingly familiar Hogsmeade High Street: 
dark shop 

fronts, and the mist line of black mountains beyond the village and the curve in the road 
ahead that 

led off toward Hogwarts, and light spilling from the windows of the Three Broomsticks, 
and with a 

lurch of the hear, he remembered with piercing accuracy, how he had landed here nearly 
a year before, 

supporting a desperately weak Dumbledore, all this in a second, upon landing -- and then, 
even as he 

relaxed his grip upon Ron's and Hermione's arms, it happened. 

 The air was rent by a scream that sounded like Voldemort's when he had realized 
the cup had 

been stolen: It tore at every nerve in Harry's body, and he knew that their appearance had 
caused it. 

Even as he looked at the other two beneath the Cloak, the door of the Three Broomsticks 
burst open 

and a dozen cloaked and hooded Death Eaters dashed into the streets, their wands aloft. 

 Harry seized Ron's wrist as he raised his wand; there were too many of them to 
run. Even 

attempting it would have give away their position. One of the Death Eaters raised his 
wand, and the 

scream stopped, still echoing around the distant mountains. 

 "Accio Cloak!" roared one of the Death Eaters 

 Harry seized his folds, but it made no attempt to escape. The Summoning Charm 
had not 

worked on it. 

 "Not under your wrapper, then, Potter?" yelled the Death Eater who had tried the 
charm and 

then to his fellows. "Spread now. He's here." 

 Six of the Death Eaters ran toward them: Harry, Ron and Hermione backed as 
quickly as 

possible down the nearest side street, and the Death Eaters missed them by inches. They 
waited 

in the darkness, listening to the footsteps running up and down, beams of light flying 
along the street 

from the Death Eaters' searching wands. 

 "Let's just leave!" Hermione whispered. "Disapparate now!" 

 "Great idea," said Ron, but before Harry could reply, a Death Eater shouted, 

 "We know you are here, Potter, and there's no getting away! We'll find you!" 

 "They were ready for us," whispered Harry. "They set up that spell to tell them 
we'd come. 

I reckon theyve done something to keep us here, trap us - " 

 "What about dementors?" called another Death Eater. "Let'em have free rein, 
they'd find him 

quick enough!" 


 "The Dark Lord wants Potter dead by no hands but his - " 

 " 'an dementors won't kill him! The Dark Lord wants Potter's life, nor his soul. 
He'll be easier to 

kill if he's been Kissed first!" 

 There were noises of agreement. Dread filled Harry: To repel dementors they 
would have to produce 

Patronuses which would give them away immediately. 

 "We're going to have to try to Disapparate, Harry!" Hermione whispered. 

 Even as she said it, he felt the unnatural cold being spread over the street. Light 
was sucked from 

the environment right up to the stars, which vanished. In the pitch blackness, he felt 
Hermione take hold 

of his arm and together, they turned on the spot. 

 The air through which they needed to move, seemed to have become solid: They 
could not 

Disapparate; the Death Eaters had cast their charms well. The cold was biting deeper and 
deeper 

into Harry's flesh. He, Ron and Hermione retreated down the side street, groping their 
way along the wall 

trying not to make a sound. Then, around the corner, gliding noiselessly, came dementors, 
ten or more 

of them, visible because they were of a denser darkness than their surroundings, with 
their black cloaks 

and their scabbed and rotting hands. Could they sense fear in the vicinity? Harry was sure 
of it: They 

seemed to be coming more quickly now, taking those dragging, rattling breaths he 
detested, tasting 

despair in the air, closing in - 

 He raised his wand: He could not, would not suffer the Dementor's Kiss, whatever 
happened afterward. 

It was of Ron and Hermione that he thought as he whispered "Expecto Patronum!" 

 The silver stag burst from his wand and charged: The Dementors scattered and 
there was a triumphant 

yell from somewhere out of sight 

 "It's him, down there, down there, I saw his Patronus, it was a stag!" 

 The Dementors have retreated, the stars were popping out again and the footsteps 
of the Death Eaters 

were becoming louder; but before Harry in his panic could decide what to do, there was a 
grinding of bolts 

nearby, a door opened on the left-side of the narrow street, and a rough voice said: 
"Potter, in here, quick!" 

 He obeyed without hesitation, the three of them hurried through the open doorway. 

 "Upstairs, keep the Cloak on, keep quiet!" muttered a tall figure, passing them on 
his way into the street 

and slammed the door behind him. 


 Harry had had no idea where they were, but now he saw, by the stuttering light of 
a single candle, 

the grubby, sawdust bar of the Hog's Head Inn. They ran behind the counter and through 
a second doorway, 

which led to a trickery wooden staircase, that they climbed as fast as they could. The 
stairs opened into 

a sitting room with a durable carpet and a small fireplace, above which hung a single 
large oil painting of a blonde 

girl who gazed out at the room with a kind of a vacant sweetness. 

 Shouts reached from the streets below. Still wearing the Invisibility Cloak on, 
they hurried toward the 

grimy window and looked down. Their savior, whom Harry now recognized as the Hog's 
Head's barman, was 

the only person not wearing a hood. 

 "So what?" he was bellowing into one of the hooded faces. "So what? You send 
dementors down my street, 

I'll send a Patronus back at'em! I'm not having'em near me, I've told you that. I'm not 
having it!" 

 "That wasn't your Patronus," said a Death Eater. "That was a stag. It was 
Potter's!" 

 "Stag!" roared the barman, and he pulled out a wand. "Stag! You idiot - Expecto 
Patronum!" 

 Something huge and horned erupted from the wand. Head down, it charged 
toward the High Street, and 

out of sight. 

 "That's not what I saw" said the Death Eater, though was less certainly 

 "Curfew's been broken, you heard the noise," one of his companions told the 
barman. "Someone was 

out on the streets against regulations - " 

 "If I want to put my cat out, I will, and be damned to your curfew!" 

 "You set off the Caterwauling Charm?" 

 "What if I did? Going to cart me off to Azkaban? Kill me for sticking my nose out 
my own front door? Do it, 

then, if you want to! But I hope for your sakes you haven't pressed your little Dark Marks, 
and summoned him. He's 

not going to like being called here, for me and my old cat, is he, now?" 

 "Don't worry about us." said one of the Death Eaters, "worry about yourself, 
breaking curfew!" 

 "And where will you lot traffic potions and poisons when my pub's closed down? 
What will happen to your 

little sidelines then?" 

 "Are you threatening - ?" 

 "I keep my mouth shut, it's why you come here, isn't it?" 

 "I still say I saw a stag Patronus!" shouted the first Death Eater. 

 "Stag?" roared the barman. "It's a goat, idiot!" 


 "He's dead," said Harry, "Bellatrix Lestrange killed him." 

 The barman face was impassive. After a few moments he said, "I'm sorry to hear 
it, I liked that elf." 

 He turned away, lightning lamps with prods of his wand, not looking at any of 
them. 

 "You're Aberforth," said Harry to the man's back. 

 He neither confirmed or denied it, but bent to light the fire. 

 "How did you get this?" Harry asked, walking across to Sirius's mirror, the twin 
of the one he had broken 

nearly two years before. 

 "Bought it from Dung 'bout a year ago," said Aberforth. "Albus told me what it 
was. Been trying to keep 

an eye out for you." 

 Ron gasped. 

 "The silver doe," he said excitedly, "Was that you too?" 

 "What are you talking about?" asked Aberforth. 

 "Someone sent a doe Patronus to us!" 

 "Brains like that, you could be a Death Eater, son. Haven't I just prove my 
Patronus is a goat?" 

 "Oh," said Ron, "Yeah... well, I'm hungry!" he added defensively as his stomach 
gave an enormous 

rumble. 

 "I got food," said Aberforth, and he sloped out of the room, reappearing moments 
later with a large 

 "All right, we made a mistake," said the second Death Eater. "Break curfew again 
and we won't be so lenient!" 

 The Death Eaters strode back towards the High Street. Hermione moaned with 
relief, wove out from under the Cloak, 

and sat down on a wobble-legged chair. Harry drew the curtains then pulled the Cloak off 
himself and Ron. They could hear the 

barman down below, rebolting the door of the bar, then climbing the stairs. 

 Harry's attention was caught by something on the mantelpiece: a small, 
rectangular mirror, propped on top of it, 

right beneath the portrait of the girl. 

 The barman entered the room. 

 "You bloody fools," he said gruffly, looking from one to the other of them. "What 
were you thinking, coming here?" 

 "Thank you," said Harry. "You can't thank you enough. You saved our lives!" 

 The barman grunted. Harry approached him looking up into the face: trying to see 
past the long, stringy, wire-gray hair 

beard. He wore spectacles. Behind the dirty lenses, the eyes were a piercing, brilliant blue. 

 "It's your eye I've been seeing in the mirror." 

 There was a silence in the room. Harry and the barman looked at each other. 

 "You sent Dobby." 

 The barman nodded and looked around for the elf. 

 "Thought he'd be with you. Where've you left him? 


loaf of bread, some cheese, and a pewter jug of mead, which he set upon a small table in 
front of the fire. 

Ravenous, they ate and drank, and for a while there was sound of chewing. 

 "Right then," said Aberforth when the had eaten their fill and Harry and Ron sat 
slumped dozily in 

their chairs. "We need to think of the best way to get you out of here. Can't be done by 
night, you heard what 

happens if anyone moves outdoors during darkness: Caterwauling Charm's set off, they'll 
be onto you like 

bowtruckles on doxy eggs. I don't reckon I'll be able to pass of a stag as a goat a second 
time. Wait for daybreak 

when curfew lifts, then you can put your Cloak back on and set out on foot. Get right out 
of Hogsmeade, up into 

the mountains, and you'll be able to Disapparate there. Might see Hagrid. He's been 
hiding in a cave up there with 

Grawp ever since they tried to arrest him." 

 "We're not leaving," said Harry. "We need to get into Hogwarts." 

 "Don't be stupid, boy," said Aberforth. 

 "We've got to," said Harry. 

 "What you've got to do," said Aberforth, leaning forward, "is to get as far from 
here as from here as you 

can." 

 "You don't understand. There isn't much time. We've got to get into the castle. 
Dumbledore - I mean, 

your brother - wanted us - " 

 The firelight made the grimy lenses of Aberforth's glasses momentarily opaque, a 
bright flat white, and 

Harry remembered the blind eyes of the giant spider, Aragog. 

 "My brother Albus wanted a lot of things," said Aberforth, "and people had a 
habit of getting hurt while he 

was carrying out his grand plans. You get away from this school, Potter, and out of the 
country if you can. Forget 

my brother and his clever schemes. He's gone where none of this can hurt him, and you 
don't owe him anything." 

 "You don't understand." said Harry again. 

 "Oh, don't I? said Aberforth quietly. "You don't think I understood my own 
brother? Think you know Albus 

better than I did?" 

 "I didn't mean that," said Harry, whose brain felt sluggish with exhaustion and 
from the surfeit of food and wine. 

"It's... he left me a job." 

 "Did he now?" said Aberforth. "Nice job, I hope? Pleasant? Easy? Sort of thing 
you'd expect an unqualified 

wizard kid to be able to do without overstretching themselves?" 

 Ron gave a rather grim laugh. Hermione was looking strained. 

 "I-it's not easy, no," said Harry. "But I've got to - " 


 "Got to? Why got to? He's dead, isn't he?" said Aberforth roughly. "Let it go, boy, 
before you follow him! 

Save yourself!" 

 "I can't." 

 "Why not?" 

 "I - " Harry felt overwhelmed; he could not explain, so he took the offensive 
instead. "But you're fighting too, 

you're in the Order of the Phoenix - " 

 "I was," said Aberforth. "The Order of the Phoenix is finished. You-Know-Who's 
won, it's over, and anyone 

who's pretending different's kidding themselves. It'll never be safe for you here, Potter, he 
wants you too badly. 

So go abroad, go into hiding, save yourself. Best take these two with you." He jerked a 
thumb at Ron and Hermione. 

"They'll be in danger long as they live now everyone knows they've been working with 
you." 

 "I can't leave," said Harry. "I've got a job - " 

 "Give it to someone else!" 

 "I can't. It's got to be me, Dumbledore explained it all - " 

 "Oh, did he now? And did he tell you everything, was he honest with you?" 

 Harry wanted him with all his heart to say "Yes," but somehow the simple word 
would not rise to his lips, 

Aberforth seemed to know what he was thinking. 

 "I knew my brother, Potter. He learned secrecy at our mother's knee. Secrets and 
lies, that's how we grew 

up, and Albus... he was a natural." 

 The old man's eyes traveled to the painting of the girl over the mantelpiece. It was, 
now Harry looked around 

properly, the only picture in the room. There was no photograph of Albus Dumbledore, 
nor of anyone else. 

 "Mr. Dumbledore" said Hermione rather timidly. "Is that your sister? Ariana? 

 "Yes." said Aberforth tersely. "Been reading Rita Skeeter, have you, missy?" 

 Even by the rosy light of the fire it was clear that Hermione had turned red. 

 "Elphias Doge mentioned her to us," said Harry, trying to spare Hermione. 

 "That old berk," muttered Aberforth, taking another swig of mead. "Thought the 
sun shone out of my 

brother's every office, he did. Well, so did plenty of people, you three included, by the 
looks of it." 

 Harry kept quiet. He did not want to express the doubts and uncertainties about 
Dumbledore that had 

riddled him for months now. He had made his choice while he dug Dobby's grave, he had 
decided to continue 

along the winding, dangerous path indicated for him by Albus Dumbledore, to accept that 
he had not been told 

everything that he wanted to know, but simply to trust. He had no desire to doubt again; 
he did not want o hear 


anything that would deflect him from his purpose. He met Aberforth's gaze, which was so 
strikingly like his 

brothers': The bright blue eyes gave the same impression that they were X-raying the 
object of their scrutiny, 

and Harry thought that Aberforth knew what he was thinking and despised him for it. 

 "Professor Dumbledore cared about Harry, very much," said Hermione in a low 
voice. 

 "Did he now?" said Aberforth. "Funny thing how many of the people my brother 
cared about very much 

ended up in a worse state than if he'd left 'em well alone." 

 "What do you mean?" asked Hermione breathlessly. 

 "Never you mind," said Aberforth. 

 "But that's a really serious thing to say!" said Hermione. "Are you - are you 
talking about your sister?" 

 Aberforth glared at her: His lips moved as if he were chewing the words he was 
holding back. Then he burst 

into speech. 

 "When my sister was six years old, she was attacked, by three Muggle boys. 
They'd seen her doing magic, 

spying through the back garden hedge: She was a kid, she couldn't control it, no witch or 
wizard can at that age. 

What they saw, scared them, I expect. They forced their way through the hedge, and 
when she couldn't show them 

the trick, they got a bit carried away trying to stop the little freak doing it." 

 Hermione's eyes were huge in the firelight; Ron looked slightly sick. Aberforth 
stood up, tall as Albus, and 

suddenly terrible in his anger and the intensity of his pain. 

 "It destroyed her, what they did: She was never right again. She wouldn't use 
magic, but she couldn't get rid 

of it; it turned inward and drove her mad, it exploded out of her when she couldn't control 
it, and at times she was 

strange and dangerous. But mostly she was sweet and scared and harmless. 

 "And my father went after the bastards that did it," said Aberforth, "and attacked 
them. And they locked him 

up in Azkaban for it. He never said why he'd done it, because the Ministry had known 
what Ariana had become, 

she'd have been locked up in St. Mungo's for good. They'd have seen her as a serious 
threat to the International 

Statute of Secrecy, unbalanced like she was, with magic exploding out of her at moments 
when she couldn't keep it 

in any longer. 

 "We had to keep her safe and quiet. We moved house, put it about she was ill, and 
my mother looked after 

her, and tried to keep her calm and happy. 

 "I was her favourite," he said, and as he said it, a grubby schoolboy seemed to 
look out through Aberforth's 


wrinkles and wrangled beard. "Not Albus, he was always up in his bedroom when he was 
home, reading his books 

and counting his prizes, keeping up with his correspondence with "the most notable 
magical names of the day," 

Aberforth succored. "He didn't want to be bothered with her. She liked me best. I could 
get her to eat when she wouldn't 

do it for my mother, I could calm her down, when she was in one of her rages, and when 
she was quiet, she used to 

help me feed the goats. 

 "Then, when she was fourteen... See, I wasn't there." said Aberforth. "If I'd been 
there, I could have calmed 

her down. She had one of her rages, and my mother wasn't as young as she was, and . . . it 
was an accident. Ariana 

couldn't control it. But my mother was killed." 

 Harry felt a horrible mixture of pity and repulsion; he did not want to hear any 
more, but Aberforth kept talking, 

and Harry wondered how long it had been since he had spoken about this; whether, in 
fact, he had ever spoken about it. 

 "So that put paid to Albus's trip round the world with little Doge. The pair of 'em 
came home for my mother's 

funeral and then Doge went off on his own, and Albus settled down as head of the family. 
Ha!" 

 Aberforth spat into the fire. 

 "I'd have looked after her, I told him so, I didn't care about school, I'd have stayed 
home and done it. 

He told me I had to finish my education and he'd take over from my mother. Bit of a 
comedown for Mr. Brilliant, 

there's no prizes for looking after your half-mad sister, stopping her blowing up the house 
every other day. But he 

did all right for a few weeks . . . till he came." 

 And now a positively dangerous look crept over Aberforths face. 

 "Grindelwald. And at last, my brother had an equal to talk to someone just as 
bright and talented he was. And 

looking after Ariana took a backseat then, while they were hatching all their plans for a 
new Wizarding order and looking 

for Hallows, and whatever else it was they were so interested in. Grand plans for the 
benefit of all Wizardkind, and if one 

young girl neglected, what did that matter, when Albus was working for the greater 
good? 

 "But after a few weeks of it, I'd had enough, I had. It was nearly time for me to go 
hack to Hogwarts, so I told 'em, 

both of 'em, face-to-face, like I am to you, now," and Aberforth looked downward Harry, 
and it took a little imagination to 

see him as a teenager, wiry and angry, confronting his elder brother. "I told him, you'd 
better give it up now. You can't move her, 


she's in no fit state, you can't take her with you, wherever it is you're planning to go, 
when you're making your clever speeches, 

trying to whip yourselves up a following. He didn't like that." said Aberforth, and his 
eyes were briefly occluded by the fireflight on 

the lenses of his glasses: They turned white and blind again. "Grindelwald didn't like that 
at all. He got angry. He told me what a 

stupid little boy I was, trying to stand in the way of him and my brilliant brother . . . 
Didn't I understand, my poor sister wouldn't 

have to be hidden once they'd changed the world, and led the wizards out of hiding, and 
taught the Muggles their place? 

 "And there was an argument . . . and I pulled my wand, and he pulled out his, and 
I had the Cruciatus Curse used on 

me by my brother's best friend - and Albus was trying to stop him, and then all three of us 
were dueling, and the flashing lights 

and the bangs set her off, she couldn't stand it - " 

 The color was draining from Aberforth's face as though he had suffered a mortal 
wound. 

 " - and I think she wanted to help, but she didn't really know what she was doing, 
and I don't know which of us did it, 

it could have been any of us - and she was dead." 

 His voice broke on the last word and he dropped down into the nearest chair. 
Hermione's face was wet with tears, and Ron 

was almost as pale as Aberforth. Harry felt nothing but revulsion: He wished he had not 
heard it, wished he could wash is mind clean of it. 

 "I'm so . . . I'm so sorry," Hermione whispered. 

 "Gone," croaked Aberforth. "Gone forever." 

 He wiped his nose on hiss cuff and cleared his throat. 

 " 'Course, Grindelwald scarpered. He had a bit of a track record already, back in 
his own country, and he didn't want Ariana 

set to his account too. And Albus was free, wasn't he? Free of the burden of his sister, 
free to become the greatest wizard of the - " 

 "He was never free," said Harry. 

 "I beg your pardon?" said Aberforth. 

 "Never," said Harry. "The night that your brother died, he drank a potion that 
drove him out of his mind. He started screaming, 

pleading with someone who wasn't there. 'Don't hurt them, please . . . hurt me instead.' " 

 Ron and Hermione were staring at Harry. He had never gone into details about 
what had happened on the island on the lake: 

The events that had taken place after he and Dumbledore had returned to Hogwarts had 
eclipsed it so thoroughly. 

 "He thought he was back there with you and Grindelwald, I know he did," said 
Harry, remembering Dumbledore whispering, pleading. 

"He thought he was watching Grindelwald hurting you and Ariana . . . It was torture to 
him, if you'd seen him then, you wouldn't say he was free." 

 Aberforth seemed lost in contemplation of his own knotted and veined hands. 
After a long pause he said. "How can you be sure, Potter, 


that my brother wasn't more interested in the greater good than in you? How can you be 
sure you aren't dispensable, just like my little sister?" 

 A shard of ice seemed to pierce Harry's heart. 

 "I don't believe it. Dumbledore loved Harry," said Hermione. 

 "Why didn't he tell him to hide, then? shot back Aberforth. "Why didn't he say to 
him, 'Take care of yourself, here's how to survive' ?" 

 "Because," said Harry before Hermione could answer, "sometimes you've got to 
think about more than your own safety! Sometimes 

you've got to think about the greater good! This is war!" 

 "You're seventeen, boy!" 

 "I'm of age, and I'm going to keep fighting even if you've given up!" 

 "Who says I've given up?" 

 "The Order of the Phoenix is finished," Harry repeated, "You-Know-Who's won, 
it's over, and anyone who's pretending different's kidding 

themselves." 

 "I don't say I like it, but it's the truth!" 

 "No, it isn't." said Harry. "Your brother knew how to finish You-Know-Who and 
he passed the knowledge on to me. I'm going to keep going 

until I succeed - or I die. Don't think I don't know how this might end. I've known it for 
years." 

 He waited for Aberforth to jeer or to argue, but he did not. He merely moved. 

 "We need to get into Hogwarts," said Harry again. "If you can't help us, we'll wait 
till daybreak, leave you in peace, and try to find a way 

in ourselves. If you can help us - well, now would be a great time to mention it." 

 Aberforth remained fixed in his chair, gazing at Harry with the eye, that were so 
extraordinarily like his brother's. At last he cleared his 

throat, got to his feet, walked around the little table, and approached the portrait of Ariana. 

 "You know what to do," he said. 

 She smiled, turned, and walked away, not as people in portraits usually did, one of 
the sides of their frames, but along what seemed to 

be a long tunnel painted behind her. They watched her slight figure retreating until finally 
she was swallowed by the darkness. 

 "Er - what - ?" began Ron. 

 "There's only one way in now," said Aberforth. "You must know they've got all 
the old secret passageways covered at both ends, dementors 

all around the boundary walls, regular patrols inside the school from what my sources tell 
me. The place has never been so heavily guarded. 

How you expect to do anything once you get inside it, with Snape in charge and the 
Carrows as his deputies. . . well, that's your lookout, isn't it? 

You say you're prepared to die." 

 "But what . . . ?" said Hermione, frowning at Ariana's picture. 

 A tiny white dot reappeared at the end of the painted tunnel, and now Ariana was 
walking back toward them, growing bigger and bigger 

as she came. But there was somebody else with her now, someone taller than she was, 
who was limping along, looking excited. His hair was 


longer than Harry had ever seen. He appeared and torn. Larger and larger the two figures 
grew, until only their heads and shoulders filled the portrait. 

Then the whole thing swang forward on the wall like a little door, and the entrance to a 
real tunnel was revealed. And our of it, his hair overgrown, 

his face cut, his robes ripped, clambered the real Neville Longbottom, who gave a roar of 
delight, leapt down from the mantelpiece and yelled. 

"I knew you'd come! I knew it, Harry!" 

 

Chapter Twenty-Nine 

The Lost Diadem 

Neville -- what the -- how -- ? 

 But Neville had spotted Ron and Hermione, and with yells of delight was hugging 
them too. The longer Harry looked at Neville, the worse he appeared: One of his eyes 
was swollen yellow and purple, there were gouge marks on his face, and his general air of 
unkemptness suggested that he had been living enough. Nevertheless, his battered visage 
shone with happiness as he let go of Hermione and said again, I knew youd come! Kept 
telling Seamus it was a matter of time! 

 Neville, whats happened to you? 

 What? This? Neville dismissed his injuries with a shake of the head. This is 
nothing, Seamus is worse. Youll see. Shall we get going then? Oh, he turned to 
Aberforth, Ab, there might be a couple more people no the way. 

 Couple more? repeated Aberforth ominously. What dyou mean, a couple 
more, Longbottom? Theres a curfew and a Camwaulding Charm on the whole village! 

 I know, thats why theyll be Apparating directly into the bar, said Neville. 
Just send them down the passage when they get here, will you? Thanks a lot. 

 Neville held out his hand to Hermione and helped her to climb up onto the 
mantelpiece and into the tunnel; Ron followed, then Neville. Harry addressed Aberforth. 

 I dont know how to thank you. Youve saved our lives twice. 

 Look after em, then, said Aberforth gruffly. I might not be able to save em a 
third time. 

 Harry chambered up onto the mantelpiece and through the hole behind Arianas 
portrait. There were smooth stone steps on the other side: It looked as though the 
passageway had been there for years. Brass lamps hung from the walls and the earthy 
floor was worn and smooth; as they walked, their shadows rippled, fanlike, across the 
wall. 

 How longs this been here? Ron asked as they set off. It isnt on the 
Marauders Map, is it Harry? I thought there were only seven passages in and out of 
school? 

 They sealed off all of those before the start of the year, said Neville. Theres 
no chance of getting through any of them now, not with the curses over the entrances and 
Death Eaters and dementors waiting at the exits. He started walking backward, beaming, 
drinking them in. Never mind that stuff  Is it true? Did you break into Gringotts? Did 
you escape on a dragon? Its everywhere, everyones talking about it, Terry Boot got 
beaten up by Carrow for yelling about it in the Great Hall at dinner! 


 Yeah, its true, said Harry. 

 Neville laughed gleefully. 

 What did you do with the dragon? 

 Released it into the wild, said Ron. Hermione was all for keeping it as a pet 

 Dont exaggerate, Ron C 

 But what have you been doing? People have been saying youve just been on the 
run, Harry, but I dont think so. I think youve been up to something. 

 Youre right, said Harry, but tell us about Hogwarts, Neville, we havent heard 
anything. 

 Its been . Well, its not really like Hogwarts anymore, said Neville, the smile 
fading from his face as he spoke. Do you know about the Carrows? 

 Those two Death Eaters who teach here? 

 They do more than teach, said Neville. Theyre in charge of all discipline. 
They like punishment, the Carrows. 

 Like Umbridge? 

 Nah, they make her look tame. The other teachers are all supposed to refer us to 
the Carrows if we do anything wrong. They dont, though, if they can avoid it. You can 
tell they all hate them as much as we do. 

 Amycus, the bloke, he teaches what used to be Defense Against the Dark Arts, 
except now its just the Dark Arts. Were supposed to practice the Cruciatus Curse on 
people whove earned detentions C  

 What? 

 Harry, Ron, and Hermiones united voices echoed up and down the passage. 

 Yeah, said Neville. Thats how I got this one, he pointed at a particularly 
deep gash in his cheek, I refused to do it. Some people are into it, though; Crabbe and 
Goyle love it. First time theyve ever been top in anything, I expect. 

 Alecto, Amycuss sister, teaches Muggle Studies, which is compulsory for 
everyone. Weve all got to listen to her explain how Muggles are like animals, stupid and 
dirty, and how they drive wizards into hiding by being vicious toward them, and how the 
natural order is being reestablished. I got this one, he indicated another slash to his face, 
for asking her how much Muggle blood she and her brother have got. 

 Blimey, Neville, said Ron, theres a time and a place for getting a smart 
mouth. 

 You didnt see her, said Neville. You wouldnt have stood it either. The thing 
is, it helps when people stand up to them, it gives everyone hope. I used to notice that 
when you did it, Harry. 

 But theyve used you as a knife sharpener, said Ron, winding slightly as they 
passed a lamp and Nevilles injuries were thrown into even greater relief. 

 Neville shrugged. 

 Doesnt matter. They dont want to spill too much pure blood, so theyll torture 
us a bit if were mouthy but they wont actually kill us. 

 Harry did not know what was worse, the things that Neville was saying or the 
matter-of-fact tone in which he said them. 

 The only people in real danger are the ones whose friends and relatives on the 
outside are giving trouble. They get taken hostage. Old Xeno Lovegood was getting a bit 


too outspoken in The Quibbler, so they dragged Luna off the train on the way back for 
Christmas. 

 Neville, shes all right, weve seen her C 

 Yeah, I know, she managed to get a message to me. 

 From his pocket he pulled a golden coin, and Harry recognized it as one of the 
fake Galleons that Dumbledores Army had used to send one another messages. 

 These have been great, said Neville, beaming at Hermione. The Carrows never 
rumbled how we were communicating, it drove them mad. We used to sneak out at night 
and put graffiti on the walls: Dumbledores Army, Still Recruiting, stuff like that. Snape 
hated it. 

 You used to? said Harry, who had noticed the past tense. 

 Well, it got more difficult as time went one, said Neville. We lost Luna at 
Christmas, and Ginny never came back after Easter, and the three of us were sort of the 
leaders. The Carrows seemed to know I was behind a lot of it, so they started coming 
down on me hard, and then Michael Corner went and got caught releasing a first-year 
theyd chained up, and they tortured him pretty badly. That scared people off. 

 No kidding, muttered Ron, as the passage began to slope upward. 

 Yeah, well, I couldnt ask people to go through what Michael did, so we dropped 
those kinds of stunts. But we were still fighting, doing underground stuff, right up until a 
couple of weeks ago. Thats when they decided there was only one way to stop me, I 
suppose, and they went for Gran. 

 They what? said Harry, Ron, and Hermione together. 

 Yeah, said Neville, panting a little now, because the passage was climbing so 
steeply, well, you can see their thinking. It had worked really well, kidnapping kids to 
force their relatives to behave. I spose it was only a matter of time before they did it the 
other way around. Thing was, he faced them, and Harry was astonished to see that he 
was grinning, they bit off a bit more than they could chew with Gran. Little old witch 
living alone, they probably thought hey didnt need to send anyone particularly powerful. 
Anyway, Neville laughed, Dawlish is still in St. Mungos and Grans on the run. She 
sent me a letter, he clapped a hand to the breast pocket of his robes, telling me she was 
proud of me, that Im my parents son, and to keep it up. 

 Cool, said Ron. 

 Yea, said Neville happily. Only thing was, once they realized they had no hold 
over me, they decided Hogwarts could do without me after all. I dont know whether they 
were planning to kill me or send me to Azkaban, either way, I knew it was time to 
disappear. 

 But, said Ron, looking thoroughly confused, arent C arent we heading 
straight back for Hogwarts? 

 Course, said Neville. Youll see. Were here. 

 They turned a corner and there ahead of them was the end of the passage. Another 
short flight of steps led to a door just like the one hidden behind Arianas portrait. Neville 
pushed it open and climbed through. As Harry followed, he heard Neville call out for 
unseen people: 

 Look who it is! Didnt I tell you? 

 As Harry emerged into the room behind the passage, there were several screams 
and yells: HARRY! Its Potter, its POTTER! Ron! Hermione! 


 He had a confused impression of colored hangings, of lamps and many faces. The 
next moment, he, Ron, and Hermione were engulfed, hugged, pounded on the back, their 
hair ruffled, their hands shaken, by what seemed to be more than twenty people. They 
might have just won a Quidditch final. 

 Okay, okay, calm down! Neville called, and as the crowd backed away, Harry 
was able to take in their surroundings. 

 He did not recognize the dorm at all. It was enormous, and looked rather like the 
interior of a particularly sumptuous tree house, or perhaps a gigantic ships cabin. 
Multicolored hammocks were strung from the ceiling and from the balcony that ran 
around the dark wood-paneled and windowless walls, which were covered in bright 
tapestry hangings. Harry saw the gold Gryffindor lion, emblazoned on scarlet; the black 
badger of Hufflepuff, set against yellow; and the bronze eagle of Ravenclaw, on blue. 
The silver and green of Slytherin alone were absent. There were bulging bookcases, a few 
broomsticks propped against the walls, and in the corner, a large wood-cased wireless. 

 Where are we? 

 Room of Requirement, of course! said Neville. Surpassed itself, hasnt it? The 
Carrows were chasing me, and I knew I had just one chance for a hideout: I managed to 
get through the door and this is what I found! Well, it wasnt exactly like this when I 
arrived, it was a load smaller, there was only one hammock and just Gryffindor hangings. 
But its expanded as more and more of the D.A. have arrived. 

 And the Carrows cant get in? asked Harry, looking around for the door. 

 No, said Seamus Finnigan, whom Harry had not recognized until he spoke: 
Seamuss face was bruised and puffy. Its a proper hideout, as long as one of us stays in 
here, they cant get at us, the door wont open. Its all down to Neville. He really gets this 
room. Youve got to ask for exactly what you need C like, I dont want any Carrow 
supporters to be able to get in C and itll do it for you! Youve just got to make sure you 
close the loopholes. Nevilles the man! 

 Its quite straightforward, really, said Neville modestly. Id been in here about 
a day and a half, and getting really hungry, and wishing I could get something to eat, and 
thats when the passage to Hogs Head opened up. I went through it and met Aberforth. 
Hes been providing us with food, because for some reason, thats the one thing the room 
doesnt really do. 

 Yeah, well, foods one of the five exceptions to Gamps Law of Elemental 
Transfiguration, said Ron to general astonishment. 

 So weve been hiding out here for nearly two weeks, said Seamus, and it just 
makes more hammocks every time we need room, and it even sprouted a pretty good 
bathroom once girls started turning up C  

 and thought theyd quite like to wash, yes, supplied Lavender Brown, whom 
Harry had not noticed until that point. Now that he looked around properly, he recognized 
many familiar faces. Both Patil twins were there, as were Terry Boot, Ernie Macmillan, 
Anthony Goldstein, and Michael Corner. 

 Tell us what youve been up to, though, said Ernie. Thereve been so many 
rumors, weve been trying to keep up with you on Potterwatch. He pointed at the 
wireless. You didnt break into Gringotts? 

 They did! said Neville. And the dragons true too! 

 There was a smattering of applause and a few whoops; Ron took a bow. 


 What were you after? asked Seamus eagerly. 

 Before any of them could parry the question with one of their own, Harry felt a 
terrible, scorching pain in the lightning scar. As he turned his back hastily on the curious 
and delighted faces, the Room of Requirement vanished, and he was standing inside a 
ruined stone shack, and the rotting floorboards were ripped apart at his feet, a disinterred 
golden box lay open and empty beside the hole, and Voldemorts scream of fury vibrated 
inside his head. 

 With an enormous effort he pulled out of Voldemorts mind again, back to where 
he stood, swaying, in the Room of Requirement, sweat pouring from his face and Ron 
holding him up. 

 Are you all right, Harry? Neville was saying. What to sit down? I expect 
youre tired, arent -- ? 

 No, said Harry. He looked at Ron and Hermione, trying to tell them without 
words that Voldemort had just discovered the loss of one of the other Horcruxes. Time 
was running out fast: If Voldemort chose to visit Hogwarts next, they would miss their 
chance. 

 We need to get going, he said, and their expressions told him that they 
understood. 

 What are we going to do, then, Harry? asked Seamus. Whats the plan? 

 Plan? repeated Harry. He was exercising all his willpower to prevent himself 
succumbing again to Voldemorts rage: His scar was still burning. Well, theres 
something we C Ron, Hermione, and I C need to do, and then well get out of here. 

 Nobody was laughing or whooping anymore. Neville looked confused. 

 What dyou mean, get out of here? 

 We havent come back to stay, said Harry, rubbing his scar, trying to soothe the 
pain. Theres something important we need to do C  

 What is it? 

 I C I cant tell you. 

 There was a ripple of muttering at this: Nevilles brows contracted. 

 Why cant you tell us? Its something to do with fighting You-Know-Who, 
right? 

 Well, yeah C  

 Then well help you. 

 The other members of Dumbledores Army were nodding, some enthusiastically, 
others solemnly. A couple of them rose from their chairs to demonstrate their willingness 
for immediate action. 

 You dont understand, Harry seemed to have said that a lot in the last few hours. 
We C we cant tell you. Weve got to do it C alone. 

 Why? asked Neville. 

 Because   In his desperation to start looking for the missing Horcrux, or at 
least have a private discussion with Ron and Hermione about where they might 
commence their search. Harry found it difficult to gather his thoughts. His scar was still 
searing. Dumbledore left the three of us a job, he said carefully, and we werent 
supposed to tell C I mean, he wanted us to do it, just the three of us. 

 Were his army, said Neville. Dumbledores Army. We were all in it together, 
weve been keeping it going while you three have been off on your own C 


 It hasnt exactly been a picnic, mate, said Ron. 

 I never said it had, but I dont see why you cant trust us. Everyone in this 
rooms been fighting and theyve been driven in here because the Carrows were hunting 
them down. Everyone in heres proven theyre loyal to Dumbledore C loyal to you. 

 Look, Harry began, without knowing what he was going to say, but it did not 
matter. The tunnel door had just opened behind him. 

 We got your message, Neville! Hello you three, I thought you must be here! 

 It was Luna and Dean. Seamus gave a great roar of delight and ran to hug his best 
friend. 

 Hi, everyone! said Luna happily. Oh, its great to be back! 

 Luna, said Harry distractedly, what are you doing here? How did you -- ? 

 I sent for her, said Neville, holding up the fake Galleon. I promised her and 
Ginny that if you turned up Id let them know. We all thought that if you came back, it 
would mean revolution. That we were going to overthrow Snape and the Carrows. 

 Of course thats what it means, said Luna brightly. Isnt it, Harry? Were 
going to fight them out of Hogwarts? 

 Listen, said Harry with a rising sense of panic, Im sorry, but thats not what 
we came back for. Theres something weve got to do, and then C 

 Youre going to leave us in this mess? demanded Michael Cornet. 

 No! said Ron. What were doing will benefit everyone in the end, its all about 
trying to get rid of You-Know-Who C  

 Then let us help! said Neville angrily. We want to be a part of it! 

 There was another noise behind them, and Harry turned. His heart seemed to fall: 
Ginny was now climbing through the hole in the wall, closely followed by Fred, George, 
and Lee Jordan. Ginny gave Harry a radiant smile: He had forgotten, he had never fully 
appreciated, how beautiful she was, but he had never been less pleased to see her. 

 Aberforths getting a bit annoyed, said Fred, raising his hand in answer to 
several cries of greeting. He wants a kip, and his bars turned into a railway station. 

 Harrys mouth fell open. Right behind Lee Jordan came Harrys old girlfriend, 
Cho Chang. She smiled at him. 

 I got the message, she said, holding up her own fake Galleon and she walked 
over to sit beside Michael Corner. 

 So whats the plan, Harry? said George. 

 There isnt one, said Harry, still disoriented by the sudden appearance of all 
these people, unable to take everything in while his scar was still burning so fiercely. 

 Just going to make it up as we go along, are we? My favorite kind, said Fred. 

 Youve got to stop this! Harry told Neville. What did you call them all back 
for? This is insane C  

 Were fighting, arent we? said Dean, taking out his fake Galleon. The 
message said Harry was back, and we were going to fight! Ill have to get a wand, though 
C 

 You havent got a wand--? began Seamus. 

 Ron turned suddenly to Harry. 

 Why cant they help? 

 What? 


 They can help. He dropped his voice and said, so that none of them could hear 
but Hermione, who stood between them, We dont know where it is. Weve got to find it 
fast. We dont have to tell them its a Horcrux. 

 Harry looked from Ron to Hermione, who murmured, I think Rons right. We 
dont even know what were looking for, we need them. And when Harry looked 
unconvinced, You dont have to do everything alone, Harry. 

 Harry thought fast, his scar still prickling, his head threatening to split again. 
Dumbledore had warned him against telling anyone but Ron and Hermione about the 
Horcruxes. Secrets and lies, thats how we grew up, and Albus  he was a natural  
Was he turning into Dumbledore, keeping his secrets clutched to his chest, afraid to trust? 
But Dumbledore had trusted Snape, and where had that led? To murder at the top of the 
highest tower  

 All right, he said quietly to the other two. Okay, he called to the room at large, 
and all noise ceased: Fred and George, who had been cracking jokes for the benefit of 
those nearest, fell silent, and all of the looked alert, excited. 

 Theres something we need to find, Harry said. Something C something thatll 
help us overthrow You-Know-Who. Its here at Hogwarts, but we dont know where. It 
might have belonged to Ravenclaw. Has anyone heard of an object like that? Has anyone 
come across something with her eagle on it, for instance? 

 He looked hopefully toward the little group of Ravenclaws, to Padma, Michael, 
Terry, and Cho, but it was Luna who answered, perched on the arm of Ginnys chair. 

 Well, theres her lost diadem. I told you about it, remember, Harry? The lost 
diadem of Ravenclaw? Daddys trying to duplicate it. 

 Yeah, but the lost diadem, said Michael Corner, rolling his eyes, is lost, Luna. 
Thats sort of the point. 

 When was it lost? asked Harry. 

 Centuries ago, they say, said Cho, and Harrys heart sank. Professor Flitwick 
says the diadem vanished with Ravenclaw herself. People have looked, but, she 
appealed to her fellow Ravenclaws. Nobodys ever found a trace of it, have them? 

 They all shook their heads. 

 Sorry, but what is a diadem? asked Ron. 

 Its a kind of crown, said Terry Boot. Ravenclaws was supposed to have 
magical properties, enhance the wisdom of the wearer. 

 Yes, Daddys Wrackspurt siphons C  

 But Harry cut across Luna. 

 And none of you have ever seen anything that looks like it? 

 They all shook their heads again. Harry looked at Ron and Hermione and his own 
disappointment was mirrored back at him. An object that had been lost this long, and 
apparently without trace, did not seem like a good candidate for the Horcrux hidden in 
the castle  Before he could formulate a new question, however, Cho spoke again. 

 If youd like to see what the diadems supposed to look like, I could take you up 
to our common room and show you, Harry. Ravenclaws wearing it in her statue. 

 Harrys scar scorched again: For a moment the Room of Requirement swam 
before him, and he saw instead the dark earth soaring beneath him and felt the great 
snake wrapped around his shoulders. Voldemort was flying again, whether to the 


underground lake or here, to the castle, he did not know: Either way, there was hardly 
any time left. 

 Hes on the move, he said quietly to Ron and Hermione. He glanced at Cho and 
then back at them. Listen, I know its not much of a lead, but Im going to go look at 
this statue, at least find out what the diadem looks like. Wait for me here and keep, you 
know C the other one C safe. 

 Cho had got to her feet, but Ginny said rather fiercely, No, Luna will take Harry, 
wont you, Luna? 

 Oooh, yes, Id like to, said Luna happily, as Cho sat down again, looking 
disappointed. 

 How do we get out? Harry asked Neville. 

 Over here. 

 He led Harry and Luna to a corner, where a small cupboard opened onto a steep 
staircase. It comes out somewhere different every day, so theyve never been able to 
find it, he said. Only trouble is, we never know exactly where were going to end up 
when we go out. Be careful, Harry, theyre always patrolling the corridors at night. 

 No problem, said Harry. See you in a bit. 

 He and Luna hurried up the staircase, which was long, lit by torches, and turned 
corners in unexpected places. At last they reached what appeared to be solid wall. 

 Get under here, Harry told Luna, pulling out the Invisibility Cloak and throwing 
it over both of them. He gave the wall a little push. 

 It melted away at his touch and they slipped outside. Harry glanced back and saw 
that it had resealed itself at once. They were standing in a dark corridor. Harry pulled 
Luna back into the shadows, fumbled in the pouch around his neck, and took out the 
Marauders Map. Holding it close to his nose he searched, and located his and Lunas 
dots at last. 

 Were up on the fifth floor, he whispered, watching filch moving away from 
them, a corridor ahead. Come on, this way. 

 They crept off. 

 Harry had prowled the castle at night many times before, but never had his heart 
hammered that fast, never had so much depended on his safe passage through the place. 
Through squares of moonlight upon the floor, past suits of armor whose helmets creaked 
at the sound of their soft footsteps, around corners beyond which who knew what lurked. 
Harry and Luna walked, checking the Marauders Map whenever light permitted, twice 
pausing to allow a ghost to pass without drawing attention to themselves. He expected to 
encounter an obstacle at any moment; his worst fear was Peeves, and he strained his ears 
with every step to hear the first, telltale signs of the poltergeists approach. 

 The way, Harry, breathed Luna, plucking his sleeve and pulling him toward a 
spiral staircase. 

 They climbed in tight, dizzying circles; Harry had never been up here before. At 
last they reached a door. There was no handle and no keyhole: nothing but a plain 
expanse of aged wood, and a bronze knocker in the shape an eagle. 

 Luna reached out a pale hand, which looked eerie floating in midair, unconnected 
to arm or body. She knocked once, and in the silence it sounded to Harry like a cannon 
blast. At once the beak of the eagle opened, but instead of a birds called, a soft, musical 
voice said, Which came first, the phoenix or the flame? 


 Hmm  What do you think, Harry? said Luna, looking thoughtful. 

 What? Isnt there a password? 

 Oh no, youve got to answer a question, said Luna. 

 What if you get it wrong? 

 Well, you have to wait for somebody who gets it right, said Luna. That way 
you learn, you see? 

 Yeah  Trouble is, we cant really afford to wait for anyone else, Luna. 

 No, I see what you mean, said Luna seriously. Well then, I think the answer is 
that a circle has no beginning. 

 Well reasoned, said the voice, and the door swung open. 

 The deserted Ravenclaw common room was a wide, circular room, airier than any 
Harry had ever seen at Hogwarts. Graceful arched windows punctuated the walls, which 
were hung with blue-and-bronze silks. By day, the Ravenclaws would have a spectacular 
view of the surrounding mountains. The ceiling was domed and painted with stars, which 
were echoed in the midnight-blue carpet. There were tables, chairs, and bookcases, and in 
a niche opposite the door stood a tall statue of white marble. 

 Harry recognized Rowena Ravenclaw from the bust he had seen at Lunas house. 
The statue stood beside a door that led, he guessed, to dormitories above. He strode right 
up to the marble woman, and she seemed to look back at him with a quizzical half smile 
on her face, beautiful yet slightly intimidating. A delicate-looking circlet had been 
reproduced in marble on top of her head. It was not unlike the tiara Fleur had worn at her 
wedding. There were tiny words etched into it. Harry stepped out from under the Cloak 
and climbed up onto Ravenclaws plinth to read them. 

 Wit beyond measure is mans greatest treasure. 

 Which makes you pretty skint, witless, said a cackling voice. 

 Harry whirled around, slipped off the plinth, and landed on the floor. The sloping-
shouldered figure of Alecto Carrow was standing before him, and even as Harry raised 
his wand, she pressed a stubby forefinger to the skull and snake branded on her forearm. 

Chapter Thirty 

The Sacking of Severus Snape 

 The moment her finger touched the Mark, Harry's scar burned savagely, the starry 
room vanished from sight, and he was standing upon an outcrop of rock beneath a cliff, 
and the sea was washing around him and there was a triumph in his heart C They have the 
boy. 

 A loud bang brought Harry back to where he stood. Disoriented, he raised his 
wand, but the witch before him was already falling forward; she hit the ground so hard 
that the glass in the bookcases tinkled. 

 I've never Stunned anyone except in our D.A. lessons, said Luna, sounding 
mildly interested. That was noisier than I though it would be. 

 And sure enough, the ceiling had begun to tremble Scurrying, echoing footsteps 
were growing louder from behind the door leading to the dormitories. Luna's spell had 
woken Ravenclaws sleeping above. 

 Luna, where are you? I need to get under the Cloak! 


 Luna's feet appeared out of nowhere,; he hurried to her side and she let the Cloak 
fall back over them as the door opened and a stream of Ravenclaws, all in their 
nightclothes, flooded into the common room. there were gasps and cries of surprise as 
they saw Alecto lying there unconscious. Slowly they shuffled in around her, a savage 
beast that might wake at any moment and attack them. Then one brave little first-year 
darted up to her and prodded her backside with his big toe. 

 I think she might be dead! he shouted with delight. 

 Oh look, whispered Luna happily, as the Ravenclaws crowded in around Alecto. 
They're pleased! 

 Yeah... great...  

 Harry closed his eyes, and as his scar throbbed he chose to sink again into 
Voldemort's mind.... He was moving along the tunnel into the first cave.... He had 
chosen to make sure of the locker before coming...but that would not take him long.... 

 There was a rap on the common room door and every Ravenclaw froze. From the 
other side, Harry heard the soft, musical voice that issued from the eagle door knocker: 
Where do Vanished objects go? 

 I dunno, do I? Shut it! snarled an uncouth voice that Harry knew was that of 
the Carrow brother , Amycus, Alecto? Alecto? Are you there? Have you got him? 
Open the door! 

 The Ravenclaws were whispering amongst themselves, terrified. Then without 
warning, there came a series of loud bangs, as though somebody was firing a gun into the 
door. 

 ALECTO! If he comes, and we haven't got Potter --d'you want to go the same 
way as the Malfoys? ANSWER ME! Amycus bellowed, shaking the door for all he 
was worth, but still it did not open. The Ravenclaws were all backing away, and some of 
the most frightened began scampering back up the stair case to their beds. Then, just as 
Harry was wondering whether he ought not to blast open the door and Stun Amycus 
before the Death Eater could do anything else, a second, most familiar voice rang out 
beyond the door. 

 May I ask what you are doing, Professor Carrow? 

 Tryingto get-- through this damned-- door! shouted Amycus. Go and get 
Flitwick! Get him to open it, now! 

 But isn't your sister in there asked Professor McGonagall. Didn't Professor 
Flitwick let her in earlier this evening, at your urgent request? Perhaps she could open 
the door for you? Then you needn't wake up half the castle. 

 She ain't answering, you old besom! You open it! Garn! Do it, now! 

 Certainly, if you wish it, said Professor McGonagall, with awful coldness, 
There was a genteel tap of the knocker and the musical voice asked again. 

 Where do Vanished objects go? 

 Into non being, which is to say, everything, replied Professor McGonagall. 

 Nicely phrased, replied the eagle door knocker, and the door swung open. 

 The few Ravenclaws who had remained behind sprinted for the stairs as Amycus 
burst over the threshold, brandishing his wand. Hunched like his sister, he had a pallid, 
doughy face and tiny eyes, which fell at once on Alecto, sprawled motionless on the floor. 
He let out a yell of fury and fear. 


 What've they done, the little whelps? he screamed. I'll Cruciate the lot of 'em 
till they tell me who did it---and what's the Dark Lord going to say? he shrieked, 
standing over his sister and smacking himself on the forehead with his fist, We haven't 
got him, and they've gone and killed her! 

 She's only Stunned, said Professor McGonagall impatiently, who had stooped 
down to examine Alecto. She'll be perfectly all right. 

 No she bludgering well won't! bellowed Amycus. Not after the Dark Lord 
gets hold of her! She's gone and sent for him, I felt me Mark burn, and he thinks we've 
got Potter! 

 'Got Potter'? said Professor McGonagall sharply, What do you mean, 'got 
Potter'? 

 He told us Potter might try and get inside Ravenclaw Tower, and to send for him 
if we caught him! 

 Why would Harry Potter try to get inside Ravenclaw Tower! Potter belongs in 
my House! 

 Beneath the disbelief and anger, Harry heard a little strain of pride in her voice 
and affection for Minerva McGonagall gushed up inside him. 

 We was told he might come in here! said Carrow. I dunno why, do I? 

 Professor McGonagall stood up and her beady eyes swept the room. Twice they 
passed right over the place where Harry and Luna stood. 

 We can push it off on the kids, said Amycus, his pig like face suddenly crafty. 
Yeah, that's what we'll do. We'll say Alecto was ambushed by the kids, them kids up 
there -- he looked up at the starry ceiling toward the dormitories --  and we'll say they 
forced her to pres her Mark, and that's why he got a false alarm.... He can punish them. 
Couple of kids more or less, what's the difference? 

 Only the difference between truth and lied, courage and cowardice, said 
Professor McGonagall, who had turned pale, a difference, in short, which you and your 
sister seem unable to appreciate. But let me make one thing very clear. You are not 
going to pass off y9our many ineptitudes on the students of Hogwarts. I shall not permit 
it. 

 Excuse me? 

 Amycus moved forward until he was offensively close to Professor McGonagall, 
his face within inches of hers. She refused to back away, but looked down at him as if he 
were something disgusting she had found stuck to the lavatory seat. 

 It's not a case of what you'll permit, Minerva McGonagall. Your time's over. It's 
us what's in charge here now, and you'll back me up or you'll pay the price. 

 And he spat in her face. 

 Harry pulled the Cloak off himself, raised his wand, and said, You shouldn't 
have done that. 

 As Amycus spun around, Harry shouted, Crucio! 

 The Death Eater was lifted off his feet. He writhed through the air like a 
drowning man, thrashing and howling in pain, and then, with a crunch and a shattering of 
glass, he smashed into the front of a bookcase and crumpled, insensible, to the floor. 

I see what Bellatrix meant, said Harry, the blood thundering through his brain, you 
need to really mean it. 


 Potter! whispered Professor McGonagall, clutching her heart. Potter--- you're 
here! What---? How---? She struggled to pull herself together. Potter, that was 
foolish! 

 He spat at you, said Harry. 

 Potter, I --- that was very --- gallant of you --- but don't you realize --? 

 Yeah, I do, Harry assured her. Somehow her panic steadied him. Professor 
McGonagall, Voldemort's on the way. 

 Oh, are we allowed to say the name now? asked Luna with an air of interest, 
pulling off the Invisibility Cloak. The appearance of a second outlaw seemed to 
overwhelm Professor McGonagall, who staggered backward and fell into a nearby chair, 
clutching at the neck of her old tartan dressing gown. 

 I don't think it makes any difference what we call him, Harry told Luna. He 
already knows where I am. 

 In a distant part of Harry's brain, that part connected to the angry, burning scar, he 
could see Voldemort sailing fast over the dark lake in the ghostly green boat.... He had 
nearly reached the island where the stone basin stood.... 

 You must flee, whispered Professor McGonagall, Now Potter, as quickly as 
you can! 

 I can't, said Harry, There's something I need to do. Professor, so you know 
where the diadem of Ravenclaw is? 

 The d-diadem of Ravenclaw? Of course not --- hasn't it been lost for 
centuries? She sat up a little straighter Potter, it was madness, utter madness, for you 
to enter this castle--- 

 I had to, said Harry. Professor, there's something hidden here that I'm 
supposed to find, and it could be the diadem--- if I could just speak to Professor Flitwick-
-- 

 There was a sound of movement, of clinking glass. Amycus was coming round. 
Before Harry or Luna could act, Professor McGonagall rose to her feet, pointed her wand 
at the groggy Death Eater, and said, Imperio. 

 Amycus got up, walked over to his sister, picked up her wand, then shuffled 
obediently to Professor McGonagall and handed it over along with his own. Then he lay 
down on the floor beside Alecto. Professor McGonagall waved her wand again, and a 
length of shimmering silver rope appeared out of thin air and snaked around the Carrows, 
binding them tightly together. 

 Potter, said Professor McGonagall, turning to face him again with superb 
indifference to the Carrows' predicament. if He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named does indeed 
know that you are here--- 

 As she said it, a wrath that was like physical pain blazed through Harry, setting 
his scar on fire, and for a second he looked down upon a basin whose potion had turned 
clear, and saw that no golden locket lay safe beneath the surface---. 

 Potter, are you all right. said a voice, and Harry came back. He was clutching 
Luna's shoulder to steady himself. 

 Time's running out, Voldemort's getting nearer, Professor, I'm acting on 
Dumbledore's orders, I must find what he wanted me to find! But we've got to get the 
students out while I'm searching the castle--- It's me Voldemort wants, but he won't care 


about killing a few more or less, not now--- not now he knows I'm attacking Horcruxes, 
Harry finished the sentence in his head. 

 You're acting on Dumbledore's orders? she repeated with a look of dawning 
wonder. Then she drew herself up to her fullest height. 

 We shall secure the school against He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named while you 
search for this --- this object. 

 Is that possible? 

 I think so, said Professor McGonagall dryly, we teachers are rather good at 
magic, you know. I am sure we will be able to hold him off for a while if we all put our 
best efforts into it. Of course, something will have to be done about Professor Snape--- 

 Let me --- 

 ---and if Hogwarts is about to enter a state of siege, with the Dark Lord at the 
gates, it would indeed be advisable to take as many innocent people out of the way as 
possible. With the Floo Network under observation, and Apparition impossible within 
the grounds--- 

 There's a way, said Harry quickly, and he explained about the passageway 
leading into the Hog's Head. 

 Potter, we're talking about hundreds of students--- 

 I know, Professor, but if Voldemort and the Death Eaters are concentrating on 
the school boundaries they won't be interested in anyone who's Disapparating out of 
Hog's Head. 

 There's something in that, she agreed. She pointed her wand at the Carrows, 
and a silver net fell upon their bound bodies, tied itself around them, and hoisted them 
into the air, where they dangled beneath the blue-and-gold ceiling like two large, ugly sea 
creatures. Come. We must alert the other Heads of House. You'd better put that Cloak 
back on. 

 She marched toward the door, and as she did so she raised her wand. From the tip 
burst three silver cats with spectacle markings around their eyes. the Patronuses ran 
sleekly ahead, filling the spiral staircase with silvery light, as Professor McGonagall, 
Harry, and Luna hurried back down. 

 Along the corridors they raced, and one by one the Patronuses left them. Professor 
McGonagall's tartan dressing gown rustled over the floor, and Harry and Luna jogged 
behind her under the Cloak. 

 They had descended two more floors when another set of quiet joined theirs. 
Harry, whose scar was still prickling, heard them first. He felt in the pouch around his 
neck for the Marauder's Map, but before he could take it our, McGonagall too seemed to 
become aware of their company. She halted, raised her wand ready to duel, and said, 
Who's there? 

 It is I, said a low voice. 

 From behind a suit of armor stepped Severus Snape. 

 Hatred boiled up in Harry at the sight of him. He had forgotten the details of 
Snape's appearance in the magnitude of his crimes, forgotten how his greasy black hair 
hung in curtains around his thin face, how his black eyes had a dead, cold look. He was 
not wearing nightclothes, but was dressed in his usual black cloak, and he too was 
holding his wand ready for a fight. 

 Where are the Carrows? he asked quietly. 


 Wherever you told them to be, I expect, Severus, said Professor McGonagall. 

 Snape stepped nearer, and his eyes flitted over Professor McGonagall into the air 
around her, as if he knew that Harry was there. Harry held his wand up too, ready to 
attack. 

 I was under the impression, said Snape, That Alecto had apprehended an 
intruder. 

 Really? said Professor McGonagall. And what gave you that impression? 

 Snape mad a slight flexing movement of his left arm, where the Dark Mark was 
branded into his skin. 

 Oh, but naturally, said Professor McGonagall. You Death Eaters have your 
own private means of communication, I forgot. 

 Snape pretended not to have heard her. His eyes were still probing the air all 
about her, and he was moving gradually closer, with an air of hardly noticing what he 
was doing. 

 I did not know that it was your night to patrol the corridors Minerva. 

 You have some objection? 

 I wonder what could have brought you out of our bed at this late hour? 

 I thought I heard a disturbance, said Professor McGonagall. 

 Really? But all seems calm. 

 Snape looked into her eyes. 

 Have you seen Harry Potter, Minerva? Because if you have. I must insist--- 

 Professor McGonagall moved faster than Harry could have believed. Her wand 
slashed through the air and for a split second Harry thought that Snape must crumple, 
unconscious, but the swiftness of his Shield Charm was such that McGonagall was 
thrown off balance. =She brandished her wand at a touch on the wall and it flew out of 
its bracket. Harry, about to curse Snape, was forced to pull Luna out of the way of the 
descending flames, which became a ring of fire that filled the corridor and flew like a 
lasso at Snape--- 

 Then it was no longer fire, but a great black serpent that McGonagall blasted to 
smoke, which re-formed and solidified in seconds to become a swarm of pursuing 
daggers. Snape avoided them only by forcing the suit of armor in front of him, and with 
echoing clangs the daggers sank, one after another, into its breast--- 

 Minerva! said a squeaky voice, and looking behind him, still shielding Luna 
from flying spells, Harry saw Professors Flitwick and Sprout sprinting up the corridor 
toward them in their nightclothes, with the enormous Professor Slughorn panting along at 
the rear. 

 No! squealed Flitwick, raising his wand. You'll do no more murder at 
Hogwarts! 

 Flitwick's spell hit the suit of armor behind which Snape had taken shelter. With 
a clatter it came to life. Snape struggled free of the crushing arms and sent it flying back 
toward his attackers. Harry and Luna had to dive sideways to avoid it as it smashed into 
the wall and shattered. When Harry looked up again, Snape was in full flight, 
McGonagall, Flitwick, and Sprout all thundering after him. He hurtled through a 
classroom door and, moments later, he heard McGonagall cry, Coward! COWARD! 

 What's happened, what's happened? asked Luna. 


 Harry dragged her to her feet and they raced along the corridor, trailing the 
Invisibility Cloak behind them, into the deserted classroom where Professors 
McGonagall, Flitwick, and Sprout were standing at a smashed window. 

 He jumped, said Professor McGonagall as Harry and Luna ran into the room. 

 You mean he's dead? Harry sprinted to the window, ignoring Flitwick's and 
Sprout's yells of shock at his sudden appearance. 

 No, he's not dead, said McGonagall bitterly. Unlike Dumbledore, he was still 
carrying a wand... and he seems to have learned a few tricks from his master. 

 With a tingle of horror, Harry saw in the distance a huge, bat like shape flying 
through the darkness toward the perimeter wall. 

 There were heavy footfalls behind them, and a great deal of puffing. Slughorn 
had just caught up. 

 Harry! he panted, massaging his immense chest beneath his emerald-green silk 
pajamas. My dear boy... what a surprise...Minerva, do please 
explain...Severus...what...? 

 Our headmaster is taking a short break, said Professor McGonagall, pointing at 
the Snape-shaped hole in the window. 

 Professor! Harry shouted his hand on his forehead, He could see the Inferi-
filled lake sliding beneath him, and he felt a ghostly green boat bump into the 
underground shore, and Voldemort lept from it with murder in his heart--- 

 Professor, we've got to barricade the school, he's coming now! 

 Very well. He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named is coming, she told the other teachers. 
Sprout and Flitwick gasped. Slughorn let out a low groan. Potter has work to do in the 
castle on Dumbledore's orders. We need to put in place every protection of which we are 
capable while Potter does what he needs to do. 

 You realize , of course, that nothing we do will be able to keep out You-Know-
Who indefinitely? squeaked Flitwick. 

 But we can hold him up. said Professor Sprout. 

 Thank you, Pomona, said Professor McGonagall, and between the two witches 
there passed a look of grim understanding. I suggest we establish basic protection 
around the place, then gather our students and meet in the Great Hall. Most must be 
evacuated, though if any of those who are over age wish to stay and fight, I think they 
ought to be given the chance. 

 Agreed, said Professor Sprout, already hurrying toward the door. I shall meet 
you in the Great Hall in twenty minutes with my House. 

 And as she jogged out of sight, they could hear her muttering, Tentacula, Devil's 
Snare. And Snargaluff pods...yes, I'd like to see the Death Eaters fighting those. 

 I can act from here, said Flitwick, and although he could barely see out of it, he 
pointed his wand through the smashed window and started muttering incantations of great 
complexity. Harry heard a weird rushing noise, as though Flitwick had unleashed the 
power of the wind into the grounds. 

 Professor, Harry said, approaching the little Charms master. Professor, I'm 
sorry to interrupt, but this is important. Have you got any idea where the diadem of 
Ravenclaw is? 


 ---Protego Horribillis---the diadem of Ravenclaw? squeaked Flitwick. A little 
extra wisdom never goes amiss, Potter, but I hardly think it would be much use in this 
situation! 

 I only meant --- do you know where it is? Have you ever seen it? 

 Seen it Nobody has seen it in living memory! Long since lost, boy. 

 Harry felt a mixture of desperate disappointment and panic. What, then, was the 
Horcrux? 

 We shall meet you and your Ravenclaws in the Great Hall, Filius! said 
Professor McGonagall, beckoning to Harry and Luna to follow her. 

 They had just reached the door when Slughorn rumbled into speech. 

 My word, he puffed, pale and sweaty, his walrus mustache aquiver. What a 
to-do! I'm not at all sure whether this is wise, Minerva. He is bound to find a way in, 
you know, and anyone who has tried to delay him will be in the most grievous peril--- 

 I shall expect you and the Slytherins in the Great Hall in twenty minutes also. 
said Professor McGonagall. If you wish to leave with your students, we shall not stop 
you. But if any of you attempt to sabotage our resistance or take up arms against us 
within this castle, then, Horace, we duel to kill. 

 Minerva! he said, aghast. 

 The time has come for Slytherin House to decide upon its loyalties, interrupted 
Professor McGonagall. Go and wake your students, Horace. 

 Harry did not stay to watch Slughorn splutter. He and Luna stayed after Professor 
McGonagall, who had taken up a position in the middle of the corridor and raised her 
wand. 

 Piertotum---oh, for heaven's sake, Filch, not now--- 

 The aged caretaker had just come hobbling into view, shouting Students out of 
bed! Students in the corridors! 

 They're supposed to be you blithering idiot! shouted McGonagall. Now go 
and do something constructive! Find Peeves! 

 'P-Peeves? stammered Filch as though he had never heard the name before. 

 Yes, Peeves, you fool, Peeves! Haven't you been complaining about him for a 
quarter of a century? Go and fetch him, at once. 

 Filch evidently thought Professor McGonagall had taken leave of her senses, but 
hobbled away, hunch-shouldered, muttering under his breath. 

 And now---Piertotum Locomator! cried Professor McGonagall. And all along 
the corridor the statues and suits of armor jumped down from their plinths, and from the 
echoing crashes from the floors above and below, Harry knew that their fellows 
throughout the castle had done the same. 

 Hogwarts is threatened! shouted Professor McGonagall. Man the boundaries, 
protect us, do your duty to our school! 

 Clattering and yelling, the horde of moving statues stampeded past Harry, some of 
them smaller, others larger than life. There were animals too, and the clanking suits of 
armor brandished swords and spiked balls on chains. 

 Now, Potter, said McGonagall., you and Miss Lovegood had better return to 
your friends and bring them to the Great Hall --- I shall rouse the other Gryffindors. 

 They parted at the top of the next staircase, Harry and Luna turning back toward 
the concealed entrance to the Room of Requirement. As they ran, they met crowds of 


students, most wearing traveling cloaks over their pajamas, being shepherded down to the 
Great Hall by teachers and prefects. 

 That was Potter! 

 Harry Potter! 

 It was him, I swear, I just saw him! 

 But Harry did not look back, and at last they reached the entrance to the Room of 
Requirement, Harry leaned against the enchanted wall, which opened to admit them, and 
he and Luna sped back down the steep staircase. 

 Wh--? 

 As the room came into view, Harry slipped down a few stairs in shock. It was 
packed, far more crowded than when he had last been in there. Kingsley and Lupin were 
looking up at him, as were Oliver Wood, Katie Bell, Angelina Johnson and Alicia 
Spinnet, Bill and Fleur, and Mr. and Mrs. Weasley. 

 Harry, what's happening? said Lupin, meeting him at the foot of the stairs. 

 Voldemort's on his way, they're barricading he school---Snape's run for it---What 
are you doing here? How did you know? 

 We sent messages to the rest of Dumbledore's Army, Fred explained. You 
couldn't expect everyone to miss the fun, Harry, and the D.A. let the Order of the Phoenix 
know, and it all kind of snowballed. 

 What first, Harry? called George. What's going on? 

 They're evacuating the younger kids and everyone's meeting in the Great Hall to 
get organized, Harry said. We're fighting. 

 There was a great roar and a surge toward the stairs, he was pressed back against 
he wall as they ran past hi, the mingled members of the Order of the Phoenix, 
Dumbledore's Army, and Harry's old Quidditch team, all with their wands drawn, 
heading up into the main castle. 

 Come on, Luna, Dean called as he passed, holding out his free hand, she took it 
and followed him back up the stairs. 

 The crowd was thinning. Only a little knot of people remained below in the 
Room of Requirement, and Harry joine3d them. Mrs. Weasley was struggling with 
Ginny. Around them stood Lupin, Fred, George, Bill and Fleur. 

 You're underage! Mrs. Weasley shouted at her daughter as Harry approached 
I won't permit it! The boys, yes, but you, you've got to go home! 

 I won't! 

 Ginny's hair flew as she pulled her arm out of her mother's grip. 

 I'm in Dumbledore's Army--- 

 A teenagers' gang! 

 A teenagers' gang that's about to take him on, which no one else has dared to 
do! said Fred. 

 She's sixteen! shouted Mrs. Weasley. She's not old enough! What you two 
were thinking bringing her with you- 

 Fred and George looked slightly ashamed of themselves. 

 Mom's right, Ginny, said Bill gently. You can't do this. Everyone underage 
will have to leave, it's only right. 

 I can't go home! Ginny shouted, angry tears sparkling in her eyes. my whole 
family's here, I can't stand waiting there alone and not knowing and -- 


 Her eyes met Harry's for the first time. She looked at him beseechingly, but he 
shook his head and she turned away bitterly. 

 Fine, she said, staring at the entrance to the tunnel back to the Hog's Head. I'll 
say good-by now, then, and--- 

 There was a scuffling and a great thump. Someone else had clambered out of the 
tunnel, overbalanced slightly, and fallen. He pulled himself up no the nearest chair, 
looked around through lopsided horn-rimmed glasses, and said, Am I too late? Has it 
started. I only just found out, so I --- I --- 

 Percy spluttered into silence. Evidently he had not expected to run into most of 
his family. There was a long moment of astonishment, broken by Fleur turning to Lupin 
and saying, in a wildly transparent attempt to break the tension. So--- 'ow eez leetle 
Teddy? 

 Lupin blinked at her, startled. The silence between the Weasleys seemed to be 
solidifying, like ice. 

 I --- oh yes--- he's fine! Lupin said loudly. yes, Tonks is with him--- at her 
mother's --- 

 Percy and the other Weasleys were still staring at one another, frozen. 

 Here, I've got a picture? Lupin shouted, pulling a photograph from inside his 
jacket and showing it to Fleur and Harry, who saw a tiny baby with a tuft of bright 
turquoise hair, waving fat fists at the camera. 

 I was a fool! Percy roared, so loudly that Lupin nearly dropped his photograph. 
I was an idiot, I was a pompous prat, I was a C a -- 

 Ministry-loving, family-disowning, power-hungry moron, said Fred. 

 Percy swallowed. 

 Yes, I was! 

 Well, you can't say fairer than that, said Fred, holding his hand out to Percy. 

 Mrs. Weasley burst into tears,. She ran forward, pushed Fred aside, and pulled 
Percy into a strangling hug, while he patted her on the back, his eyes on his father. 

 I'm sorry, Dad, Percy said. 

 Mr. Weasley blinked rather rapidly, then he too hurried to hug his son. 

 What made you see sense, Perce? inquired George. 

 It's been coming on for a while, said Percy, mopping his eyes under his glasses 
with a corner of his traveling cloak. But I had to find a way out and it's not so easy at 
the Ministry, they're imprisoning traitors all the time. I managed to make contact with 
Aberforth and he tipped me off ten minutes ago that Hogwarts was going to make a fight 
of it, so here I am. 

 Well, we do look to our prefects to take a lead at times such as these, said 
George in a good imitation of Percy's most pompous manner. Now let's get upstairs and 
fight, or all the good Death Eaters'll be taken. 

 So, you're my sister in-law now? Said Percy, shaking hands with Fleur as they 
hurried off toward the staircase with Bill, Fred, and George. 

 Ginny! barked Mrs. Weasley. 

 Ginny had been attempting, under cover of the reconciliations to sneak upstairs 
too. 


 Molly, how about this, said Lupin. Why doesn't Ginny stay here , then at least 
she'll be on the scene and know what's going on, but she won't be in the middle of the 
fighting? 

 I--- 

 That's a good idea, said Mr. Weasley firmly,  Ginny, you stay in this room, 
you hear me? 

 Ginny did not seem to like the idea much, but under her father's unusually stern 
gaze, she nodded. Mr. and Mrs. Weasley and Lupin headed off to the stairs as well. 

 Where's Ron? asked Harry, Where's Hermione? 

 They must have gone up the Great Hall already, Mr. Weasley called over his 
shoulder. 

  I didn't see them pass me, said Harry. 

 They said something about a bathroom, said Ginny, not long after you left. 

 A bathroom? 

 Harry strode across the room to an open door leading off the Room of 
Requirement and checked the bathroom beyond. It was empty. 

 You're sure they said bath---? 

 But then his scar seared and the Room of Req1uirement vanished. He was 
looking through the high wrought-iron gates with winged boats on pillars at either side, 
looking through the dark grounds toward the castle, which was ablaze with lights. Nagini 
lay draped over his shoulders. He was possessed of that cold, cruel sense of purpose that 
preceded murder. 

 

Chapter Thirty-One 

The Battle of Hogwarts 

 

The enchanted ceiling of the Great Hall was dark and scattered with stars, and 
below it the four long House tables were lined with disheveled students, some in 
traveling cloaks, others in dressing gowns. Here and there shone the pearly white figures 
of the school ghosts. Every eye, living and dead was fixed upon Professor McGonagall, 
who was speaking from the raised platform at the top of the Hall. Behind her stood the 
remaining teaches, including the palomino centaur, Firenze, and the members of the 
Order of the Phoenix who had arrived to fight. 

 

 "...evacuation will be overseen by Mr. Filch and Madame Pomfrey. Prefects, 
when I give the word, you will organize your House and take your charges in orderly 
fashion to the evacuation point. 

 

 Many of the students looked petrified. However, as Harry skirted the walls, 
scanning the Gryffindor table for Ron and Hermione, Ernie Macmillan stood up at the 
Hufflepuff table and shouted; "And what if we want to stay and fight?" 

 

 There was a smattering of applause. 

 


 "If you are of age, you may stay." said Professor McGonagall. 

 

 "What about our things?" called a girl at the Ravenclaw table. "Our trunks, our 
owls?" 

 

 "We have no time to collect possessions." said Professor McGonagall. "The 
important thing is to get you out of here safely." 

 

 "Where's Professor Snape?" shouted a girl from the Slytherin table. 

 

 "He has, to use the common phrase, done a bunk." replied Professor McGonagall 
and a great cheer erupted from the Gryffindors, Hufflepuffs, and Ravenclaws. 

 

 Harry moved up the Hall alongside the Gryffindor table, still looking for Ron and 
Hermione. As he passed, faces turned in his direction, and a great deal of whispering 
broke out in his wake. 

 

 "We have already placed protection around the castle," Professor McGonagall 
was saying, "but it is unlikely to hold for very long unless we reinforce it. I must ask you, 
therefore, to move quickly and calmly, and do as your prefects -" 

 

 But her final words were drowned as a different voice echoed throughout the Hall. 
It was high, cold, and clear. There was no telling from where it came. It seemed to issue 
from the walls themselves. Like the monster it had once commanded, it might have lain 
dormant there for centuries. 

 

 "I know that you are preparing to fight." There were screams amongst the 
students, some of whom clutched each other, looking around in terror for the source of 
the sound. "Your efforts are futile. You cannot fight me. I do not want to kill you. I 
have great respect for the teachers of Hogwarts. I do not want to spill magical blood." 

 

 There was silence in the Hall now, the kind of silence that presses against the 
eardrums, that seems too huge to be contained by walls. 

 

 "Give me Harry Potter," said Voldemort's voice, "and they shall not be harmed. 
Give me Harry Potter and I shall leave the school untouched. Give me Harry Potter and 
you will be rewarded. 

 

 "You have until midnight." 

 

 The silence swallowed them all again. Every head turned, every eye in the place 
seemed to have found Harry, to hold him forever in the glare of thousands of invisible 
beams. Then a figure rose from the Slytherin table and he recognized Pansy Parkinson as 
she raised a shaking arm and screamed, "But he's there! Potter's there. Someone grab 
him!" 

 


 Before Harry could speak, there was a massive movement. The Gryffindors in 
front of him had risen and stood facing, not Harry, but the Slytherins. Then the 
Hufflepuffs stood, and almost at the same moment, the Ravenclaws, all of them with their 
backs to Harry, all of them looking toward Pansy instead, and Harry, awestruck and 
overwhelmed, saw wands emerging everywhere, pulled from beneath cloaks and from 
under sleeves. 

 

 "Thank you, Miss Parkinson." said Professor McGonagall in a clipped voice. 
"You will leave the Hall first with Mr. Filch. If the rest of your House could follow." 

 

 Harry heard the grinding of the benches and then the sound of the Slytherins 
trooping out on the other side of the Hall. 

 

 "Ravenclaws, follow on!" cried Professor McGonagall. 

 

 Slowly the four tables emptied. The Slytherin table was completely deserted, but 
a number of older Ravenclaws remained seated while their fellows filed out; even more 
Hufflepuffs stayed behind, and half of Gryffindor remained in their seats, necessitating 
Professor McGonagall's descent from the teachers' platform to chivvy the underage on 
their way. 

 

 "Absolutely not, Creevey, go! And you, Peakes!" 

 

 Harry hurried over to the Weasleys, all sitting together at the Gryffindor table. 

 

 "Where are Ron and Hermione?" 

 

 "Haven't you found -?" began Mr. Weasley, looking worried. 

 

 But he broke off as Kingsley had stepped forward on the raised platform to 
address those who had remained behind. 

 

 "We've only got half an half an hour until midnight, so we need to act fast. A 
battle plan has been agreed between the teachers of Hogwarts and the Order of the 
Phoenix. Professors Flitwick, Sprout and McGonagall are going to take groups of 
fighters up to the three highest towers - Ravenclaw, Astronomy, and Gryffindor - where 
they'll have good overview, excellent positions from which to work spells. Meanwhile 
Remus" - he indicated Lupin - "Arthur" - he pointed toward Mr. Weasley, sitting at the 
Gryffindor table - "and I will take groups into the grounds. We'll need somebody to 
organize defense of the entrances or the passageways into the school -" 

 

 "Sounds like a job for us." called Fred, indicating himself and George, and 
Kingsley nodded his approval. 

 

 "All right, leaders up here and we'll divide up the troops!" 

 


 "Potter," said Professor McGonagall, hurrying up to him, as students flooded the 
platform, jostling for position, receiving instructions, "Aren't you supposed to be looking 
for something?" 

 

 "What? Oh," said Harry, "oh yeah!" 

 

 He had almost forgotten about the Horcrux, almost forgotten that the battle was 
being fought so that he could search for it: The inexplicable absence of Ron and 
Hermione had momentarily driven every other thought from his mind. 

 

 "Then go, Potter, go!" 

 

 "Right - yeah -" 

 

 He sensed eyes following him as he ran out of the Great Hall again, into the 
entrance hall still crowded with evacuating students. He allowed himself to be swept up 
the marble staircase with them, but at the top he hurried off along a deserted corridor. 
Fear and panic were clouding his thought processes. He tried to calm himself, to 
concentrate on finding the Horcrux, but his thoughts buzzed as frantically and fruitlessly 
as wasps trapped beneath a glass. Without Ron and Hermione to help him he could not 
seem to marshal his ideas. He slowed down, coming to a halt halfway along a passage, 
where he sat down on the plinth of a departed statue and pulled the Marauder's Map out 
of the pouch around his neck. He could not see Ron's of Hermione's names anywhere on 
it, though the density of the crowd of dots now making its way to the Room of 
Requirement might, he thought, be concealing them. He put the map away, pressed his 
hands over his face, and closed his eyes, trying to concentrate. 

 

 Voldemort thought I'd go to Ravenclaw Tower. 

 

 There it was, a solid fact, the place to start. Voldemort had stationed Alecto 
Carrow in the Ravenclaw common room, and there could be only one explanation; 
Voldemort feared that Harry already knew his Horcrux was connected to that House. 

 

 But the only object anyone seemed to associate with Ravenclaw was the lost 
diadem... and how could the Horcrux be the diadem? How was it possible that 
Voldemort, the Slytherin, had found the diadem that had eluded generations of 
Ravenclaws? Who could have told him where to look, when nobody had seen the diadem 
in living memory? 

 

 In living memory... 

 

 Beneath his fingers, Harry's eyes flew open again. He leapt up from the plinth 
and tore back the way he had come, now in pursuit of his one last hope. The sound of 
hundreds of people marching toward the Room of Requirement grew louder and louder 
as he returned to the marble stairs. Prefects were shouting instructions, trying to keep 
track of the students in their own houses, there was much pushing and shouting; Harry 


saw Zacharias Smith bowling over first years to get to the front of the queue, here and 
there younger students were in tears, while older ones called desperately for friends or 
siblings. 

 

 Harry caught sight of a pearly white figure drifting across the entrance hall below 
and yelled as loudly as he could over the clamor. 

 

 "Nick! NICK! I need to talk to you!" 

 

 He forced his way back through the tide of students, finally reaching the bottom 
of the stairs, where Nearly Headless Nick, ghost of Gryffindor Tower, stood waiting for 
him. 

 

 "Harry! My dear boy!" 

 

 Nick made to grasp Harry's hands with both of his own; Harry felt as though they 
had been thrust into icy water. 

 

 "Nick, you've got to help me. Who's the ghost of Ravenclaw Tower?" 

 

 Nearly Headless Nick looked surprised and a little offended. 

 

 "The Gray Lady, of course; but if it is ghostly services you require -?" 

 

 "It's got to be her - d'you know where she is?" 

 

 "Let's see..." 

 

 Nick's head wobbled a little on his ruff as he turned hither and thither, peering 
over the heads of the swarming students. 

 

 "That's her over there, Harry, the young woman with the long hair." 

 

 Harry looked in the direction of Nick's transparent, pointing finger and saw a tall 
ghost who caught sight of Harry looking at her, raised her eyebrows, and drifted away 
through a solid wall. 

 

 Harry ran after her. Once through the door of the corridor into which she had 
disappeared, he saw her at the very end of the passage, still gliding smoothly away from 
him. 

 

 "hey - wait - come back!" 

 

 She consented to pause, floating a few inches from the ground. Harry supposed 
that she was beautiful, with her waist-length hair and floor-length cloak, but she also 


looked haughty and proud. Close in, he recognized her as a ghost he had passed several 
times in the corridor, but to whom he had never spoken. 

 

 "You're the Gray Lady?" 

 

 She nodded but did not speak. 

 

 "The ghost of Ravenclaw Tower?" 

 

 "That is correct." 

 

 Her tone was not encouraging. 

 

 "Please, I need some help. I need to know anything you can tell me about the lost 
diadem." 

 

 A cold smile curved her lips. 

 

 "I am afraid," she said, turning to leave, "that I cannot help you." 

 

 "WAIT!" 

 

 He had not meant to shout, but anger and panic were threatening to overwhelm 
him. He glanced at his watch as she hovered in front of him. It was a quarter to midnight. 

 

 "This is urgent." he said fiercely. "If that diadem's at Hogwarts, I've got to find it, 
fast." 

 

 "You are hardly the first student to covet the diadem." she said disdainfully. 
"Generations of students have badgered me -" 

 

 "This isn't about trying to get better marks!" Harry shouted at her, "It's about 
Voldemort - defeating Voldemort - or aren't you interested in that?" 

 

 She could not blush, but her transparent cheeks became more opaque, and her 
voice was heated as she replied, "Of course I - how dare you suggest -?" 

 

 "Well, help me then!" 

 

 Her composure was slipping. 

 

 "It - it is not a question of -" she stammered. My mother's diadem -" 

 

 "Your mother's?" 

 

 She looked angry with herself. 


 

 "When I lived," she said stiffly, "I was Helena Ravenclaw." 

 

 "You're her daughter? But then, you must know what happed to it." 

 

 

 "While the diadem bestows wisdom," she said with an obvious effort to pull 
herself together, "I doubt that it would greatly increase you chances of defeating the 
wizard who calls himself Lord -" 

 

 Haven't I told you, I'm not interested in wearing it!" Harry said fiercely. "There's 
no time to explain - but if you care about Hogwarts, if you want to see Voldemort 
finished, you've got to tell me anything you know about the diadem!" 

 

 She remained quite still, floating in midair, staring down at him, and a sense of 
hopelessness engulfed Harry. Of course, if she had known anything, she would have told 
Flitwick of Dumbledore, who had surely asked her the same question. He had shaken his 
head and made to turn away when she spoke in a low voice. 

 

 "I stole the diadem from my mother." 

 

 "You - you did what?" 

 

 "I stole the diadem." repeated Helena Ravenclaw in a whisper. "I sought to make 
myself cleverer, more important than my mother. I ran away with it." 

 

 He did not know how he had managed to gain her confidence and did not ask, he 
simply listened, hard, as she went on. 

 

 "My mother, they say, never admitted that the diadem was gone, but pretended 
that she had it still. She concealed her loss, my dreadful betrayal, even from the other 
founders of Hogwarts. 

 

 "Then my mother fell ill - fatally ill. In spite of my perfidy, she was desperate to 
see me one more time. She sent a man who had long loved me, though I spurned his 
advances, to find me. She knew that he would not rest until he had done so." 

 

 Harry waited. She drew a deep breath and threw back her head. 

 

 "He tracked me to the forest where I was hiding. When I refused to return with 
him, he became violent. The baron was always a hot-tempered man. Furious at my 
refusal, jealous of my freedom, he stabbed me." 

 

 "The Baron? You mean -?" 

 


 "he Bloody Baron, yes," said the Gray Lady, and she lifted aside the cloak she 
wore to reveal a single dark wound in her white chest. When he saw what he had done, 
he was overcome with remorse. He took the weapon that had claimed my life, and used 
it to kill himself. All these centuries later, he wears his chains as an act of penitence ... as 
he should." she added bitterly. 

 

 "And - and the diadem?" 

 

 "It remained where I had hidden it when I heard the Baron blundering through the 
forest toward me. Concealed inside a hollow tree." 

 

 "A hollow tree?" repeated Harry. "What tree? Where was this?" 

 

 "A forest in Albania. A lonely place I thought was far beyond my mother's 
reach." 

 

 "Albania," repeated Harry. Sense was emerging miraculously from confusion, 
and now he understood why she was telling him what she had denied Dumbledore and 
Flitwick. "You've already told someone this story, haven't you? Another student?" 

 

 She closed her eyes and nodded. 

 

 "I had... no idea... He was flattering. He seemed to... understand... to 
sympathize..." 

 

 Yes, Harry thought. Tom Riddle would certainly have understood Helena 
Ravenclaw's desire to possess fabulous objects to which she had little right. 

 

 "Well, you weren't the first person Riddle wormed things out of." Harry muttered. 
"He could be charming when he wanted..." 

 

 So, Voldemort had managed to wheedle the location of the lost diadem out of the 
Gray Lady. He had traveled to that far-flung forest and retrieved the diadem from its 
hiding place, perhaps as soon as he left Hogwarts, before he even started work at Borgin 
and Burkes. 

 

 And wouldn't those secluded Albanian woods have seemed an excellent refuge 
when, so much later, Voldemort and needed a place to lie low, undisturbed, for ten long 
years? 

 

 But the diadem, once it became his precious Horcrux, had not been left in that 
lowly tree. . . . No, the diadem had been returned secretly to its true home, and Voldemort 
must have put it there C 

 the night he asked for a job! said Harry, finishing his thought. 

 I beg your pardon? 


 He hid the diadem in the castle, the night he asked Dumbledore to let him 
teach! said Harry. Saying it out loud enabled him to make sense of it all. He mustve 
hidden the diadem on his way up to, or down from, Dumbledores office! But it was well 
worth trying to get the job C then he mightve got the chance to nick Gryffindors sword 
as well C thank you, thanks! 

 Harry left her floating there, looking utterly bewildered. As he rounded the corner 
back into the entrance hall, he checked his watch. It was five minutes until midnight, and 
though he now knew what the last Horcrux was, he was no closer to discovering where it 
was. . . 

 Generations of students had failed to find the diadem; that suggested that it was 
not in Ravenclaw Tower C but if not there, where? What hiding place had Tom Riddle 
discovered inside Hogwarts Castle, that he believed would remain secret forever? 

 Lost in desperate speculation, Harry turned a corner, but he had taken only a few 
steps down the new corridor when the window to his left broke open with a deafening, 
shattering crash. As he leapt aside, a gigantic body flew in through the window and hit 
the opposite wall. 

Something large and furry detached itself, whimpering, from the new arrival and flung 
itself at Harry. 

 Hagrid! Harry bellowed, fighting off Fang the boarhounds attentions as the 
enormous bearded figure clambered to his feet What the --? 

 Harry, yer here! Yer here! 

 Hagrid stooped down, bestowed upon Harry a cursory and rib-cracking hug, then 
ran back to the shattered window. 

 Good boy, Grawpy! he bellowed through the hole in the window. Ill se yer in 
a moment, theres a good lad! 

 Beyond Hagrid, out in the dark night, Harry saw bursts of light in the distance and 
heard a weird, keening scream. He looked down at his watch: It was midnight. The battle 
had begun. 

 Blimey, Harry, panted Hagrid, this is it, eh? Time ter fight? 

 Hagrid, where have you come from? 

 Heard You-Know-Who from up in our cave, said Hagrid grimly. Voice carried, 
didnt it? Yet got till midnight ter gimme Potter. Knew yeh mus be here, knew that 
mus be happenin. Get down, Fang. So we come ter join in, me an Grawpy an Fang. 
Smashed our way through the boundary by the forest, Grawpy was carryin us, Fang an 
me. Told him ter let me down at the castle, so he shoved me through the window, bless 
him. Not exactly what I meant, bu C wheres Ron an Hermione? 

 That, said Harry, is a really good question. Come on. 

 They hurried together along the corridor, Fang lolloping beside them. Harry could 
hear movement through the corridors all around: running footsteps, shouts; through the 
windows, he could see more flashes of light in the dark grounds. 

 Wherere we goin? puffed Hagrid, pounding along at Harrys heels, making 
the floorboards quake. 

 I dunno exactly, said Harry, making another random turn, but Ron and 
Hermione must be around here somewhere. . . . 

 The first casualties of the battle were already strewn across the passage ahead: 
The two stone gargoyles that usually guarded the entrance to the staffroom had been 


smashed apart by a jinx that had sailed through another broken window. Their remains 
stirred feebly on the floor, and as Harry leapt over one of their disembodied heads, it 
moaned faintly. Oh, dont mind me . . . Ill just be here and crumble. . . . 

 Its ugly stone face made Harry think suddenly of the marble bust of Rowena 
Ravenclaw at Xenophiliuss house, wearing that mad headdress C and then of the statue 
in Ravenclaw Tower, with the stone diadem upon her white curls. . . . 

 And as he reached the end of the passage, the memory of a third stone effigy 
came back to him: that of an ugly old warlock, onto whose head Harry himself had 
placed a wig and a battered old hat. The shock shot through Harry with the heat of 
firewhisky, and he nearly stumbled. 

 He knew, at least, where the Horcrux sat waiting for him. . . . 

 Tom Riddle, who confided in no one and operated alone, might have been 
arrogant enough to assume that he, and only he, had penetrated the deepest mysteries of 
Hogwarts Castle. Of course, Dumbledore and Flitwick, those model pupils, had never set 
foot in that particular place, but he, Harry, had strayed off the beaten track in his time at 
school C here at least was a secret area he and Voldemort knew, that Dumbledore had 
never discovered C 

 He was roused by Professor Sprout, who was thundering past followed by Neville 
and half a dozen others, all of them wearing earmuffs and carrying what appeared to be 
large potted plants. 

 Mandrakes! Neville bellowed at Harry over his shoulder as he ran. Going to 
lob them over the walls C they wont like this! 

 Harry knew now where to go. He sped off, with Hagrid and Fang galloping 
behind him. They passed portrait after portrait, and the painted figures raced alongside 
them, wizards and witches in ruffs and breeches, in armor and cloaks, cramming 
themselves into each others canvases, screaming news from other parts of the castle. As 
they reached the end of this corridor, the whole castle shook, and Harry knew, as a 
gigantic vase blew off its plinth with explosive force, that it was in the grip of 
enchantments more sinister than those of the teachers and the Order. 

 Its all righ, Fang C its all righ! yelled Hagrid, but the great boarhound had 
taken flight as slivers of china flew like shrapnel through the air, and Hagrid pounded off 
after the terrified dog, leaving Harry alone. 

 He forged on through the trembling passages, his wand at the ready, and for the 
length of one corridor the little painted knight, Sir Cadrigan, rushed from painting to 
painting beside him, clanking along in his armor, screaming encouragement, his fat little 
pony cantering behind him. 

 Braggarts and rogues, dogs and scoundrels, drive them out, Harry Potter, see 
them off! 

 Harry hurtled around a corner and found Fred and a small knot of students, 
including Lee Jordan and Hannah Abbott, standing beside another empty plinth, whose 
statue had concealed a secret passageway. Their wands were drawn and they were 
listening at the concealed hole. 

 Nice night for it! Fred shouted as the castle quaked again, and Harry sprinted by, 
elated and terrified in equal measure. Along yet another corridor he dashed, and then 
there were owls everywhere, and Mrs. Norris was hissing and trying to bat them with her 
paws, no doubt to return them to their proper place. . . . 


 Potter! 

 Aberforth Dumbledore stood blocking the corridor ahead, his wand held ready. 

 Ive had hundreds of kids thundering through my pub, Potter! 
I know, were evacuating, Harry said, Voldemorts C 

 C attacking because they havent handed you over, yeah, said Aberforth. Im 
not deaf, the whole of Hogsmeade heard him. And it never occurred to any of you to keep 
a few Slytherins hostage? There are kids of Death Eaters youve just sent to safety. 
Wouldnt it have been a bit smarter to keep em here? 
It wouldnt stop Voldemort, said Harry, and your brother would never have 
done it. 
Aberforth grunted and tore away in the opposite direction. 

 Your brother would never have done it. . . . Well, it was the truth, Harry thought 
as he ran on again: Dumbledore, who had defended Snape for so long, would never have 
held students ransom. . . . 

 And then he skidded around a final corner and with a yell of mingled relief and 
fury he saw them: Ron and Hermione; both with their arms full of large, curved, dirty 
yellow objects, Ron with a broomstick under his arms. 

 Where the hell have you been? Harry shouted. 

 Chamber of Secrets, said Ron. 

 Chamber C what? said Harry, coming to an unsteady halt before them. 

 It was Ron, all Rons idea! said Hermione breathlessly. Wasnt it absolutely 
brilliant? There we were, after we left, and I said to Ron, even if we find the other one, 
how are we going to get rid of it? We still hadnt got rid of the cup! And then he thought 
of it! The basilisk! 

 What the C ? 

 Something to get rid of Horcruxes, said Ron simply. 

 Harrys eyes dropped to the objects clutched in Ron and Hermiones arms: great 
curved fangs; torn, he now realized, from the skull of a dead basilisk. 

 But how did you get in there? he asked, staring from the fangs to Ron. You 
need to speak Parseltongue! 
He did! whispered Hermione. Show him, Ron! 
Ron made a horrible strangled hissing noise. 

 Its what you did to open the locket, he told Harry apologetically. I had to have 
a few goes to get it right, but, he shrugged modestly, we got there in the end. 
He was amazing! said Hermione. Amazing! 

 So . . . Harry was struggling to keep up. So . . . 

 So were another Horcrux down, said Ron, and from under his jacket he pulled 
the mangled remains of Hufflepuffs cup. Hermione stabbed it. Thought she should. She 
hasnt had the pleasure yet. 
Genius! yelled Harry. 

 It was nothing, said Ron, though he looked delighted with himself. So whats 
new with you? 

 As he said it, there was an explosion from overhead: All three of them looked up 
as dust fell from the ceiling and they heard a distant scream. 

 I know what the diadem looks like, and I know where it is, said Harry, talking 
fast. He hid it exactly where I had my old Potions book, where everyones been hiding 


stuff for centuries. He thought he was the only one to find it. Come on. 
As the walls trembled again, he led the other two back through the concealed 
entrance and down the staircase into the Room of Requirement. It was empty except for 
three women: Ginny, Tonks and an elderly witch wearing a moth-eaten hat, whom Harry 
recognized immediately as Nevilles grandmother. 

 Ah, Potter, she said crisply as if she had been waiting for him. You can tell us 
whats going on. 
Is everyone okay? said Ginny and Tonks together. 

 S far as we know, said Harry. Are there still people in the passage to the 
Hogs Head? 

 He knew that the room would not be able to transform while there were still users 
inside it. 

 I was the last to come through, said Mrs. Longbottom. I sealed it, I think it 
unwise to leave it open now Aberforth has left his pub. Have you seen my grandson? 

 Hes fighting, said Harry. 

 Naturally, said the old lady proudly. Excuse me, I must go and assist him. 
With surprising speed she trotted off toward the stone steps. 

 Harry looked at Tonks. 

 I thought you were supposed to be with Teddy at your mothers? 
I couldnt stand not knowing C Tonks looked anguished. Shell look after him 
C have you seen Remus? 
He was planning to lead a group of fighters into the grounds C 

 Without another word, Tonks sped off. 

 Ginny, said Harry, Im sorry, but we need you to leave too. Just for a bit. Then 
you can come back in. 

 Ginny looked simply delighted to leave her sanctuary. 

 And then you can come back in! he shouted after her as she ran up the steps 
after Tonks. Youve got to come back in! 

 Hang on a moment! said Ron sharply. Weve forgotten someone! 
Who? asked Hermione. 

 The house-elves, theyll all be down in the kitchen, wont they? 
You mean we ought to get them fighting? asked Harry. 

 No, said Ron seriously, I mean we should tell them to get out. We dont want 
anymore Dobbies, do we? We cant order them to die for us C 

 There was a clatter as the basilisk fangs cascaded out of Hermiones arms. 
Running at Ron, she flung them around his neck and kissed him full on the mouth. Ron 
threw away the fangs and broomstick he was holding and responded with such 
enthusiasm that he lifted Hermione off her feet. 

 Is this the moment? Harry asked weakly, and when nothing happened except 
that Ron and Hermione gripped each other still more firmly and swayed on the spot, he 
raised his voice. Oi! Theres a war going on here! 
Ron and Hermione broke apart, their arms still around each other. 

 I know, mate, said Ron, who looked as though he had recently been hit on the 
back of the head with a Bludger, so its now or never, isnt it? 

 Never mind that, what about the Horcrux? Harry shouted. Dyou think you 
could just C just hold it in until weve got the diadem? 


 Yeah C right C sorry C said Ron, and he and Hermione set about gathering up 
fangs, both pink in the face. 

 It was clear, as the three of them stepped back into the corridor upstairs, that in 
the minutes that they had spent in the Room of Requirement the situation within the 
castle had deteriorated severely: The walls and ceiling were shaking worse than ever; 
dust filled the air, and through the nearest window, Harry saw bursts of green and red 
light so close to the foot of the castle that he knew the Death Eaters must be very near to 
entering the place. Looking down, Harry saw Grawp the giant meandering past, swinging 
what looked like a stone gargoyle torn from the roof and roaring his displeasure. 

 Lets hope he steps on some of them! said Ron as more screams echoed from 
close by. 

 As long as its not any of our lot! said a voice: Harry turned and saw Ginny and 
Tonks, both with their wands drawn at the next window, which was missing several 
panes. Even as he watched, Ginny sent a well-aimed jinx into a crowd of fighters below. 

 Good girl! roared a figure running through the dust toward them, and Harry saw 
Aberforth again, his gray hair flying as he led a small group of students past. They look 
like they might be breaching the north battlements, theyve brought giants of their own. 

 Have you seen Remus? Tonks called after him. 

 He was dueling Dolohov, shouted Aberforth, havent seen him since! 
Tonks, said Ginny, Tonks, Im sure hes okay C 

 But Tonks had run off into the dust after Aberforth. 

 Ginny turned, helpless, to Harry, Ron, and Hermione. 

 Theyll be all right, said Harry, though he knew they were empty words. 
Ginny, well be back in a moment, just keep out of the way, keep safe C come on! he 
said to Ron and Hermione, and they ran back to the stretch of wall beyond which the 
Room of Requirement was waiting to do the bidding of the next entrant. 

 I need the place where everything is hidden. Harry begged of it inside his head, 
and the door materialized on their third run past. 

 The furor of the battle died the moment they crossed the threshold and closed the 
door behind them: All was silent. They were in a place the size of a cathedral with the 
appearance of a city, its towering walls built of objects hidden by thousands of long-gone 
students. 

 And he never realized anyone could get in? said Ron, his voice echoing in the 
silence. 

 He thought he was the only one, said Harry. Too bad for him Ive had to hide 
stuff in my time . . . this way, he added. I think its down here. . . . 
They sped off up adjacent aisles; Harry could hear the others footsteps echoing 
through the towering piles of junk, of bottles, hats, crates, chairs, books, weapons, 
broomsticks, bats. . . . 

 Somewhere near here, Harry muttered to himself. Somewhere . . . 
somewhere . . . 

 Deeper and deeper into the labyrinth he went, looking for objects he recognized 
from his one previous trip into the room. His breath was loud in his ears, and then his 
very soul seemed to shiver. There it was, right ahead, the blistered old cupboard in which 
he had hidden his old Potions book, and on top of it, the pockmarked stone warlock 
wearing a dusty old wig and what looked like an ancient discolored tiara. 


 He had already stretched out his hand, though he remained few feet away, when a 
voice behind him said, Hold it, Potter. 

 He skidded to a halt and turned around. Crabbe and Goyle were standing behind 
him, shoulder to shoulder, wands pointing right at Harry. Through the small space 
between their jeering faces he saw Draco Malfoy. 

 Thats my wand youre holding, Potter, said Malfoy, pointing his own through 
the gap between Crabbe and Goyle. 

 Not anymore, panted Harry, tightening his grip on the hawthorn wand. 
Winners, keepers, Malfoy. Whos lent you theirs? 

 My mother, said Draco. 

 Harry laughed, though there was nothing very humorous about the situation. He 
could not hear Ron or Hermione anymore. They seemed to have run out of earshot, 
searching for the diadem. 

 So how come you three arent with Voldemort? asked Harry. 

 Were gonna be rewarded, said Crabbe. His voice was surprisingly soft for such 
an enormous person: Harry had hardly ever heard him speak before. Crabbe was speaking 
like a small child promised a large bag of sweets. We ung back, Potter. We decided not 
to go. Decided to bring you to im. 

 Good plan, said Harry in mock admiration. He could not believe that he was 
this close, and was going to be thwarted by Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle. He began edging 
slowly backward toward the place where the Horcrux sat lopsided upon the bust. If he 
could just get his hands on it before the fight broke out . . . 

 So how did you get in here? he asked, trying to distract them. 

I virtually lived in the Room of Hidden Things all last year, said Malfoy, his 
voice brittle. I know how to get in. 

We was hiding in the corridor outside, grunted Goyle. We can do Diss-lusion 
Charms now! And then, his face split into a gormless grin, you turned up right in front 
of us and said you was looking for a die-dum! Whats a die-dum? 

Harry? Rons voice echoed suddenly from the other side of the wall to Harrys 
right. Are you talking to someone? 

With a whiplike movement, Crabbe pointed his wand at the fifty foot mountain of 
old furniture, of broken trunks, of old books and robes and unidentifiable junk, and 
shouted, Descendo! 

The wall began to totter, then the top third crumbled into the aisle next door 
where Ron stood. 

Ron! Harry bellowed, as somewhere out of sight Hermione screamed, and 
Harry heard innumerable objects crashing to the floor on the other side of the destabilized 
wall: He pointed his wand at the rampart, cried, Finite! and it steadied. 

No! shouted Malfoy, staying Crabbes arm as the latter made to repeat his spell. 
If you wreck the room you might bury this diadem thing! 

Whats that matter? said Crabbe, tugging himself free. Its Potter the Dark 
Lord wants, who cares about a die-dum? 

Potter came in here to get it, said Malfoy with ill-disguised impatience at the 
slow-wittedness of his colleagues. so that must mean C 

Must mean? Crabbe turned on Malfoy with undisguised ferocity. Who cares 
what you think? I dont take your orders no more, Draco. You an your dad are finished. 


Harry? shouted Ron again, from the other side of the junk wad. Whats going 
on? 

Harry? mimicked Crabbe. Whats going on C no, Potter! Crucio! 

Harry had lunged for the tiara; Crabbes curse missed him but hit the stone bust, 
which flew into the air; the diadem soared upward and then dropped out of sight in the 
mass of objects on which the bust had rested. 

STOP! Malfoy shouted at Crabbe, his voice echoing through the enormous 
room. The Dark Lord wants him alive C 

So? Im not killing him, am I? yelled Crabbe, throwing off Malfoys restraining 
arm. But if I can, I will, the Dark Lord wants him dead anyway, whats the diff C ? 

A jet of scarlet light shot past Harry by inches: Hermione had run around the 
corner behind him and sent a Stunning Spell straight at Crabbes head. It only missed 
because Malfoy pulled him out of the way. 

Its that Mudblood! Avada Kedavra! 

Harry saw Hermione dive aside, and his fury that Crabbe had aimed to kill wiped 
all else from his mind. He shot a Stunning Spell at Crabbe, who lurched out of the way, 
knocking Malfoys wand out of his hand; it rolled out of sight beneath a mountain of 
broken furniture and bones. 

Dont kill him! DONT KILL HIM! Malfoy yelled at Crabbe and Goyle, who 
were both aiming at Harry: Their split seconds hesitation was all Harry needed. 

Expelliarmus! 

Goyles wand flew out of his hand and disappeared into the bulwark of objects 
beside him; Goyle leapt foolishly on the spot, trying to retrieve it; Malfoy jumped out of 
range of Hermiones second Stunning Spell, and Ron, appearing suddenly at the end of 
the aisle, shot a full Body-Bind Curse at Crabbe, which narrowly missed. 

Crabbe wheeled around and screamed, Avada Kedavra! again. Ron leapt out of 
sight to avoid the jet of green light. The wand-less Malfoy cowered behind a three-legged 
wardrobe as Hermione charged toward them, hitting Goyle with a Stunning Spell as she 
came. 

Its somewhere here! Harry yelled at her, pointing at the pile of junk into which 
the old tiara had fallen. Look for it while I go and help R C 

HARRY! she screamed. 

A roaring, billowing noise behind him gave him a moments warning. He turned 
and saw both Ron and Crabbe running as hard as they could up the aisle toward them. 

Like it hot, scum? roared Crabbe as he ran. 

But he seemed to have no control over what he had done. Flames of abnormal size 
were pursuing them, licking up the sides of the junk bulwarks, which were crumbling to 
soot at their touch. 

Aguamenti! Harry bawled, but the jet of water that soared from the tip of his 
wand evaporated in the air. 

RUN! 

Malfoy grabbed the Stunned Goyle and dragged him along; Crabbe outstripped all 
of them, now looking terrified; Harry, Ron, and Hermione pelted along in his wake, and 
the fire pursued them. It was not normal fire; Crabbe had used a curse of which Harry had 
no knowledge. As they turned a corner the flames chased them as though they were alive, 
sentient, intent upon killing them. Now the fire was mutating, forming a gigantic pack of 


fiery beasts: Flaming serpents, chimaeras, and dragons rose and fell and rose again, and 
the detritus of centuries on which they were feeding was thrown up into the air into their 
fanged mouths, tossed high on clawed feet, before being consumed by the inferno. 

Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle had vanished from view: Harry, Ron and Hermione 
stopped dead; the fiery monsters were circling them, drawing closer and closer, claws and 
horns and tails lashed, and the heat was solid as a wall around them. 

What can we do? Hermione screamed over the deafening roars of the fire. 
What can we do? 

Here! 

Harry seized a pair of heavy-looking broomsticks from the nearest pile of junk 
and threw one to Ron, who pulled Hermione onto it behind him. Harry swung his leg 
over the second broom and, with hard kicks to the ground, they soared up in the air, 
missing by feet the horned beak of a flaming raptor that snapped its jaws at them. The 
smoke and heat were becoming overwhelming: Below them the cursed fire was 
consuming the contraband of generations of hunted students, the guilty outcomes of a 
thousand banned experiments, the secrets of the countless souls who had sought refuge in 
the room. Harry couldnot see a trace of Malfoy, Crabbe, or Goyle anywhere. He swooped 
as low as he dare over the marauding monsters of flame to try to find them, but there was 
nothing but fire: What a terrible way to die. . . . He had never wanted this. . . . 

Harry, lets get out, lets get out! bellowed Ron, though it was impossible to see 
where the door was through the black smoke. 

And then Harry heard a thin, piteous human scream from amidst the terrible 
commotion, the thunder of devouring flame. 

Its C too C dangerous C ! Ron yelled, but Harry wheeled in the air. His glasses 
giving his eyes some small protection from the smoke, he raked the firestorm below, 
seeking a sign of life, a limb or a face that was not yet charred like wood. . . . 

And he saw them: Malfoy with his arms around the unconscious Goyle, the pair 
of them perched on a fragile tower of charred desks, and Harry dived. Malfoy saw him 
coming and raised one arm, but even as Harry grasped it he knew at once that it was no 
good. Goyle was too heavy and Malfoys hand, covered in sweat, slid instantly out of 
Harrys C 

IF WE DIE FOR THEM, ILL KILL YOU, HARRY! roared Rons voice, and, 
as a great flaming chimaera bore down upon them, he and Hermione dragged Goyle onto 
their broom and rose, rolling and pitching, into the air once more as Malfoy clambered up 
behind Harry. 

The door, get to the door, the door! screamed Malfoy in Harrys ear, and Harry 
sped up, following Ron, Hermione, and Goyle through the billowing black smoke, hardly 
able to breathe: and all around them the last few objects unburned by the devouring 
flames were flung into the air, as the creatures of the cursed fire cast them high in 
celebration: cups and shields, a sparkling necklace, and an old, discolored tiara C 

What are you doing, what are you doing, the doors that way! screamed Malfoy, 
but Harry made a hairpin swerve and dived. The diadem seemed to fall in slow motion, 
turning and glittering as it dropped toward the maw of a yawning serpent, and then he 
had it, caught it around his wrist C 

Harry swerved again as the serpent lunged at him; he soared upward and straight 
toward the place where, he prayed, the door stood open; Ron, Hermione and Goyle had 


vanished; Malfoy was screaming and holding Harry so tightly it hurt. Then, through the 
smoke, Harry saw a rectangular patch on the wall and steered the broom at it, and 
moments later clean air filled his lungs and they collided with the wall in the corridor 
beyond. 

Malfoy fell off the broom and lay facedown, gasping, coughing, and retching. 
Harry rolled over and sat up: The door to the Room of Requirement had vanished, and 
Ron and Hermione sat panting on the floor beside Goyle, who was still unconscious. 

C-Crabbe, choked Malfoy as soon as he could speak. C-Crabbe . . . 

Hes dead, said Ron harshly. 

There was silence, apart from panting and coughing. Then a number of huge 
bangs shook the castle, and a great cavalcade of transparent figures galloped past on 
horses, their heads screaming with bloodlust under their arms. Harry staggered to his feet 
when the Headless Hunt had passed and looked around: The battle was still going on all 
around him. He could hear more scream than those of the retreating ghosts. Panic flared 
within him. 

Wheres Ginny? he said sharply. She was here. She was supposed to be going 
back into the Room of Requirement. 

Blimey, dyou reckon itll still work after that fire? asked Ron, but he too got to 
his feet, rubbing his chest and looking left and right. Shall we split up and look C ? 

No, said Hermione, getting to her feet too. Malfoy and Goyle remained 
slumped hopelessly on the corridor floor; neither of them had wands. Lets stick 
together. I say we go C Harry, whats that on your arm? 

What? Oh yeah C 

He pulled the diadem from his wrist and held it up. It was still hot, blackened with 
soot, but as he looked at it closely he was just able to make out the tiny words etched 
upon it; WIT BEYOND MEASURE IS MANS GREATEST TREASURE. 

A bloodlike substance, dark and tarry, seemed to be leaking from the diadem. 
Suddenly Harry felt the thing vibrate violently, then break apart in his hands, and as it did 
so, he thought he heard the faintest, most distant scream of pain, echoing not from the 
grounds or the castle, but from the thing that had just fragmented in his fingers. 

It must have been Fiendfyre! whimpered Hermione, her eyes on the broken 
piece. 

Sorry? 

Fiendfyre C cursed fire C its one of the substances that destroy Horcruxes, but I 
would never, ever have dared use it, its so dangerous C how did Crabbe know how to C 
? 

Mustve learned from the Carrows, said Harry grimly. 

Shame he wasnt concentrating when they mentioned how to stop it, really, said 
Ron, whose hair, like Hermiones, was singed, and whose face was blackened. If he 
hadnt tried to kill us all, Id be quite sorry he was dead. 

But dont you realize? whispered Hermione. This means, if we can just get the 
snake C 

But she broke off as yells and shouts and the unmistakable noises of dueling filled 
the corridor. Harry looked around and his heart seemed to fail: Death Eaters had 
penetrated Hogwarts. Fred and Percy had just backed into view, both of them dueling 
masked and hooded men. 


Harry, Ron, and Hermione ran forward to help: Jets of light flew in every 
direction and the man dueling Percy backed off, fast: Then his hood slipped and they saw 
a high forehead and streaked hair C 

Hello, Minister! bellowed Percy, sending a neat jinx straight at Thicknesse, who 
dropped his wand and clawed at the front of his robes, apparently in awful discomfort. 
Did I mention Im resigning? 

Youre joking, Perce! shouted Fred as the Death Eater he was battling collapsed 
under the weight of three separate Stunning Spells. Thicknesse had fallen to the ground 
with tiny spikes erupting all over him; he seemed to be turning into some form of sea 
urchin. Fred looked at Percy with glee. 

You actually are joking, Perce. . . . I dont think Ive heard you joke since you 
were C 

The air exploded. They had been grouped together, Harry, Ron, Hermione, Fred, 
and Percy, the two Death Eaters at their feet, one Stunned, the other Transfigured; and in 
that fragment of a moment, when danger seemed temporarily at bay, the world was rent 
apart, Harry felt himself flying through the air, and all he could do was hold as tightly as 
possible to that thin stick of wood that was his one and only weapon, and shield his head 
in his arms: He heard the screams and yells of his companions without a hope of knowing 
what had happened to them C 

And then the world resolved itself into pain and semidarkness: He was half buried 
in the wreckage of a corridor that had been subjected to a terrible attack. Cold air told 
him that the side of the castle had been blown away, and hot stickiness on his cheek told 
him that he was bleeding copiously. Then he heard a terrible cry that pulled at his insides, 
that expressed agony of a kind neither flame nor curse could cause, and he stood up, 
swaying, more frightened than he had been that day, more frightened, perhaps, than he 
had been in his life. . . . 

And Hermione was struggling to her feet in the wreckage, and three redheaded 
men were grouped on the ground where the wall had blasted apart. Harry grabbed 
Hermiones hand as they staggered and stumbled over stone and wood. 

No C no C no! someone was shouting. No! Fred! No! 

And Percy was shaking his brother, and Ron was kneeling beside them, and Freds eyes 
stared without seeing, the ghost of his last laugh still etched upon his face. 


 

 

Chapter Thirty-Two 

The Elder Wand 

 
The world had ended, so why had the battle not ceased, the castle 
fallen silent in horror, and every combatant laid down their arms? 
Harry's mind was in free fall, spinning out of control, unable to 
grasp the impossibility, because Fred Weasley could not be dead, 
the evidence of all his senses must be lying-- 
And then a body fell past the hole blown into the side of the 


school and curses flew in at them from the darkness, hitting the 
wall behind their heads. 
"Get down!" Harry shouted, as more curses flew through the night: 
He and Ron had both grabbed Hermione and pulled her to the floor, 
but Percy lay across Fred's body, shielding it from further harrm, 
and when Harry shouted "Percy, come on, we've got to move!" he 
shook his head. 
"Percy!" Harry saw tear tracks streaking the grime coating ron's 
face as he sezied his elder brother's shoulders and pulled, but 
Percy would not budge. "Percy, you can't do anything for him! We're 
going to--" 
Hermione screamed, and Harry, turning, did not need to ask why. A 
monstrous spider the size of a small car was trying to climb 
through the huge hole in the wall. one of Aragog's descendants had 
joined the fight. 
Ron and Harry shouted together; their spells collided and the 
monster was blown backward, its legs jerking horribly, and vanished 
into the darkness. 
"It brought friends!" Harry called to the others, glancing over the 
edge of the castle through the hole in the wall the curses had 
blasted. More giant spiders were climbing the side of the building, 
liberated from the Forbidden Forest, into which the Death Eaters 
must have penetrated. Harry fired Stunning Spells down upon them, 
knocking the lead monster into its fellows, so that they rolled 
back down the building and out of sight. Then more curses came 
soaring over Harry's head, so close he felt the force of them blow 
his hair. 
"Let's move, NOW!" 
Pushing Hermione ahead of him with ron, Harry stooped to seize 
Fred's body under the armpit. Percy, realizing what Harry was 
trying to do, stopped clinging to the body and helped: together, 
crouching low to avoid the curses flying at them from the grounds, 
they hauled Fred out of the way. 
"Here," said Harry, and they placed him in a niche where a suit of 
armor had stood earlier. He could not bear to look at Fred a second 
longer than he had to, and after making sure that the body was well- 
hidden, he took off after ron and Hermione. Malfoy and Goyle had 
vanished but at the end of the corridor, which was now full of dust 
and falling masonry, glass long gone from windows, he saw many 
people running backward and forward, whether friends or foes he 
could not tell. Rounding the corner, Percy let out a bull-like 
roar: "ROOKWOOD!" and sprinted off in the direction of a tall man, 
who was pursuing a couple of students. 
"Harry, in here!" Hermione screamed. 
She had pulled Ron behind a tapestry. They seemed to be wrestling 
together, and for one mad second Harry thought that they were 


embracing again; then hhe saw that Hermione was trying to restrain 
Ron, to stop him running after Percy. 
"Listen to me--LISTEN RON!" 
"I wanna help--I wanna kill Death Eaters--" 
His face was contorted, smeared with dust and smoke, and he was 
shaking with rage and grief. 
"ron, we're the only ones who can end it! Please--ron--we need the 
snake, we've got to kill the snake!" said Hermione. 
But Harry knew how Ron felt: Pursuing another Horcrux could not 
bring the satisfaction of revenge; he too wanted to fight, to 
punish them, the people who had killed Fred, and he wanted to find 
the other Weasleys, and above all make sure, make quite sure, that 
Ginny was not--but he could not permit that idea to form in his 
mind-- 
"We will fight!" Hermione said. "We'll have to, to reach the snake! 
But let's not lose sight now of what we're supposed to be d-doing! 
We're the only ones who can end it!" 
She was crying too, and she wiped her face on her torn and singed 
sleeve as she spoke, but she took great heaving breaths to calm 
herself as, still keeping a tight hold on ron, she turned to Harry. 
"You need to find out where Voldemort is, because he'll have the 
snake with him, won't he? Do it, Harry--look inside him!" 
Why was it so easy? Because his scar had been burning for hours, 
yearning to show him Voldemort's thoughts? He closed his eyes on 
her command, and at once, the screams and bangs and all the 
discordant sounds of the battle were drowned until they became 
distant, as though he stood far, far away from them... 
He was standing in the middle of a desolate but strangely familiar 
room, with peeling paper on the walls and all the windows boarded 
up except for one. The sounds of the assault on the castle were 
muffled and distant. The single unblocked window revealed distant 
bursts of light where the castle stood, but inside the room was 
dark except for a solitary oil lamp. 
He was rolling his wand between his figners, watching it, his 
thoughts on the room in the castle, the secret room only he had 
ever found, the room, like the chamber, that you had to be clever 
and cunning and inquisitive to discover...He was confident that the 
boy would not find the diadem...although Dumbledore's puppet had 
come much farther than he ever expected...too far... 
"My Lord," said a voice, desperate and cracked. He turned: there 
was Lucius Malfoy sitting in the darkest corner, ragged and still 
bearing the marks of the punishment he had received after the boy's 
last escape. One of his eyes remained closed and puffy. "My 
Lord...please...my son..." 
"If your son is dead, Lucius, it is not my fault. He did not come 
and join me, like the rest of the Slytherins. Perhaps he has 


decided to befriend Harry Potter?" 
"No--never," whispered Malfoy. 
"You must hope not." 
"Aren't--aren't you afraid, my Lord that Potter might die at 
another hand but yours?" asked Malfoy, his voice shaking. "Wouldn't 
it be...forgive me...more prudent to call off this battle, enter 
the castle, and seek him y-yourself?" 
"Do not pretend Lucius. You wish the battle to cease so that you 
can discover what has happened to your son. And i do not need to 
seek Potter. Before the night is out, Potter will have come to find 
me." 
Voldemort dropped his gaze once more to the wand in his fingers. It 
troubled him...and those things that troubled Lord Voldemort needed 
to be rearranged... 
"Go and fetch Snape." 
"Snape, m-my Lord?" 
"Snape. Now. I need him. There is a --service--I require from him. 
Go." 
Frightened, stumbling a little through the gloom, Lucius left the 
room. Vodlemort continued to stand there, twirling the wand between 
his fingers, staring at it. 
"It is the only way, Nagini," he whispered, and he looked around, 
and there was the great thick snake, now suspended in midair, 
twisting gracefully within the enchanted, protected space he had 
made for her, a starry, transparent sphere somewhere between a 
glittering cage and a tank. 
With a gasp, Harry pulled back and opened his yees at the same 
moment his ears were assaulted with the screeches and cries, the 
smashes and bangs of battle. 
"He's in the Shrieking Shack. The snake's with him, it's got some 
sort of magical protection around it. He's just sent Lucius Malfoy 
to find Snape." 
"voldemort's sitting in the shrieking Shack?" said Hermione, 
outraged. "He's not--he's not even FIGHTING?" 
"He doesn't think he needs to fight," said Harry. "He thinks I'm 
going to go to him." 
"But why?" 
"He knows I'm after Horcruxes--he's keeping Nagini close beside him- 
-obviously I'm going to have to go to him to get near the thing--" 
"Right," said Ron, squaring his shoulders. "So you can't go, that's 
what he wants, what he's expecting. You stay here and look after 
Hermione, and I'll go and get it--" 
Harry cut across Ron. 
"You two stay here, I'll go under the Cloak and I'll be back as 
soon as I--" 
"No," said Hermione,, "it makes much more sense if I take the Cloak 


and--" 
"Don't even think about it," Ron snarled at her. 
before Hermione could get farther than "Ron, I'm just as capable -- 
" the tapestry at the top of the staircase on which they stood was 
ripped open. 
"POTTER!" 
Two masked Death Eaters stood there, but even before their wands 
were fully raised, Hermione shouted "Glisseo!" 
The stairs beneath their feet flatteneed into a chute and she, 
Harry, and Ron hurtled down it, unable to control their speed but 
so fast that the Death Eaters' Stunning Spells flew far over their 
heads. They shot through the concealing tapestry at the bottom and 
spun onto the floor, hitting the opposite wall. 
"Duro!" cried Hermione, pointing her wand at the tapestry, and 
there were two loud, sickening crunches as the tapestry turned to 
stone and the Death Eaters pursuing them crumpled against it. 
"Get back!" shouted Ron, and he, Harry, and Hermione hurled 
themselves against a door as a herd of galloping desks thundered 
past, shepherdd by a sprinting Professor McGonagall. She appeared 
not to notice them. Her hair had come down and there was a gash on 
her cheek. As she turned the corner, they heard her scream, 
"CHARGE!" 
"Harry, you get the Cloak on," said Hermione. "Never mind us--" 
But he threw it over all three of them; large though they were he 
doubted anyone would see their disembodied feet through the dust 
that clogged the air, the falling stone, the shimmer of spells. 
they ran down the next staircase and found themselves in a corridor 
full of duelers. The portraits on either side of the fighters were 
crammed with figures screaming advice and encouragement, while 
Death Eaters, both masked and unmasked, dueled students and 
teachers. Dean had won himself a wand, for he was face-to-face with 
Dolohov, Parvati with Travers. Harry, ron and Hermione raised their 
wands at once, ready to strike, but the duelers were weaving and 
darting so much that there was a strong likelihood of hurting on of 
their own side if they cast curses. Even as they stood braced, 
looking for the opportunity to act, there came a great "Wheeeeee!" 
and looking up, Harry saw Peeves zoomign over them, dropping 
Snargaluff pods down onto the Death Eaters, whose heads were 
suddenly engulfed in wriggling green tubers like fat worms. 
"ARGH!" 
A fistful of tubers had hit the Cloak over Ron's head; the damp 
green roots were suspended improbably in midair as Ron tried to 
shake them loose. 
"Someone's invisible there!" shouted a masked Death Eater, pointing. 
Dean made the most of the Death Eater's momentary distraction, 
knocking him out with a stunning Spell; Dolohov attempted to 


retaliate, and Parvati shot a Body Bind Curse at him. 
"LET'S GO!" Harry yelled, and he, Ron, and Hermione gathered the 
Cloak tightly around themselves and pelted, heads down, through the 
midst of the fighters, slipping a little in pools of Snargaluff 
juice, toward the top of the marble staircase into the entrance 
hall. 
"I'm Draco Malfoy, I'm Draco, I'm on your side!" 
Draco was on the upper landing, pleading with anoter masked Death 
Eater. Harry Stunned the Death Eater as they passed. Malfoy looked 
around, beaming, for his savior, and Ron punched him from under the 
Cloak. Malfoy fell backward on top of the Death Eater, his mouth 
bleeding, utterly bemused. 
"And that's the second time we've saved your life tonight, you two- 
faced bastard!" Ron yelled. 
There were more duelers all over the stairs and in the hall. Death 
Eaters everywhere Harry looked: Yaxley, close to the front doors, 
in combat with Flitwick, a masked Death Eater dueling Kingsley 
right beside them. Students ran in every direction; some carrying 
or dragging injured friends. Harry directed a Stunnning Spell 
toward the masked Death Eater; it missed but nearly hit Neville, 
who had emerged from nowhere brandishing armfuls of Venomous 
Tentacula, which looped itself happily around the nearest Death 
Eater and began reeling him in. 
Harry, Ron, and Hermione sped won the marble staircase: glass 
shattered on the left, and the Slytherin hourglass that had 
recorded House points spilled its emeralds everywhere, so that 
people slipped and staggered as they ran. Two bodies fell from the 
balcony overhead as they reached the ground a gray blur that Harry 
took for an animal sped four-legged across the hall to sink its 
teeth into one of the fallen. 
"NO!" shrieked Hermione, and with a deafening blast from her wand, 
Fenrir Greyback was thrown backward from the feebly struggling body 
of Lavender Brown. He hit the marble banisters and struggled to 
return to his feet. Then, with a bright white flash and a crack, a 
crystal ball fell on top of his head, and he crumpled to the ground 
and did not move. 
"I have more!" shrieked Professor Trelawney from over the 
banisters. "More for any who want them! Here--" 
And with a move likea tennis serve, she heaved another enormous 
crystal sphere from her bag, waved her wand through the air, and 
caused the ball to speed across the hall and smash through a 
window. At the same moment, the heavy wooden front doors burst 
open, and more of the gigantic spiders forced their way into the 
front hall. 
Screams of terror rent the air: the fighters scattered, Death 
Eaters and Hogwartians alike, and red and green jets of light flew 


into the midst of the oncoming monsters, which shuddered and 
reared, more terrifying than ever. 
"How do we get out?" yelled ron over all the screaming, but before 
either Harry or Hermione could answer they were bowled aside; 
Hagrid had come thundering down the stairs, brandishing his flowery 
pink umbrella. 
"Don't hurt 'em, don't hurt 'em!" he yelled. 
"HAGRID, NO!" 
Harry forgot everything else: he sprinted out from under the cloak, 
running bent double to avoid the curses illuminating the whole hall. 
"HAGRID, COME BACK!" 
But he was not even halfway to Hagrid when he saw it happen: Hagrid 
vanished amongst the spiders, and with a great scurrying, a foul 
swarming movement, they retreated under the onslaught of spells, 
Hagrid buried in their midst. 
"HAGRID!" Harry heard someone calling his own name, whether friend 
or foe he did not care: He was springint down the front steps into 
the dark grounds, and the spiders were swarming away with their 
prey, and he could see nothing of Hagrid at all. 
"HAGRID!" 
He thought he could make out an enormous arm waving from the mdist 
of the spider swarm, but as he made to chase after them, his way 
was impeded by a monumental foot, which swung down out of the 
darkness and made the ground on which he stood shudder. He looked 
up: A giant stood before him, twenty feet high, its head ihidden in 
shadow, nothing but its treelike, hairy shins illuminated by light 
from the castle doors. With one brutal, fluid movement, it smashed 
a massive fist through an upper window, and glass rained down upon 
Harryk, forcing him back under the shelter of the doorway. 
"Oh my--!" shrieked Hermione, as she and ron caught up with Harry 
and gazed upward at the giant now trying to seize people through 
the window above. 
"DON'T!" ron yelled, grabbing Hermione's hand as she raised her 
wand. "Stun him and he'll crush half the castle--" 
"HAGGER?" 
Grawp came lurching around the corner of the castle; only dnow did 
Harry realzie that Grawp was, indeed, an undersized giant. The 
gargantuan monster trying to crush people on the upper floors 
turned around and let out a rorar. The stone steps tremebled as he 
stomped toward his smaller kin, and Grawp's lopsided mouth fell 
open, showing yellow, half brick-sized teeth; and then they 
launched themselves at each other with the savagery of lions. 
"RUN!" Harry roared; the ngiht was full of hideous yells and blows 
as the giants wrestled, and he seized Hermione's hand and tore down 
the steps into the grounds, Ron bringing up the rear. Harry had not 
lost hope of finding and saving Hagrid; he ran so fast that they 


were halfway toward the forest before they were brought up short 
again. 
The air around them had frozen: Harry's breath caught and 
solidified in his chest. Shapes moved out in the darkness, swirling 
figures of concentrated blackness, moving in a great wave towards 
the castles, their faces hooded and their breath rattling... 
ron and Hermione closed in beside him as the sounds of fighting 
behind them grew suddenly muted, deadened, because a silence only 
dementors could bring was falling thickly through the night, and 
Fred was gone, and Hagrid was suurely dying or already dead... 
"come on, Harry!" said Hermione's voice from a very long way away. 
"Patronuses, Harry, come on!" 
he raised his wand, but a dull hopelessness was spreading 
throughout him: How many more lay dead that he did not yet know 
about? He felt as though his soul had already half left his body.... 
"HARRY, COME ON!" screamed Hermione. 
A hundred dementors were advancing, gliding toward them, sucking 
their way closer to Harry's despair, which was like a promise of a 
feast... 
He saw Ron's silver terrier burst into the air, flicker feebly, and 
expire; he saw Hermione's otter twist in midair and fade, and his 
own wand trembled in his hand, and he almost welcomed the oncoming 
oblivion, the promise of nothing, of no feeling... 
And then a silver hare, a boar, and fox soared past Harry, Ron, and 
Hermione's heads: the dementors fell back before the creatures' 
approach. Three more people had arrived out of the darkness to 
stand beside them, their wands outstretched, continuing to cast 
Patronuses: Luna, Ernie, and Seamus. 
"That's right," said Luna encouragingly, as if they were back in 
the Room of Requirement and this was simply spell practice for the 
D.A., "That's right, Harry...come on think of something happy..." 
'something happy?" he said, his voice cracked. 
"We're all still here," she whispered, "we;re still fighting. Come 
on, now...." 
There was a silver spark, then a wavering light, and then, with the 
greatest effort it had ever cost him the stag burst from the end of 
Harry's wand. It cantered forward, and now the dementors scattered 
in earnest, and immediately the night was mild again, but the 
sounds of the surrounding battle were loud in his ears. 
"Can't thank you enough," said ron shakily, turning to Luna, Ernie, 
and Seamus "you just saved--" 
With a roar and an earth-quaking tremor, another giant came 
lurching out of the darkness from the direction of the forest, 
brandishing a club taller than any of them. 
"RUN!" Harry shouted again, but the others needed no telling; They 
all scattered, and not a second too soon, for the next moment the 


creature's vast foot had fallen exactly where they had been 
standing. Harry looked round: ron and Hermione were following him, 
but the other three had vanished back into the battle. 
"Let's get out of range!" yelled Ron as the giant swung its club 
again and its bellows echoed through the night, across the grounds 
wehere bursts of red and green light continued to illuminate the 
darkness. 
"The Whomping willow," said Harry, "go!" 
Somehow he walled it all up in his mind, crammed it into a small 
space into which he could not look now: thoughts of Fred and 
Hagrid, and his terror for all the people he loved, scattered in 
and outside the castle, must all wait, because they had to run, had 
to reach the snake and Voldemort, because that was, as Hermione 
said, the only way to end it-- 
He sprinted, half-believing he could outdistance death itself, 
ignoring the jets of light flying in the darkness all around him, 
and the sound of hte lake crashing like the sea, and the creaking 
of the Forbidden Forest though the night was windless; through 
grounds that seemed themselves to have risen in rebellion, he ran 
faster than he had ever moved in his life, and it was he who saw 
the great tree first, the Willow that protected the secret at its 
roots with whiplike, slashing branches. 
Panting and gasping, Harry slowed down, skirting the willow's 
swiping branches, peering through the darkness toward its tick 
trunk, trying to see the single knot in the bark of the old tree 
that would paralyze it. Ron and Hermione caught up, Hermione so out 
of breath that she could not speak. 
"How--how're we going to get in?" panted ron. "I can--see the palce- 
-if we jsut had--Crookshanks again--" 
"Crookshanks?" wheezed Hermione, bent double, clutching her chest. 
"Are you a wizard, or what?" 
"Oh--right--yeah--" 
Ron looked around, then directed his wand at a twig on the ground 
and said "Winguardium Leviosa!" The twig flew up from the gruond, 
spun through the air as if caught by a gust of wind, then zoomed 
directly at the trunk through the Willow's ominously swaying 
branches. It jabbed at a place near the roots, and at once, the 
writhing tree became still. 
"Perfect!" panted Hermione. 
"Wait." 
For one teetering second, while the crashes and booms of the battle 
filled the air, Harry hesitated. Voldemort wanted him to do this, 
wanted him to come...Was he leading Ron and Hermione into a trap? 
But the reality seemed to close upon him, cruel and plain: the only 
way forward was to kill the snake, and the snake was where 
Voldemort was, and voldemort was at the end of this tunnel... 


"Harry, we're coming, just get in there!" said Ron, pushing him 
forward. 
Harry wriggled into the earthy passage hidden in the tree's roots. 
It was a much tighter squeeze than it had been the last time they 
had entered it. The tunnel was low-ceilinged: they had had to 
double up to move throuhgh it nearly four years previously; now 
there was nothing for it but to crawl. Harry went first, his wand 
illuminated, expecting at any moment to meet barriers, but none 
came. They moved in silence, Harry's gaze fixed upon the swinging 
beam of the wand held in his fist. At last, the tunnel began to 
slope upward and Harry saw a sliver of light ahead. Hermione tugged 
at his ankle. 
"The Cloak!" she whispered. "Put the Cloak on!" 
He groped behind him and she forced the bundle of slippery cloth 
into his free hand. With difficulty he dragged it over himself, 
murmered, "Nox," extinguishing his wandlight, and continued on his 
hands and knees, as silently as possible, all his senses straining, 
expecting every second to be discovered, to hear a cold clear 
voice, see a flash of green light. 
and then he heard voices coming from the room directly ahead of 
them, only slightly muffled by the fact that the opening at the 
endo fht etuunnel had been blocked up by what looked like an old 
crate. Hardly daring to breathe, Harry edged right up tot he 
opening and peered through a tiny gap left between crate and wall. 
The room beyond was dimly lit, but he could see Nagini, swirlign 
and coiling like a serpent underwater, safe in her enchanted, 
starry sphere, which floated unsupported in midair. He could see 
the edge of a table, and a long-fingered white hand toying with a 
wand. 
Then Snape spoke, and Harry's heart lurched: Snape was inches away 
from where he crouched, hidden. 
"...my Lord, their resistance is crumbling--" 
"--and it is doing so without your help," said Voldemort in his 
high, clear voice. "Skilled wizard though you are, Severus, I do 
not think you will make much difference now. We are almost 
there...almost." 
"Let me find the boy. Let me bring you Potter. I know I can find 
him, my Lord. Please." 
Snape strode past the gap, and Harry drew back a little, keeping 
his eyes fixed upon Nagini, wondering whether there was any spell 
that might penetrate the protection surrounding her, but he could 
not think of anything. One failed attempt, and he would give away 
his position... 
Voldemort stood up. Harry could see him now, see the red eyes, the 
flattened, serpentine face, the pallor of him gleaming slightly in 
the semidarkness. 


"I have a problem, Severus," said Voldemort softly. 
"My Lord?" said Snape. 
Voldemort raised the Elder Wand, holding it as delicately and 
precisely as a conductor's baton. 
"Why doesn't it work for me, Severus?" 
In the silence Harry imagined he could hear the snake hissing 
slightly as it coiled and uncoiled--or was it Voldemort's sibilant 
sigh lingering on the air? 
"My--my lord?" said Snape blankly. "I do not understand. You--you 
have performed extraordinary magic with that wand." 
"No," said Voldemort. "I have performed my usual magic. I am 
extraordinary, but this wand...no. It has not revealed the wonders 
it has promised. I feel no difference between this wand and the one 
I procured from Ollivander all those years ago." 
Voldemort's tone was musing, calm, but Harry's scar had begun to 
throb and pulse: Pain was building in his forehead, and he could 
feel that controlled sense of fury building inside Voldemort. 
"No difference," said Voldemort again. 
Snape did not speak. Harry could not see his face. He wondered 
whether Snape sensed danger, was trying to find the right words to 
reassure his master. 
Voldemort started to move around the room: Harry lost sight of him 
for seconds as he prowled, speaking in that same measured voice, 
while the pain and fury mounted in Harry. 
"I have thought long and hard, Severus...do you know why I have 
called you back from battle?" 
And for a moment Harry saw Snape's profile. His eyes were fixed 
upon the coiling snake in its enchanted cage. 
"No, my Lord, but I beg you will let me return. Let me find Potter." 
"You sound like Lucius. Neither of you understands Potter as I do. 
He does not need finding. Potter will come to me. I knew his 
weakness you see, his one great flaw. He will hate watching the 
others struck down around him, knwoing that it is for him that it 
happens. He will want to stop it at any cost. He will come." 
"But my Lord, he might be killed accidentally by someone other than 
yourself--"\ 
"My instructions to the Death Eaters have been perfectly clear. 
Capture Potter. Kill his friends--the more, the better--but do not 
kill him. 
"But it is of you that I wished to speak, Severus, not Harry 
Potter. You have been very valuable to me. Very valuable." 
"My Lord knows I seek only to serve him. But--let me go and find 
the boy, my Lord. Let me bring him to you. I know I can--" 
"I have told you, no!" said Voldemort, and Harry caught the lgint 
of red in his eyes as he turned again, and the swishing of his 
cloak was like the slithering of a snake, and he felt Voldemort's 


impatience in his burning scar. "My concern at the moment, Severus, 
is what will happen when I finally meet the boy!" 
"My Lord, there can be no question, surely--?" 
"--but there is a question, Severus. There is." 
Voldemort halted, and Harry could see him plainly again as he slid 
the Elder Wand through his white fingers, staring at Snape. 
"Why did both the wands I have used fail when directed at Harry 
Potter?" 
"I--I cannot answer that, my Lord." 
"Can't you?" 
The stab of rage felt like a spike driven through Harry's head: he 
forced his own fist into his mouth to stop himself from crying out 
in pain. He closed his eyes, and suddenly he was Voldemort, looking 
into Snape's pale face. 
"My wand of yew did everything of which I asked it, Severus, except 
to kill Harry Potter. Twice it failed. Ollivander told me under 
torture of the twin cores, told me to take another's wand. I did 
so, but Lucius's wand shattered upon meeting Potter's." 
"I--I have no explanation, my Lord." 
Snape was not looking at Voldemort now. His dark eyes were still 
fixed upon the coiling serpent in its protective sphere. 
"I sought a third wand, Severus. the Elder Wand, the Wand of 
Destiny, the Deathstick. I took it from its previous master. I took 
it from the grfave of Albus Dumbledore." 
And now Snape looked at Voldemort, and Snape's face was like a 
death mask. it was marble white and so still that when he spoke, it 
was a shock to see that anyone lived behind the blank eyes. 
"My Lord--let me go to the boy--" 
"all this long night when I am on the brink of victory, I have sat 
here," said Voldemort, his voice barely louder than a whisper, 
"wondering, wondering, why the Elder Wand refuses to be what it 
ought to be, refuses to perform as legend says it must perform for 
its rightful owner...and I think I have the answer." 
Snape did not speak. 
"Perhaps you already know it? You are a clever man, after all, 
Severus. You have been a good and faithful servant, and I regret 
what must happen." 
"My Lord--" 
"The Elder Wand cannot serve me properly, Severus, because I am not 
its true master. The Elder Wand belongs to the wizard who killed 
its last owner. You killed Albus Dumbledore. While you live, 
Severus, the Elder Wand cannot truly be mine." 
"My Lord!" Snape protested, raising his wand. 
"It cannot be any other way," said Voldemort. "I must master the 
wand, Severus. Master the wand, and I master Potter at last." 
And Voldemort swiped the air with the Elder Wand. It did nothing to 


Sanpe, who for a split second seemed to think he had been 
reprieved: but then Voldemort's intention became clear. The snake's 
cage was rolling through the air, and before Snape could do 
anything more than yell, it had encased him, head and shoulders, 
and Voldemort spoke in Parseltongue. 
"Kill." 
There was a terrible scream. Harry saw Snape's face losing the 
little color it had left; it whitened as his black eyes widened, as 
the snake's fangs pierced his neck, as he failed to push the 
enchanted cage off himself, as his knees gave way and he fell to 
the floor. 
"I regret it," said Voldemort coldly. 
He turned away; there was no sadness in him, no remorse. It was 
time to leave this shack and take charge, with a wand that would 
now do his full bidding. He pointed it at the starry cage holding 
the snake, which drifted upward, off snape, who fell sideways onto 
the floor, blood gushing from the wounds in his neck. Voldemort 
swept from the room without a backward glance, and the great 
serpent floated after him in its huge protective sphere. 
Back in the tunnel and his own mind, Harry opened his eyes; He had 
drawn blood biting down on his knuckles in an effort not to shout 
out. Now he was looking through the tiny crack between crate and 
wall, watching a foot in a black boot trembling on the floor. 
"Harry!" breathed Hermione behind him, but he had already pointed 
his wand at the crate blocking his view. It lifted an inch into the 
air and drifted sideways silently. As quietly as he could, he 
pulled himself up into the room. 
He did not know why he was doing it, why he was approaching the 
dying man: he did not know what he felt as he saw Snape's white 
face, adn the fingers trying to staunch the bloody wound at his 
neck. Harry took off the invisibility cloak and looked down upon 
the man he hated, whose widening black eyes found Harry as he cried 
to speak. Harry bent over him, and Snape seized the front of his 
robes and pulled him close. 
A terrible rasping, gurgling noise issued from Snape's throat. 
"Take...it...Take...it..." 
Something more than blood was leaking from Snape. Silvery blue, 
neither gas nor liquid, it gushed form his mouth and his ears and 
his eyes, and Harry knew what it was, but did not know what to do-- 
A flask, conjured from thin air, was thrust into his shaking hand 
by Hermione. Harry lfited the silvery substance into it with his 
wand. When the falsk was full to the brim, and Snape looked as 
though there was no blood left in him, his grip on Harry's robes 
slackened. 
"Look...at....me..." he whispered. 
The green eyes found the black, but after a second, something in 


the depths of the dark pari seemed to vanish, leaving them fixed, 
blank, and empty. The hand holding Harry thudded to the floor, and 
Snape moved no more. 

 

Chapter Thirty-Three 

The Princes Tale 

 

Harry remained kneeling at Snapes side, simply staring down at him, until quite 
suddenly a high, cold voice spoke so close to them that Harry jumped on his feet, the 
flask gripped tightly in his hands, thinking that Voldemort had reentered the room. 

 Voldemorts voice reverberated from the walls and floor, and Harry realized that 
he was talking to Hogwarts and to all the surrounding area, that the residents of 
Hogsmeade and all those still fighting in the castle would hear him as clearly as if he 
stood beside them, his breath on the back of their necks, a deathblow away. 

 You have fought, said the high, cold voice, valiantly. Lord Voldemort knows 
how to value bravery. 

 Yet you have sustained heavy losses. If you continue to resist me, you will all 
die, one by one. I do not wish this to happen. Every drop of magical blood spilled is a 
loss and a waste. 

 Lord Voldemort is merciful. I command my forces to retreat immediately. 

 You have one hour. Dispose of your dead with dignity. Treat your injured. 

 I speak now, Harry Potter, directly to you. You have permitted your friends to 
die for you rather than face me yourself. I shall wait for one hour in the Forbidden Forest. 
If, at the end of that hour, you have not come to me, have not given yourself up, then 
battle recommences. This time, I shall enter the fray myself, Harry Potter, and I shall find 
you, and I shall punish every last man, woman, and child who has tried to conceal you 
from me. One hour. 

 Both Ron and Hermione shook their heads frantically, looking at Harry. 

 Dont listen to him, said Ron. 

 Itll be all right, said Hermione wildly. Lets C lets get back to the castle, if 
hes gone to the forest well need to think of a new plan C  

 She glanced at Snapes body, then hurried back to the tunnel entrance. Ron 
followed her. Harry gathered up the Invisibility Cloak, then looked down at Snape. He 
did not know what to feel, except shock at the way Snape had been killed, and the reason 
for which it had been done 

 They crawled back through the tunnel, none of them talking, and Harry wondered 
whether Ron and Hermione could still hear Voldemort ringing in their heads as he could. 

 You have permitted your friends to die for you rather than face me yourself. I 
shall wait for one hour in the Forbidden ForestOne hour 

 Small bundles seemed to litter the lawn at the front of the castle (?). It could only 
be an hour or so from dawn, yet it was pitch-black. The three of them hurried toward the 
stone steps. A lone dog, the size of a small boat, lay abandoned in front of them. There 
was no other sign of Grawp or of his attacker. 


 The castle was unnaturally silent. There were no flashes of light now, no bangs or 
screams or shouts. The flagstones of the deserted entrance hall were stained with blood. 
Emeralds were still scattered all over the floor, along with pieces of marble and splintered 
wood. Part of the banisters had been blown away. 

 Where is everyone? whispered Hermione. 

 Ron led the way to the Great Hall. Harry stopped in the doorway. 

 The House tables were gone and the room was crowded. The survivors stood in 
groups, their arms around each others necks. The injured were being treated upon the 
raised platform by Madam Pomfrey and a group of helpers. Firenze was amongst the 
injured; his flank poured blood and he shook where he lay, unable to stand. 

 The dead lay in a row in the middle of the Hall. Harry could not see Freds body, 
because his family surrounded him. George was kneeling at his head; Mrs. Weasley was 
lying across Freds chest, her body shaking. Mr. Weasley stroking her hair while tears 
cascaded down his cheeks. 

 Without a word to Harry, Ron and Hermione walked away. Harry saw Hermione 
approach Ginny, whose face was swollen and blotchy, and hug her. Ron joined Bill, Fleur, 
and Percy, who flung an arm around Rons shoulders. As Ginny and Hermione moved 
closer to the rest of the family, Harry had a clear view of the bodies lying next to Fred. 
Remus and Tonks, pale and still and peaceful-looking, apparently asleep beneath the dark, 
enchanted ceiling. 

 The Great Hall seemed to fly away, become smaller, shrink, as Harry reeled 
backward from the doorway. He could not draw breath. He could not bear to look at any 
of the other bodies, to see who else had died for him. He could not bear to join the 
Weasleys, could not look into their eyes, when if he had given himself up in the first 
place, Fred might never have died 

 He turned away and ran up the marble staircase. Lupin, Tonks He yearned not 
to feel He wished he could rip out his heart, his innards, everything that was screaming 
inside him 

 The castle was completely empty; even the ghosts seemed to have joined the mass 
mourning in the Great Hall. Harry ran without stopping, clutching the crystal flask of 
Snapes last thoughts, and he did not slow down until he reached the stone gargoyle 
guarding the headmasters office. 

 Password? 

 Dumbledore! said Harry without thinking, because it was he whom he yearned 
to see, and to his surprise the gargoyle slid aside revealing the spiral staircase behind. 

 But when Harry burst into the circular office he found a change. The portraits that 
hung all around the walls were empty. Not a single headmaster or headmistress remained 
to see him; all, it seemed, had flitted away, charging through the paintings that lined the 
castle so that they could have a clear view of what was going on. 

 Harry glanced hopelessly at Dumbledores deserted frame, which hung directly 
behind the headmasters chair, then turned his back on it. The stone Pensieve lay in the 
cabinet where it had always been. Harry heaved it onto the desk and poured Snapes 
memories into the wide basin with its runic markings around the edge. To escape into 
someone elses head would be a blessed relief Nothing that even Snape had left him 
could be worse than his own thoughts. The memories swirled, silver white and strange, 


and without hesitating, with a feeling of reckless abandonment, as though this would 
assuage his torturing grief, Harry dived. 

 He fell headlong into sunlight, and his feet found warm ground. When he 
straightened up, he saw that he was in a nearly deserted playground. A single huge 
chimney dominated the distant skyline. Two girls were swinging backward and forward, 
and a skinny boy was watching them from behind a clump of bushes. His black hair was 
overlong and his clothes were so mismatched that it looked deliberate: too short jeans, a 
shabby, overlarge coat that might have belonged to a grown man, an odd smocklike shirt. 

 Harry moved closer to the boy. Snape looked no more than nine or ten years old, 
sallow, small, stringy. There was undisguised greed in his thin face as he watched the 
younger of the two girls swinging higher and higher than her sister. 

 Lily, dont do it! shrieked the elder of the two. 

 But the girl had let go of the swing at the very height of its arc and flown into the 
air, quite literally flown, launched herself skyward with a great shout of laughter, and 
instead of crumpling on the playground asphalt, she soared like a trapeze artist through 
the air, staying up far too long, landing far too lightly. 

 Mummy told you not to! 

 Petunia stopped her swing by dragging the heels of her sandals on the ground, 
making a crunching, grinding sound, then leapt up, hands on hips. 

 Mummy said you werent allowed, Lily! 

 But Im fine, said Lily, still giggling. Tuney, look at this. Watch what I can 
do. 

 Petunia glanced around. The playground was deserted apart from themselves and, 
though the girls did not know it, Snape. Lily had picked up a fallen flower from the bush 
behind which Snape lurked. Petunia advanced, evidently torn between curiosity and 
disapproval. Lily waited until Petunia was near enough to have a clear view, then held 
out her palm. The flower sat there, opening and closing its petals, like some bizarre, 
many-lipped oyster. 

 Stop it! shrieked Petunia. 

 Its not hurting you, said Lily, but she closed her hand on the blossom and 
threw it back to the ground. 

 Its not right, said Petunia, but her eyes had followed the flowers flight to the 
ground and lingered upon it. How do you do it? she added, and there was definite 
longing in her voice. 

 Its obvious, isnt it? Snape could no longer contain himself, but had jumped 
out from behind the bushes. Petunia shrieked and ran backward toward the swings, but 
Lily, though clearly startled, remained where she was. Snape seemed to regret his 
appearance. A dull flush of color mounted the sallow cheeks as he looked at Lily. 

 Whats obvious? asked Lily. 

 Snape had an air of nervous excitement. With a glance at the distant Petunia, now 
hovering beside the swings, he lowered his voice and said, I know what you are. 

 What do you mean? 

 Youreyoure a witch, whispered Snape. 

 She looked affronted. 

 Thats not a very nice thing to say to somebody! 

 She turned, nose in the air, and marched off toward her sister. 


 No! said Snape. He was highly colored now, and Harry wondered why he did 
not take off the ridiculously large coat, unless it was because he did not want to reveal the 
smock beneath it. He flapped after the girls, looking ludicrously batlike, like his older self. 

 The sisters considered him, united in disapproval, both holding on to one of the 
swing poles, as though it was the safe place in tag. 

 You are, said Snape to Lily. You are a witch. Ive been watching you for a 
while. But theres nothing wrong with that. My mums one, and Im a wizard. 

 Petunias laugh was like cold water. 

 Wizard! she shrieked, her courage returned now that she had recovered from 
the shock of his unexpected appearance. I know who you are. Youre that Snape boy! 
They live down Spinners End by the river, she told Lily, and it was evident from her 
tone that she considered the address a poor recommendation. Why have you been spying 
on us? 

 Havent been spying, said Snape, hot and uncomfortable and dirty-haired in the 
bright sunlight. Wouldnt spy on you, anyway, he added spitefully, youre a Muggle. 

 Though Petunia evidently did not understand the word, she could hardly mistake 
the tone. 

 Lily, come on, were leaving! she said shrilly. Lily obeyed her sister at once, 
glaring at Snape as she left. He stood watching them as they marched through the 
playground gate, and Harry, the only one left to observe him, recognized Snapes bitter 
disappointment, and understood that Snape had been planning this moment for a while, 
and that it had all gone wrong 

 The scene dissolved, and before Harry knew it, re-formed around him. He was 
now in a small thicket of trees. He could see a sunlit river glittering through their trunks. 
The shadows cast by the trees made a basin of cool green shade. Two children sat facing 
each other, cross-legged on the ground. Snape had removed his coat now; his odd smock 
looked less pecular in the half light. 

 and the Ministry can punish you if you do magic outside school, you get 
letters. 

 But I have done magic outside school! 

 Were all right. We havent got wands yet. They let you off when youre a kid 
and you cant help it. But once youre eleven, he nodded importantly, and they start 
training you, then youve got to go careful. 

 There was a little silence. Lily had picked up a fallen twig and twirled it in the air, 
and Harry knew that she was imagining sparks trailing from it. Then she dropped the twig, 
leaned in toward the boy, and said, It is real, isnt it? Its not a joke? Petunia says youre 
lying to me. Petunia says there isnt a Hogwarts. It is real, isnt it? 

 Its real for us, said Snape. Not for her. But well get the letter, you and me. 

 Really? whispered Lily. 

 Definitely, said Snape, and even with his poorly cut hair and his odd clothes, he 
struck an oddly impressive figure sprawled in front of her, brimful of confidence in his 
destiny. 

 And will it really come by owl? Lily whispered. 

 Normally, said Snape. But youre Muggle-born, so someone from the school 
will have to come and explain to your parents. 

 Does it make a difference, being Muggle-born? 


 Snape hesitated. His black eyes, eager in the greenish gloom, moved over the pale 
face, the dark red hair. 

 No, he said. It doesnt make any difference. 

 Good, said Lily, relaxing. It was clear that she had been worrying. 

 Youve got loads of magic, said Snape. I saw that. All the time I was watching 
you 

 His voice trailed away; she was not listening, but had stretched out on the leafy 
ground and was looking up at the canopy of leaves overhead. He watched her as greedily 
as he had watched her in the playground. 

 How are things at your house? Lily asked. 

 A little crease appeared between his eyes. 

 Fine, he said. 

 Theyre not arguing anymore? 

 Oh yes, theyre arguing, said Snape. He picked up a fistful of leaves and began 
tearing them apart, apparently unaware of what he was doing. But it wont be that long 
and Ill be gone. 

 Doesnt your dad like magic? 

 He doesnt like anything, much, said Snape. 

 Severus? 

 A little smile twisted Snapes mouth when she said his name. 

 Yeah? 

 Tell me about the dementors again. 

 What dyou want to know about them for? 

 If I use magic outside school C  

 They wouldnt give you to the dementors for that! Dementors are for people who 
do really bad stuff. They guard the wizard prison, Azkaban. Youre not going to end up 
in Azkaban, youre too C  

 He turned red again and shredded more leaves. Then a small rustling noise behind 
Harry made him turn: Petunia, hiding behind a tree, had lost her footing. 

 Tuney! said Lily, surprise and welcome in her voice, but Snape had jumped to 
his feet. 

 Whos spying now? he shouted. What dyou want? 

 Petunia was breathless, alarmed at being caught. Harry could see her struggling 
for something hurtful to say. 

 What is that youre wearing, anyway? she said, pointing at Snapes chest. 
Your mums blouse? 

 There was a crack. A branch over Petunias head had fallen. Lily screamed. The 
branch caught Petunia on the shoulder, and she staggered backward and burst into tears. 

 Tuney! 

 But Petunia was running away. Lily rounded on Snape. 

 Did you make that happen? 

 No. He looked both defiant and scared. 

 You did! She was backing away from him. You did! You hurt her! 

 No C no, I didnt! 

 But the lie did not convince Lily. After one last burning look, she ran from the 
little thicket, off after her sister, and Snape looked miserable and confused 


 And the scene re-formed. Harry looked around. He was on platform nine and 
three quarters, and Snape stood beside him, slightly hunched, next to a thin, sallow-faced, 
sour-looking woman who greatly resembled him. Snape was staring at a family of four a 
short distance away. The two girls stood a little apart from their parents. Lily seemed to 
be pleading with her sister. Harry moved closer to listen. 

 Im sorry, Tuney, Im sorry! Listen C  She caught her sisters hand and held 
tight to it, even though Petunia tried to pull it away. Maybe once Im there C no, listen, 
Tuney! Maybe once Im there, Ill be able to go to Professor Dumbledore and persuade 
him to change his mind! 

 I dont C want C to C go! said Petunia, and she dragged her hand back out of her 
sisters grasp. You think I want to go to some stupid castle and learn to be a C a 

 Her pale eyes roved over the platform, over the cats mewling in their owners 
arms, over the owls, fluttering and hooting at each other in cages, over the students, some 
already in their long black robes, loading trunks onto the scarlet steam engine or else 
greeting one another with glad cries after a summer apart. 

  C you think I want to be a C a freak? 

 Lilys eyes filled with tears as Petunia succeeded in tugging her hand away. 

 Im not a freak, said Lily. Thats a horrible thing to say. 

 Thats where youre going, said Petunia with relish. A special school for 
freaks. You and that Snape boyweirdos, thats what you two are. Its good youre 
being separated from normal people. Its for our safety. 

 Lily glanced toward her parents, who were looking around the platform with an 
air of wholehearted enjoyment, drinking in the scene. Then she looked back at her sister, 
and her voice was low and fierce. 

 You didnt think it was such a freaks school when you wrote to the headmaster 
and begged him to take you. 

 Petunia turned scarlet. 

 Beg? I didnt beg! 

 I saw his reply. It was very kind. 

 You shouldnt have read C  whispered Petunia, that was my private C how 
could you C ? 

 Lily gave herself away by half-glancing toward where Snape stood nearby. 
Petunia gasped. 

 That boy found it! You and that boy have been sneaking in my room! 

 No C not sneaking C  Now Lily was on the defensive. Severus saw the 
envelope, and he couldnt believe a Muggle could have contacted Hogwarts, thats all! 
He says there must be wizards working undercover in the postal service who take care of 
C  

 Apparently wizards poke their noses in everywhere! said Petunia, now as pale 
as she had been flushed. Freak! she spat at her sister, and she flounced off to where her 
parents stood 

 The scene dissolved again. Snape was hurrying along the corridor of the 
Hogwarts Express as it clattered through the countryside. He had already changed into his 
school robes, had perhaps taken the first opportunity to take off his dreadful Muggle 
clothes. At last he stopped, outside a compartment in which a group of rowdy boys were 


talking. Hunched in a corner seat beside the window was Lily, her face pressed against 
the windowpane. 

 Snape slid open the compartment door and sat down opposite Lily. She glanced at 
him and then looked back out of the window. She had been crying. 

 I dont want to talk to you, she said in a constricted voice. 

 Why not? 

 Tuney h-hates me. Because we saw that letter from Dumbledore. 

 So what? 

 She threw him a look of deep dislike. 

 So shes my sister! 

 Shes only a C  He caught himself quickly; Lily, too busy trying to wipe her 
eyes without being noticed, did not hear him. 

 But were going! he said, unable to suppress the exhilaration in his voice. This 
is it! Were off to Hogwarts! 

 She nodded, mopping her eyes, but in spite of herself, she half smiled. 

 Youd better be in Slytherin, said Snape, encouraged that she had brightened a 
little. 

 Slytherin? 

 One of the boys sharing the compartment, who had shown no interest at all in Lily 
or Snape until that point, looked around at the word, and Harry, whose attention had been 
focused entirely on the two beside the window, saw his father: slight, black-haired like 
Snape, but with that indefinable air of having been well-cared-for, even adored, that 
Snape so conspicuously lacked. 

 Who wants to be in Slytherin? I think Id leave, wouldnt you? James asked the 
boy lounging on the seats opposite him, and with a jolt, Harry realized that it was Sirius. 
Sirius did not smile. 

 My whole family have been in Slytherin, he said. 

 Blimey, said James, and I thought you seemed all right! 

 Sirius grinned. 

 Maybe Ill break the tradition. Where are you heading, if youve got the choice? 

 James lifted an invisible sword. 

 Gryffindor, where dwell the brave at heart! Like my dad. 

 Snape made a small, disparaging noise. James turned on him. 

 Got a problem with that? 

 No, said Snape, though his slight sneer said otherwise. If youd rather be 
brawny than brainy C  

 Wherere you hoping to go, seeing as youre neither? interjected Sirius. 

 James roared with laughter. Lily sat up, rather flushed, and looked from James to 
Sirius in dislike. 

 Come on, Severus, lets find another compartment. 

 Oooooo 

 James and Sirius imitated her lofty voice; James tried to trip Snape as he passed. 

 See ya, Snivellus! a voice called, as the compartment door slammed 

 And the scene dissolved once more 

 Harry was standing right behind Snape as they faced the candlelit House tables, 
lined with rapt faces. Then Professor McGonagall said, Evans, Lily! 


 He watched his mother walk forward on trembling legs and sit down upon the 
rickety stool. Professor McGonagall dropped the Sorting Hat onto her head, and barely a 
second after it had touched the dark red hair, the hat cried, Gryffindor! 

 Harry heard Snape let out a tiny groan. Lily took off the hat, handed it back to 
Professor McGonagall, then hurried toward the cheering Gryffindors, but as she went she 
glanced back at Snape, and there was a sad little smile on her face. Harry saw Sirius 
move up the bench to make room for her. She took one look at him, seemed to recognize 
him from the train, folded her arms, and firmly turned her back on him. 

 The roll call continued. Harry watched Lupin, Pettigrew, and his father join Lily 
and Sirius at the Gryffindor table. At last, when only a dozen students remained to be 
sorted, Professor McGonagall called Snape. 

 Harry walked with him to the stool, watched him place the hat upon his head. 
Slytherin! cried the Sorting Hat. 

 And Severus Snape moved off to the other side of the Hall, away from Lily, to 
where the Slytherins were cheering him, to where Lucius Malfoy, a prefect badge 
gleaming upon his chest, patted Snape on the back as he sat down beside him 

 And the scene changed 

 Lily and Snape were walking across the castle courtyard, evidently arguing. Harry 
hurried to catch up with them, to listen in. As he reached them, he realized how much 
taller they both were. A few years seemed to have passed since their Sorting. 

 thought we were supposed to be friends? Snape was saying, Best friends? 

 We are, Sev, but I dont like some of the people youre hanging round with! Im 
sorry, but I detest Avery and Mulciber! Mulciber! What do you see in him, Sev, hes 
creepy! Dyou know what he tried to do to Mary Macdonald the other day? 

 Lily had reached a pillar and leaned against it, looking up into the thin, sallow 
face. 

 That was nothing, said Snape. It was a laugh, thats all C  

 It was Dark Magic, and if you think thats funny C  

 What about the stuff Potter and his mates get up to? demanded Snape. His color 
rose again as he said it, unable, it seemed, to hold in his resentment. 

 Whats Potter got to do with anything? said Lily. 

 They sneak out at night. Theres something weird about that Lupin. Where does 
he keep going? 

 Hes ill, said Lily. They say hes ill C  

 Every month at the full moon? said Snape. 

 I know your theory, said Lily, and she sounded cold. Why are you so obsessed 
with them anyway? Why do you care what theyre doing at night? 

 Im just trying to show you theyre not as wonderful as everyone seems to think 
they are. 

 The intensity of his gaze made her blush. 

 They dont use Dark Magic, though. She dropped her voice. And youre being 
really ungrateful. I heard what happened the other night. You went sneaking down that 
tunnel by the Whomping Willow, and James Potter saved you from whatevers down 
there C  


 Snapes whole face contorted and he spluttered, Saved? Saved? You think he 
was playing the hero? He was saving his neck and his friends too! Youre not going to C 
I wont let you C  

 Let me? Let me? 

 Lilys bright green eyes were slits. Snape backtracked at once. 

 I didnt m ean C I just dont want to see you made a fool of C He fancies you, 
James Potter fancies you! The words seemed wrenched from him against his will. And 
hes noteveryone thinksbig Quidditch hero C  Snapes bitterness and dislike were 
rendering him incoherent, and Lilys eyebrows were traveling farther and farther up her 
forehead. 

 I know James Potters an arrogant toerag, she said, cutting across Snape. I 
dont need you to tell me that. But Mulcibers and Averys idea of humor is just evil. Evil, 
Sev. I dont understand how you can be friends with them. 

 Harry doubted that Snape had even heard her strictures on Mulciber and Avery. 
The moment she had insulted James Potter, his whole body had relaxed, and as they 
walked away there was a new spring in Snapes step 

 And the scene dissolved 

 Harry watched again as Snape left the Great Hall after sitting his O.W.L. in 
Defense Against the Dark Arts, watched as he wandered away from the castle and strayed 
inadvertently close to the place beneath the beech tree where James, Sirius, Lupin, and 
Pettigrew sat together. But Harry kept his distance this time, because he knew what 
happened after James had hoisted Severus into the air and taunted him; he knew what had 
been done and said, and it gave him no pleasure to hear it again He watched as Lily 
joined the group and went to Snapes defense. Distantly he heard Snape shout at her in 
his humiliation and his fury, the unforgivable word: Mudblood. 

 The scene changed 

 Im sorry. 

 Im not interested. 

 Im sorry! 

 Save your breath 

 It was nighttime. Lily, who was wearing a dressing gown, stood with her arms 
folded in front of the portrait of the Fat Lady, at the entrance to Gryffindor Tower. 

 I only came out because Mary told me you were threatening to sleep here. 

 I was. I would have done. I never meant to call you Mudblood, it just C  

 Slipped out? There was no pity in Lilys voice. Its too late. Ive made excuses 
for you for years. None of my friends can understand why I even talk to you. You and 
your precious little Death Eater friends C you see, you dont even deny it! You dont even 
deny thats what youre all aiming to be! You cant wait to join You-Know-Who, can 
you? 

 He opened his mouth, but closed it without speaking. 

 I cant pretend anymore. Youve chosen your way, Ive chosen mine. 

 No C listen, I didnt mean C  

  C to call me Mudblood? But you call everyone of my birth Mudblood, Severus. 
Why should I be any different? 

 He struggled on the verge of speech, but with a contemptuous look she turned and 
climbed back through the portrait hole 


 The corridor dissolved, and the scene took a little longer to reform: Harry seemed 
to fly through shifting shapes and colors until his surroundings solidified again and he 
stood on a hilltop, forlorn and cold in the darkness, the wind whistling through the 
branches of a few leafless trees. The adult Snape was panting, turning on the spot, his 
wand gripped tightly in his hand, waiting for something or for someone His fear 
infected Harry too, even though he knew that he could not be harmed, and he looked over 
his shoulder, wondering what it was that Snape was waiting for C 

 Then a blinding, jagged jet of white light flew through the air. Harry thought of 
lightning, but Snape had dropped to his knees and his wand had flown out of his hand. 

 Dont kill me! 

 That was not my intention. 

 Any sound of Dumbledore Apparating had been drowned by the sound of the 
wind in the branches. He stood before Snape with his robes whipping around him, and his 
face was illuminated from below in the light cast by his wand. 

 Well, Severus? What message does Lord Voldemort have for me? 

 No C no message C Im here on my own account! 

 Snape was wringing his hands. He looked a little mad, with his straggling black 
hair flying around him. 

 I C I come with a warning C no, a request C please C  

 Dumbledore flicked his wand. Though leaves and branches still flew through the 
night air around them, silence fell on the spot where he and Snape faced each other. 

 What request could a Death Eater make of me? 

 The C the prophecythe predictionTrelawney 

 Ah, yes, said Dumbledore. How much did you relay to Lord Voldemort? 

 Everything C everything I heard! said Snape. That is why C it is for that reason 
C he thinks it means Lily Evans! 

 The prophecy did not refer to a woman, said Dumbledore. It spoke of a boy 
born at the end of July C  

 You know what I mean! He thinks it means her son, he is going to hunt her down 
C kill them all C  

 If she means so much to you, said Dumbledore, surely Lord Voldemort will 
spare her? Could you not ask for mercy for the mother, in exchange for the son? 

 I have C I have asked him C  

 You disgust me, said Dumbledore, and Harry had never heard so much 
contempt in his voice. Snape seemed to shrink a little, You do not care, then, about the 
deaths of her husband and child? They can die, as long as you have what you want? 

 Snape said nothing, but merely looked up at Dumbledore. 

 Hide them all, then, he croaked. Keep her C them C safe. Please. 

 And what will you give me in return, Severus? 

 In C in return? Snape gaped at Dumbledore, and Harry expected him to protest, 
but after a long moment he said, Anything. 

 The hilltop faded, and Harry stood in Dumbledores office, and something was 
making a terrible sound, like a wounded animal. Snape was slumped forward in a chair 
and Dumbledore was standing over him, looking grim. After a moment or two, Snape 
raised his face, and he looked like a man who had lived a hundred years of misery since 
leaving the wild hilltop. 


 I thoughtyou were goingto keep hersafe 

 She and James put their faith in the wrong person, said Dumbledore. Rather 
like you, Severus. Werent you hoping that Lord Voldemort would spare her? 

 Snapes breathing was shallow. 

 Her boy survives, said Dumbledore. 

 With a tiny jerk of the head, Snape seemed to flick off an irksome fly. 

 Her son lives. He has her eyes, precisely her eyes. You remember the shape and 
color of Lily Evanss eyes, I am sure? 

 DONT! bellowed Snape. Gonedead 

 Is this remorse, Severus? 

 I wishI wish I were dead 

 And what use would that be to anyone? said Dumbledore coldly. If you loved 
Lily Evans, if you truly loved her, then your way forward is clear. 

 Snape seemed to peer through a haze of pain, and Dumbledores words appeared 
to take a long time to reach him. 

 What C what do you mean? 

 You know how and why she died. Make sure it was not in vain. Help me protect 
Lilys son. 

 He does not need protection. The Dark Lord has gone C  

 The Dark Lord will return, and Harry Potter will be in terrible danger when he 
does. 

 There was a long pause, and slowly Snape regained control of himself, mastered 
his own breathing. At last he said, Very well. Very well. But never C never tell, 
Dumbledore! This must be between us! Swear it! I cannot bearespecially Potters 
sonI want your word! 

 My word, Severus, that I shall never reveal the best of you? Dumbledore sighed, 
looking down into Snapes ferocious, anguished face. If you insist 

 The office dissolved but re-formed instantly. Snape was pacing up and down in 
front of Dumbledore. 

  C mediocre, arrogant as his father, a determined rule-breaker, delighted to find 
himself famous, attention-seeking and impertinent C  

 You see what you expect to see, Severus, said Dumbledore, without raising his 
eyes from a copy of Transfiguration Today. Other teachers report that the boy is modest, 
likable, and reasonably talented. Personally, I find him an engaging child. 

 Dumbledore turned a page, and said, without looking up, Keep an eye on 
Quirrell, wont you? 

 A whirl of color, and now everything darkened, and Snape and Dumbledore stood 
a little apart in the entrance hall, while the last stragglers from the Yule Ball passed them 
on their way to bed. 

 Well? murmured Dumbledore. 

 Karkaroffs Mark is becoming darker too. He is panicking, he fears retribution; 
you know how much help he gave the Ministry after the Dark Lord fell. Snape looked 
sideways at Dumbledores crooked-nosed profile. Karkaroff intends to flee if the Mark 
burns. 

 Does he? said Dumbledore softly, as Fleur Delacour and Roger Davies came 
giggling in from the grounds. And are you tempted to join him? 


 No, said Snape, his black eyes on Fleurs and Rogers retreating figures. I am 
not such a coward. 

 No, agreed Dumbledore. You are a braver man by far than Igor Karkaroff. 
You know, I sometimes think we Sort too soon 

 He walked away, leaving Snape looking stricken 

 And now Harry stood in the headmasters office yet again. It was nighttime, and 
Dumbledore sagged sideways in the thronelike chair behind the desk, apparently 
semiconscious. His right hand dangled over the side, blackened and burned. Snape was 
muttering incantations, pointing his wand at the wrist of the hand, while with his left 
hand he tipped a goblet full of thick golden potion down Dumbledores throat. After a 
moment or two, Dumbledores eyelids fluttered and opened. 

 Why, said Snape, without preamble, why did you put on that ring? It carries a 
curse, surely you realized that. Why even touch it? 

 Marvolo Gaunts ring lay on the desk before Dumbledore. It was cracked; the 
sword of Gryffindor lay beside it. 

 Dumbledore grimaced. 

 Iwas a fool. Sorely tempted 

 Tempted by what? 

 Dumbledore did not answer. 

 It is a miracle you managed to return here! Snape sounded furious. That ring 
carried a curse of extraordinary power, to contain it is all we can hope for; I have trapped 
the curse in one hand for the time being C  

 Dumbledore raised his blackened, useless hand, and examined it with the 
expression of one being shown an interesting curio. 

 You have done very well, Severus. How long do you think I have? 

 Dumbledores tone was conversational; he might have been asking for a weather 
forecast. Snape hesitated, and then said, I cannot tell. Maybe a year. There is no halting 
such a spell forever. It will spread eventually, it is the sort of curse that strengthens over 
time. 

 Dumbledore smiled. The news that he had less than a year to live seemed a matter 
of little or no concern to him. 

 I am fortunate, extremely fortunate, that I have you, Severus. 

 If you had only summoned me a little earlier, I might have been able to do more, 
buy you more time! said Snape furiously. He looked down at the broken ring and the 
sword. Did you think that breaking the ring would break the curse? 

 Something like thatI was delirious, no doubt said Dumbledore. With an 
effort he straightened himself in his chair. Well, really, this makes matters much more 
straightforward. 

 Snape looked utterly perplexed. Dumbledore smiled. 

 I refer to the plan Lord Voldemort is revolving around me. His plan to have the 
poor Malfoy boy murder me. 

 Snape sat down in the chair Harry had so often occupied, across the desk from 
Dumbledore. Harry could tell that he wanted to say more on the subject of Dumbledores 
cursed hand, but the other held it up in polite refusal to discuss the matter further. 
Scowling, Snape said, The Dark Lord does not expect Draco to succeed. This is merely 


punishment for Luciuss recent failures. Slow torture for Dracos parents, while they 
watch him fail and pay the price. 

 In short, the boy has had a death sentence pronounced upon him as surely as I 
have, said Dumbledore. Now, I should have thought the natural successor to the job, 
once Draco fails, is yourself? 

 There was a short pause. 

 That, I think, is the Dark Lords plan. 

 Lord Voldemort foresees a moment in the near future when he will not need a 
spy at Hogwarts? 

 He believes the school will soon be in his grasp, yes. 

 And if it does fall into his grasp, said Dumbledore, almost, it seemed, as an 
aside, I have your word that you will do all in your power to protect the students at 
Hogwarts? 

 Snape gave a stiff nod. 

 Good. Now then. Your first priority will be to discover what Draco is up to. A 
frightened teenage boy is a danger to others as well as to himself. Offer him help and 
guidance, he ought to accept, he likes you C  

  C much less since his father has lost favor. Draco blames me, he thinks I have 
usurped Luciuss position. 

 All the same, try. I am concerned less for myself than for accidental victims of 
whatever schemes might occur to the boy. Ultimately, of course, there is only one thing 
to be done if we are to save him from Lord Voldemorts wrath. 

 Snape raised his eyebrows and his tone was sardonic as he asked, Are you 
intending to let him kill you? 

 Certainly not. You must kill me. 

 There was a long silence, broken only by an odd clicking noise. Fawkes the 
phoenix was gnawing a bit of cuttlebone. 

 Would you like me to do it now? asked Snape, his voice heavy with irony. Or 
would you like a few moments to compose an epitaph? 

 Oh, not quite yet, said Dumbledore, smiling. I daresay the moment will present 
itself in due course. Given what has happened tonight, he indicated his withered hand, 
we can be sure that it will happen within a year. 

 If you dont mind dying, said Snape roughly, why not let Draco do it? 

 That boys soul is not yet so damaged, said Dumbledore. I would not have it 
ripped apart on my account. 

 And my soul, Dumbledore? Mine? 

 You alone know whether it will harm your soul to help an old man avoid pain 
and humiliation, said Dumbledore. I ask this one great favor of you, Severus, because 
death is coming for me as surely as the Chudley Cannons will finish bottom of this years 
league. I confess I should prefer a quick, painless exit to the protracted and messy affair it 
will be if, for instance, Greyback is involved C I hear Voldemort has recruited him? Or 
dear Bellatrix, who likes to play with her food before she eats it. 

 His tone was light, but his blue eyes pierced Snape as they had frequently pierced 
Harry, as though the soul they discussed was visible to him. At last Snape gave another 
curt nod. 

 Dumbledore seemed satisfied. 


 Thank you, Severus 

 The office disappeared, and now Snape and Dumbledore were strolling together 
in the deserted castle grounds by twilight. 

 What are you doing with Potter, all these evenings you are closeted together? 
Snape asked abruptly. 

 Dumbledore looked weary. 

 Why? You arent trying to give him more detentions, Severus? The boy will 
soon have spent more time in detention than out. 

 He is his father over again C  

 In looks, perhaps, but his deepest nature is much more like his mothers. I spend 
time with Harry because I have things to discuss with him, information I must give him 
before it is too late. 

 Information, repeated Snape. You trust himyou do not trust me. 

 It is not a question of trust. I have, as we both know, limited time. It is essential 
that I give the boy enough information for him to do what he needs to do. 

 And why may I not have the same information? 

 I prefer not to put all of my secrets in one basket, particularly not a basket that 
spends so much time dangling on the arm of Lord Voldemort. 

 Which I do on your orders! 

 And you do it extremely well. Do not think that I underestimate the constant 
danger in which you place yourself, Severus. To give Voldemort what appears to be 
valuable information while withholding the essentials is a job I would entrust to nobody 
but you. 

 Yet you confide much more in a boy who is incapable of Occlumency, whose 
magic is mediocre, and who has a direct connection into the Dark Lords mind! 

 Voldemort fears that connection, said Dumbledore. Not so long ago he had 
one small taste of what truly sharing Harrys mind means to him. It was pain such as he 
has never experienced. He will not try to possess Harry again, I am sure of it. Not in that 
way. 

 I dont understand. 

 Lord Voldemorts soul, maimed as it is, cannot bear close contact with a soul 
like Harrys. Like a tongue on frozen steel, like flesh in flame C  

 Souls? We were talking of minds! 

 In the case of Harry and Lord Voldemort, to speak of one is to speak of the 
other. 

 Dumbledore glanced around to make sure that they were alone. They were close 
by the Forbidden Forest now, but there was no sign of anyone near them. 

 After you have killed me, Severus C  

 You refuse to tell me everything, yet you expect that small service of me! 
snarled Snape, and real anger flared in the thin face now. You take a great deal for 
granted, Dumbledore! Perhaps I have changed my mind! 

 You gave me your word, Severus. And while we are talking about services you 
owe me, I thought you agreed to keep a close eye on our young Slytherin friend? 

 Snape looked angry, mutinous. Dumbledore sighed. 

 Come to my office tonight, Severus, at eleven, and you shall not complain that I 
have no confidence in you 


 They were back in Dumbledores office, the windows dark, and Fawkes sat silent 
as Snape sat quite still, as Dumbledore walked around him, talking. 

 Harry must not know, not until the last moment, not until it is necessary, 
otherwise how could he have the strength to do what must be done? 

 But what must he do? 

 That is between Harry and me. Now listen closely, Severus. There will come a 
time C after my death C do not argue, do not interrupt! There will come a time when Lord 
Voldemort will seem to fear for the life of his snake. 

 For Nagini? Snape looked astonished. 

 Precisely. If there comes a time when Lord Voldemort stops sending that snake 
forth to do his bidding, but keeps it safe beside him under magical protection, then, I 
think, it will be safe to tell Harry. 

 Tell him what? 

 Dumbledore took a deep breath and closed his eyes. 

 Tell him that on the night Lord Voldemort tried to kill him, when Lily cast her 
own life between them as a shield, the Killing Curse rebounded upon Lord Voldemort, 
and a fragment of Voldemorts soul was blasted apart from the whole, and latched itself 
onto the only living soul left in that collapsed building. Part of Lord Voldemort lives 
inside Harry, and it is that which gives him the power of speech with snakes, and a 
connection with Lord Voldemorts mind that he has never understood. And while that 
fragment of soul, unmissed by Voldemort, remains attached to and protected by Harry, 
Lord Voldemort cannot die. 

 Harry seemed to be watching the two men from one end of a long tunnel, they 
were so far away from him, their voices echoing strangely in his ears. 

 So the boythe boy must die? asked Snape quite calmly. 

 And Voldemort himself must do it, Severus. That is essential. 

 Another long silence. Then Snape said, I thoughtall those yearsthat we were 
protecting him for her. For Lily. 

 We have protected him because it has been essential to teach him, to raise him, 
to let him try his strength, said Dumbledore, his eyes still tight shut. Meanwhile, the 
connection between them grows ever stronger, a parasitic growth. Sometimes I have 
thought he suspects it himself. If I know him, he will have arranged matters so that when 
he does set out to meet his death, it will truly mean the end of Voldemort. 

 Dumbledore opened his eyes. Snape looked horrified. 

 You have kept him alive so that he can die at the right moment? 

 Dont be shocked, Severus. How many men and women have you watched die? 

 Lately, only those whom I could not save, said Snape. He stood up. You have 
used me. 

 Meaning? 

 I have spied for you and lied for you, put myself in mortal danger for you. 
Everything was supposed to be to keep Lily Potters son safe. Now you tell me you have 
been raising him like a pig for slaughter C  

 But this is touching, Severus, said Dumbledore seriously. Have you grown to 
care for the boy, after all? 

 For him? shouted Snape. Expecto Patronum! 


 From the tip of his wand burst the silver doe. She landed on the office floor, 
bounded once across the office, and soared out of the window. Dumbledore watched her 
fly away, and as her silvery glow faded he turned back to Snape, and his eyes were full of 
tears. 

 After all this time? 

 Always, said Snape. 

 And the scene shifted. Now, Harry saw Snape talking to the portrait of 
Dumbledore behind his desk. 

 You will have to give Voldemort the correct date of Harrys departure from his 
aunt and uncles, said Dumbledore. Not to do so will raise suspicion, when Voldemort 
believes you so well informed. However, you must plant the idea of decoys; that, I think, 
ought to ensure Harrys safety. Try Confunding Mundungus Fletcher. And Severus, if 
you are forced to take part in the chase, be sure to act your part convincinglyI am 
counting upon you to remain in Lord Voldemorts good books as long as possible, or 
Hogwarts will be left to the mercy of the Carrows 

 Now Snape was head to head with Mundungus in an unfamiliar tavern, 
Mundunguss face looking curiously blank, Snape frowning in concentration. 

 You will suggest to the Order of the Phoenix, Snape murmured, that they use 
decoys. Polyjuice Potion. Identical Potters. Its the only thing that might work. You will 
forget that I have suggested this. You will present it as your own idea. You understand? 

 I understand, murmured Mundungus, his eyes unfocused 

 Now Harry was flying alongside Snape on a broomstick through a clear dark 
night: He was accompanied by other hodded Death Eaters, and ahead were Lupin and a 
Harry who was really George A Death Eater moved ahead of Snape and raised his 
wand, pointing it directly at Lupins back. 

 Sectumsempra! shouted Snape. 

 But the spell, intended for the Death Eaters wand hand, missed and hit George 
instead C 

 And next, Snape was kneeling in Siriuss old bedroom. Tears were dripping from 
the end of his hooked nose as he read the old letter from Lily. The second page carried 
only a few words: 

 

could ever have been friends with Gellert Grindelwald. I think her minds going, 
personally! 

 

 Lots of love, 

 Lily 

 

 Snape took the page bearing Lilys signature, and her love, and tucked it inside 
his robes. Then he ripped in two the photograph he was also holding, so that he kept the 
part from which Lily laughed, throwing the portion showing James and Harry back onto 
the floor, under the chest of drawers 

 And now Snape stood again in the headmasters study as Phineas Nigellus came 
hurrying into his portrait. 

 Headmaster! They are camping in the Forest of Dean! The Mudblood C  

 Do not use that word! 


  C the Granger girl, then, mentioned the place as she opened her bag and I heard 
her! 

 Good. Very good! cried the portrait of Dumbledore behind the headmasters 
chair. Now, Severus, the sword! Do not forget that it must be taken under conditions of 
need and valor C and he must not know that you give it! If Voldemort should read 
Harrys mind and see you acting for him C  

 I know, said Snape curtly. He approached the portrait of Dumbledore and 
pulled at its side. It swung forward, revealing a hidden cavity behind it from which he 
took the sword of Gryffindor. 

 And you still arent going to tell me why its so important to give Potter the 
sword? said Snape as he swung a traveling cloak over his robes. 

 No, I dont think so, said Dumbledores portrait. He will know what to do with 
it. And Severus, be very careful, they may not take kindly to your appearance after 
George Weasleys mishap C  

 Snape turned at the door. 

 Dont worry, Dumbledore, he said coolly. I have a plan 

 And Snape left the room. Harry rose up out of the Pensieve, and moments later he 
lay on the carpeted floor in exactly the same rooms Snape might just have closed the door. 

 

Chapter Thirty-Four 

The Forest Again 

 

Finally, the truth. Lying with his face pressed into the dusty carpet of the office 
where he had once thought he was learning the secrets of victory, Harry understood at 
last that he was not supposed to survive. His job was to walk calmly into Deaths 
welcoming arms. Along the way, he was to dispose of Voldemorts remaining links to 
life, so that when at last he flung himself across Voldemorts path, and did not raise a 
wand to defend himself, the end would be clean, and the job that ought to have been done 
in Godrics Hollow would be finished. Neither would live, neither could survive. 

 He felt his heart pounding fiercely in his chest. How strange that in his dread of 
death, it pumped all the harder, valiantly keeping him alive. But it would have to stop, 
and soon. Its beats were numbered. How many would there be time for, as he rose and 
walked through the castle for the last time, out into the grounds and into the forest? 

 Terror washed over him as he lay on the floor, with that funeral drum pounding 
inside him. Would it hurt to die? All those times he had thought that it was about to 
happen and escaped, he had never really thought of the thing itself: His will to live had 
always been so much stronger than his fear of death. Yet it did not occur to him now to 
try to escape, to outrun Voldemort. It was over, he knew it, and all that was left was the 
thing itself: dying. 

 If he could only have died on that summers night when he had left number four, 
Privet Drive, for the last time, when the noble phoenix feather wand had saved him! If he 
could only have died like Hedwig, so quickly he would not have known it had happened! 
Or if he could have launched himself in front of a wand to save someone he loved . . . He 
envied even his parents deaths now. This cold-blooded walk to his own destruction 


would require a different kind of bravery. He felt his fingers trembling slightly and made 
an effort to control them, although no one could see him; the portraits on the walls were 
all empty. 

 Slowly, very slowly, he sat up, and as he did so he felt more alive and more aware 
of his own living body than ever before. Why had he never appreciated what a miracle he 
was, brain and nerve and bounding heart? It would all be gone . . . or at least, he would be 
gone from it. His breath came slow and deep, and his mouth and throat were completely 
dry, but so were his eyes. 

 Dumbledores betrayal was almost nothing. Of course there had been a bigger 
plan: Harry had simply been too foolish to see it, he realized that now. He had never 
questioned his own assumption that Dumbledore wanted him alive. Now he saw that his 
life span had always been determined by how long it took to eliminate all the Horcruxes. 
Dumbledore had passed the job of destroying them to him, and obediently he had 
continued to chip away at the bonds tying not only Voldemort, but himself, to life! How 
neat, how elegant, not to waste any more lives, but to give the dangerous task to the boy 
who had already been marked for slaughter, and whose death would not be a calamity, 
but another blow against Voldemort. 

 And Dumbledore had known that Harry would not duck out, that he would keep 
going to the end, even though it was his end, because he had taken trouble to get to know 
him, hadnt he? Dumbledore knew, as Voldemort knew, that Harry would not let anyone 
else die for him now that he had discovered it was in his power to stop it. The images of 
Fred, Lupin, and Tonks lying dead in the Great Hall forced their way back into his minds 
eye, and for a moment he could hardly breathe. Death was impatient . . . 

 But Dumbledore had overestimated him. He had failed: The snake survived. One 
Horcrux remained to bind Voldemort to the earth, even after Harry had been killed. True, 
that would mean an easier job for somebody. He wondered who would do it . . . Ron and 
Hermione would know what needed to be done, of course . . . That would have been why 
Dumbledore wanted him to confide in two others . . . so that if he fulfilled his true destiny 
a little early, they could carry on . . . 

 Like rain on a cold window, these thoughts pattered against the hard surface of 
the incontrovertible truth, which was that he must die. I must die. It must end. 

 Ron and Hermione seemed a long way away, in a far-off country; he felt as 
though he had parted from them long ago. There would be no good-byes and no 
explanations, he was determined of that. This was a journey they could not take together, 
and the attempts they would make to stop him would waste valuable time. He looked 
down at the battered gold watch he had received on his seventeenth birthday. Nearly half 
of the hour allotted by Voldemort for his surrender had elapsed. 

 He stood up. His heart was leaping against his ribs like a frantic bird. Perhaps it 
knew it had little time left, perhaps it was determined to fulfill a lifetimes beats before 
the end. He did not look back as he closed the office door. 

 The castle was empty. He felt ghostly striding through it alone, as if he had 
already died. The portrait people were still missing from their frames; the whole place 
was eerily still, as if all its remaining lifeblood were concentrated in the Great Hall where 
the dead and the mourners were crammed. 

 Harry pulled the Invisibility Cloak over himself and descended through the floors, 
at last walking down the marble staircase into the entrance hall. Perhaps some tiny part of 


him hoped to be sensed, to be seen, to be stopped, but the Cloak was, as ever, 
impenetrable, perfect, and he reached the front doors easily. 

 Then Neville nearly walked into him. He was one half of a pair that was carrying 
a body in from the grounds. Harry glanced down and felt another dull blow to his 
stomach: Colon Creevey, though underage, must have sneaked back just as Malfoy, 
Crabbe, and Goyle had done. He was tiny in death. 

 You know what? I can manage him alone, Neville, said Oliver Wood, and he 
heaved Colin over his shoulder in a firemans lift and carried him into the Great Hall. 

 Neville leaned against the door frame for a moment and wiped his forehead with 
the back of his hand. He looked like an old man. Then he set off on the steps again into 
the darkness to recover more bodies. 

 Harry took one glance back at the entrance of the Great Hall. People were moving 
around, trying to comfort each other, drinking, kneeling beside the dead, but he could not 
see any of the people he loved, no hint of Hermione, Ron, Ginny, or any of the other 
Weasleys, no Luna. He felt he would have given all the time remaining to him for just 
one last look at them; but then, would he ever have the strength to stop looking? It was 
better like this. 

 He moved down the steps and out into the darkness. It was nearly four in the 
morning, and the deathly stillness of the grounds felt as though they were holding their 
breath, waiting to see whether he could do what he must. 

 Harry moved toward Neville, who was bending over another body. 

 Neville. 

 Blimey, Harry, you nearly gave me heart failure! 

 Harry had pulled off the Cloak: The idea had come to him out of nowhere, born 
out of a desire to make absolutely sure. 

 Where are you going, alone? Neville asked suspiciously. 

 Its all part of the plan, said Harry. Theres someting Ive got to do. Listen --- 
Neville --- 

 Harry! Neville looked suddenly scared. Harry, youre not thinking of handing 
yourself over? 

 No, Harry lied easily. Course not . . . this is something else. But I might be 
out of sight for a while. You know Voldemorts snake. Neville? Hes got a huge snake . . . 
Calls it Nagini . . . 

 Ive heard, yeah . . . What about it? 

 Its got to be killed. Ron and Hermione know that, but just in case they --- 

 The awfulness of that possibility smothered him for a moment, made it impossible 
to keep talking. But he pulled himself together again: This was crucial, he must be like 
Dumbledore, keep a cool head, make sure there were backups, others to carry on. 
Dumbledore had died knowing that three people still knew about the Horcruxes; now 
Neville would take Harrys place: There would still be three in the secret. 

 Just in case theyre --- busy --- and you get the chance --- 

 Kill the snake? 

 Kill the snake, Harry repeated. 

 All right, Harry. Youre okay, are you? 

 Im fine. Thanks, Neville. 

 But Neville seized his wrist as Harry made to move on. 


 Were all going to keep fighting, Harry. You know that? 

 Yeah, I --- 

 The suffocating feeling extinguished the end of the sentence; he could not go on. 
Neville did not seem to find it strange. He patted Harry on the shoulder, released him, 
and walked away to look for more bodies. 

 Harry swung the Cloak back over himself and walked on. Someone else was 
moving not far away, stooping over another prone figure on the ground. He was feet 
away from her when he realized it was Ginny. 

 He stopped in his tracks. She was crouching over a girl who was whispering for 
her mother. 

 Its all right, Ginny was saying. Its ok. Were going to get you inside. 

 But I want to go home, whispered the girl. I dont want to fight anymore! 

 I know, said Ginny, and her voice broke. Its going to be all right. 

 Ripples of cold undulated over Harrys skin. He wanted to shout out to the night, 
he wanted Ginny to know that he was there, he wanted her to know where he was going. 
He wanted to be stopped, to be dragged back, to be sent back home. . . . 

 But he was home. Hogwards was the first and best home he had known. He and 
Voldemort and Snape, the abandoned boys, had all found home here. . . . 

 Ginny was kneeling beside the injured girl now, holding her hand. With a huge 
effort Harry forced himself on. He thought he saw Ginny look around as he passed, and 
wondered whether she had sensed someone walking nearby, but he did not speak, and he 
did not look back. 

 Hagrids hut loomed out of the darkness. There were no lights, no sound of Fang 
scrabbling at the door, his bark booming in welcome. All those visits to Hagrid, and the 
gleam of the copper kettle on the fire, and rock cakes and giant grubs, and his great 
bearded face, and Ron vomiting slugs, and Hermione helping him save Norbert . . . 

 He moved on, and now he reached the edge of the forest, and he stopped. 

 A swarm of dementors was gliding amongst the trees; he could feel their chill, 
and he was not sure he would be able to pass safely through it. He had not strength left 
for a Patronus. He could no longer control his own trembling. It was not, after all, so easy 
to die. Every second he breathed, the smell of the grass, the cool air on his face, was so 
precious: To think that people had years and years, time to waste, so much time it 
dragged, and he was clinging to each second. At the same time he thought that he would 
not be able to go on, and knew that he must. The long game was ended, the Snitch had 
been caught, it was time to leave the air. . . . 

 The Snitch. His nerveless fingers fumbled for a moment with the pouch at his 
neck and he pulled it out. 

 I open at the close. 

 Breathing fast and hard, he stared down at it. Now that he wanted time to move as 
slowly as possible, he seemed to have sped up, and understanding was coming so fast it 
seemed to have bypassed though. This was the close. This was the moment. 

 He pressed the golden metal to his lips and whispered, I am about to die. 

 The metal shell broke open. He lowered his shaking hand, raised Dracos wand 
beneath the Cloak, and murmured, Lumos. 

 The black stone with is jagged crack running down the center sat in the two 
halves of the Snitch. The Resurrection Stone had cracked down the vertical line 


representing the Elder Wand. The triangle and circle representing the Cloak and the stone 
were still discernible. 

 And again Harry understood without having to think. It did not matter about 
bringing them back, for he was about to join them. He was not really fetching them: They 
were fetching him. 

 He closed his eyes and turned the stone over in his hand three times. 

 He knew it had happened, because he heard slight movements around him that 
suggested frail bodies shifting their footing on the earthy, twig-strewn ground that 
marked the outer edge of the forest. He opened his eyes and looked around. 

 They were neither ghost nor truly flesh, he could see that. They resembled most 
closely the Riddle that had escaped from the diary so long ago, and he had been memory 
made nearly solid. Less substantial than living bodies, but much more than ghosts, they 
moved toward him. And on each face, there was the same loving smile. 

 James was exactly the same height as Harry. He was wearing the clothes in which 
he had died, and his hair was untidy and ruffled, and his glasses were a little lopsided, 
like Mr. Weasleys. 

 Sirius was tall and handsome, and younger by far than Harry had seen him in life. 
He loped with an easy grace, his hands in his pockets and a grin on his face. 

 Lupin was younger too, and much less shabby, and his hair was thicker and darker. 
He looked happy to be back in this familiar place, scene of so many adolescent 
wanderings. 

 Lilys smile was widest of all. She pushed her long hair back as she drew closer to 
him, and her green eyes, so like his, searched his face hungrily, as though she would 
never be able to look at him enough. 

 Youve been so brave. 

 He could not speak. His eyes feasted on her, and he thought that he would like to 
stand and look at her forever, and that would be enough. 

 You are nearly there, said James. Very close. We are . . . so proud of you. 

 Does it hurt? 

 The childish question had fallen from Harrys lips before he could stop it. 

 Dying? Not at all, said Sirius. Quicker and easier than falling asleep. 

 And he will want it to be quick. He wants it over, said Lupin. 

 I didnt want you to die, Harry said. These words came without his volition. 
Any of you. Im sorry --- 

 He addressed Lupin more than any of them, beseeching him. 

 --- right after youd had your son . . . Remus, Im sorry --- 

 I am sorry too, said Lupin. Sorry I will never know him . . . but he will know 
why I died and I hope he will understand. I was trying to make a world in which he could 
live a happier life. 

 A chilly breeze that seemed to emanate from the heart of the forest lifted the hair 
at Harrys brow. He knew that they would not tell him to go, that it would have to be his 
decision. 

 Youll stay with me? 

 Until the very end, said James. 

 They wont be able to see you? asked Harry. 

 We are part of you, said Sirius. Invisible to anyone else. 


 Harry looked at his mother. 

 Stay close to me, he said quietly. 

 And he set of. The dementors chill did not overcome him; he passed through it 
with his companions, and they acted like Patronuses to him, and together they marched 
through the old trees that grew closely together, their branches tangled, their roots 
gnarled and twisted underfoot. Harry clutched the Cloak tightly around him in the 
darkness, traveling deeper and deeper into the forest, with no idea where exactly 
Voldemort was, but sure that he would find him. Beside him, making scarcely a sound, 
walked James, Sirius, Lupin, and Lily, and their presence was his courage, and the reason 
he was able to keep putting one foot in front of the other. 

 His body and mind felt oddly disconnected now, his limbs working without 
conscious instruction, as if he were passenger, not driver, in the body he was about to 
leave. The dead who walked beside him through the forest were much more real to him 
now than the living back at the castle: Ron, Hermione, Ginny, and all the others were the 
ones who felt like ghosts as he stumbled and slipped toward the end of his life, toward 
Voldemort . . . 

 A thud and a whisper: Some other living creature had stirred close by. Harry 
stopped under the Cloak, peering around, listening, and his mother and father, Lupin and 
Sirius stopped too. 

 Someone there, came a rough whisper close at hand. Hes got an Invisibility 
Cloak. Could it be --- ? 

 Two figures emerged from behind a nearby tree: Their wands flared, and Harry 
saw Yaxley and Dolohov peering into the darkness, directly at the place Harry, his 
mother and father and Sirius and Lupin stood. Apparently they could not see anything. 

 Definitely heard something, said Yaxley. Animal, dyou reckon? 

 That head case Hagrid kept a whole bunch of stuff in here, said Dolohov, 
glancing over his shoulder. 

 Yaxley looked down at his watch. 

 Times nearly up. Porters had his hour. Hes not coming. 

 Better go back, said Yaxley. Find out what the plan is now. 

 He and Dolohov turned and walked deeper into the forest. Harry followed them, 
knowing that they would lead him exactly where he wanted to go. He glanced sideways, 
and his mother smiled at him, and his father nodded encouragement. 

 They had traveled on mere minutes when Harry saw light ahead, and Yaxley and 
Dolohov stepped out into a clearing that Harry knew had been the place where the 
monstrous Aragog had once lived. The remnants of his vast web were there still, but the 
swarms of descendants he had spawned had been driven out by the Death Eaters, to fight 
for their cause. 

 A fire burned in the middle of the clearing, and its flickering light fell over a 
crowd of completely silent, watchful Death Eaters. Some of them were still masked and 
hooded; others showed their faces. Two giants sat on the outskirts of the group, casting 
massive shadows over the scene, their faces cruel, rough-hewn like rock. Harry saw 
Fenrir, skulking, chewing his long nails; the great blond Rowle was dabbing at his 
bleeding lip. He saw Lucius Malfoy, who looked defeated and terrified, and Narcissa, 
whose eyes were sunken and full of apprehension. 


 Every eye was fixed upon Voldemort, who stood with his head bowed, and his 
white hands folded over the Elder Wand in front of him. He might have been praying, or 
else counting silently in his mind, and Harry, standing still on the edge of the scene, 
though absurdly of a child counting in a game of hide-and-seek. Behind his head, still 
swirling and coiling, the great snake Nagini floated in her glittering, charmed cage, like a 
monstrous halo. 

 When Dolohov and Yaxley rejoined the circle, Voldemort looked up. 

 No sign of him, my Lord, said Dolohov. 

 Voldemorts expression did not change. The red eyes seemed to burn in the 
firelight. Slowly he drew the Elder Wand between his long fingers. 

 My Lord --- 

 Bellatrix had spoken: She sat closest to Voldemort, disheveled, her face a little 
bloody but otherwise unharmed. 

 Voldemort raised his hand to silence her, and she did not speak another word, but 
eyed him in worshipful fascination. 

 I thought he would come, said Voldemort in his high, clear voice, his eyes on 
the leaping flames. I expected him to come. 

 Nobody spoke. They seemed as scared as Harry, whose heart was now throwing 
itself against his ribs as though determined to escape the body he was about to cast aside. 
His hands were sweating as he pulled off the Invisibility Cloak and stuffed it beneath his 
robes, with his wand. He did not want to be tempted to fight. 

 I was, it seems . . . mistaken, said Voldemort. 

 You werent. 

 Harry said it as loudly as he could, with all the force he could muster: He did not 
want to sound afraid. The Resurrection Stone slipped from between his numb fingers, and 
out of the corner of his eyes he saw his parents, Sirius, and Lupin vanish as he stepped 
forward into the firelight. At that moment he felt that nobody mattered but Voldemort. It 
was just the two of them. 

 The illusion was gone as soon as it had come. The giants roared as the Death 
Eaters rose together, and there were many cries, gasps, even laughter. Voldemort had 
frozen where he stood, but his red eyes had found Harry, and he stared as Harry moved 
toward him, with nothing but the fire between them. 

 Then a voice yelled: HARRY! NO! 

 He turned: Hagrid was bound and trussed, tied to a tree nearby. His massive body 
shook the branches overhead as he struggled, desperate. 

 NO! NO! HARRY, WHATRE YEH --- ? 

 QUIET! shouted Rowle, and with a flick of his wand, Hagrid was silenced. 

 Bellatrix, who had leapt to her feet, was looking eagerly from Voldemort to Harry, 
her breast heaving. The only things that moved were the flames and the snake, coiling 
and uncoiling in the glittering cage behind Voldemorts head. 

 Harry could feel his wand against his chest, but he made no attempt to draw it. He 
knew that the snake was too well protected, knew that if he managed to point the wand at 
Nagini, fifty curses would hit him first. And still, Voldemort and Harry looked at each 
other, and now Voldemort tilted his head a little to the side, considering the boy standing 
before him, and a singularly mirthless smile curled the lipless mouth. 


 Harry Potter, he said very softly. His voice might have been part of the spitting 
fire. The Boy Who Lived. 

 None of the Death Eaters moved. They were waiting: Everything was waiting. 
Hagrid was struggling, and Bellatrix was panting, and Harry thought inexplicably of 
Ginny, and her blazing look, and the feel of her lips on his --- 

 Voldemort had raised his wand. His head was still tilted to one side, like a curious 
child, wondering what would happen if he proceeded. Harry looked back into the red 
eyes, and wanted it to happen now, quickly, while he could still stand, before he lost 
control, before he betrayed fear --- 

 He saw the mouth move and a flash of green light, and everything was gone. 

 

Chapter Thirty-Five 

Kings Cross 

He lay facedown, listening to the silence. He was perfectly alone. Nobody was 
watching. Nobody else was there. He was not perfectly sure that he was there himself. 

 A long time later, or maybe no time at all, it came to him that he must exist, must 
be more than disembodied thought, because he was lying, definitely lying, on some 
surface. Therefore he had a sense of touch, and the thing against which he lay existed too. 

 Almost as soon as he had reached this conclusion, Harry became conscious that 
he was naked. Convinced as he was of his total solitude, this did not concern him, but it 
did intrigue him slightly. He wondered whether, as he could feel, he would be able to see. 
In opening them, he discovered that he had eyes. 

 He lay in a bright mist, though it was not like mist he had ever experienced before. 
His surroundings were not hidden by cloudy vapor; rather the cloudy vapor had not yet 
formed into surroundings. The floor on which he lay seemed to be white, neither warm 
nor cold, but simply there, a flat, blank something on which to be. 

 He sat up. His body appeared unscathed. He touched his face. He was not wearing 
glasses anymore. 

 Then a noise reached him through the unformed nothingness that surrounded him: 
the small soft thumpings of something that flapped, flailed, and struggled. It was a pitiful 
noise, yet also slightly indecent. He had the uncomfortable feeling that he was 
eavesdropping on something furtive, shameful. 

 For the first time, he wished he were clothed. 

 Barely had the wish formed in his head than robes appeared a short distance away. 
He took them and pulled them on. They were soft, clean, and warm. It was extraordinary 
how they had appeared just like that, the moment he had wanted them. . . . 

 He stood up, looking around. Was he in some great Room of Requirement? The 
longer he looked, the more there was to see. A great domed glass roof glittered high 
above him in sunlight. Perhaps it was a palace. All was hushed and still, except for those 
odd thumping and whimpering noises coming from somewhere close by in the mist. . . . 

 Harry turned slowly on the spot, and his surroundings seemed to invent 
themselves before his eyes. A wide-open space, bright and clean, a hall larger by far than 
the Great Hall, with that clear domed glass ceiling. It was quite empty. He was the only 
person there, except for C 


 He recoiled. He had spotted the thing that was making the noises. It had the form 
of a small, naked child, curled on the ground, its skin raw and rough, flayed-looking, and 
it lay shuddering under a seat where it had been left, unwanted, stuffed out of sight, 
struggling for breath. 

 He was afraid of it. Small and fragile and wounded though it was, he did not want 
to approach it. Nevertheless he drew slowly nearer, ready to jump back at any moment. 
Soon he stood near enough to touch it, yet he could not bring himself to do it. He felt like 
a coward. He ought to comfort it, but it repulsed him. 

 You cannot help. 

 He spun around. Albus Dumbledore was walking toward him, sprightly and 
upright, wearing sweeping robes of midnight blue. 

 Harry. He spread his arms wide, and his hands were both whole and white and 
undamaged. You wonderful boy. You brave, brave man. Let us walk. 

 Stunned, Harry followed as Dumbledore strode away from where the flayed child 
lay whimpering, leading him to two seats that Harry had not previously noticed, set some 
distance away under that high, sparkling ceiling. Dumbledore sat down in one of them, 
and Harry fell into the other, staring at his old headmasters face. Dumbledores long 
silver hair and beard, the piercingly blue eyes behind half-moon spectacles, the crooked 
nose: Everything was as he had remembered it. And yet . . . 

 But youre dead, said Harry. 

 Oh yes, said Dumbledore matter-of-factly. 

 Then . . . Im dead too? 

 Ah, said Dumbledore, smiling still more broadly. That is the question, isnt it? 
On the whole, dear boy, I think not. 

 They looked at each other, the old man still beaming. 

 Not? repeated Harry. 

 Not, said Dumbledore. 

 But . . . Harry raised his hand instinctively toward the lightning scar. It did not 
seem to be there. But I should have died C I didnt defend myself! I meant to let him kill 
me! 

 And that, said Dumbledore, will, I think, have made all the difference. 

 Happiness seemed to radiate from Dumbledore like light; like fire: Harry had 
never seen the man so utterly, so palpably content. 

 Explain, said Harry. 

 But you already know, said Dumbledore. He twiddled his thumbs together. 

 I let him kill me, said Harry. Didnt I? 

 You did, said Dumbledore, nodding. Go on! 

 So the part of his soul that was in me . . . 

 Dumbledore nodded still more enthusiastically, urging Harry onward, a broad 
smile of encouragement on his face. 

 . . . has it gone? 

 Oh yes! said Dumbledore. Yes, he destroyed it. Your soul is whole, and 
completely your own, Harry. 

 But then . . . 

 Harry trembled over his shoulder to where the small, maimed creature trembled 
under the chair. 


 What is that, Professor? 

 something that is beyond either of our help, said Dumbledore. 

 But if Voldemort used the Killing Curse, Harry started again, and nobody died 
for me this time C how can I be alive? 

 I think you know, said Dumbledore. Think back. Remember what he did, in 
his ignorance, in his greed and his cruelty. 

 Harry thought. He let his gaze drift over his surroundings. If it was indeed a 
palace in which they sat, it was an odd one, with chairs set in little rows and bits of 
railing here and there, and still, he and Dumbledore and the stunted creatures under the 
chair were the only beings there. Then the answer rose to his lips easily, without effort. 

 He took my blood, said Harry. 

 Precisely! said Dumbledore. He took your blood and rebuilt his living body 
with it! Your blood in his veins, Harry, Lilys protection inside both of you! He thethered 
you to life while he lives! 

 I live . . . while he lives? But I thought . . . I thought it was the other way around! 
I thought we both had to die? Or is it the same thing? 

 He was distracted by the whimpering and thumping of the agonized creature 
behind them and glanced back at it yet again. 

 Are you sure we cant do anything? 

 There is no help possible. 

 Then explain . . . more, said Harry, and Dumbledore smiled. 

 You were the seventh Horcrux, Harry, the Horcrux he never meant to make. He 
had rendered his soul so unstable that it broke apart when he committed those acts of 
unspeakable evil, the murder of your parents, the attempted killing of a child. But what 
escaped from that room was even less than he knew. He left more than his body behind. 
He left part of himself latched to you, the would-be victim who had survived. 

 And his knowledge remained woefully incomplete, Harry! That which 
Voldemort does not value, he takes no trouble to comprehend. Of house-elves and 
childrens tales, of love, loyalty, and innocence, Voldemort knows and understands 
nothing. Nothing. That they all have a power beyond his own, a power beyond the reach 
of any magic, is a truth he has never grasped. 

 He took your blood believing it would strengthen him. He took into his body a 
tiny part of the enchantment your mother laid upon you when she died for you. His body 
keeps her sacrafice alive, and while that enchantment survives, so do you and so does 
Voldemorts one last hope for himself. 

 Dumbledore smiled at Harry, and Harry stared at him. 

 And you knew this? You knew C all along? 

 I guessed. But my guesses have usually been good, said Dumbledore happily, 
and they sat in silence for what seemed like a long time, while the creature behind them 
continued to whimper and tremble. 

 Theres more, said Harry. Theres more to it. Why did my wand break the 
wand he borrowed? 

 As to that, I cannot be sure. 

 Have a guess, then, said Harry, and Dumbledore laughed. 

 What you must understand, Harry, is that you and Lord Voldemort have 
journeyed together into realms of magic hitherto unknown and untested. But here is what 


I think happened, and it is unprecedented, and no wandmaker could, I think, ever have 
predicted or explained it to Voldemort. 

 Without meaning to, as you now know, Lord Voldemort doubled the bond 
between you when he returned to a human form. A part of his soul was still attached to 
yours, and, thinking to strengthen himself, he took a part of your mothers sacrafice into 
himself. If he could only have understood the precise and terrible power of that sacrifice, 
he would not, perhaps, have dared to touch your blood. . . . But then, if he had been able 
to understand, he could not be Lord Voldemort, and might never have murdered at all. 

 Having ensured this two-fold connection, having wrapped your destinies 
together more securely than ever two wizards were joined in history, Voldemort 
proceeded to attack you with a wand that shared a core with yours. And now something 
very strange happened, as we know. The cores reacted in a way that Lord Voldemort, 
who never knew that your wand was a twin of his, had ever expected. 

 He was more afraid than you were that night, Harry. You had accepted, even 
embraced, the possibility of death, something Lord Voldemort has never been able to do. 
Your courage won, your wand overpowered his. And in doing so, something happened 
between those wands, something that echoed the relationship between their masters. 

 I believe that your wand imbibed some of the power and qualities of 
Voldemorts wand that night, which is to say that it contained a little of Voldemort 
himself. So your wand recognized him when he pursued you, recognized a man who was 
both kin and mortal enemy, and it regurgitated some of his own magic against him, magic 
much more powerful than anything Luciuss wand had ever performed. Your wand now 
contained the power of your enormous courage and of Voldemorts own deadly skill: 
What chance did that poor stick of Lucius Malfoys stand? 

 But if my wand was so powerful, how come Hermione was able to break it? 
asked Harry. 

 My dear boy, its remarkable effects were directed only at Voldemort, who had 
tampered so ill-advisedly with the deepest laws of magic. Only toward him was that 
wand abnormally powerful. Otherwise it was a wand like any other . . . though a good 
one, I am sure, Dumbledore finished kindly. 

 Harry sat in thought for a long time, or perhaps seconds. It was very hard to be 
sure of things like time, here. 

 He killed me with your wand. 

 He failed to kill you with my wand, Dumbledore corrected Harry. I think we 
can agree that you are not dead C though, of course, he added, as if fearing he had been 
discourteous, I do not minimize your sufferings, which I am sure were severe. 

 I feel great at the moment, though, said Harry, looking down at his clean, 
unblemished hands. Where are we, exactly? 

 Well, I was going to ask you that, said Dumbledore, looking around. Where 
would you say that we are? 

 Until Dumbledore had asked, Harry had not known. Now, however, he found that 
he had an answer ready to give. 

 It looks, he said slowly, like Kings Cross station. Except a lo cleaner and 
empty, and there are no trains as far as I can see. 

 Kings Cross station! Dumbledore was chuckling immoderately. Good 
gracious, really? 


 Well, where do you think we are? asked Harry, a little defensively. 

 My dear boy, I have no idea. This is, as they say, your party. 

 Harry had no idea what this meant; Dumbledore was being infuriating. He glared 
at him, then remembered a much more pressing question than that of their current 
location. 

 The Deathly Hallows, he said, and he was glad to see that the words wiped the 
smile from Dumbledores face. 

 Ah, yes, he said. He even looked a little worried. 

 Well? 

 For the first time since Harry had met Dumbledore, he looked less than an old 
man, much less. He looked fleetingly like a small boy caught in wrongdoing. 

 Can you forgive me? he said. Can you forgive me for not trusting you? For not 
telling you? Harry, I only feared that you would fail as I had failed. I only dreaded that 
you would make my mistakes. I crave your pardon, Harry. I have known, for some time 
now, that you are the better man. 

 What are you talking about? asked Harry, startled by Dumbledores tone, by the 
sudden tears in his eyes. 

 The Hallows, the Hallows, murmured Dumbledore. A desperate mans 
dream! 

 But theyre real! 

 Real, and dangerous, and a lure for fools, said Dumbledore. And I was such a 
fool. But you know, dont you? I have no secrets from you anymore. You know. 

 What do I know? 

 Dumbledore turned his whole body to face Harry, and tears still sparkled in the 
brilliantly blue eyes. 

 Master of death, Harry, master of Death! Was I better, ultimately, than 
Voldemort? 

 Of course you were, said Harry. Of course C how can you ask that? You never 
killed if you could avoid it! 

 True, true, said Dumbledore, and he was like a child seeking reassurance. Yet 
I too sought a way to conquer death, Harry. 

 Not the way he did, said Harry. After all his anger at Dumbledore, how odd it 
was to sit here, beneath the high, vaulted ceiling, and defend Dumbledore from himself. 
Hallows, not Horcruxes. 

 Hallows, murmured Dumbledore, not Horcruxes. Precisely. 

 There was a pause. The creature behind them whimpered, but Harry no longer 
looked around. 

 Grindelwald was looking for them too? he asked. 

 Dumbledore closed his eyes for a moment and nodded. 

 It was the thing, above all, that drew us together, he said quietly. Two clever, 
arrogant boys with a shared obsession. He wanted to come to Godrics Hollow, as I am 
sure you have guessed, because of the grave of Ignotus Peverell. He wanted to explore 
the place the third brother had died. 

 So its true? asked Harry. All of it? The Peverell brothers C 

 were the three brothers of the tale, said Dumbledore, nodding. Oh yes, I 
think so. Whether they met Death on a lonely road . . . I think it more likely that the 


Peverell brothers were simply gifted, dangerous wizards who succeeded in creating those 
powerful objects. The story of them being Deaths own Hallows seems to me the sort of 
legend that might have sprung up around such creations. 

 The Cloak, as you know now, traveled down through the ages, father to son, 
mother to daughter, right down to Ignotuss last living descendant, who was born, as 
Ignotus was, in the village of Godrics Hollow. 

 Dumbledore smiled at Harry. 

 Me? 

 You. You have guessed,, I know, why the Cloak was in my possession on the 
night your parents died. James had showed it to me just a few days previously. It 
explained much of his undetected wrongdoing at school! I could hardly believe what I 
was seeing. I asked to borrow it, to examine it. I had long since given up my dream of 
uniting the Hallows, but I could not resist, could not help taking a closer look. . . . It was 
a Cloak the likes of which I had never seen, immensely old, perfect in every respect . . . 
and then your father died, and I had two Hallows at last, all to myself! 

 His tone was unbearably bitter. 

 The Cloak wouldnt have helped them survive, though, Harry said quickly. 
Voldemort knew where my mum and dad were. The Cloak couldnt have made them 
curse-proof. 

 true, sighed Dumbledore. True. 

 Harry waited, but Dumbledore did not speak, so he prompted him. 

 So youd given up looking for the Hallows when you saw the Cloak? 

 Oh yes, said Dumbledore faintly. It seemed that he forced himself to meet 
Harrys eyes. You know what happened. You know. You cannot despise me more than I 
despise myself. 

 But I dont despise you C 

 Then you should, said Dumbledore. He drew a deep breath. You know the 
secret of my sisters ill health, what those Muggles did, what she became. You know how 
my poor father sought revenge, and paid the price, died In Azkaban. You know how my 
mother gave up her own life to care for Ariana. 

 I resented it, Harry. 

 Dumbledore stated it baldly, coldly. He was looking now over the top of Harrys 
head, into the distance. 

 I was gifted, I was brilliant. I wanted to escape. I wanted to shine. I wanted glory. 

 Do not misunderstand me, he said, and pain crossed the face so that he looked 
ancient again. I loved them, I loved my parents, I loved my brother and my sister, but I 
was selfish, Harry, more selfish than you, who are a remarkably selfless person, could 
possibly imagine. 

 So that, when my mother died, and I was left the responsibility of a damaged 
sister and a wayward brother, I returned to my village in anger and bitterness. Trapped 
and wasted, I thought! And then of course, he came. . . . 

 Dumbledore looked directly into Harrys eyes again. 

 Grindelwald. You cannot imagine how his ideas caught me, Harry, inflamed me. 
Muggles forced into subservience. We wizards triumphant. Grindelwald and I, the 
glorious young leaders of the revolution. 


 Oh, I had a few scruples. I assuaged my conscience with empty words. It would 
all be for the greater good, and any harm done would be repaid a hundredfold in benefits 
for wizards. Did I know, in my heart of hearts, what Gellert Grindelwald was? I think I 
did, but I closed my eyes. If the plans we were making came to fruition, all my dreams 
would come true. 

 And at the heart of our schemes, the Deathly Hallows! How they fascinated him, 
how they fascinated both of us! The unbeatable wand, the weapon that would lead us to 
power! The Resurrection Stone C to him, though I pretended not to know it, it meant an 
army of Inferi! To me, I confess, it meant the return of my parents, and the lifting of all 
responsibility from my shoulders. 

 And the Cloak . . . somehow, we never discussed the Cloak much, Harry. Both 
of us could conceal ourselves well enough without the Cloak, the true magic of which, of 
course, is that it can be used to protect and shield others as well as its owner. I thought 
that, if we ever found it, it might be useful in hiding Ariana, but our interest in the Cloak 
was mainly that it completed the trio, for the legend said that the man who had united all 
three objects would then be truly master of death, which we took to mean invincible. 

 Invincible masters of death, Grindelwald and Dumbledore! Two months of 
insanity, of cruel dreams, and neglect of the only two members of my family left to me. 

 And then . . . you know what happened. Reality returned in the form of my rough, 
unlettered, and infinitely more admirable brother. I did not want to hear the truths he 
shouted at me. I did not want to hear that I could not set forth and seek Hallows with a 
fragile and unstable sister in tow. 

 The argument became a fight. Grindelwald lost control. That which I had always 
sensed in him, though I pretended not to, now sprang into terrible being. And Ariana . . . 
after all my mothers care and caution . . . lay dead upon the floor. 

 Dumbledore gave a little gasp and began to cry in earnest. Harry reached out and 
was glad to find that he could touch him: He gripped his arm tightly and Dumbledore 
gradually regained control. 

 Well, Grindelwald fled, as anyone but I could have predicted. He vanished, with 
his plans for seizing power, and his schemes for Muggle torture, and his dreams of the 
Deathly Hallows, dreams in which I had encouraged him and helped him. He ran, while I 
was left to bury my sister, and learn to live with my guilt and my terrible grief, the price 
of my shame. 

 Years passed. There were rumors about him. They said he had procured a wand 
of immense power. I, meanwhile, was offered the post of Minister of Magic, not once, 
but several times. Naturally, I refused. I had learned that I was not to be trusted with 
power. 

 But youd have been better, much better, than Fudge or Scimgeour! burst out 
Harry. 

 Would I? asked Dumbledore heavily. I am not so sure. I had proven, as a very 
young man, that power was my weakness and my temptation. It is a curious thing, Harry, 
but perhaps those who are best suited to power are those who have never sought it. Those 
who, like you, have leadership thrust upon them, and take up the mantle because they 
must, and find to their own surprise that they wear it well. 

 I was safer at Hogwarts. I think I was a good teacher C 

 You were the best --- 


 --- you are very kind, Harry. But while I busied myself with the training of 
young wizards, Grindelwald was raising an army. They say he feared me, and perhaps he 
did, but less, I think, than I feared him. 

 Oh, not death, said Dumbledore, in answer to Harrys questioning look. Not 
what he could do to me magically. I knew that we were evenly matched, perhaps that I 
was a shade more skillful. It was the truth I feared. You see, I never knew which of us, in 
that last, horrific fight, had actually cast the curse that killed my sister. You may call me 
cowardly: You would be right, Harry. I dreaded beyond all things the knowledge that it 
had been I who brought about her death, not merely through my arrogance and stupidity, 
but that I actually struck the blow that snuffed out her life. 

 I think he knew it, I think he knew what frightened me. I delayed meeting him 
until finally, it would have been too shameful to resist any longer. People were dying and 
he seemed unstoppable, and I had to do what I could. 

 Well, you know what happened next. I won the duel. I won the wand. 

 Another silence. Harry did not ask whether Dumbledore had ever found out who 
struck Ariana dead. He did not want to know, and even less did he want Dumbledore to 
have to tell him. At last he knew what Dumbledore would have seen when he looked in 
the mirror of Erised, and why Dumbledore had been so understanding of the fascination it 
had exercised over Harry. 

 They sat in silence for a long time, and the whipmerings of the creature behind 
them barely disturbed Harry anymore. 

 At last he said, Grindelwald tried to stop Voldemort going after the wand. He 
lied, you know, pretended he had never had it. 

 Dumbledore nodded, looking down at his lap, tears still glittering on the crooked 
nose. 

 They say he showed remorse in later years, alone in his cell at Nurmengard. I 
hope that is true. I would like to think that he did feel the horror and shame of what he 
had done. Perhaps that lie to Voldemort was his attempt to make amends . . . to prevent 
Voldemort from taking the Hallow . . . 

 . . .or maybe from breaking into your tomb? suggested Harry, and Dumbledore 
dabbed his eyes. 

 After another short pause Harry said, You tried to use the Resurrection Stone. 

 Dumbledore nodded. 

 When I discovered it, after all those years, buried in the abandoned home of the 
Gaunts --- the Hallow I had craved most of all, though in my youth I had wanted it for 
very different reasons --- I lost my head, Harry. I quite forgot that I was not a Horcrux, 
that the ring was sure to carry a curse. I picked it up, and I put it on, and for a second I 
imagined that I was about to see Ariana, and my mother, and my father, and to tell them 
how very, very sorry, I was. . . . 

 I was such a fool, Harry. After all those years I had learned nothing. I was 
unworthy to unite the Deathly Hallows, I had proved it time and again, and here was final 
proof. 

 Why? said Harry. It was natural! You wanted to see them again. Whats wrong 
with that? 

 Maybe a man in a million could unite the Hallows, Harry. I was fit only to 
possess the meanest of them, the least extraordinary. I was fit to own the Elder Wand, 


and not boast of it, and not to kill with it. I was permitted to tame and use it, because I 
took it, not for gain, but to save others from it. 

 But the Cloak, I took out of vain curiousity, and so it could never have worked 
for me as it works for you, its true owners. The stone I would have used in an attempt to 
drag back those who are at peace, rather than enable my self-sacrafice, as you did. You 
are the worthy possessor of the Hallows. 

 Dumbledore patted Harrys hand, and Harry looked up at the old man and smiled; 
he could not help himself. How coul dhe remain angry with Dumbledore now? 

 Why did you have to make it so difficult? 

 Dumbledores smile was tremulous. 

 I am afraid I counted on Miss Granger to slow you up, Harry. I was afraid that 
your hot head might dominate your good heart. I was scared that, if presented outright 
with the facts about those tempting objects, you might seize the Hallows as I did, at the 
wrong time, for the wrong reasons. If you laid hands on them, I wanted you to possess 
them safely. You are the true master of death, because the true master does not seek to 
run away from Death. He accepts that he must die, and understands that there are far, far 
worse things in the living world than dying. 

 And Voldemort never knew about the Hallows? 

 I do not think so, because he did not recognize the Resurrection Stone he turned 
into a Horcrux. But even if he had known about them, Harry. I doubt that he woul dhave 
been interested in any except the first. He would not think that he needed the Cloak, and 
as for the stone, whom would he want to bring back from the dead? He fears the dead. He 
does not love. 

 But you expected him to go after the wand? 

 I have been sure that he would try, ever since your wand beat Voldemorts in the 
graveyard of Little Hangleton. At first, he was afraid that you had conquered him by 
superior skill. Once he had kidnapped Ollivander, however, he discovered the existence 
of the twin cores. He thought that explained everything. Yet the borrowed wand did no 
better against yours! So Voldemort, instead of asking himself what quality it was in you 
that had made your wand so strong, what gift you possessed that he did not, naturally set 
out to find the one wand that, they said, would beat any other. For him, the Elder Wand 
has become an obsession to rival his obsession with you. He believes that the Elder Wand 
removes his last weakness and makes him truly invincible. Poor Severus . . . 

 If you planned your death with Snape, you meant him to end up with the Elder 
Wand, didnt you? 

 I admit that was my intention, said Dumbledore, but it did not work as I 
intended, did it? 

 No, said Harry. That bit didnt work out. 

 The creature behind them jerked and moaned, and Harry and Dumbledore sate 
without talking for the longest time yet. The realization of what would happen next 
settled gradually over Harry in the long minutes, like softly falling snow. 

 Ive got to go back, havent I? 

 That is up to you. 

 Ive got a choice? 

 Oh yes, Dumbledore smiled at him. We are in Kings Cross you say? I think 
that if you decided not to go back, you would be able to . . . lets say . . . board a train. 


 And where would it take me? 

 On, said Dumbledore simply. 

 Silence again. 

 Voldemorts got the Elder Wand. 

 True. Voldemort has the Elder Wand. 

 But you want me to go back? 

 I think, said Dumbledore, that if you choose to return, there is a chance that he 
may be finished for good. I cannot promise it. But I know this, Harry, that you have less 
to fear from returning here than he does. 

 Harry glanced again at the raw looking thing that trembled and choked in the 
shadow beneath the distant chair. 

 Do not pity the dead, Harry. Pity the living, and above all, those who live 
without love. By returning, you may ensure that fewer souls are maimed, fewer families 
are torn apart. If that seems to you a worthy goal, they we saw good-bye for the present. 

 Harry nodded and sighed. Leaving this place would not be nearly as hard as 
walking into the forest had been, but it was warm and light and peaceful here, and he 
knew that he was heading back to pain and the fear of more loss. He stood up, and 
Dumbledore did the same, and they looked for a long moment into each others faces. 

 Tell me one last thing, said Harry, Is this real? Or has this been happening 
inside my head? 

 Dumbledore beamed at him, and his voice sounded loud and strong in Harrys 
ears even though the bright mist was descending again, obscuring his figure. 

 Of course it is happening inside your head, Harry, but why on earth should that 
mean it is not real? 

 

 

 

Chapter Thirty-Six 

The Flaw in the Plan 

 

 

He was flying facedown on the grond again. The smell of the forest filled his nostrils. He 
could feel 

the cold hard ground beneath his cheek, and the hinge of his glasses which have been 
knocked sideways 

by the fall cutting into his temple. Every inch of him ached, and the place where Killing 
Curse had hit him 

felt like the bruise of an iron-clad punch. He did not stir, but he remained exactly where 
he had fallen, with 

his left arm bent out at an akward angle and his mouth gaping. 

 He had expected to hear cheer of triumph and jubilation at his death, but instead 
hurried footsteps, 

whispers, and solicitous murmurs filled the air. 

 "My Lord... my Lord..." 


 It was Bellatrix's voice, and she spoke as if to a lover. Harry did not dare open his 
eyes, but allowed 

his other senses to explore his predicament. He knew that his wand was still stowed 
beneath his robes because 

he could feel it pressed between his chest and the ground. A slight cushioning effect in 
the area of his stomach 

told him that the Invisibility Cloak was also there, stuffed out of sight. 

 "My Lord..." 

 "That will do," said Voldemort's voice. 

 More footsteps. Several people were backing away from the same spot. Desperate 
to see what was 

happening and why, Harry opened his eyes by a milimeter. 

 Voldemort seemed to be getting to his feet. Various Death Eaters were hurrying 
away from him, 

returning to the crowd lining the clearing. Bellatrix alone remained behind, kneeling 
beside Voldemort. 

 Harry closed his eyes again and considered what he had seen. The Death Eaters 
have been buddled 

around Voldemort, who seem to have fallen to the ground. Something had happened 
when he had hit Harry with 

the Killing Curse. Had Voldemort too collapsed? It seemed like it. And both of them had 
briefly fallen unconcious 

and both of them had now returned. . . 

 "My Lord, let me --" 

 "I do not require assitance," said Voldemort coldly, and though he could not see it, 
Harry pictured 

Bellatrix withdrawing a helpful hand. "The boy . . . Is he dead?" 

 There was a complete silence in the clearing. Nobody approached Harry, but he 
felt their concentraded 

gaze; it seemed to press him harder into the ground, and he was terrified a finger or an 
eyelid might twitch. 

 "You," said Voldemort, and there was a bang and a small shrick of pain. 
"Examine him. Tell me whether he is dead." 

 Harry did not know who had been sent to verify. He could only lie there, with his 
heart thumping traitorously, and wait to be 

examined, but at the same time nothing, small comfort through it was, that Voldemort 
was wary of approaching him, that Voldemort 

suspected that all had not gone to plan . . . . 

 Hands, softer than he had been expecting, touched Harry's face, and felt his heart. 
He could hear the woman's fast breathing, 

her pounding of life against his ribs. 

 "Is Draco alive? Is he in the castle?" 

 The whisper was barely audible, her lips were an inch from his car, her head bent 
so low that her long hair shielded his face 

from the onlookers. 

 "Yes," he breathed back. 


 He felt the hand on his chest contract: her nails pierced him. Then it was 
withdrawn. She had sat up. 

 "He is dead!" Narcissa Malfoy called to the watchers. 

 And now they shouted, now they yelled in triumph and stamped their feet, and 
through his eyelids, Harry saw bursts of red 

and silver light shoot into the air in celebration. 

 Still feigning death on the ground, he understood. Narcissa knew that the only 
way she would be permitted to enter Hogwarts, 

and find her son, was as part of the conquering army. She no longer cared whether 
Voldemort won. 

 "You see?" screeched Voldemort over the tumult. "Harry Potter is dead by my 
hand, and no man alive can threaten me now! 

Watch! Crucio!" 

 Harry had been expecting it, knew his body would not be allowed to remain 
unsullied upon the forest floor; it must be subjected 

 to humiliation to prove Voldemort's victory. He was lifted into the air, and it took all his 
determination to remain limp, yet the pain he 

expected did not come. He was thrown once, twice, three times into the air. His glasses 
flew off and he felt his wand slide a little beneath 

his robes, but he kept himself floppy and lifeless, and when he fell no ground for the last 
time, the clearing echoed with jeers and shrieks 

of laughter. 

 "Now," said Voldemort, "we go to the castle, and show them what has become of 
their hero. Who shall drag the body? No - Wait - " 

 There was a fresh outbreak of laughter, and after a few moments Harry felt the 
ground trembling beneath him. 

 "You carry him," Voldemort said. "He will be nice and visible in your arms, will 
he not? Pick up your little friend, Hagrid. And the 

glasses - put on the glasses - he must be recognizable - " 

 Someone slammed Harry's glasses back onto his face with deliberate force, but 
the enormous hands that lifted him into the air 

were exceedingly gentle. Harry could feel Hagrid's arms trembling with the force of his 
heaving sobs; great tears splashed down upon him 

as Hagrid cradled Harry in his arms, and Harry did not dare, by movement or word, to 
intimate to Hagrid that all was not, yet, lost. 

 "Move," said Voldemort, and Hagrid stumbled forward, forcing his way through 
the close-growing trees, back through the forest. 

Branches caught at Harry's hair and robes, but he lay quiescent, his mouth lolling open, 
his eyes shut, and in the darkness, while the 

Death Eaters croed all around them, and while Hagrid sobbed blindly, nobody looked to 
see whether a pulse beat in the exposed neck of 

Harry Potter. . . . 

 The two giants crashed along behind the Death Eaters; Harry could hear trees 
creaking and falling as they passed; they made so 

much din that birds toes shrieking into the sky, and even the jeers of the Death Eaters 
were drowned. The victorious procession marched 


on toward the open ground, and after a while Harry could tell, by the lightening of the 
darkness through his closed eyelids, that the trees 

were beginning to thin. 

 "BANE!" 

 Hagrid's unexpected bellow nearly forced Harry's eyes open. "Happy now, are 
yeh, that yeh didn't fight, yeh cowardly bunch o' nags? 

Are yeh happy Harry Potter's - d-dead . . . ?" 

 Hagrid could not continue, but broke down in fresh tears. Harry wondered how 
many centaurs were watching their procession pass; 

he dared not open his eyes to look. Some of the Death Eaters called insults at the centaurs 
as they left them behind. A little later, Harry 

sensed, by a freshening of the air, that they had reached the edge of the forest. 

 "Stop." 

 Harry thought that Hagrid must have been forced to obey Voldemort's command, 
because he lurched a little. And now a chill settled 

over them where they sood, and Harry heard the rasping breath of the dementors that 
patrolled the other trees. They would not affect him now. 

The fact of his own survival burned inside him, a talisman against them, as though his 
father's stag kept guardian in his heart. 

 Someone passed close by Harry, and he knew that it was Voldemort himself 
because he spoke a moment later, his voice magically 

magnified so that it swelled through the ground, crashing upon Harry's eardrums. 

 "Harry Potter is dead. He was killed as he ran away, trying to save himself while 
you lay down your lives for him. We bring you his 

body as proof that your hero is gone. 

 "The battle is won. You have lost half of your fighters. My Death Eaters 
outnumber you, and the Boy Who Lived is finished. There must 

be no more war. Anyone who continues to resist, man, woman or child, will be 
slaughtered, as will every member of their family. Come out of the 

castle now, kneel before me, and you shall be spared. Your parents and children, your 
brothers and sisters will live and be forgiven, and you will 

join me in the new world we shall build togheter." 

 There was silence in the grounds and from the castle. Voldemort was so close to 
him that Harry did not dare open his eyes again. 

 "Come," said Voldemort, and Harry heard him move ahead, and Hagrid was 
forced to follow. Now Harry opened his eyes a fraction, and saw 

Voldemort striding in front them, wearing the great snake Nagini around his shoulders, 
now free of her enchanted cage. But Harry had no possibility 

of extracting the wand concealed under his robes without being noticed by the Death 
Eaters, who marched on the either side of them through the 

slowly lightening darkness . . . . 

 "Harry," sobbed Hagrid. "Oh, Harry . . . Harry . . ." 

 Harry shut his eyes tight again. He knew that they were approaching the castle 
and strained his ears to distinguish, above the gleeful voices 

of the Death Eaters and their tramping footsteps, signs of life from those within. 

 "Stop." 


 The Death Eaters camte to a halt; Harry heard them spreading out in a line facing 
the opne front doors of the school. He could see, even 

though his closed lids, the teddish glow that meant light streamed upon him from the 
entrance hall. He waited. Any moment, the people for whom 

he had tried to die would see him, lying apparently dead, in Hagrid's arms. 

 "NO!" 

 The scream was the more terrible because he had never expected or dreamed that 
Professor McGonagall could make such a sound. He heard 

another women laughing nearby, and knew that Bellatrix gloried in McGonagall's despair. 
He squinted again for a single second and saw the open 

 doorway filling with people, as the survivors of the battle came out onto the front steps 
to face their vanquishers and see the truth of Harry's death for 

themselves. He saw Voldemort standing a little in front of him, stroking Nagini's head 
with a single white finger. He closed his eyes again. 

 "No!" 

 "No!" 

 "Harry! HARRY!" 

 Ron's, Hermione's, and Ginny's voices were worse than McGonagall's; Harry 
wanted nothing more than to call back, yet he made himself lie 

silent, and their cries acted like a trigger; the crowd of survivors took up the cause, 
screaming and yelling abuse at the Death Eathers, until - 

 "SILENCE!" cried Voldemort, and there was a bang and a flash of bright light, 
and silence was forced upn them all. "It is over! Set him down, 

Hagrid, at my feet, where he belongs!" 

 Harry felt himself lowered onto the grass. 

 "You see? said Voldemort, and Harry felt him striding backward and forward 
right beside the place where he lay. "Harry Potter is dead! Do you 

understand now, deluded ones? He was nothing, ever, but a boy who relied on others to 
sacrifice themselves for him!" 

 "He beat you!" yelled Ron, and the charm broke, and the defenders of Hogwarts 
were shouting and screaming again until a second, more 

powerful bang extinguished their voices once more. 

 "He was killed while trying to sneak out of the castle grounds," said Voldemort, 
and there was a relish in his voice for the lie. "killed while trying 

to save himself - " 

 But Voldemort broke off: Harry heard a scuffle and a shout, then another bang, a 
flash of light, and grunt of pain; he opened his eyes an infinitesimal 

amount. Someone had broken free of the crowd and charged at Voldemort: Harry saw the 
figure hit the ground. Disarmed, Voldemort throwing the challenger's 

wand aside and laughing. 

 "And who is this?" he said in his soft snake's hiss. "Who has volunteered to 
demonstrate what happens to those who continue to fight when the 

battle is lost?" 

 Bellatrix gave a delighted laugh. 

 "It is Neville Longbottom, my Lord! The boy who has been giving the Carrows so 
much trouble! The son of the Aurors, remember?" 


 "Ah, yes, I remember," said Voldemort, looking down at Neville, who was 
struggling back to his feet, unarmed and unproctected, standing in the 

no-man's-land between the survivors and the Death Eaters. "But you are a pureblood, 
aren't you, my brave boy? Voldemort asked Neville, who stood facing him, 

his empty hands curled in fists. 

 "So what if I am?" said Neville loudly. 

 "You show spirit and bravery, and you come of noble stock. You will make a very 
valuable Death Eater. We need your kind, Neville Longbottom." 

 "I'll join you when hell freezes over," said Neville. "Dumbledore's Army!" he 
shouted, and there was an answering cheer from the crowd, whom 

Voldemort's Silencing Charms seemed unable to hold. 

 "Very well," said Voldemort, and Harry heard more danger in the silkiness of his 
voice than in the most powerful curse. "If that is your choice, Longbottom, 

we revert to the original plan. On your head," he said quietly, "be it." 

 Still watching through his lashes, Harry saw Voldemort wave his wand. Seconds 
later, out of one of the castle's shattered windows, something that looked like a 
misshapen bird flew through the half light and landed in Voldemort's hand. He shook the 
mildewed object by its pointed end and it dangled, emtpy and ragged: the Sorting Hat. 

 "There will be no more Sorting at Hogwarts School," said Voldemort. "There will 
be no more Houses. The emblem, sheild and colors of my noble ancestor, Salazar 
Slythering, will suffice everyone. Won't they, Neville Longbottom?" 

 He pointed his wand at Neville, who grew rigid and still, then forced the hat onto 
Neville's head, so thta it slipped down below his eyes. There were movements from the 
watching crowd in front of the castle, and as one, the Death Eaters raised their wands, 
holding the fighters of Hogwarts at bay. 

 "Neville here is now going to demonstrate what happens to anyone foolish 
enough to continue to oppose me," said Voldemort, and with a flick of his wand, he 
caused the Sorting Hat to burst into flames. 

 Screams split the dawn, and Neville was a flame, rooted to the spot, unable to 
move, and Harry could not bear it: He must act - 

 And then many things happened at the same moment. 

 They heard uproar from the distant boundary of the school as what sounded like 
hundreds of people came swarming over the out-of-sight walls and pelted toward the 
castle, uttering lowd war cries. At the same time, Grawp came lumbering around the side 
of the castel and yelled, "HAGGER!" His cry was answered by roars from Voldemort's 
giants: They ran at Grawp like bull elephants making the earth quake. Then came hooves 
and the twangs of bows, and arrows were suddenly falling amongst the Death Eaters, who 
broke ranks, shouting their surprise. Harry pulled the Invisibilty Cloak from inside his 
robes, swunt it over himself, and sprang to his feet, as Neville moved too. 

 In one swift, fluid motin, Neville broke free of the Body-Bind Curse upon him; 
the flaming har fell off him and he drew from its depths something silver, with a 
glittering, rubied handle - 

 The slash of the silver blade could not be heard over the roar of the oncoming 
crowd or the sounds of the clashing giants or of te stampending centaurs, and yet, it 
seemd to draw every eye. With a single stroke Neville sliced off the great snake's head, 
which spun high into the air, gleaming in the light flooding from the entrance hall, and 


Voldemort's mouth was open in a scream of fury that nobody could hear, and the snake's 
body thudded to the ground at his feet- 

 Hidden beneath the Invisibilty Cloak, Harry cast a Shield Charm between Neville 
and Voldemort before the latter could raise his stamps of the battling giants, Hagrid's yell 
came loudets of all. 

 "HARRY!" Hagrid shouted. "HARRY - WHERE'S HARRY?" 

 Chaos reigned. The charging centaurs were scattering the Death Eaters, everyone 
was feeling the giants' stamping feet, and nearer and nearar thundered the reinforcements 
that had come from who knew where; Harry saw great winget creatues soaring the heads 
of Voldemort's giants, thestrals and Buckbeak the hippogriff scratching at their eyes 
while Grawp punched and pummeled them and now the wizards, defenders of Hogwarts 
and Death Eaters alike were being forced back into the castle. Harry was shooting jinxes 
and curses at any Death Eater he could see, and they crumpled, not knowing what or who 
had hit them, and their bodies were trampled by the retreating crowd. Still hidden beneath 
the Invisibility Cloak, Harry was buffered into the entrance hall: He was searching for 
Voldemort and saw him across the room, firing spells from his wand as he backed into 
the Great Hall, still screaming instructions to his followers as he sent curses flying left 
and right; Harry cast more Shield Charms, and Voldemort's would-be victims. Seamus 
Finnigan and Hannah Abbott, datted past him into the Great Hall, where they joined the 
fight already flourishing inside it. 

 And now there were more, even more people storming up the front steps, and 
Harry saw Charlie Weasly overtaking Horace Slughorn, who was still wearing his emeral 
pijamas. They seemed to have returned at the head of what looked like the families and 
friends of every Hogwarts student who had remained to fight along with the shopkeeps 
and homeowners of Hogsmeade. The centaurs Bane, Ronan and Magorian burst into the 
hall with a great clatter of hooves, as behind Harry the door that led to the kitchens was 
blasted off its hinges. 

 The house-elves of Hogwarts swarmed intot he entrance hall, screaming and 
waving carving knives and cleaver, and at their head, the locker of Regulus Black 
bouncing on his chest, was Kreacher, his bullfrog's voice audible even above this din: 
"Fight! Fight! Fight for my Master, defender of house-elves! Fight the Dark Lord, in the 
name of brave Regulus! Fight!" 

 They were hacking and stabbing at the ankles and shim of Death Eaters their tiny 
faces alive with malice, and everywhere Harry looked Death Eaters were folding under 
sheer weight of numbers, overcome by spells, dragging arrows from wounds, stabbed in 
the leg by elves, or else simply attempting to escape, but swallowed by the oncoming 
horde. 

 But it was not over yet: Harry sped between duelers, past atruggling prosoners, 
and into he Great Hall. 

 Voldemort was in the center of the battle, and he was striking and smiting al 
within reach. Harry could not get a clear shot, but fought his way nearer, still invisible, 
and the Great Hall became more and more crowded as everyone who could walk forced 
their way inside. 

 Harry saw Yaxley slammed tot he floor by George and Lee Jordan, saw Dolohov 
fall with a scream at Flitwick's hands, saw Walden Macnair thrown across the room by 
Hagrid, hit the stone wall opposite, and slide unconscious to the ground. He saw Ron and 


Neville bringing down Fenrir Greyback. Aberforth Stunning Rookwood, Arthur and 
Percy flooting Thicknesse, and Lucius and Narcissa Malfoy running through the crowd, 
not even attempting to fight, screaming for their son. 

 Voldemort was now dueling McGonagall, Slughorn, Kingsley all at once, and 
there was a cold hatred in his face as they wove and ducked around him, unable to finish 
him - 

 Bellatrix was still fighing too, fifty yards away from Voldemort, and like her 
master she dueled three at once: Hermione, Ginny and Luna, all battling their hardest, but 
Bellatrix was equal to them, and Harry's attention was diverted as a Killing Curse shot so 
close to Ginny that she missed death by an inch - 

 He changed course, running at Bellatrix rather than Voldemort, but before he had 
gone a few steps he was knocked sideways. 

 "NOT MY DAUGHTER, YOU BITCH!" 

 Mrs. Weasley threw off her cloak as she ran, freeing her arms, Bellatrix spun on 
the spot, roaring with laughter at the sight of the new challenger. 

 "OUT OF MY WAY!" shouted Mrs. Weasley to the three girls, and with a simple 
swipe of her wand she began to duel. Harry watched with terror and elation as Molly 
Weasley's wand slashed and twisted, and Bellatrix Lestrange's smile faltered and became 
a snarl. Jets of light flew from both wands, the floor around the withces' feet became bot 
and cracked; both woman were fighting to kill. 

 "No!" Mrs. Weasley cried as a few students ran forward, trying to come to her aid. 
"Get back! Get back! She is mine!" 

 Hundreds of people now lined the walls, watching the two fights, Voldemort and 
his three opponents, Bellatrix and Molly, and Harry stood, invisible, torn between both, 
wanting to attack and yet to protect, unable to be sure that he would not hit the innocent. 

 "What will happen to your children when I've killed you?" taunted Bellatrix, as 
mad as her master, capering as Molly's curses danced around her. "When Mummy's gone 
the same way as Freddie?" 

 "You - will - never - touch - our - children - again!" screamed Mrs. Weasley. 

 Bellatrix laughed the same exhilarated laugh her cousin Sirius had given as he 
toppled backward through the veil, and suddenly Harry knew what was going to happen 
before it did. 

 Molly's curse soared beneath Bellatrix's constreched arm and hit her squarely in 
the chest, directly over her heart. 

 Bellatrix's glounting smile froze, her eyes seemd to bulge: For the tiniest space of 
time she knew what had happened, and then she toppled, and the watching crowd roared, 
and Voldemord screamed. 

 Harry felt as though he turned into slow motin: he saw McGonagall, Kingsley and 
Slughorn blasted backward, flailing and writhing through the air, as Voldemort's fury at 
the fall of his last, best leutenant exploded with the force of a bomb, Voldemort raised his 
wand and directed it at Molly Weasley. 

 "Protego!" roared Harry, and the Shield Charm expanded in the middle of the 
Hall, and Voldemort stared around for the source as Harry pulled off the Invisibility 
Cloak at last. 

 The yell of shock, the cheers, the screams on every side of :"Harry!" "HE'S 
ALIVE!" were stifled at once. The crowd was afraid, and silence fell abruptly and 


completely as Voldemort and Harry looked at each other, and began, at the same moment, 
to circle each other. 

 "I don't want anyone else to help," Harry said loudly, and in the total silence his 
voice carried like a trumpet call. "It's got to be like this. It's got to be me." 

 Voldemort hissed. 

 "Potter doesn't mean that," he said, his red eyes wide. "This isn't how he works, is 
it? Who are you going to use as a shield today, Potter?" 

 "Nobody," said Harry simply. "There are no more Horcruxes. It's just you and me. 
Neither can live while the other survives, and one of us is about to leave for good. . . ." 

 "One of us?" jeered Voldemort, and his wholy body was taut and his red eyes 
stared, a snake that was about to strike. "You think it will be you, do you, the boy who 
has survived by accident, and because Dumbledore was pulling the strings?" 

 "Accident, was it, when my mother died to save me?" asked Harry. They were 
still moving sideways, both of them, in that perfect circle, maintaining the same distance 
from each other, and for Harry no face existed but Voldemort's. "Accident, when I 
decided to fight in that graveyard? Accident, that I didn't defend myself tonight, and still 
survived, and returned to fight again?" 

 "Accidents!" screamed Voldemort, but still he did not strike, and the watching 
crowd was frozen as if Petrified, and of the hundreds in the Hall, nobody seemed to 
breathe but they two. "Accident and chance and the fact that you crouched and sniveled 
behind the skirts of greater men and women, and permitted me to kill them for you!" 

 "You won't be killing anyone else tonight," said Harry as they circled, and stared 
into each other's eyes, green into red. "You won't be able to kill any of them ever again. 
Don't you get it? I was ready to die to stop you from hurting these people - " 

 "But you did not!" 

 " - I meant to, and that's what did it. I've done what my mother did. They're 
protected from you. Haven't you noticed how none of the spells you put on them are 
binding? You can't torture them. You can't touch them. You don't learn from your 
mistakes, Riddle, do you?" 

 "You dare -" 

 "Yes, I dare," said Harry. "I know things you don't know, Tom Riddle. I know 
lots of important things that you don't. Want to hear some, before you make another big 
mistake?" 

 Voldemort did not speak, but powled in a circle, and Harry knew that he kept him 
temporarily mesmerized at bay, held back by the faintest possibility that Harry might 
indeed know a final secret. . . . 

 "Is it love again?" said Voldemort, his snake's face jeering. "Dumbledore favorite 
solution, love, which he claimed conqered death, though love did not stop him falling 
from the tower and breaking like and old waxwork? Love, which did not prevent me 
stamping out your Modblood mother like a cockroack, Potter - and nobody seems to love 
you enough to run forward this time and take my curse. So what will stop you dying now 
when I strike?" 

 "Just one thing," said Harry, and still they circled each other, wrapped in each 
other, held apart by nothing but the last secret. 

 "If it is not love that will save you this time," said Voldemort, "you must believe 
that you have magic that i do not, or else a weapon more powerful than mine?" 


 "I believe both," said Harry, and he saw shock flit across the snakelike face, 
though it was instantly dispelled; Voldemort began to laugh, and the sound was more 
frightening than his screams; humorles and insane, it echoed around the silent Hall. 

 "You think you know more magic than I do?" he said. "Than I, than Lord 
Voldemort, who has performed magic that Dumbledore himself never dreamed of?" 

 "Oh he dreamed of it," said Harry, "but he knew more than you, knew enough not 
to do what you've done." 

 "You mean he was weak!" screamed Voldemort. "Too weak to dare, too weak to 
take what might have been his, what will be mine!" 

 "No, he was cleverer than you," said Harry, "a better wizard, a better man." 

 "I brought about the death of Albus Dumbledore!" 

 "You thought you did," said Harry, "but you were wrong." 

 For the frist time, the watching crowd stirred as the hundreds of people around the 
walls drew breath as one. 

 "Dumbledore is dead!" Voldemort hurled the words at Harry as in the marble 
tomb in the grounds of this castle, I have seen it, Potter, and he will not return!" 

 "Yes, Dumbledore is dead," said Harry calmly, "but you didn't have him killed. 
He chose his own manner of dying, chose it months before he died, arranged the whole 
thing with the man you thought was your servant." 

 "What chldish dream is this?" said Voldemort, but still he did not strike, and his 
red eyes did not waver from Harry's. 

 "Severus Snape wasn't yours," said Harry. "Snape was Dumbledore's. 
Dumbledore's from the moment you starting hunting down my mother. And you never 
realized it, because of the thing you can't understand. You never saw Snape cast a 
Patronus, did you, Riddle?" 

 Voldemort did not answer. They continued to circle each other like wolves about 
to tear each other apart. 

 "Snape's Patronus was a doe," said Harry, "the same as my mother's, because he 
loved her for nearly all of his life, from the time when they were children. You should 
have realized," he said as he saw Voldemort's nostrils flare, "he asked you to spare her 
life, didn't he?" 
"He desired her, that was all," sneered Voldemort, "but when she had gone, he 
agreed that there were other women, and of purer blood, worhier of him - " 

 "Of course he told you that," said Harry, "but he was Dumbledore's spy from the 
moment you threatened her, and he's been working against you ever since! Dumbledore 
was already dying when Snape finished him!" 

 "It matters not!" shrieked Voldemort, who had followed every word with rapt 
attention, but now let out a cackle of mad laughter. "It matters not whether Snape was 
mine or Dumbledore's, or what petty obstacles they tried to put in my path! I crushed 
them as I crushed your mother, Snape's supposed great love! Oh, but it all makes sense, 
Potter, and in ways that you do not understand! 

 "Dumbledore was trying to keep the Elder Wand from me! He intended that 
Snape should be the true master of the wand! But I got there ahead of you, little boy - I 
reached the wand before you could get your hands on it, I understood the truth before you 
caught up. I killed Severus Snape three hours ago, and the Elder Wand, the Deathstick, 
the Wand of Destiny is truly mine! Dumbledore's last plan went wrong, Harry Potter!" 


 "Yeah, it did." said Harry. "You're right. But before you try to kill me, I'd advise 
you think what you've done . . . . Think, and try for some remorse, Riddle. . . ." 

 "What is this?" 

 Of all the things that Harry had said to him, beyond any revelation or taunt, 
nothing had socked Voldemort like this. Harry saw is pupils contract to thin slits, saw the 
skin around his eyes whiten. 

 "It's your one last chance," said Harry, "it's all you've got left. . . . I've seen what 
you'll be otherwise. . . . Be a man. . . try. . . Try for some remorse. . . ." 

 You dare --- ? said Voldemort again. 

 Yes, I dare, said Harry, because Dumbledores last plan hasnt backfired on 
me at all. Its backfired on you, Riddle. 

 Voldemorts hand was trembling on the Elder Wand, and Harry gripped Dracos 
very tightly. The moment, he knew, was seconds away. 

 That wand still isnt working properly for you because you murdered the wrong 
person. Severus Snape was never the true master of the Elder Wand. He never defeated 
Dumbledore. 

 He killed ---  

 Arent you listening? Snape never beat Dumbledore! Dumbledores death was 
planned between them! Dumbledore instended to die, undefeated, the wands last true 
master! If all had gone as planned, the wands power would have died with him, because 
it had never been won from him! 

 But then, Potter, Dumbledore as good as gave me the wand! Voldemorts voice 
shook with malicious pleasure. I stole the wand from its last masters tomb! I removed it 
against the last masters wishes! Its power is mine! 

 You still dont get it, Riddle, do you? Possessing the wand isnt enough! Holding 
it, using it, doesnt make it really yours. Didnt you listen to Ollivander? The wand 
chooses the wizard . . . The Elder Wand recognized a new master before Dumbledore 
died, someone who never even laid a hand on it. The new master removed the wand from 
Dumbledore against his will, never realizing exactly what he had done, or that the 
worlds most dangerous wand had given him its allegiance . . . 

 Voldemorts chest rose and fell rapidly, and Harry could feel the curse coming, 
feel it building inside the wand pointed at his face. 

 The true master of the Elder Wand was Draco Malfoy. 

 Blank shock showed in Voldemorts face for a moment, but then it was gone. 

 But what does it matter? he said softly. Even if you are right, Potter, it makes 
no difference to you and me. You no longer have the phoenix wand: We duel on skill 
alone . . . and after I have killed you, I can attend to Draco Malfoy . . . 

 But youre too late, said Harry. Youve missed your chance. I got there first. I 
overpowered Draco weeks ago. I took his wand from him. 

 Harry twitched the hawthorn wand, and he felt the eyes of everyone in the Hall 
upon it. 

 So it all comes down to this, doesnt it? whispered Harry. Does the wand in 
your hand know its last master was Disarmed? Because if it does . . . I am the true master 
of the Elder Wand. 

 A red-glow burst suddenly across the enchanted sky above them as an edge of 
dazzling sun appeared over the sill of the nearest window. The light hit both of their faces 


at the same time, so that Voldemorts was suddenly a flaming blur. Harry heard the high 
voice shriek as he too yelled his best hope to the heavens, pointing Dracos wand: 

 Avada Kedavra! 

 Expelliarmus! 

 The bang was like a cannon blast, and the golden flames that erupted between 
them, at the dead center of the circle they had been treading, marked the point where the 
spells collided. Harry saw Voldemorts green jet meet his own spell, saw the Elder Wand 
fly high, dark against the sunrise, spinning across the enchanted ceiling like the head of 
Nagini, spinning through the air toward the master it would not kill, who had come to 
take full possession of it at last. And Harry, with the unerring skill of the Seeker, caught 
the wand in his free hand as Voldemort fell backward, arms splayed, the slit pupils of the 
scarlet eyes rolling upward. Tom Riddle hit the floor with a mundane finality, his body 
feeble and shrunken, the white hands empty, the snakelike face vacant and unknowing. 
Voldemort was dead, killed by his own rebounding curse, and Harry stood with two 
wands in his hand, staring down at his enemys shell. 

 One shivering second of silence, the shock of the moment suspended: and then the 
tumult broke around Harry as the screams and the cheers and the roars of the watchers 
rent the air. The fierce new sun dazzled the windows as they thundered toward him, and 
the first to reach him were Ron and Hermione, and it was their arms that were wrapped 
around him, their incomprehensible shouts that deafened him. The Ginny, Neville, and 
Luna were there, and then all the Weasleys and Hagrid, and Kingsley and McGonagall 
and Flitwick and Sprout, and Harry could not hear a word that anyone was shouting, not 
tell whose hands were seizing him, pulling him, trying to hug some part of him, hundreds 
of them pressing in, all of them determined to touch the Boy Who Lived, the reason it 
was over at last --- 

 The sun rose steadily over Hogwarts, and the Great Hall blazed with life and light. 
Harry was an indispensible part of the mingled outpourings of jubilation and mourning, 
of grief and celebration. They wanted him there with them, their leader and symbol, their 
savior and their guide, and that he had not slept, that he craved the company of only a few 
of them, seemed to occur to no one. He must speak to the bereaved, clasp their hands, 
witness their tears, receive their thanks, hear the news now creeping in from every quarter 
as the morning drew on; that the Imperiused up and down the country had come back to 
themselves, that Death Eaters were fleeing or else being captured, that the innocent of 
Azkaban were being released at that very moment, and that Kingsley Shacklebolt had 
been named temporary Minister of Magic. 

 They moved Voldemorts body and laid it in a chamber off the Hall, away form 
the bodies of Fred, Tonks, Lupin, Colin Creevey, and fifty others who had died fighting 
him. McGonagall had replaced the House tables, not nobody was sitting according to 
House anymore: All were jumbled together, teachers and pupils, ghosts and parents, 
centaurs and house-elves, and Firenze lay recovering in the corner, and Grawp peered in 
through a smashed window, and people were throwing food into his laughing mouth. 
After a while, exhausted and drained, Harry found himself sitting on a bench beside Luna. 

 Id want some peace and quiet, if it were me, she said. 

 Id love some, he replied. 

 Ill distract them all, she said. Use your cloak. 

 And before he could say a word, she had cried, Oooh, look, a Blibbering 


Humdinger! and pointed out the window. Everyone who heard looked around, and 
Harry slid the Cloak up over himself, and got to his feet. 

 Now he could move through the Hall without interference. He spotted Ginny two 
tables away; she was sitting with her head on her mothers shoulder: There would be time 
to talk later, hours and days and maybe years in which to talk. He saw Neville, the sword 
of Gryffindor lying beside his plate as he ate, surrounded by a knot of fervent admirers. 
Along the aisle between the tables he walked, and he spotted the three Malfoys, huddled 
together as though unsure whether or not they were supposed to be there, but nobody was 
paying them any attention. Everywhere he looked, he saw families reunited, and finally, 
he saw the two whose company he craved most. 

 Its me, he muttered, crouching down between them. Will you come with 
me? 

They stood up at once, and together he, Ron and Hermione left the Great Hall. 
Great chunks were missing from the marble staircase, part of the balustrade gone, and 
rubble and bloodstains occurred ever few steps as their climbed. 

 Somewhere in the distance they could hear Peeves zooming through the 
corridors singing a victory song of his own composition: 

 

We did it, we bashed them, wee Potters the one, 

And Voldys gone moldy, so now lets have fun! 

 

 Really gives a feeling for the scope and tragedy of the thing, doesnt it? said 
Ron, pushing open a door to let Harry and Hermione through. 

 Happiness would come, Harry though, but at the moment it was muffled by 
exhaustion, and the pain of losing Fred and Lupin and Tonks pierced him like a physical 
wound every few steps. Most of all he felt the most stupendous relief, and a longing to 
sleep. But first he owed an explanation to Ron and Hermione, who had stuck with him for 
so long, and who deserved the truth. Painstakingly he recounted what he had seem in the 
Pensieve and what had happened in the forest, and they had not even begun to express all 
their shock and amazement, when at last they arrived at the place to which they had been 
walking, though none of them had mentioned their destination. 

 Since he had last seen it, the gargoyle guarding the entrance to the headmasters 
study had been knocked aside; it stood lopsided, looking a little punch-drunk, and Harry 
wondered whether it would be able to distinguish passwords anymore. 

 Can we go up? he asked the gargoyle. 

 Feel free, groaned the statue. 

 They clambered over him and onto the spiral stone staircase that moved slowly 
upward like an escalator. Harry pushed open the door at the top. 

 He had one, brief glimpse of the stone Pensieve on the desk where he had left it, 
and then an earsplitting noise made him cry out, thinking of curses and returning Death 
Eaters and the rebirth of Voldemort --- 

 But it was applause. All around the walls, the headmasters and headmistresses of 
Hogwarts were giving him a standing ovation; they waved their hats and in some cases 
their wigs, they reached through their frames to grip each others hands; they danced up 
and down on their chairs in which they have been painted: Dilys Derwent sobbed 
unashamedly; Dexter Fortescue was waving his ear-trumpet; and Phineas Niggelus called, 


in his high, reedy voice, And let it be noted that Slytherin House played its part! Let our 
contribution not be forgotten! 

 But Harry had eyes only for the man who stood in the largest portrait directly 
behind the headmasters chair. Tears were sliding down from behind the half-moon 
spectacles into the long silver beard, and the pride and the gratitude emanating from him 
filled Harry wit h the same balm as phoenix song. 

 At last, Harry held up his hands, and the portraits fell respectfully silent, beaming 
and mopping their eyes and waiting eagerly for him to speak. He directed his words at 
Dumbledore, however, and chose them with enormous care. Exhausted and bleary-eyed 
though he was, he must make one last effort, seeking one last piece of advice. 

 The thing that was hidden in the Snitch, he began, I dropped it in the forest. I 
dont exactly here, but Im not going to go looking for it again. Do you agree? 

 My dear boy, I do, said Dumbledore, while his fellow pictures looked confused 
and curious. A wise and courageous decision, but no less than I would have expected of 
you. Does anyone know else know where it fell? 

 No one, said Harry, and Dumbledore nodded his satisfaction. 

 Im going to keep Ignotuss present, though, said Harry, and Dumbledore 
beamed. 

 But of course, Harry, it is yours forever, until you pass it on! 

 And then theres this. 

 Harry held up the Elder Wand, and Ron and Hermione looked at it with a 
reverence that, even in his befuddled and sleep-deprived state, Harry did not like to see. 

 I dont want it. said Harry. 

 What? said Ron loudly. Are you mental? 

 I know its powerful, said Harry wearily. But I was happier with mine. So . . . 

 He rummaged in the pouch hung around his neck, and pulled out the two halves 
of holly tstill just connected by the finest threat of phoenix feather. Hermione had said 
that they could not be repaired, that the damage was too severe. All he knew was that if 
this did not work, nothing would. 

 He laid the broken wand upon the headmasters desk, touched it with the very tip 
of the Elder Wand, and said, Reparo. 

 As his wand resealed, red sparks flew out of its end. Harry knew that he had 
succeeded. He picked up the holly and phoenix wand and felt a sudden warmth in his 
fingers, as though wand and hand were rejoicing at their reunion. 

 Im putting the Elder Wand, he told Dumbledore, who was watching him with 
enormous affection and admiration, back where it came from. It can stay there. If I die a 
natural death like Ignotus, its power will be broken, wont it? The previous master will 
never have been defeated. Thatll be the end of it. 

 Dumbledore nodded. They smiled at each other. 

 Are you sure? said Ron. There was the faintest trace of longing in his voice as 
he looked at the Elder Wand. 

 I think Harrys right, said Hermione quietly. 

 That wands more trouble than its worth. said Harry. And quite honestly, he 
turned away from the painted portraits, thinking now only of the four-poster bed lying 
waiting for him in Gryffindor Tower, and wondering whether Kreacher might bring him a 
sandwich there, Ive had enough trouble for a lifetime. 


 

Epilogue 

Nineteen Years Later 

 

 

Autumn seemed to arrive suddenly that year. The morning of the first of September was 
crisp as an apple, and as the little family bobbed across the rumbling road toward the 
great sooty station, the fumes of car exhausts and the breath of pedestrians sparkled like 
cobwebs in the cold air. Two large cages tattled on top of the laden trolleys the parents 
were pushing; the owls inside them hooted indignantly, and the redheaded girl trailed 
fearfully behind here brothers, clutching her father's arm. 

 "It won't be long, and you'll be going too," Harry told her. 

 "Two years," sniffed Lily. "I want to go now!" 

 The commuters stared curiously at the owls as the family wove its way toward the 
barrier between platforms nine and ten, Albus's voice drifted back to Harry over the 
surrounding clamor; his sons had resumed the argument they had started in the car. 

 "I won't! I won't be a Slytherin!" 

 "James, give it a rest!" said Ginny. 

 "I only said he might be," said James, grinning at his younger brother. "There's 
nothing wrong with that. He might be in Slytherin" 

 But James caught his mother's eye and fell silent. The five Potters approached the 
barrier. With a slightly cocky look over his shoulder at his younger brother, James took 
the trolley from his mother and broke into a run. A moment later, he had vanished. 

 "You'll write to me, won't you?" Albus asked his parents immediately, 
capitalizing on the momentary absence of his brother. 

 "Every day, of you want us to," said Ginny. 

 "Not every day," said Albus quickly, "James says most people only get letters 
from home about once a month." 

 "We wrote to James three times a week last year," said Ginny. 

 "And you don't want to believe everything he tells you about Hogwarts," Harry 
put in. "He likes a laugh, your brother." 

 Side by side, they pushed the second trolley forward, gathering speed. As they 
reached the barrier, Albus winced, but no collision came. Instead, the family emerged 
onto platform nine and three-quarters, which was obscured by thick white steam that was 
pouring from the scarlet Hogwarts Express. Indistinct figures were swarming through the 
mist, into which James had already disappeared. 

 "Where are they?" asked Albus anxiously, peering at the hazy forms they passed 
as they made their way down the platform. 

 "We'll find them," said Ginny reassuringly. 

 But the vapor was dense, and it was difficult to make out anybody's faces. 
Detached from their owners, voices sounded unnaturally loud, Harry thought he head 
Percy discoursing loudly on broomstick regulations, and was quite glad of the excuse not 
to stop and say hello. . . . 

 "I think that's them, Al," said Ginny suddenly. 


 A group of four people emerged from the mist, standing alongside the very last 
carriage. Their faces only came into focus when Harry, Ginny, Lily, and Albus had drawn 
right up to them. 

 "Hi," said Albus, sounding immensely relieved. 

 Roses, who was already wearing her brand-new Hogwarts robes, beamed at him. 

 "Parked all right, then?" Ron asked Harry. "I did. Hermione didn't believe I could 
pass a Muggle driving test, did you? She thought I'd have to Confound the examiner." 

 "No, I didn't," said Hermione, "I had complete faith in you." 

 "As a matter of fact, I did Confund him," Ron whispered to Harry, as together 
they lifted Albus's trunk and owl onto the train. "I only forgot to look in the wing mirror, 
and let's face it, I can use a Supersensory Charm for that." 

 Back on the platform, they found Lily and Hugo, Rose's younger brother, having 
an animated discussion about which House they would be sorted into when they finally 
went to Hogwarts. 

 "If you're not in Gryffindor, we'll disinherit you," said Ron, "but no pressure." 

 "Ron!" 

 Lily and Hugo laughed, but Albus and Rose looked solemn. 

 "He doesn't mean it," said Hermione and Ginny, but Ron was no longer paying 
attention. Catching Harry's eye, he nodded covertly to a point some fifty yards away. The 
steam had thinned for a moment, and three people stood in sharp relief against the 
shifting mist. 

 "Look who it is." 

 Draco Malfoy was standing there with his wife and son, a dark coat buttoned up 
to his throat. His hair was receding somewhat, which emphasized the pointed chin. The 
new boy resembled Draco as much as Albus resembled Harry. Draco caught sight of 
Harry, Ron, Hermione, and Ginny staring at him, nodded curtly, and turned away again. 

 "So that's little Scorpius," said Ron under his breath. "Make sure you beat him in 
every test, Rosie. Thank God you inherited your mother's brains." 

 "Ron, for heaven's sake," said Hermione, half stern, half amused. "Don't try to 
turn them against each other before they've even started school!" 

 "You're right, sorry," said Ron, but unable to help himself, he added, "Don't get 
too friendly with him, though, Rosie. Granddad Weasley would never forgive you if you 
married a pureblood." 

 "Hey!" 

 James had reappeared; he had divested himself of his trunk, owl, and trolley, and 
was evidently bursting with news. 

 "Teddy's back there," he said breathlessly, pointing back over his shoulder into 
the billowing clouds of steam. "Just seen him! And guess what he's doing? Snogging 
Victoire!" 

 He gazed up at the adults, evidently disappointed by the lack of reaction. 

 "Our Teddy! Teddy Lupin! Snogging our Victoire! Our cousin! And I asked teddy 
what he was doing --" 

 "You interrupted them?" said Ginny. "You are so like Ron --" 

 "-- and he said he'd come to see her off! And then he told me to go away. He's 
snogging her!" James added as though worried he had not made himself clear. 


 "Oh, it would be lovely if they got married!" whispered Lily ecstatically. "Teddy 
would really be part of the family then!" 

 "He already comes round for dinner about four times a week," said Harry "Why 
don't we just invite him to live with is and have done with it?" 

 "Yeah!" said James enthusiastically. "I don't mind sharing with Al--Teddy could 
have my room!" 

 "No," said Harry firmly, "you and Al will share a room only when I want the 
house demolished." 

 He checked the battered old watch that had once been Fabian Prewett's. 

 "It's nearly eleven, you'd better get on board." 

 "Don't forget to give Neville our love!" Ginny told James as she hugged him. 

 "Mum! I can't give a professor love!" 

 "But you know Neville--" 

 James rolled his eyes. 

 "Outside, yeah, but at school he's Professor Longbottom, isn't he? I can't walk into 
Herbology and give him love. . . ." 

 Shaking his head at his mother's foolishness, he vented his feelings by aiming a 
kick at Albus. 

 "See you later, Al. Watch out for the thestrals." 

 "I thought they were invisible? You said they were invisible!" 

 but James merely laughed, permitted his mother to kiss him, gave his father a 
fleeting hug, then leapt onto the rapidly filling train. They saw him wave, then sprint 
away up the corridor to find his friends. 

 "Thestrals are nothing to worry about," Harry told Albus. "They're gentle things, 
there's nothing scare about them. Anyway, you won't be going up to school in the 
carriages, you'll be going in the boats." 

 Ginny kissed Albus good-bye. 

 "See you at Christmas." 

 "Bye, Al," said Harry as his son hugged him. "Don't forget Hagrid's invited you to 
tea next Friday. Don't mess with Peeves. Don't duel anyone till you're learned how. And 
don't let James wind you up." 

 "What if I'm in Slytherin?" 

 The whisper was for his father alone, and Harry knew that only the moment of 
departure could have forced Albus to reveal how great and sincere that fear was. 

 Harry crouched down so that Albus's face was slightly above his own. Alone of 
Harry's three children, Albus had inherited Lily's eyes. 

 "Ablus Severus," Harry said quietly, so that nobody but Ginny could hear, and she 
was tactful enough to pretend to be waving to rose, who was now on the train, "you were 
named for two headmasters of Hogwarts. One of them was a Slytherin and he was 
probably the bravest man I ever knew." 

 "But just say--" 

 "--then Slytherin House will have gained an excellent student, won't it? It doesn't 
matter to us, Al. But if it matter to you, you'll be able to choose Gryffindor over Slytherin. 
The Sorting Hat takes your choice into account." 

 "Really?" 

 "It did for me," said Harry. 


 He had never told any of his children that before, and he saw the wonder in 
Albus's face when he said it. But how the doorsr were slamming all along the scarlet train, 
and the blurred outlines of parents swarming forward for final kisses, last-minute 
reminders, Albus jumped into the carriage and ginny closed the door behind him. 
Students were hanging from the windows nearest them. A great number of faces, both on 
the train and off, seemed to be turned toward Harry. 

 "Why are they all staring?" demanded Albus as he and rose craned around to look 
at the other students. 

 "Don't let it worry you," said Ron. "It's me, I'm extremely famous." 

 Albus, Rose, Hugo, and Lily laughed. The train began to more, and Harry walked 
alongside it, watching his son's thin face, already ablaze with excitement. Harry kept 
smiling and waving, even though it was like a little bereavement, watching his son glide 
away from him. . . . 

 The last trace of steam evaporated in the autumn air. The train rounded a corner. 
Harry's hand was still raised in farewell. 

 "He'll be alright," murmured Ginny. 

 As Harry looked dat her, he lowered his hand absentmindedly and touched the 
lightning scar on his forehead. 

 "I know he will." 

 The scar had not pained Harry for nineteen years. All was well. 

 

ãصС˵ www.27txt.com ӭȥŶݵ㡣
վԴȫתԻ֧棬ȨУ


